Christianity and Islam under the sultans, Vol. 1 s4655g64p

https://hdl.handle.net/2027/heb00891.0001.001

126 48 75MB

English Pages [426] Year 1929

Report DMCA / Copyright

DOWNLOAD PDF FILE

Table of contents :
Frontmatter (page N/A)
LIST OF PERIODICALS AND BOOKS CONSULTED (page xxi)
PART I TRANSFERENCES FROM CHRISTIANITY TO ISLAM AND VICE VERSA
I. INTRODUCTION (page 3)
II. TRANSFERENCE OF URBAN SANCTUARIES (page 6-19)
III. ARRESTED URBAN TRANSFERENCES (page 20-37)
IV. SECULARIZED URBAN CHURCHES (page 38)
V. TRANSFERENCE OF RURAL SANCTUARIES (page 47-62)
VI. CHRISTIAN SANTURARIES FREQUENTED BY MOSLEMS (page 63-74)
VII. MOHAMMEDAN SANTUARIES FREQUENTED BY CHRISTIANS (page 75-97)
VIII. TRANSFERENCE OF NATURAL SANTUARIES—MOUNTAINS (page 98-104)
IX. TRANSFERENCE OF NATURAL SANCTUARIES—SPRINGS (page 105-12)
X. GENERAL CONCLUSIONS (page 113-18)
PART II STUDIES IN TURKISH POPULAR HISTORY AND RELIGION (page 119)
XI. INTRODUCTION (page 121-3)
XII. HETERODOX TRIBES OF ASIA MINOR (page 124-66)
XIII. SHIA MOVEMENTS AND PROPAGANDA IN ASIA MINOR (page 167-74)
XIV. NATURAL CULTS (page 175-225)
XV. TOMB AND SANTUARY (page 226-36)
XVI. INVIOLABILITY OF SANTUARY (page 237-49)
XVII. CULT OF THE DEAD (page 250-77)
XVIII. SAINTS AND THEIR MIRACLES (page 278-97)
XIX. OLD TESTAMENT SAINTS (page 298-308)
XX. KORANIC SAINTS (page 309-36)
XXI. TRIBAL SAINTS (page 337-41)
XXII. SAINTS AND DEMONS OF THE SEA (page 342-50)
XXIII. BOGUS SAINTS (page 351)
XXIV. A PROVINCIAL PANTHEON (page 356-60)
Recommend Papers

Christianity and Islam under the sultans, Vol. 1
 s4655g64p

  • 0 0 0
  • Like this paper and download? You can publish your own PDF file online for free in a few minutes! Sign Up
File loading please wait...
Citation preview

CHRISTIANITY AND ISLAM UNDER THE SULTANS

OXFORD UNIVERSITY PRESS AMEN HOUSE E.C. 4 LONDON EDINBURGH GLASGOW

LEIPZIG NEW YORK TORONTO MELBOURNE CAPETOWN BOMBAY CALCUTTA MADRAS SHANGHAI

HUMPHREY MILFORD PUBLISHER TO THE UNIVERSITY

eS a>xseameanel xgS 3PR RE FS A 3SNR YY . ons- We oa ey © ue (a io < eR, .. Re a J Se aiSo i >» ae oc SENT ¥ yy ae an Beg SF So RES NBaR wdky hg. a cee ¥

= Bef ya ee “3 ; py om i 4 SS eS Boe ass, 3eee See my 2. : SaaS a mg e a a FE cide ‘5 _ eS . : ¥* ° aRee. i=.a? mae:SS SS Boll wer eg 2 ~ERE OS® af yeta x=a eae : S. ee Yi .-:cn AS ge es fi P ea + esa aN ee: 3 ka fool ee SE ete ae | LS: Cee eee 8 (OSS PE i::ie 3 4 ‘ Ss ix “fas: oS. de Langs &2 ByEeeee CkA. ae: Sases!‘e=BPRS eee. Ae of Boek=, a. Bek . ERS ta ioe he yd ae RRR SX9g BREE f eS BRU Le as See Say

e@ . 2 eee SS . Buy BS

i‘aes ‘a Be aecs meme oe Se Ee ER ae “ySR Ee go *Se Siage aa ‘ ER BeOY ve ——_— by iies semnenmn BSELL ‘ " eas oe pg ys “Bee WES iaGR 3A ERR |3 ‘ee ne Ft a BRR ide SES SERS ‘: wes a | ye : Bi. Se eS: bwe Bo RK xSARs ae 5.CE :oeth: Ra EY RSs ‘ a Rage 84 c's RRaN Cees iET ORES BS x&.. want og Bg Pr RSENS P rR Sek Athy ne . Fae : e fsjLee: 3 ™“ 2@'s & Nee oe. OO 2% 7s By Sa pay. 4 oa ne eS SSS PORT ap eS OS TEN. SR aE +3 {we uae ee RS Aes —"S ee: ..Mw Sek. |WeMEL aes ».°i °a.aS 3 REG RB rae OF hee GAR O3 ~:ERIE eee , Mes * t LS Re EX SS eer, od SS ae ¥ ’ awe io! SP Sa Saeed . Sess | ae "heeoe Ses ;‘|BES LE RES eae SS f:. PEAS aR ~~ ftRE 2S eevs ge eee: Rae 4 .> as get ._rere OS ON BS aS SN OSs & & g we. OBR REIRSON NE Seeoe RRS RR RES OS ‘eo Dh . Ses $4 .

ohORR. BSS. CS SHNSS Ss Lee . ED “ee | Semp carteeae ASS&3SAE : SchRRS SS

cee: SN ge He SS Seek BORE _ MRSS. < S SRM . 38 auRE -. 3SRS ‘ Be BEET SY 3 SEER See :¥ Fe Bee St Rae »Seer SNE SRG & :eae ER PO RNR 2RSS AS RE RE e-POR ~2SPSL “% RRS RS

ie ee cae ee See ey. :‘’ xX og styes 34 . RENAE Sea > Seow SB SERS x. ee 2Ssaee ME . Bcc MESSE Se Be PRY, RESSS SS aSOY aN .Bh AES: an BS F

$+ RR Ree Be Ee . .§. SENS eS RAPS FSS xRRR ¥§ ES Se oy RES . .:8Se aSN ze oeOR pet: ara PERRO SS SK SESORES BOS RE SER Re Jas RRS SS : RS ar:Bee ; :cnc an PROS ae

DS eaePek a eoee . RRS 3 SS . .. Je 3 eeeeSeSee ER oS

Re”a:{ES SME SRSSC OSs Be Be e'soat - 3ES ERS -an oseee SIRES “3 BA Ss Bass RS Se Sos a: ER coe ee ARE er aae “= weenie UTE Se CE SRNR. & 7ee.‘ 28.Re IR as; SG °Rh ren Sg eR Ss

(4§3“ae a ¥ey x BeeeE:ay SERS REIN care Se aeea 40S Ry Ae SS

_*? osees rsSe | ae esse. Pe i;.tor 2eS SES 7, VEER OG a1 Nos :aaS ARS ha. eee ..ae an Bi4 oo ces SS ee: ~OS *‘aes fARR | AAS IRSa .nr: Bo See ; SEES eo a 5 SG: Rae Se 4 ue ; “ees “8* aS RM REN * so eee geet Olas SS. OSS ‘SR 8 Ls Se BSS RMB oIAg Beer wg Pere SS Tg a SR ee CaS: ee ee . 3 ro aes:

(> RRS Se ese, * RACEN oT Se ~ 8 “TROBE. 3 : *; “aeFRR BS. «easBe aoeBeas Rec: 4Sk PF EER MCS. SigeSS SSE VRS aEL R= SRS eae . : ;JSR ERS 3g Bs RE ENA ao “x ENS IBS Rg -x. > BRR SRE SS =: age RMS RISC Reur RSaE eaePRESS . RRR eeSERN oe cn SER Gs RENPG KY xs: ea: nas RRR ES 5 "ahh ERR SE SC

Me i SORES.

: BS SS: et sz QSPtet OS ekg ee os RF : FESS SRE QA : 233gags MA Ce SeeSee BRA Oa OB EES ee- aaa. ae ee Ue ae .OSS : Bees Sas. oBe OES SS WS roe Sa ae SSS SRE TS See 8 anes SRS SS REE Shee RSS GHBe OAoo See |he 2“SN 4ASN SP a MN OM PES. :7Bre eS SENS fi Pepe lg UN RS Se ERC . eeRSasSeDes REE ares CU RRS Oe: *ADRS RS : 88S Shee Se OB : Soe ead SOE 20 SRS TA, PEERS SONahesawe SS SANSEe SRN NE os :get eaeok 3c eye IE IN omeJn. RRS oe: 3ee SEER ve BRR Re : LEE aeBe Beg re aon 3ay wt Sar OS tesate eeOsis RE RS aa nsaeSs. SS ~Bea SRR SERS ae i BeDS BRS et ThA atee va aS7, ~aib2BR n> OBS % bi mies ENE: .aMRT 2PAtrgaee SSS eg Cety ge RRS oe _@ot y Boas ESS & i Pees SO PLSTEs RR UL SES SRR 7SoSSNS GRRE ASRE oe ee ce US.OR daeweek a $s ot PERS SSRN a Eo PRONE RE .Soe BRR Sutmone Eng 8S 7 o! So MGS BERN ass SS BetES gs

Ss a re & ee oe Ree Br ea . 1 oFa .aa m3 wsnn pt SME ERR PORE Se STRESS WSR REA Sal

CHRISTIANITY AND ISLAM UNDER THE SULTANS BY THE LATE

F. W. HASLUCK, M.A. Formerly Fellow of King’s College Cambridge ; Librarian of the British School at Athens EDITED BY

MARGARET M. HASLUCK B.A. (CANTAB.), M.A. (ABDN.)

Wilson Travelling Fellow in Aberdeen University, 1921-3 1926-8

VOL. I

OXFORD AT THE CLARENDON PRESS 1929

BY THE SAME AUTHOR Cyzicus, Athos and tts Monasteries,

Letters on Religion and Folk-lore, Joint Author (with H. H. Jewell) of The Church of our Lady of the Hundred Gates at Paros

Printed in Great Britain

EDITOR’S NOTE M:. husband his life from the 1899 to 1916 in spent Greecemost and of Turkey. During first fourteen years of this period, working as an archaeologist rather than as an orientalist, he studied at various times

the classical archaeology of Greece, the medieval and modern history of Smyrna, the rise and development

of the Orthodox monasteries of Mount Athos, the records of medieval geography and travel in the Near East, and the Genoese and Venetian coins and heraldry

found in that area. The fruits of these studies were several books and some fifty articles.

In the spring of 1913 he visited Konia, the ancient Iconium. There he became interested in the interplay of Christianity and Islam within the Turkish empire,

and from that time this subject and its derivatives occupied most of his attention. The result of his researches is this work, the first comprehensive study of

Turkish folk-lore and its relations with Christianity. The inequalities of the work, however, are so obvious that they call for an explanation of the circumstances in which it has been written and published. After his visit to Konia the author read and wrote steadily until the outbreak of the war. His delicate health made active military service impossible, and he continued his researches, amid ever-increasing difhculties, until the summer of 1915. Then he joined the Intelligence Department of the British Legation at Athens, where use was found for his exceptional know-

ledge of the languages and general conditions of the Near East. He found the work uncongenial, but he devoted himself entirely to it and had only his weekly holiday for writing. Late in 1916 the lung trouble that had long sapped his strength was diagnosed and he was

sent to Switzerland. There was considerable danger

v1 Editor's Note from German submarines at that time on the sea journey from Greece to Italy, and to avoid risk of loss he left behind him in Athens such of his manuscripts as did not exist in duplicate. In Switzerland he continued to read and to write, so far as his gradually declining health and strength allowed. He died there on February 22, 1920, a few days after his forty-second birthday. It then fell to me to publish as much of his work as

possible. On the present subject he had intended to publish two books, the first entitled ‘ Transferences from Christianity to Islam and Vice Versa’ and the

second ‘Studies in Turkish Popular History and Religion ’. Since, however, their contents were cognate

and ‘Studies’ was left very unfinished, my friends

advised their fusion. ‘This has been carried out, ‘Transferences’ being represented in the present edition by Part I and Chapters XXV-XXXVIII of Part III, and ‘Studies’ by Part II and Chapters XXXIX-LX of Part III. The title of the present edition was given by me. Very few of the manuscripts had passed the author as ready for publication. One-third of the total number were nearly ready. Four-fifths of the others, including those in Athens, were in a provisional form, and onefifth existed only in notes. In my editorial work I have preserved the original text as scrupulously as possible. Certain repetitions were deleted after the two books were combined, and defective chapters have been writ-

ten up and completed to the best of my ability, but these are the only parts of the text which are not as my

husband wrote them. In such alterations as I made, I followed his notes and made extensive use of his letters to Professor R. M. Dawkins. All the passages rewritten have been specified, so that editorial mistakes

may not be imputed to him. In the foot-notes I have taken more liberties. My husband hoped that others

Edttor’s Note vii would desire to build on his foundations, and with this

possibility in view I have greatly enlarged the footnotes by including whatever relevant material existed in his Swiss note-books. Much of this material was destined for two companion volumes which he planned on transferences from paganism to Christianity in the

West and from Christianity to Islam in Syria and Palestine. Some of his work on transferences from paganism appears in his ‘ Letters on Religion and Folklore’, but the bulk of his material for those companion

volumes is now to be found in the foot-notes of the present book. In this connexion I regret that some

references have defied verification. The bibliography, glossary, and index are my work. The glossary was kindly checked by Sir Harry Lamb,

G.B.E., K.C.M.G., and the index was revised by the indexing expert of the Clarendon Press. ‘The map has been drawn under my directions by the Press. The spelling of classical and Moslem names has caused the usual difficulties. In both cases well-known words have been written in what seemed their most familiar, though possibly erroneous, English forms. Less familiar classical words have been transliterated letter by letter, and unfamiliar Moslem words have been given, through the kind help of Mr. E. Edwards, according to the British Museum system of transliteration, but without diacritic signs. Onthe whole, Turkish,

rather than Arabic, vowels have been preferred in these Moslem words. As foot-notes indicate, early versions of some chapters have already appeared elsewhere. My cordial thanks

are now offered to the editors of the Annual of the British School at Athens, the ‘Fournal of Hellenic Studtes,

and the Fournal of the Royal Anthropological Institute for permitting the chapters in question to be reprinted. As regards other obligations, my husband would have wished special mention to be made of the generosity

Viil Editor's Note with which the library of the Faculté de Théologie Libre at Lausanne and the cantonal libraries of Sion and Lausanne lent him books during his stay in Switzerland. His constant praise of the staff and library of the

Reading Room at the British Museum was more than justified by my own experiences when verifying the references in this work. The Clarendon Press have undertaken its publication on most generous terms and have shown a very pleasant courtesy in all their dealings

with me. Their printers have handled the long and dificult manuscript with taste and skill. The Hibbert Trustees have kindly borne part of the expenses of

publication. ‘The clever photograph of the sacred fowls of St. James is by Mr. C. Thomas. The ‘ writing’

of the Seven Sleepers was made for me by a Cretan dervish in 1915. Professor Dawkins has read Parts I and II in manuscript and has made some useful suggestions. Professor Sir Thomas Arnold, C.I.E., F.B.A., D.Litt., has allowed me to consult him again and again. Mr. Stanley Casson, Principal W. R. Halliday, the late

Dr. D. G. Hogarth, C.M.G., F.B.A., D.Litt., Professor D. S. Margoliouth, D.Litt., Dr. H. Thomas, D.Litt., and the Rev. Dr. Wigram, D.D., also have been kind. From first to last Dr. G. F. Hill, LL.D., F.S.A., D.Litt., has put his experience and his learning at my disposal. In a sense it is fitting that my hand should put the finishing touches to the work. The fateful visit to Konia was the wedding present I (unforeseeingly) ‘chose from those which my husband-to-be offered me the previous summer. Since his death I have spent four years, all told, preparing the work for publication. Yet it is only too certain that many errors and deficiencies still remain

in it, mass of detail that itis. I hope thev will be set down to me and will not gravely impede readers in their

use or their enjoyment of the work.

CONTENTS VOLUME I LIST OF PERIODICALS AND BOOKS CONSULTED . xxi PART I TRANSFERENCES FROM CHRISTIANITY TO ISLAM AND VICE VERSA

I. INTRODUCTION . . . . . ; . 3 II, TRANSFERENCE OF URBAN SANCTUARIES 6-19

I. S. Sophia, Constantinople. , . . , Q-13

2. Parthenon, Athens... , . . , , 13-16 3. S. Demetrius, Salonica , . , ; , 16-17 4. S. Amphilochius, Konia , , , , ; . (7

5. S. Andrew of Crete, Constantinople ; ; 17-18

6. S. Thekla, Constantinople. , . . . . 18

7. S. Elias, Brusa_. . . . . , , . 18

III, ARRESTED URBAN TRANSFERENCES . , 20-37

1. Church at Marsovan . , . ; ; . . 20 2. S. John, Rhodes , , ; , ; ; . 20 3. Metropolis, Yannina . . . ; ; ; . 2i 4. °S. John’, Pergamon . , , , , . 2i

§. ‘S. Sophia’, Sofia. . . . , ; . 2i 6. S. Francis, Galata . , . . . . 2i

7. 5. Sophia, Pergamon . . ; , ; , . 22 8. Church at Thyatira . . . , ; . , . 22 g. S. Amphilochius, Konia. . , . , . 22 10. Jumanun Jamisi, Adalia. . . , . 23 11. S. Nicolas, Alessio . . , . . . . 24 12. Mosque of Zachariah, Aleppo. . . , . 24 13. 5. Stephen, Batron . ,; . , ; , - 26

14. S. Nicolas, Canea , ; , ; . 27

15. 5S. Catherine’s Mosque, Candia . . ; ; . 27

xX Contents IV. SECULARIZED URBAN CHURCHES . ; 38-46

I. S. Irene, Constantinople. , . . , . 38

2. S. Mark, Rhodes . . , . . . . 38 3. Bath at Marsovan ; . , , , . 38 4. Bath at Smyrna ; , ; ; , . . 39

5. Bath of Yildiz Dede, Constantinople. ; ; . 39

6. Pantokrator, Constantinople ; ; ; ; . 40 7. 5. Theodosia, Constantinople ; ; . . 40

8. S. Nicolas, Emirghian. ; ; ; , . - 4I

9. 5. James of Persia, Nicosia . , ; ; , - 42 10. Mamasun Tekke, Nevshehr , , , , - 43 V. TRANSFERENCE OF RURAL SANCTUARIES . 47-62

1. Elwan Chelebi . , . . . . , - 47

2. Kirklar Tekke, Zile_ . , , ; , , - 49 3. Kirklar Tekke, Nicosia , ; , , , . $0

4. Kirklar Tekke, Kirk Kilise . . , , . . St

§. Kaliakra . , , , , , . , . §1 6. Haidar-es-Sultan ; . ; , , , . 52 7. 9. Nerses, Rumkale_ . , . , , ; . 53

8. Domuz Dere_. ; , , ; . , - 54

g. Eski Baba. , ; ; , ; , , . 54 10. S. Chariton, Konia. , . , ; , . 56 VI. CHRISTIAN SANCTUARIES FREQUENTED BY

MOSLEMS . . ; . , ; , 63-74

1. ‘Notre Dame du Plomb’, Sarajevo. ; ; . 66

2. S. Michael, Syki . . . ; . , . 66

3. S. Michael, Tepejik . , , , , , . 66 4. S. Photine, Smyrna . . . . , , . 66

5. Virgin of Sumela, Trebizond , ; , , . 66

6. Assumption, Adrianople . , ; ; . 66 7. Annunciation, Tenos . ; ; ; , ; . 67

8. S. George, Cairo . ; . , ; . . 67 g. Church at Angora. ; . , ; , . 67

10. S. John the Baptist, Caesarea. . ; , . 67

11. S. Chrysostom, Bezirieh ; ; . . . 67

Contents x1 12, Monastery of Armasha, Ismid_ . . . . . 67 13. S. Anthony of Padua, Chios . . . . . 67

14. Church at Philadelphia , , ; . . . 69

15. 5. Naum, Okhrida , , ; , . . 70 16. Chapel at Adalia , . , , , , . 74 VII. MOHAMMEDAN SANCTUARIES FREQUENTED

BY CHRISTIANS _. ; ; , ; , 75-97 1. Imam .Baghevi, Konia . ; . ; , . 81

2. Esef Dai, Thyatira . , , , . , . 82

3. Mosque of Eyyub, Constantinople . ; ; . 82 4. Tekke of Haji Bektash, Kirshehr . . ; ; . 83

5. Mevlevi tekke, Konia . , , ; ; , . 85

6. Tekke of Shems-ed-din, Konia. , , , . 86

7. §. Arab, Larnaka , . . , , , . 87

8. ‘Tomb of 8. Theodore’, Benderegli_. ; ; . 88

9. Tekke of AkyaziliBaba . . . . . .% 90

Io. Tekke Keui, Uskub . , , , . . . 92 11, Turbali Tekke, Rini . . . . , , . 92

12. Sersem Ali Tekke, Kalkandelen . , ; ; . 93

13. Shamaspur Tekke, Alaja_ , , ; ; . 94 14. Mejid Tash . , . . . , ; . 95 15. Pambuk Baba, Osmanjik . , ; . - 95

VIII. TRANSFERENCE OF NATURAL SANCTUARIES—

MOUNTAINS . , , ; . ; , 98-104

I. Kapu Dagh (Dindymon) . , , . ; - 99 2. Ida. , . . . , ; ; ; . 100 3. Hasan Dagh, Caesarea . , , , . » 100

4. Yildiz Dagh, Sivas. . . . . ; . Io! 5. Ali Dagh, Caesarea. . ; . . , . 101 6. Murad Bair , , , , , . . 103 7, Baba Sultan Tekke , . , , . . 103

8. Tulum Bunar . . , . , , , . 103

g. ‘ Tomb of Hannibal’. ; , . ; , . 103 to. ‘ Tomb of Achilles’ . . . , . , . 103

xi Contents

IX. TRANSFERENCE OF NATURAL SANCTUARIES—

SPRINGS . . , , . , , , Io5-12

1. Avjilar, Troad . , , ; , . , . 105 2. Ivriz . . . ; , ; , , . 106 3. Eskishehr . . , . , , , . . 106

4. Eski Kapluja bath, Brusa_. ; ; ; ; . 106

5. Kukurtlu baths, Brusa ; ; , ; ; . 107 6. Abu Ishak, Erzerum . ; ; , . , . 107

7. Yalova 107 8, Kuri Armudlu . ; ,; ,, ;, ;; ,; .; .. 108

9g. Buyuk Tepe Keui_ ; , ; , ; . 108

10. Kainarja baths, Brusa. . . . ; , . 109 X. GENERAL CONCLUSIONS ; . , , 113-18 PART II STUDIES IN TURKISH POPULAR HISTORY AND RELIGION

XI. INTRODUCTION _. , . . . , 121-3 XH. HETERODOX TRIBES OF ASIA MINOR , 124-66

I, Introductory. . ; , , ; , . 124

2. The Yuruks . , ; , , , ; 126-37 3. The Turkomans . , , , , . 138-9

4. The Kizilbash . , , , . ; ; 139-58

A. General. . . , . , , . 139 B. Religion. . . ° . . . - 144 i,1.Theology , ;, ;. ;. ,, .. 144 Mythology 146 ili, Hierarchy , . , . , . 147 iv. Fasts and Feasts and Public Worship . . 148

v. Private Prayer . , , . . . 149 vi. Sacred Books . , . , , . 49

vi. Pilgrimage , , ; , . . 150 vill, Marriage . . , . ; . - 5! §. The Takhtaji 2 2. ww 158-9 6. The Bektashi . . . . . . . 159-66

Contents Xi

XI. SHIA MOVEMENTS AND PROPAGANDA IN

ASIA MINOR . , ; . . , ; 167-74

XIV. NATURAL CULTS. , , . , . 175-225

I. Tree Cults . : , . . ; , 175-9 2. Stone Cults , , . , , . 179-220 Introductory . . , , . . . . 179 1, Natural Stones . . , . , . 181-7 A. Stones selected for their Natural Qualities . 181 B. Pierced Stones . , , , . . 182 C. Stones with Natural Markings. ; . 185

ii. Worked Stones , . . . . 188-207 A, Statues and Reliefs. . ; , . 188

B. Written Columns . , ;. ;, ;, ., ,. .192 C. Stones 202 i. Survival or Development of Stone Cults 207-20

3. Cave Cults . , , . . , , 220-5 XV. TOMB AND SANCTUARY . . , , 226-36 XVI. INVIOLABILITY OF SANCTUARY _. , 237-49

Introductory. , . . . . . . . 237

1. Sacred Trees and Groves. . , , . . 238

2. Protected Animals—Game . . . . , . 240

3. Sacred Fish . . . . . . , . 244

XVII. CULT OF THE DEAD . . . . 250-77 XVIII. SAINTS AND THEIR MIRACLES _, , 278-97

1. Categories of Saints . , . . . ; . 278

2. Miracles and Legends of the Saints ; . . 280

i, The Spittle of Haji Bektash , . . 287 i. The Tides of Negropont . . , ; . 288

i. Haji Bektash and Ahmed Rifai . . . . 289 iv, Abdal Musa and Geyikli Baba . , . . 290

v. Jelal-ed-din and the Monk , , . . 290

vi. Kaigusuz and the Stag-Dervish . . . . 290

vu. Emrem Yunuz , . . . . . 291

vill, Ala-ed-din and the Imam Baghevi . . 292

XIV Contents

ix. Eskiji Koja. ; . ; ; , . 292 x. Haji Ephraim Teuvetlu . ; . . . 293

xi. Ali Efendi and the Wolf . ; ; ; . 293

xii. Sheikh El-Bedawi . , ; . ; . 294

xiii. Hasan Demir Baba Pehlivan . , . 295

XIX. OLD TESTAMENT SAINTS . , ; . 298-308

1. Daniel , , , , , . , . 298 2. Joshua. . , . , , . . . 303 XX. KORANIC SAINTS . , ; , , ; 309-36

1. The Seven Sleepers . ; , ; , , . 309 2. El Khidr . . , , , , , , . 319 XXI. TRIBAL SAINTS . ; , , , , 337-41 XXII. SAINTS AND DEMONS OF THE SEA ; 342-50

XXIII. BOGUS SAINTS . . , , , ; 351-5 XXIV. A PROVINCIAL PANTHEON _. , , 356-60 VOLUME II PART III MISCELLANEA

XXV. PLATO IN THE FOLK-LORE OF THE

KONIA PLAIN . ; ; ; ; . 363-9

XXVI. CHRISTIANITY AND ISLAM UNDER THE

SULTANS OF KONIA _. , , , , 370-8

XXVII. THE INSCRIPTIONS OF S. CHARITON’S 379-83

XXVIII. THE BLESSING OF THE WATERS. ; 384-go

XXIX. ‘THE FORTY’ . ; ; ; ; . 391-402 XXX. HAIDAR, KHOJA AHMED, KARAJA AHMED 403-5

XXXI. THE ‘TOMB OF S. POLYCARP’ , ; 406-28

Introductory. . . ; ; , ; , . 406 1, The Traditional Tomb and its History. , , . 406

2. The Value of Tradition at Smyrna. ; , . 44 3. The Anti-dervish Movement of 1656-76 _—.. , . 419

4. The Ruins on the Castle-hill , , . , . 423

Contents XV

XXXII. SARI SALTIK . ; ; ; ; 429-39

1. At Kaliakra . ; , ; . ; ; . 429

2. At Eski Baba_.. . , , ; , . . 431 3. At Baba Dagh . . ; : . , ; . 432

4. At Kruya. , . ; . . ; , . 434 5. Bektashi Propaganda . ; ; , ; . - 437

XXXII. S. JOHN ‘ THE RUSSIAN’ , , ; 440-1 XXXIV. RENEGADE SAINTS. , ; , , 442-51 XXXV. NEO-MARTYRS OF THE ORTHODOX CHURCH 452-9

XXXVI. STAG AND SAINT . . , ; ; 460-5 XXXVII. THE SAINTS OF ARMUDLU , ; 466-8 XXXVIII. THE CRYPTO-CHRISTIANS OF TREBI-

ZOND ; . ; ; , , . , 469-74

XXXIX. LISTS OF HETERODOX TRIBES _. , 475-82

1. Yuruk Tribes. ; , , , , ; 475-8 i. According to Tsakyroglous . , , ; - 475

11, According to Langlois , , , ; - 478

2. Turkoman Tribes. . , , ; , 478-82 i. According to P. Russell ; ; , . 478

ii, According to Burckhardt . ; ; ; . 480

iii, Afshars according to Grothe . , . . 482 iv. Cilician Kurds according to Langlois . . . 482

XL. HAJI BEKTASH AND THE JANISSARIES 483-93

Introductory. . : . , , , ; . 483

1. The Date of the Institution of the Janissaries , - 484

2. The Personality of Haji Bektash . . . , . 488 3. The Connexion of Haji Bektash with the Janissaries . 489

XLI. GEORGE OF HUNGARY, CHAPTER XV 494-9

Introductory . . , , . . , . 494 Translation . . . . , . . . - 495

Xvi Contents XLII. GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF THE BEK-

TASHI . . . ; ; , . . 500-51

Introductory. . , ; ; . . . . 500

1. Asia Minor , . . , , , , 502-13 A. Vilayet of Angora. , , ; . . 502 B. Vilayet of Konia , . . . , . 506

C. Vilayet of Smyrna (Aidin) . , . , . 507 D. Vilayet of Brusa (Khudavendkiar) , . . 508

E. Vilayet of Kastamuni . , ; , . . Sil

F. Vilayet of Sivas . . ; , . , . Sil

2. Mesopotamia . ; , , ; . ; . 514

3. Egypt. , , . , ; . ; . 514

4. Constantinople . ; . , ; ; . 516-18 A. European side . . , ; . , . 516 B. Asiatic side . , . , , , . 517 5. Turkey in Europe. . ; , ; ; 518-22 A. Gallipoli Peninsula. , ; ; ; . 518

B. District of Adrianople ; . ; , . 518

6. Bulgaria . , , , , , . , 522-3 7. Rumania . . . , , . . , . 523 8. Serbia. . , . . . . ; 523-5 g. A. Greece. , . . , , ; , 525-36 Macedonia , , . . ; . » §25 B. Thessaly . , , , , . , . $31 C. Crete , ; . ; . . , - 534

D. Epirus. . ; ; ; . ; . 536

10, Albania. , . , , , . , 536-51 i. Tepelen Argyrokastro ., ., ., ;., ., 542 . 54 i. . . . 1, Klissura . ; ; ; , . ; . 543 iv. Premet . ., ,, ., ,, .. .. -- 544 v. Liaskovik $45 vi. Kolonia . . , , , , . . 545 vil. Koritza . , .. ;, .. .. ..,-- 545 villi. Kesaraka. 547 ix. Frasheri. .. ,. ,. .. ,.... .. 548 547 x. Tomor xi, Elbassan Berat . . ..... ., .. ,. .- .549 xii, 549

Contents Xvi

xu. Kruya . , , ., ,. .,. ,, .. 549 xiv. Martanesh 551 xv. Dibra. , , . . ; . - 55!

11. Austro-Hungary . . . . , , . 551

A. Bosnia. . , , , . , . §st B. Buda-Pest , . , . , . . 551

XLII. ‘ BEKTASHI PAGES’ . , . ; , 552-63

Introductory. . . . . ; . . . 552 1. Translation , ; . , ; . , . 554 2. Glossary of Albanian Religious Terms . . . . 562

XLIV. AMBIGUOUS SANCTUARIES AND BEK-

TASHI PROPAGANDA _. . , ; , 564-96

Introductory. , . . , , , , ~ 564

I. Bektashism and Orthodox Islam . . , . 565-7

2. Bektashism and Christianity in Asia Minor . . 568-76

i. Haji Bektash Tckke , . ; . . 571 ii. Tekke of Sidi Battal , . , . 573 iv. Shamaspur Tekke . . , , , . 573 v. Tekke of Nusr-ed-din (Kirklar Tekke), Zile . 574 vi. 5. Nerses, Rumkale. , , . . . 574 vii. Chapel at Adalia. , ; , ; . 574 ii. Haidar-es-Sultan Tekke . . ; . . 572

vill. ‘Tomb of S. Polycarp’, Smyrna. . . $74 ix. ‘ Tomb of S$. Theodore’, Benderegli . . 575

x. Mamasun Tekke . . , . . . 575

3. Bektashism and Christianity in Europe . . ; 576-85

xi. Tekke of Sari Saltik, Kilgra . . . 578

xui. Tekke at Eski Baba . . . ; . 578

xiii. Tekke of Binbiroglu Ahmed Baba _. ; . 579

xiv. Tekke of Akyazili Baba . ; , . . 580 xv. S. Eusebia, Selymbria_. . , , . 580 xvi. Tekke of Yunuz Baba, Ainos_ . ; ; . $581

xvi. Tekke of Turbali Sultan, Rini . . . . §82

xvill. Tekke of Sersem Ali . : , . . 582 xix. Tekke of Karaja Ahmed, Uskub . . . 582

xx. 5. Naum, Okhrida . . . . . . 583 xxi. S. Spyridon, Corfu . , . . . 583 xxii. Tekke at Athens . . . . : . 584 4. Political Background . , . . , . 586-96

3295 b

XVIll Contents XLV. THE RISE OF THE KARAOSMANOGLU_. 597-603

XLVI. THE GIRDING OF THE SULTAN . , 604-22

Introductory. . . , , . . , . 604 1, The Traditional Origin of the Girding Ceremony . . 604

2. The History of the Girding Ceremony . , ; . 607

3. The Intrusion of the Mevlevi . , ; . 610

4. Political Combination under Mahmud II_—S. ; . 618

XLVII. COLUMNS OF ORDEAL . , , , 623-35 XLVIII. THE STYLITE HERMIT OF THE OLYMPIEUM 636-40

XLIX. WESTERN TRAVELLERS THROUGH EASTERN

EYES. ; , , , . . , ; 641-5

L. DIEUDONNE DE GOZON AND THE DRAGON OF

RHODES . , . , . . ; ; 646-62

1. The Story and its Development . , . ; . 646

2. Tangible Evidence . . . ; . , . 650 3. Dragon Processions . . , ; , ; . 655 4. De Gozon and the French Side of the Legend _.. . 658

LI. SHEIKH EL BEDAWI OF TANTA . ; . 663-70

LIT. TERRA LEMNIA . . , , . ; 671-88 LIT]. OBSERVATIONS ON INCUBATION . . 689-95 LIV. THE CALIPH MAMUN AND THE MAGIC FISH 696-8

LV. THE THREE UNJUST DEEDS . ; . 699-701 LVI. GRAVES OF THE ARABS IN ASIA MINOR 702-16 LVII. THE MOSQUES OF THE ARABS IN CONSTAN-

TINOPLE . ; ; , . ; , ; 717-35

Introductory. , . . . , . , . 717 1. Arab Jamiandits Traditions . . , ; . 718

2. Superstition and Politics at Constantinople, 1570-1610 721

3. Kurshunlu Maghzen Jamisi . , . ; . .726

4. The ‘ Arab’ in Folk-lore and Hagiology . . . 730

Contents X1x LVI]. THE PROPHECY OF THE RED APPLE . 736-40

LIX. THE MAIDEN’S CASTLE _. , . ; 741-50

Introductory. ; . ; ; . , , . 741

1. ‘Strategic’ Legends . , , ; . , . 742

2. * Romantic’ Legends . . ; ; ; ; . 744

3. Perversions . , . . , ; , . 748

LX. A MODERN TRADITION OF JERUSALEM . 751-4

LXI. ORIGINAL TEXTS , , , ; , 755-68 1. The Parthenon as a Mosque . . , , . 755

2. Lampedusa , . oo, , , , . 755 3. Mamasun. . , . , , , . . 759 4. Eski Baba . ; ; ; , . . . . 761 §. Hafiz Khalil (Akyazili Baba) , . . . . 763

6. The Bektashi Tekkes of Thessaly . ; . . . 766

GLOSSARY . . . . , . . . . 769

INDEX . . . . . , . . . . 771

b2

LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS The Tekke of Haji Bektash , . Frontispiece to Vol. I Photograph. Berggren, Constantinople

The Seven Sleepers . , , ; , . page 120 The Sacred Fowls of Saint James Frontispiece to Vol. II Photograph. Mr. C. Thomas

Map of Part of the former Turkish Empire, with an

inset on the Distribution of the Bektashi in

Albania. ; , . , . , at end

LIST OF

PERIODICALS AND BOOKS CONSULTED I, LIST OF PERIODICALS Abh, Bayr. Ak. for Abhandlungen der Kéniglichen Bayrischen Akademie der Wissenschaften (Munich). Abb. Sachs. Ges. for Abhandlungen der Kéntglich-Sachstschen Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften (Leipzig). A.F.A. for American Fournal of Archaeology (Baltimore). A. ‘Ff, Phil. for American Fournal of Philology (Baltimore). L? Albanie (Lausanne). Amer. Miss. Her. for American Misstonary Herald (Boston). Annales des Mines (Paris). Archaeologia (London). Arch. des Miss. for Archives des Missions Sctentifiques et Littératres

(Paris). |

Arch. Epigr. Mitth. for Archdologische Epigraphische Mitthetlungen aus Oesterreich (Vienna). Arch, Hist. Gascogne for Archives Historiques de la Gascogne (Auch). Archiv f. Religionsw. for Archiv fiir Religionswissenschaft (Freiburg i. B.). Arch. Zeit. for Archaologische Zeitung (Berlin). "A@nvaiov (Athens). Ath. Mitth. for Mittheilungen des Deutschen Archaologischen Instituts (Athens), Atti Soc. Lig. for Atti della Societa Ligure di Storta Patria (Genoa). Das Ausland (Munich). Beitr. z. Vaterl. Gesch. Basels for Bettrage zur vaterlandischen Geschichte Basels (Basel). Bessarione (Rome). Blackwood’s Magazine for Blackwood’s Edinburgh Magazine (Edinburgh). Boll. R. Soc. Geogr. for Bollettino della Reale Socteta Geografica (Rome). B.C.H. for Bulletin de Correspondance Helléntque (Athens). B.S.A. for Annual of the British School at Athens (London). Bulletin d@’ Archéologie Chrétienne (Belley).

Bull. Soc. Géog. for Bulletin de la Société de Géographte (Paris). Bund (Berne).

Bularris (Constantinople). Byz. Zeit. for Byzantinische Zettschrift (Leipzig). Chambers’ Fournal (London).

XXl1 Periodicals and Books consulted Class. Rev. for Classical Review (London). Comptes Rendus for Comptes Rendus de ? Académie des Inscriptions et Belles-Lettres (Paris). Congr. Arch. for Congrés Archéologique de France (Paris). [Onziéme] Congres d@ Ortentaltstes (Paris).

Contemp. Rev. for Contemporary Review (London).

AeXriov Xpior. ’Apyatod. ‘“Eratpeias for AeAtriov ris Xpioriavixys "Apxyaodoyixns ‘Eratpeias (Athens). AeAriov ‘Iorop. ‘Eraipetas for AeAtiov rijs “Ioropikqs Kat ’E@voAoyixs ‘“Eraipetas (Athens). Denk. Wien. Akad. for Denkschriften der Kaiserlichen Akademie der Wissenschaften (Vienna). Echos d’Orient (Paris).

‘Hyepod. ®. Xkoxov for ‘HpepoAdytov ®. Akdxov (Athens). Emmanuel Coll. Mag. for Emmanuel College Magazine (Cambridge). Eng. Hist. Rev. for English Historical Review (London). ‘Eoria (Athens). Expositor (London). Folk-Lore (London). Gelehrte Anzeigen d. bayr. Akad. for Gelebrte Anzeigen der Koniglichen Bayrischen Akademie (Munich). Geog. Fourn. for Geographical Fournal (London). Globus (Brunswick).

Harper’s Magazine (London). L’ Illustration (Paris). Der Islam (Strassburg). Fabrbuch for Fabrbuch des Katserlich Deutschen Archaologischen Instituts (Berlin). Fabrbiicher der Literatur (Vienna). F.H.S. for Fournal of Hellenic Studies (London). Fourn. Astat. for Fournal Astatique (Paris). Fourn. Int. Num. for Fournal International @ Archéologie Numismatique (Athens).

F.R. Anthr. Inst. for Fournal of the Royal Anthropological Institute (London). F.R. Astat. Soc. for Fournal of the Royal Asiatic Society (London). F.R.G.S. for Fournal of the Royal Geographical Society (London). F.RS. for Fournal of Roman Studies (London). Aaoypadia (Athens). Liverp. Ann. Arch. for Liverpool Annals of Archaeology and Anthropology

(London and Liverpool). Man (London). Mécheroutiette (Constantinople). Mél. Fac. Or. for Mélanges de la Faculté Orientale (Beyrut).

List of Periodicals XXl1 Mém. Acad. Aix for Mémoires de P Académie d’ Aix (Aix-en-Provence). Mém, Ac. Inscrr. for Mémotres de ? Académie des Inscriptions et BeltesLettres (Paris). Mercure Historique et Politique (La Haye). Mixpac. “Hyepod. for Mucpactarixov “HyepoAoyrov (Samos). Mines de POrtent (= Fundgruben des Orients) (Vienna). Morning Post (London). Mosl. World for Moslem World (London). Movoeiov for Movoeiov kat BiBrAvwOjKn tis EvayyeAckis QxoAjs (Smyrna). NeodAdoyos (Constantinople).

Neos ‘EAAnvopvjpwy (Athens). Nineteenth Century (London). Notre-Dame (Paris). Nouv. Four. As. for Nouveau Fournal Astatique (Paris). Num. Zeit. for Numtsmatische Zeitschrift (Vienna). Oriens Christianus * (Rome).

IIavdepa (Hermoupolis). Papers A.S.A. for Papers of the American School at Athens (Boston). Papers B.S.R. for Papers of the British School at Rome (London). ITapvacads (Athens).

Ilarpis (Athens). P.E.F.,Q.S. for Palestine Exploration Fund, Quarterly Statement(London). DirodA. AVAAoyos for Dirodoyixos LvAAoyos (Constantinople).

‘H ®wvy rob Aaod (Volo). P.R.G.S. for Proceedings of the Royal Geographical Society (London). Proc. Russ. Arch. Inst. for Proceedings of the Russian Archaeological

Institute (Constantinople) = Pyccxit Apxeonoruyeckit HnCTHTyTb Bb KonctantuHononb. HMssétcria. Tom. 9. Proc. Soc. Bibl. Arch. for Proceedings of the Soctety of Biblical Archaeology (London). ITpopnbeds (Volo). Rec. de Voyages for Recueil de Voyages et de Mémotres (Paris). Records of the Past (Washington). Report Brit. Ass. for Report of the British Assoctation (London). Rev. Arch, for Revue Archéologique (Paris). Rev. Deux Mondes for Revue des Deux Mondes (Paris). Rev. Et. Anc. for Revue des Etudes Anciennes (Bordeaux). Rev. Hist. Relig, for Revue de ? Histoire des Religions (Paris). Rev. Instr. Pub. Belg. for Revue de P Instruction Publique en Belgique (Tirlemont). 1 The periodical is to be distinguished from Le Quien’s book of the same name.

XXIV Periodicals and Books consulted Rev. Num. for Revue Numismatique (Paris). Rev, Or. Lat. for Revue de ?Orient Latin (Paris). R.G,58., Suppl. Pap., for Royal Geographical Society, Supplementary Papers (London). Schweizerische Wochenschrift fiir Chymte (Basel).

Sitzb. Bayr. Akad. for Sitzungsberichte der Kéoniglichen Bayrischen Akademie der Wissenschaften (Munich). Sitzb, Wien. Akad. for Sitzungsberichte der Katserlichen Akademie der Wissenschaften (Vienna). Spectateur Oriental (Smyrna). Theol. Studien und Kritiken for Theologische Studien und Kritiken (Hamburg). Opaxixy >Emernpis (Athens). Times (London). Tour du Monde (Paris). Trans. Orient. Congr. for Transactions of the Oriental Congress (London). Trans. Roy. Soc. Lit. for Transactions of the Royal Society of Literature (London). Trans. Vict. Inst. for Transactions of the Victoria Institute (London). Verh. Ges. f. Erdkunde for Verhandlungen der Gesellschaft fiir Erdkunde (Berlin). Verh. Sachs. Ges. for Verhandlungen der Kénighch-Sachsischen Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften (Leipzig). Wallonia (Liége). Wiss. Mitth. Bosn. for Wissenschaftliche Mittheilungen aus Bosnien (Sarajevo and Vienna). Zevodarns (Athens). Z.D. Morgenl. Ges. for Zeitschrift der Deutschen Morgenlandischen Gesellschaft (Leipzig). Z.D.P.V. for Zeitschrift des Deutschen Palastina-V ereins (Leipzig). Z.f. Anthropol. for Zeitschrift der Gesellschaft fiir Anthropologie (Berlin). ZL. f. Erdk. for Zettschrift der Gesellschaft fiir Erdkunde (Berlin). L. f. Volksk. for Zeitschrift der Gesellschaft fiir V olkskunde (Leipzig).

II. LIST OF AUTHORS: Abbott, G. F. Macedonian Folklore, Cambridge, 1903. ——- Tale of a Tour in Macedonia, Cambridge, 1903. Abela, E. Bettrage zur Kenntniss aberglaubischer Gebrauche in Syrien,

in Z.D.P.V. vii (1884), pp. 79 ff. ,

t The majority of modern Greek books in this list are accessible only at the

British Archaeological School, Athens, or the National Library, Athens. Mr. Heurtley, of the British School, and Mr. D. P. Petrocochino have kindly helped me with certain of their bibliographical details. Books marked with an asterisk are those I have been unable to consult.—M. M. H.

List of Authors XXV Acta Sanctorum, Antwerp, Brussels, and Tongerloo, 1643 ff. Adamson, 8. The Mosque of Eyoub, in Harper's Magazine, June 1913, pp. 28 ff. Agricola, G. Bermannus, Basle, 1530. Aimé-Martin, L. Lettres édifiantes, Paris, 1838-43.

Ainsworth, W. F. Travels and Researches in Asia Minor, London, 1842.

Albacario, 8., in Mattioli, Comment. in Dioscor., q.v. Alberi, E. Relaziont degli Ambasctatort Veneti, Firenze, 1839-03. Allard, P. L’ Art Paien sous les Empereurs Chrétiens, Paris, 1879. —— Les Derniéres Persécutions du III stécle, Paris, 1887. —~ Histoire des Persécutions pendant la premiere moitié du ILI? stécle, Paris, 1885—go.

—— La Persécution de Dtoclétien, Paris, 1890. Allatius, L. LUupuxra, Coloniae Agrippinae (? Amsterdam), 1653.

Allom, T. Constantinople and the Seven Churches of Asta Minor, ed. R. Walsh, London, ? 1839. Amélineau, EK. Contes et Romans de P Egypte Chrétienne, Paris, 1888. American Archaeological Expedition to Syria, London, 1904.

Anagnosta, J. De Extremo Thessalonicenst Excidio, in Allatius, Lidppukra, ll, pp. 318 ff. Analecta Bollandtana, Paris and Brussels, 1882 ff. Anderson, J. G. C. Studia Ponttca, i, iii, Brussels, 1903-10. —— Exploration in Galatia cis Halym, in F.H.S. xix (1899), pp. 52 ff. Andréossi, A. F. Constantinople et le Bosphore, Paris, 1828.

D’Anglure, O. Le Saint Voyage de fherusalem, ed. Bonnardot and Longnon, Paris, 1878. Anichkof, E. St. Nicolas and Artemis, in Folk-Lore, v (1894), pp. 108 ff.

Anna Comnena. Alextas. Anon. Lxpedition to East of Fordan, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1869, pp. 284 ff. —— Paristensis, in Kambouroglous, Mvypeta, i, pp. 94 f. —— Romanus, in Muratori, Antiq. [tal. iti, pp. 247 ff. —— Viennensts, in Kambouroglous, Mryueta, i, p. 92, and, ed. L. Ross, in Fabrbiicher d. Lit. Anz.-Bl. xc (1840), pp. 16 ff. —— Weissagungen vom Ende des tiirkischen Reichs, in Das Ausland, 1828, no. 93, p. 372.

Ansted, D. T. The Lonian Islands in 1863, London, 1863. Antoniades, E. M. “Exdpaots rijs “Ayias Xodias, Athens, 1907-9. Antoninus martyr. De Locts Sanctts, ed. T. Tobler, St. Gallen, 1863. Antonopoulos, 8. Mixpa ’"Acia, Athens, 1907. Aravantinos, P. Xpovoypadia tis ’Hmeipov, Athens, 1856. Aravantinos, 8. P. ‘Ioropia rod ’AAf Ilaca, Athens, 1895. Archelaos, I. S. “‘H Livacos, Athens, 1899. Arnold, Sir T. W. The Preaching of Islam, London, 1896.

XXV1 Periodicals and Books consulted Artin Pasha, Y. Contes Populaires Inédits de la Vallée du Nil, Paris, 1895.

| Arundell, F. V. J. Discoveries in Asta Minor, London, 1834. —— A Visit to the Seven Churches of Asta, London, 1828. D’Arvieux, L. Mémoires, Paris, 1735. —— Voyage dans la Palestine, ed. De La Roque, Paris, 1717. Ashby, T. Lampedusa, Lamptone, and Limosa, in Liverp. Ann. iv (1912), . 11 ff. Assad A ffendi. Destruction des ‘fantssaires, Paris, 1833. Aucher-Eloy, R. Voyages en Orient de 1830 ad 1838, Paris, 1843.

Augustine, Saint. Tract. vit. De Aversa, Philip. Descriptio Templi Domini, ed. Meisner (H.) and Rohricht (R.), in Z.D.P.V. i (1878), pp. 210 ff. Avisi de Constantinopolt di cose stupende, Venice, 1538.

Babin, J. P. Relation d’ Athénes, Lyon, 1674 (Paris, 1854).

Babinger, F. Der Islam in Kleinasien, in Z. D. Morgenl. Ges. \xxvi (1922), pp. 126 ff. Baedeker, C. Austria-Hungary, Leipzig, 1905.

—— Egypt, Leipzig, 1898. |

—— Southern France, Leipzig, 1902. — — Central Italy, Leipzig, 1909. —— North Italy, Leipzig, 1899. —— Southern Italy, Leipzig, 1908. —— Konstantinopel, Leipzig, 1914. —— Palestine and Syria, Leipzig, 1906. Baird, H. M. Modern Greece, New York, 1856. Baker, James. Turkey in Europe, London, 1877.

Baldacci, A. Berat e il Tomor, in Boll. R. Soc. Geogr., ser. v, vol. i

(1914), pp. 974 ff. —

Baldensperger, P. J. Peasant Folklore of Palestine, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1893, pp. 203 ff. Barbaro, N. Giornale dell’ Assedio di Cospolt, ed. Cornet, Vienna, 1856.

Bargrave, Robert. Travels (1646-56), in Bodleian Codex Rawlinson C 799.

Baring Goula, S. Curious Myths of the Middle Ages, first series, London, 1868. — Curious Myths of the Middle Ages, second series, London, 1868. *Barjavel, C. F. H. Dictons du Vaucluse, Carpentras, 1849-53. Barker, W. B. Lares and Penates, London, 1853. Barkley, H. C. Bulgaria before the War, London, 1877. —— A Ride through Asia Minor and Armenia, London, 1891.

Barletius Scodrensis. Vita Skanderbegi, in Lonicerus, Chron. Turc. Libri, q.v.

List of Authors XXV1l Barth, Heinrich. Reise von Trapezunt nach Scutart, in Petermann’s Mitthetlungen, 1860-1, Erganzungsheft, no. 1. Bartholomaeus Anglicus. De Proprietatibus Rerum, London, 1535. Basil, merchant. Pilgrimage, 1466, in Khitrovo, [tin. Russes, q.v.

Basileiadou, N. Davapudstiaces Kupddes, in “Hpepod. ®. Lixdxov, 1913, pp. 288-95. Basilius, In Mamantem. Basset, R. Nédromah et les Traras, Paris, 19o!. Baumann, Emile. Trois Villes Saintes, Paris, 1912. De Beauchamp, A. V1e d’ Alt Pacha, Paris, 1822.

Beaufort, F. Karamania, London, 1817. *____ Piloting Directions for the Mediterranean, London, 1831. De Belabre, F. Rhodes of the Knights, Oxford, 1908. Belgrano, L. T. Lapidi, in Atti Soc. Lig. xii (1877-84), pp. 321 ff. —— Documenti riguardanti la Colonia di Pera, in Atts Soc. Lig. xi (1877-84), pp. 97 ff. Belin, F. A. Histotre de la Latinité de Constantinople, Paris, 1894. Bell, G. M. L. Amurath to Amurath, London, I1g1I. Belon, P. Observations de Plusieurs Singularitez, Anvers, 1555. Benaglia, G. Relatione del Viaggio, Bologna, 1684. Benetti, A. Osservazioni fatte nel Viaggio a Constantinopoli, Venice, 1688.

Benjamin of Tudela. Ztinerary, ed. Asher, London and Berlin, 1840-1 ; ed. Wright, ¢.v. Benndorf, O. Retsen in Lykien und Karten, Vienna, 1884. Bent, J. T. Early Voyages and Travels in the Levant, London, 1893. —— Explorations in Cilicia Tracheta, in P.R.G.S. xii (1890), pp. 445 ff. —— A Fourney in Cilicia Tracheta, in F.H.S. xii (1891), pp. 206 ff. —— The Nomad Tribes of Asta Minor, in Report Brit. Ass., 1889, § H, pp. 176 ff. —— The Yourouks of Asia Minor, in F.R. Anthr. Inst. xx (1890-1), pp. 269 ff. Bérard, V. La Macédoine, Paris, 1897. —— La Turquie et PHellénisme Contemporatn, Paris, 1893. Berati, S. (Koléas, S.), Légendes Albanaises, in L’ Albanie, April 1918. Berbrugger, L. A. Le Tombeau de la Chrétienne, Alger, 1867.

Berg, A. Die Insel Rhodus, Braunschweig, 1862. . Bernard the Wise (a. p. 867), in Wright’s Travels, q.v. Bernardakis, G. Notes sur la Topographie de Césarée de Cappadoce, in Echos d’Orient, xi (1908), pp. 22 ff. Bertaux, EF. Rome, Paris, 1904, 1905. Besant (W.) and Palmer (E. H.). Ferusalem, London, 1908. Beugnot, A. A. Histoire de la Destruction du Paganisme en Occident, Paris, 1835.

XXVII1 Periodicals and Books consulted Beulé, C. E. Foutlles a Carthage, Paris, 1861. Bibliotheca Hagtographica Graeca, Brussels, 1909. Bickford Smith, R. A. H. Cretan Sketches, London, 1898. Bigham, Clive. With the Turkish Army in Thessaly, London, 1897. Biliotti (E.) and Cottret (A.). L’fle de Rhodes, Rhodes, 1881.

Bird, I. L. (Mrs. Bishop). Fourneys in Persia and Kurdistan, London, 18gI. Bjelokosi¢, L. G. Denkwiirdigketten in der Gegend von Fojnica, in W1s5s.

Mitth. Bosnien, i (1893), pp. 478 ff. [Blunt, F.] People of Turkey, London, 1878. De Bode, C. A. G. P. L. Travels in Lauristan and Arabtstan, London, 1845.

De Boissat, P. Histotre des Chevaliers de POrdre de Sainct Fean, Lyon, 1612.

Bonet-Maury, G. Akbar, in Rev. Hist. Relig. xi (1885), pp. 133 ff. —— La Religion d Akbar, in Rev. Hist. Relig. li (1905), pp. 153 ff. Bordeaux, A. La Bosnie Populaire, Paris, 1904. Boré, E. Arménie, Paris, 1838. Borrow, G. H. Bible in Spain, London, 1843. Bosio, G. Lstoria della Sacra Religione di S. Giovanni Gerosolimitano, Rome, 1594. *Bost, J. A. Souvenirs d’Orient, Neuchatel, 1875. De Bouchaud, P. Bologne, Paris, 1909. Boucher, Jean. Le Bouquet Sacré, Poitiers, 1613 (?). Boué, Ami. Recueil d’[tinéraires dans la Turquie d’Europe, Vienna, 1854.

—— La Turquie d’ Europe, Paris, 1840. Bouillet, M. N. Dictionnaire d’ Histoire et de Géographie, Paris, 1914. Bousquet, P. A. Actes des Apotres Modernes, Paris, 1852-9. Bovenschen, A. ‘Fohann von Mandeville, in Zeit. f. Erdk. xxiii (1888), pp. 177 ff.

Boyadjides, I. K. LTapddoots wept Zwvapa Kata tov 15° Aidva, in Aaoypadia, ii (1910), pp. 198 ff. Bradshaw’s Spain and Portugal, London, 1865. Brailsford, H. N. Macedonia, London, 1906. Brandenburg, E. Ueber byzantinische und seldschukische Reste im Gebtet des Tiirkmen-Dag, in Byz. Zett. xix (1910), pp. 97 ff. Braun Wiesbaden, Carl. Eine Tiirkische Reise, Stuttgart, 1876, 1877. Brayer, A. Neuf Années a Constantinople, Paris, 1836. Breithaupt, J. F. Christliche Helden Insel Malta, Frankfurt-am-Mayn, 1632.

Breuning, H. J. Orientalische Reyss, Stuttgart, 1612. De Bréves, F. Savary. Relation des Voyages (including Moyens de Ruiner un Turc), Paris, 1628.

List of Authors XX1X British Museum MS. Add. 22, 914; Reg. 14 A xiii; Add. MSS. 34060; Harl. 7021. Brooks, E. W. Arabic Lists of the Byzantine Themes, in F.H.S. xxi (1901), pp. 67 ff.

—— The Arabs in Asta Minor, from Arabic Sources, in F.H.S. xviii (1898), pp. 182 ff.

—— Ihe Campaign of 716-8, from Arabic Sources, in F.HS. xix (1899), pp. 19 ff.

Brown, J. P. Lhe Dervtshes, London, 1868. Browne, E. 4 Brief Account of some Travels, London, 1673. Browne, E. G. Literary History of Persia, London, 1906. —— Further Notes on the Literature of the Hurufis,in F, R. Astat. Soc. 1907, pp. 533 ff. Browne, W.G. Nouveau Voyage fait depuis 1792 jusqu’en 1798, Paris, 1800. ——— in Walpole’s Travels, q.v.

Brusoni, G. Historta dell’ ultima Guerra, Venice, 1673. Brydone, P. Your through Sicily and Malta, London, 1773. Buchon, J. A. C. La Gréce Continentale et la Morée, Paris, 1843. —— Recherches Historiques sur la Principauté Frangatse de Morée, Paris, 1845. — Voyage dans ? Eubée, Paris, 1911. Buckingham, James S. Travels in Mesopotamia, London, 1827. De Bunsen, V. Soul of a Turk, New York and London, Igto,

De Buondelmonti, C. Liber Insularum Archipelagt, ed. de Sinner, Leipzig and Berlin, 1824. Burckhardt, J. L. Yravels in Arabia, London, 1829. —— Travels in Syria and the Holy Land, London, 1822. Burgess, R. Greece and the Levant, London, 1835. De Burgo, G. B. Viaggio di Cinque Anni, Milan, 1686-9. Burnaby, F. G. On Horseback through Asia Minor, London, 1877. Burton, Isabel. Inner Life of Syria, London, 1879. Burton, R. F. Arabian Nights, London, 1894. —— Pilgrimage to El-Medinah and Meccah (3 vols.), London, 1855-6. ——— Pilgrimage to Al-Medinah and Meccah (2 vols.), London, 1906. Burton (R. F.) and Drake (C. F. T.). Unexplored Syria, London, 1872. Bury, J. B. Eastern Roman Empire, London, 1912. —— Later Roman Empire, London, 1889. —— Mutasim’s March through Cappadocia in A.D, 838, in F.H.S. xxix (1909), pp. 120 ff.

De Busbecq, O. G., Baron. Life and Letters, ed. Forster, London, 1881.

—— Lettres, Paris, 1748.

De Bussierre, M. T. R. Lettres sur ?Orient, Paris, 1829.

XXX Pertodicals and Books consulted Byzantios, D.C. Scarlatos. Aoxiptov ris "Aprns Kat ths ITIpeBélns, Athens, 1884.

Byzantios, Serapheim. ‘H Kwvoravrwovroits, Athens, 1851-69. Cahier, C. Caractéristiques des Saints, Paris, 1867. Cahun, L. Excursions sur les Bords de ? Euphrate, Paris, 1885.

Calder, W. M. ‘Fulta-Ipsus and Augustopolits, in F.R.S. ii (1912), pp- 237 ff.

—— Smyrna as described by the Orator Aelius Aristides, in Ramsay, Studies in History, pp. 95 ff. Canaye, Ph. Le Voyage du Levant, ed. Hauser, Paris, 1897.

Cantimir, D. Histoire de Empire Othoman, tr. Joncquiéres, Paris, 1743.

Carayon, A. Relations Inédites de la Compagnie de Fésus, Poitiers, 1864. Carmoly, E. Itinératres de la Terre Sainte, Bruxelles, 1847. Carnoy (E. H.) and Nicolaides (Jean). Folklore de Constantinople, Paris, 1889.

—— Traditions de Constantinople, Paris, 1892. —— Traditions Populatres de ? Aste Mineure, Paris, 1881.

Casola, P. Pilgrimage, ed. M. M. Newett, Manchester, 1907. Castellan, A. L. Lettres sur la Morée, Paris, 1811. De Castries, H. L’fslam: Impressions et Etudes, Paris, 1896. *Caylus. Contes Ortentaux, La Haye, 1743. Cedrenus, G. Compendium Histortarum. Cellini, B. Vita, ed. B. Bianchi, Florence, 1886. Cesnola, Luigi Palma di. Cyprus, London, 1877. Chalcondyles, L. *AmédderEts toropiv mpaitn, Bonn, 1843. Chandler, R. Travels in Asta Minor and Greece, London, 1817. Chaplin, Dr. 4 Note, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1894, p. 36, n. Chardin, J. Voyage en Perse, Paris, 1723. Chardry, J. Set Dormanz und Petit Plet, ed. J. Koch, Heilbronn, 1879. Charriére, E. Négoctations de la France dans le Levant, Paris, 1848-60. Chastel, E. Histoire de la Destruction du Paganisme dans l’ Empire @’Ortent, Paris, 1850.

De Chateaubriand, Fr. R. Itinératre de Parts a Férusalem, Paris, 1811. Chaviaras, D. IlepizAovs tot Avpaixod KdAmov in ITapvacads, xiv (1892), pp. 533 ff.

Chaviaras, M. D. ITepi rod Kdorpou rijs Loupias, in Aaoypadia, li (1910), pp. 557 ff.

—— ‘Podiaxa Monpeia rod ’Axpirixot Kvxdov, in Aaoypadgia, i (1909), pp. 275 ff.

Chirol, V. ’Iwixt Greek and Turk, Edinburgh and London, 1881. Chishull, E. Travels in Turkey, London, 1747. Chodzko, A. B. Légendes Slaves du Moyen Age, Paris, 1858.

List of Authors XXXI Choiseul-Gouffier, M. G. A. Voyage pittoresque de la Gréce, Paris, 1782-1809. Choisy, A. L’ Aste Mineure et les Turcs en 1875, Paris, 1876. De Cholet, A. P. Voyage en Turquie d’ Aste, Arménie, Kurdistan, Paris, 1892.

Chourmouzes, B. Kpnrud, Athens, 1842. Christodoulos, M. “H @Opaxn, Constantinople, 1897. —— Ileptypady tis “Emapyias Lapavra ’ExrdAnowwv. Cinnamus, J. Lpztome. Clark, W. G. Gazpacho, London, 1850.

Clarke, E. D. Travels in Russta, Tartary, and Turkey, Aberdeen, 1848.

Clausse, G. Les Monuments du Christianisme au Moyen-Age, Paris, 1893.

De Clavijo, Ruy G. Narrative of the Embassy to the Court of Iimour, London, 1859. Clayton, R. Fournal from Grand Cairo to Mt. Sinat, London, 1753. Clermont-Ganneau, C. Archaeological Researches in Palestine, London, 1896-9.

—— Horus et Saint Georges, in Rev. Arch. xxxii (1876), pp. 196 ff, 372 ff.

—— La Palestine Inconnue, Paris, 1876.

Cobham, C. D. Excerpta Cypria, Cambridge, 1908. —— The Story of Umm Haram, in F.R. Astat. Soc., 1897, pp. 81 ff. Cochran, W. Pen and Pencil in Asia Minor, London, 1887. Cockerell, C. R. Lravels in Southern Europe and the Levant, London, 1903.

Collignon, M. Le Consul ‘fean Giraud et sa Relation de l Attique, in Mém. Ac. Inscrr. xxxix (1914), pp. 373 ff. —— Documents du XVII Stécle relatifs aux Antiquités d Athénes, in Comptes Rendus, xxv (1897), pp. 56 ff. Collin, J. Histoire Sacrée de la Vie des Saints, Limoges, 1672.

Collin de Plancy, J. A. S. Dictionnaire Critique des Reliques, Paris, 1821-2. Comidas, C. Descrizione di Costantinopolt, Bassano, 1794.

Comparetti, D. Vergil in the Middle Ages, London, 1895. —— Virgilio nel medio evo, Firenze, 1896. Conder, C. R. The City of Ferusalem, London, 1909. —— The Mosl Mukams, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1877, pp. 89 ff. —— The Nomenclature of the Survey, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1877, pp. 144 ff. —— Notes from the Memoir, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1877, pp. 85 ff., 178 ff.

—— Report, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1874, pp. 11 ff. —— Survey of Western Palestine, London, 1881. Conder, Josiah. Turkey, in The Modern Traveller, xiv, London, 1826.

XXX1l Pertodtcals and Books consulted Constantiniade, Constantinople, 1846. Constantinides, K. A. KaAAXizoXts, Athens, 1907. Constantinople Imperial Museum, Catalogue.

Consul’s daughter = Blunt, F., ¢.v. Conybeare, F. C. Apology and Acts of Apollonius, London, 1894. Conze, A.C. L. Reise auf den Inseln des Thrakischen Meeres, Hanover, 1860,

Cordellas, A. Aé ’AOjvar éEeralopevar tro bopavAtcny "Eo, Athens, 1879. Coronelli, V. M. Jsolario, Venice, 1698. Corpus Inscriptionum Graecarum. Corpus Inscriptionum Latinarum. Corroyer, E. L’ Architecture Romane, Paris, 1888. Cosquin, E. Contes de Lorraine, Paris and Macon, 1886. Cousin, L. Histotre de l’Eglise, Paris, 1686. Covel, J. Dtaries, ed. Bent, London, 1893. —— Some Account of the Present Greek Church, Cambridge, 1722. Craven, Elizabeth, Lady. Journey to Constantinople in 1786, London, 1789.

Crooke, W. Prentice Pillars: the Architect and his Pupil, in Folk-Lore, Xx1x (1918), pp. 219 ff.

Crowfoot, J. W. Survivals among the Kappadokian Kizilbash (Bektash), in ‘Ff. R. Anthr. Inst. xxx (1900), pp. 305 ff. Crusius, M. TYurco-Graecia, Basle, 1584. De Cuchermoys, J. Le Sainct Voyage de Hierusalem, Lyon, 1530. Cuinet, V. Turquie d’Asie, Paris, 1890~4. Cumont, F. Note sur une Inscription d’Iconitum, in Byz. Zeit. 1v (1895), pp: 99 ft. Cumont, F. and E. Studia Pontica, 1i, iti, Brussels, 1906.

Cuper, G. Lettres, Amsterdam, 1742. Curtiss, S. I. Primitive Semitic Religion, London, 1902. Curzon, R. Vistts to Monasteries in the Levant, London, 1897. Cuspinian, J. De Turcorum Origine, Leyden, 1654. Cutts, E. L. Christians under the Crescent, London, 1877. Cyril, Archbishop. ITepeypady rijs "Apxicatpamias "[koviov, Constantinople, 1815. — ITIwag ris ’Apytoatrpamias ’Ikoviov, Vienna, 1812. Dahnhardt, O. Natursagen, Leipzig and Berlin, 1907. Dale, 8. Pharmacologia, London, 1693. Dallam, T. Diary, 1599-1600, ed. Bent, London, 1893. Dallaway, James. Constantinople, London, 1797. Dandini, G. Voyage du Mont Liban, Paris, 1675. Daniel, begoumenos, in Khitrovo, Itin. Russes, 9. v.

List of Authors XXXI11 Danon, M. Les Superstitions des Fuifs Ottomans, in Onzieme Congres d’ Orient (1897), pp. 259 ff.

Dapontes, C. Kaépénrns Iuvacav, Leipzig, 1766. Daubeny, C. G. B. Active and Extinct Volcanos, London, 1826. Davis, E. J. Life in Astatic Turkey, London, 1879. Davis, Nathan. Carthage and her Remains, London, 1861. —— Ruined Cities within Numidian and Carthaginian Territories, London, 1862. Dawkins, R. M. 4 Modern Greek Festival, in Emmanuel Coll. Mag. Xviil (1908), pp. 18 ff. —— A Re-cut Gem from Melos, in Ridgeway Essays, pp. 167 ff. Decourdemanche, J. A. La Religion Populaire des Turcs, in Rev. Hist. Relig. \x (1909), pp. 64 ff.

Definer, M. ITévre “EBdopades mapa rots *ApynaOpyoKots év "Ode, in ‘Eoria, 1877, no. 87, pp. 547 fi. Degrand, A. Souvenirs de la Haute-Albanie, Paris, 1901. Delehaye, H. Légendes-Grecques des Saints Milttatres, Paris, 1909. —— Les Origines du Culte des Martyrs, Brussels, 1912. —— Saints de Chypre, in Anal. Bolland, xxvi, 161 ff. Della Valle, P. Viagg1, Rome, 1658. —— Voyages, Rouen, 1745. Demidoff, A. Travels in Southern Russta during 1837, London, 1853. Depont (O.) and Coppolani (X.). Les Confrértes Religteuses Musulmanes, Alger, 1897-8. Dernschwam, Hans. Ortentalische Reise 1553-1555, ed. H. Kiepert, in Globus, li (1888), pp. 186 ff., 202 ff., 214 ff., 230 ff. Deschamps, E. 4u Pays d Aphrodite-Chypre, Paris, 1898. —— Quinze Mots al’ Ile de Chypre, in Tour du Monde, 1897, pp. 181 ff. Deschamps, G. La Gréce d Aujourd’ hut, Paris, 1892. Desdevises du Dézert, G. Barcelone et les Grands Sanctuatres Catalans, Paris, 1913. Des Hayes, L. Votage de Levant fait en lannée 1621, Paris, 1645. Didron, A. N. Manuel d’Iconographte Chrétienne, Paris, 1845. Diehl, Charles. Manuel d Art Byzantin, Paris, 1910. Von Diest, W. —— Von Pergamon zum Pontus, in Petermann’s Mitthetlungen, 18809,

Erganzungsheft, no. 94. )

—— Von Tilsit nach Angora, tbid., 1899, Erganzungsheft, no. 125. Von Diest (W.) and Anton (M.). Neue Forschungen 1m Nordwestlichen Kleinasten, 1bid., 1895, Erganzungsheft, no. 116. Dieulafoy, Jeanne P. H. R. Aragon et Valence, Paris, 1gol.

Dittenberger, C. F. W. Sylloge Inscriptionum Graecarum, Leipzig,

3295 C 1898-1905.

Dodwell, E. Tour through Greece, London, 1819.

XXXIV Pertodtcals and Books consulted Dodwell, E. Views and Descriptions in Greece and Italy, London, 1834. Dolfin, Zorzo. Belagerung und Eroberung von Constantinopel aus der

Chronik von Zorzo Dolfin, ed. G. M. Thomas, in Sitzb. Bayr. Akad. 1868, vol. 11, pp. 1 ff.

Donaldson, D. M. Lhe Great Venture in Khorasan, in Mosl. World, ix (1919), pp. 293 Hf.

Dorys, G. La Femme Turque, Paris, 1902. Doubdan, Jean. Le Voyage de la Terre Sainte, Paris, 1657. Doughty, C. M. Lravels in Arabia Deserta, Cambridge, 1888. Douhet, Count L. R. Dictionnaire des Légendes, Paris, 1855. *Doutté, E. Marabouts. Dozon, L. A. H. Contes Albanats, Paris, 1881. Drummond, Alexander. Travels through Germany, Italy, Greece, and several Parts of Asta, London, 1754. Du Cange, Chas. Du Fresne. Constantinopolis Christiana, Paris, 1680. Ducas, Michael. Historia Byzantina. Duff Gordon, Lucie, Lady. Letters from Egypt, Londof, 1goz. Du Loir, —. Voyages, Paris, 1654. Du Mans, Raphael. Estat de la Perse en 1660, ed. Schefer, Paris, 1890. Dumas, A. En Russie, Paris, 1865. —— Le Midi de la France, Paris, 1865.

—— Le Véloce, Paris, 1861. ; Dumont, A. Mélanges d’ Archéologie et d’Epigraphie, Paris, 1892. Dumont, Jean, Sieur. Nouveau Voyage du Levant, La Haye, 1694.

Dunmore, G. W. Movement among Koordish Priests, in Amer. Miss. Her. li (1857), pp. 219 ff. Dupré, L. Voyage a Athénes et a Constantinople, Paris, 1825. Durham, M. E. Burden of the Balkans, London, 1905. —— High Albania, London, 1909. —— Ibrough the Lands of the Serb, London, 1904. Durm, Josef. Baukunst der Romer, Darmstadt, 1885. Dussaud, René. Htstoire et Religion des Nosairis, Paris, 1900.

Dutemple, E. En Turquie @’ Asie, Paris, 1883. ; Duval, Rubens. Histoire Politique, Religieuse et Littéraire d’Edesse, in Fourn, Astat., ser. vili, vol. xvili (1891), pp. 201 ff.

Ebers, G. Durch Gosen zum Sinai, Leipzig, 1872. Von Eckhart, J. G. Corpus Historicum Medit Aevi, Leipzig, 1723. Edersheim, A. Life and Times of Fesus, London, 1883. Eflaki, Acts of the Adepts, in Redhouse’s Mesnevt, q.v.

Van Egmont (J. A.) and Heymann (Jan). Travels through Parts of Europe, Asia Minor, the Islands, London, 1759. Finsler, Lydia. Mar Elyas, El-Chadr, und Mar Dschirjis, in Z.D.P.V. XV1il (1894), pp. 42 ff.

List of Authors XXXV Einsler, Lydia. Der Name Gottes und die bosen Getster, in Z.D.P.V. x (1887), pp. 160 ff. Eliot, Sir Charles [Odysseus]. Turkey in Europe, London, 1900.

Elliott, Chas. B. Travels in Austrta, Russia, and Turkey, London, 1838.

Elworthy, F.’'T. The Evil Eye, London, 1895. _Encyclopaedia Britannica, 3rd ed., Cambridge, 1788-97. Encyclopaedia of Islam, Leyden and London, 1913 ff. Enlart, C. L’ Art Gothtque en Chypre, Paris, 1899. D’Este, N. Vtaggto, 1413, in Coll. di Opere della R. Commiss. pe’ Testi di Lingua, Bologna, 1861. Estienne, H. Apologie pour Hérodote, La Haye, 1735. D’Estourmel, J. Fournal d’un Voyage en Orrent, Paris, 1844. Ethé, H. Fahrten des Sajjid Batthal, Leipzig, 1871. Eugenios, abbot. “H Zwodoyos [Iny7, Athens, 1886. Eusebius. Historia Ecclestastica. Evans, A. J. Anttquartan Researches in Illyricum, in Archaeologia, xlix (1885), pp. 5 ff. —— The Minoan and Mycenean Element in Hellenic Life, in F.H.S. XXxii (1912), pp. 277 ff.

—— Mycenean Tree and Pillar Cult, in F.H.S. xxi (1901), pp. 99 ff. Evliya Efendi. Travels in Europe, Asta, and Africa, tr. von Hammer, London, 1834.

Fabri, Frater Felix. Evagatortum, ed. Hassler, Stuttgart, 1843. Falkener, E. Ephesus and the Temple of Diana, London, 1862. Fallmerayer, J. P. Fragmente aus dem Orient, Stuttgart, 1877. Farley, J. L. Two Years in Syria, London, 1858. Febvre, Michele. Théatre de la Turquie, Paris, 1682. Fellows, Sir Charles. Fournal in Asta Minor, London, 1839. Feyerabend, 8. Reyssbuch des Heyligen Lands, Frankfurt, 1584. Field, C. H. A. Mystics and Saints of Islam, London, 1910. Fife-Cookson, J. C. With the Armies of the Balkans, London, 1879. Finlay, George. History of Greece, ed. H. F. Tozer, Oxford, 1877. Flandin (E.) and Coste (P.). Voyage en Perse pendant 1840 et I84I, Paris, 1851. Von Flottwell, —. Aus dem Stromgebiet des Qyzyl-Y'rmaq, in Petermann’s Mutthetlungen, 1895, Erganzungsheft, no. 114. Foerster, R. Zum Pariser und Wiener Anonymus iiber Athen, in Ath. Mitth. viii (1883), pp. 30 fi. Fontanier, V. Voyages en Orient 1821-1829, Paris, 1829. Fontrier, A. M. Antiquités d’Ionie, in Rev. Et. Anc.ix (1907), pp. 114 ff.

Forbin, Count L. Travels in Greece, Turkey, and the Holy Landa, London, 1820.

c2

XXXVI Periodicals and Books consulted Forchheimer (P.) and Strzygowski (J.), Die Byzantinischen Wasserbehalter von Konstantinopel, Vienna, 1893. De Foville, J. Pise et Lucques, Paris, 1914. Fragmenta Historicorum Graecorum.

Francis, Saint. Ftorettt. Francisci, E. Lust- und Stats-Garten, Nuremberg, 1668. Francklin, W. Remarks on the Plain of Troy in 1799, London, 1800. Franco, M. Hztstotre des Israélites de VEmpire Ottoman, Paris, 1897. Frankland, C. C. Yravels to and from Constantinople, London, 1829. Frazer, Sir J.G. Golden Bough (Taboo, Pt. 11; Adonis, Attis, Osiris, Pt. 1V ; Spirits of the Corn and the Wild, Pt. V), London, 1907-15. —— See also Pausanias. Fredrich, C. Lemnos, in Ath. Mitth. xxxi (1906), pp. 72 ff. Freshfield, D. W. Travels 1n the Central Caucasus and Bashan, London, 1869.

Friedlander, I. Die Chadhtrlegende u. der Alexanderroman, Leipzig and Berlin, 1913. Friedrich, J. Der geschichtliche Heilige Georg, in Sitzb. Bayr. Akad. ii (1899), Ph.-Ph. Cl. pp. 159 ff.

Gairdner, W. H. T. Reproach of Islam, London, 1909. Galen, C. De Simplicium Medicamentorum Facultatibus, Paris, 1530. Galland, A. Fournal 1672-1673, ed. Schefer, Paris, 1881. Galt, J. Letters from the Levant, London, 1813. Garden, R. J. Description of Dtarbekr, in Ff.R.G.S. xxxvii (1867), pp. 182 ff.

Garnett, L. M. J. Greek Folk-Songs from the Ottoman Provinces of Northern Hellas, London, 1888. —— Mysticism and Magic 1n Turkey, London, 1912. —— Turkish Life in Town and Country, London, 1904. —— Women of Turkey and their Folk-Lore, London, 1891. Garstang, J. Land of the Hittites, London, I9gIo. De Gasparin, Countess V. 4 Constantinople, Paris, 1867.

Gauthiez, P. Milan, Paris, 1905. Gautier, T. Constantinople, Paris, 1853. Gedeon, M. I. Tumixov ris Movigs MiyandA, Athens, 1895. Gédoyn, L. Fournal et Correspondance, ed. Boppe, Paris, 1909.

Gelzer, H. Byzantinische Inschriften aus Westmakedonien, in Ath. Mitth. xxvii (1902), pp. 431 ff. Gemelli Careri, G. F. Giro del Mondo, Naples, 1699-1700. Van Gennep, A. En Algérie, Paris, 1914. —— Religion, Meurs et Légendes, Paris, 1908. Georg, J. Zur Ikonographie des heiligen Spyrid, in Byz. Zeit. xix (1910), pp. 107 ff.

List of 4uthors XXXVI1 Georgeakis (G.) and Pineau (L.). Le Folk-Lore de Lesbos, Paris, 1894. George of Hungary. Tractatus de Moribus, Condtctiontbus, et Nequicta Turcorum, Rome, 1481? Georgewicz (Georgievits, B.). De Lurcorum Moribus Epitome, Rome, 1552.

—— House of Ottomanno, tr. H. Gough, T.ondon, 1570. Gerlach, S. Tage-Buch, Frankfurt, 1674. Gervais-Courtellemont, J. C. Voyage a la Mecque, Paris, 1896. Geuffroy, A. Court du Grant Turc, Paris, 1546. Geyer, P. Ltinera Hierosolymitana, Vienna, 1898. Van Ghistele, Joos. ’£ voyage, Ghent, 1572. Gibb, E. J. W. History of Ottoman Poetry, London, 1900.

Gibbon, E. Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire, ed. J. B. Bury, London, 1909-14. Giovio, P. Cose de Turch1, Venice, 1541. De Gissac, J. Notice sur le Chateau et la Chapelle de Gozon, in Congres Arch. xxx (1863), pp. 65 ff. Goldziher, I. Aus dem mohammedantischen Heiligenkultus in Aegypten, in Globus, Ixxi (1897), pp. 233 ff. —— Culte des Saints chez les Musulmans, in Rev. Hist. Relig. ii (1880), pp. 258 fi. —— Magische Stetne, in Archiv f. Religionsw. xiv (1911), pp. 308 f. —— Muhammedanische Traditionen iiber den Grabesort des Fosua, in Z.D.P.V. ii (1879), pp. 13 ff.

De Gontaut-Biron, Jean. Ambassade en Turquie, ed. T. de GontautBiron, in Archives Historiques de la Gascogne, vols. xvi (1888), xix (1889).

Gottheil, R. Apollonius von Tyana, in Z. D. Morgenl. Ges, xlvi (1892), pp. 466 ff.

Gougouses, C. G. BovdAyapixoy "Atopa zept rot Mrodev Nrotrow, in Aaoypadia, i (1909), pp. 690 f. Goujon, J. F. Histoire et Voyage de la Terre Sainte, Lyon, 1671. Graham, 8. With the Russian Pilgrims to Ferusalem, London, 1913 Grant, Asahel. Nestorians, London, 1841. Green, Alice 8. Town Life in the Fifteenth Century, London, 1894. Grégoire, H. Géographie Byzantine, in Byz. Zeit. xix (1910), pp. $9 ff. —— Notes Epigraphiques, in Rev. Instr. Pub. Belg. lii (1909), pp. 1 ff. —— Voyage dans le Pont et en Cappadoce, in B.C.H. xxxiii (1909), pp. 3 ff. Gregorius Nazianzenus. Gregorovius, F. Geschichte der Stadt Athen im Mittelalter, Stuttgart, 1880.

—— Promenades Italiennes—Rome et ses Environs, Paris, 1g1o. —— Wanderjahre 1n Italien, v, Leipzig, 1870-7.

XXXVIil Pertodicals and Books consulted Gregory of Tours, in Migne’s Patrol. Lat., q.v. Grelot, G. J. A late Voyage to Constantinople, London, 1683. Grenard, F. Les Kyzyl-Bachs, in Journ. Asiat., ser. x, vol. iii (1904), pp. 511 ff. —— La Légende de Satok Boghra Khan, in Fourn. Asiat., ser. ix, vol. xv (1900), pp. 5 ff. Griffiths, J. Travels in Europe, Asia Minor, and Arabia, London, 1805.

Grimaldi, A. B. Cenotaphs of the Hebrew Patriarchs, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1912, pp. 145 ff. Grisebach, A. H. R. Retse durch Rumelien und nach Brussa im Fabre 1839, Gottingen, 1841. Gronovius, J. Memoria Cossontana, Leyden, 1695. Grosvenor, E. A. Constantinople, Cambridge (U.S.A.), 1895. Grothe, Hugo. Meine Vorderasienexpedition 1906 und 1907, Leipzig, IQII. Griinemberg, C. Pilgerfabri, ed. Goldfriedrich (J.) and Frainzel (W.), Leipzig, 1912. Also in Réhricht und Meisner’s Pilgerschriften, q.v. Guérin, Paul. Vie des Saints, Paris, 1808. Gueérin, Victor. Description de la Palestine, Paris, 1868-1880. —— Voyage dans ?Lle de Rhodes, Paris, 1856.

Guillet de Saint-George = De La Guilletiére, ¢.v. Gulbenkian, C. 8. La Transcaucasie, Paris, 1891. Guthe, H. Nachtrage zur Mar Elyas, in Z.D.P.V. xvii (1894), p. 303. Hackett, J. History of the Orthodox Church of Cyprus, London, Igot. Hadji Khalfa. Giban Numa, tr. M. Norberg, London and Gotha, 1818 ; tr. Armain, in Vivien de 8S. Martin, Descr. de Asie Mineure, ii, 637 ff.

—— Rumelt und Bosna, tr. von Hammer, Vienna, 1812.

Hadji Khan and Sparroy (W.). With the Pilgrims to Mecca, London and New York, 1905. Von Hahn, J. G. Albanestsche Studien, Jena, 1854. *— Retse von Belgrad nach Salonik, Vienna, 1861. —— Reise durch die Gebiete des Drin und Wardar, Vienna, 1867. H., G. J. Silhouettes from the Sudan, in Blackwood’s Magazine, cciii (1918), pp. 402 ff. Halid, Halil. Diary of a Turk, London, 1903. Hall, H. R. Some Greek Monasteries, in Proc. Soc. Bibl. Arch. xxxv (1913), pp. 141 ff. Halliday, W. R. Cenotaphs and Sacred Localities, in B.S.A. xvii (Ig1011), pp. 182 ff. ——— Cretan Folklore Notes, in Folk-Lore, xxiv (1913), pp. 357 ff.

—— Folklore Scraps from Greece and Asia Minor, in Folk-Lore, xxiii (1912), pp. 218 ff.

List of Authors XXX1X Hamilton, M. A. Greek Saints and their Festivals, Edinburgh and London, Igto. —— Incubation, St. Andrews, 1906. —— The Pagan Element in the Names of Saints, in B.S.A. xiii (1906-7), pp. 348 ff.

Hamilton, W. J. Researches in Asia Minor, Pontus, and Armenia, London, 1842. Von Hammer-Purgstall, J. Constantinopolis u. der Bosporos, Pesth, 1822. —— Geschichte der Osmanischen Dichtkunst, Pesth, 1836-8. —— Histoire de ? Empire Ottoman, ed. J. J. Hellert, Paris, 1835-43. ——— Medjir-ed-din, in Mines de ?Or. ii (1811), pp. 81 ff. —— Reise von Constantinopel nach Brussa u. dem Olympos, Pesth, 1818.

—— Staatsverfassung u. Staatsverwaltung, Vienna, 1815. —— Ueber den Heiligen Georg, in Theol. Studien und Kritiken, 1831, pp. 829 ff. —— Ueber die Talismanen der Moslimen, in Mines de POr. iv (1814), pp- 155 ff. Hanauer, J. E. Folk-Lore of the Holy Land, London, 1907. Hare, Augustus J. C. Walks in Florence, London, 1887. —— Walks in Rome, London, 1871.

Harris, John. Navigantium atque Itinerantium Bibliotheca (for Thévenot, g.v.), London, 1705. Hartland, E. 8. The Legend of Perseus, London, 1894. Hartley, J. Researches in Greece and the Levant, London, 1831. Hartmann, M. Chinestsch-Turkestan, Frankfurt-am-Mayn, 1908. Hasluck, F. W. Ambiguous Sanctuartes and Bektasht Propaganda, in B.S.A. xx (1913-14), pp. 94 ff. ——— Athos and Its Monasteries, London, 1924. —— The Caliph Mamoun and the Prophet Dantel, in fF .H.S, xlu (1922), pp. 99 ff.

— Christianity and Islam under the Sultans of Konta, in B.S.A. xix

(1912-13), pp. 191 ff. —— Columns of Ordeal, in B.S.A, xxiv (1919-21), pp. 68 ff. —— Constantinopolitana, in F.H.S. xliii (1923), pp. 162 ff. —— The Crypto-Christians of Trebizond, in 7.H.S. xli (1921), pp. 199 ff. —— Cyzicus, Cambridge, 1910. ——- Dieudonné de Gozon and the Dragon of Rhodes, in B.S.A. xx (191314), pp. 70 tt. —— Dr. Covel’s Notes on Galata, in B.S.A. xi (1904-5), pp. 50 ff. —— The Forty, in B.S.A. xix (1912-13), pp. 221 ff. —— Frankish Remains at Adalia, in B.S.A. xv (1908-9), pp. 270 ff.

—— Genoese Heraldry and Inscriptions at Amastra, in BS.A. xvi (IQIO-II), pp. 132 ff.

x] Pertodicals and Books consulted Hasluck, F.W. Geographical Distribution of the Bektashi, in B.S.A. xxi

(1914-16), pp. 84 ff. .

—— Graves of the Arabs in Asia Minor, in B.S.A, xix (1912-13), pp. 182 ff.

—— Heraldry of the Rhodian Knights, in B.S.A. xvii (1910-11), pp. 145 ff.

—— Heterodox Tribes of Asia Minor, in F. R. Anthr. Inst. li (1921), pp. 310 ff. —— Inscriptions from the Cyzicus District, 1906, in F.H.S. xxvii (1907), pp. 61 ff. —— Latin Monuments of Chios, in B.S.A. xvi (1909-10), pp. 137 ff. —— Letters on Religion and Folklore, London, 1926. ——— Mosques of the Arabs in Constantinople, in B.S.A. xxii (1916-18), pp. 157 ff. —— Note on Haidar, Khodja Achmet, Karadja Achmet, in B.S.A. xx

(1913-14), pp. 120 ff. :

—— Notes on MSS. in the British Museum relating to Levantine Geography and Travel, in B.S.A. xii (1905-6), pp. 196 ff. ——— Plato in the Folklore of the Konia Plain, in B.S.A. xviii (1911-12), pp. 265 fi. —— Prentice Pillars, in Folk-Lore, xxx (1919), pp. 134 f. —— Stone Cults and Venerated Stones in the Graeco-Turkish Area, in B.S.A. xxi (1914-16), pp. 64 ff. —— Studies in Turkish History and Folklore, in B.S.A. xix (1912-13), pp. 198 ff. ——— Supplementary Notes on British Museum Manuscripts relating to Levantine Geography, in B.S.A. xiii (1906-7), pp. 339 ff. —— Lerra Lemnia, in B.S.A. xvi (1909-10), pp. 220 ff. ——— The Tomb of S. Polycarp and the Topography of Ancient Smyrna, in B.S.4, xx (1913-14), pp. 80 ff. Flasluck, F. W., and Wace, A. J. B. Laconia, in B.S.A. xiv (1907-8), pp. 161 ff. Hasluck, Margaret M. Christian Survivals among certain Moslem Subjects of Greece, in Contemp. Rev. 1924, pp. 225 ff. Hastings, J. Encyclopaedia of Religion and Ethics, Edinburgh, 1908 ff. Hay, Drummond. Marokko, Stuttgart, 1846.

Heard, W. B. Notes on the Yezidis, in F. R. Anthr. Inst. xli (1911), pp. 200 ff. Heberdey, R., and Wilhelm, A. Reisen in Kilikien, in Denkschr. Wien. Akad. xliv (1896), Ph.-Hist. Cl., Abb. vi. Hecquard, H. Histoire et Description de la Haute Albanie, Paris, 1858. Heisenberg, A. Grabeskirche u. Apostelkirche, Leipzig, 1908. Hengstenberg, W. Der Drachenkampf des heiligen Theodor, in Oriens Christianus (1912), pp. 78 ff., 241 ff.

List of Authors xli D’Herbelot, B. Bibliothéque Orientale, Paris, 1697, 1781, 1783. Hercher, R. Erotict Scriptores Graeci, Leipzig, 1858-9. Herges, A. Les Monastéres de Bithynie, in Bessarione, v (1899), pp. 9 ff. Herzog, R. Kotsche Forschungen u. Funde, Leipzig, 1899. —— kin Tiirkisches Werk iiber das Aegaische Meer (Pirt Reis), in Ath. Mitth. xxvii (1902), pp. 417 ff. Heuzey (L..) and Daumet (H.). Mission Archéologique de Macédoine, Paris, 1876. Hildburgh, W. L. Some Cairene Amulets for Houses and for Horses and Donkeys, in Man, xiii (1913), pp. 1 ff. Hill, Aaron. 4 Full Account of the Present State of the Ottoman Empire, London, 1709. Hobhouse, J. C. Fourney through Albania, London, 1813. Hogarth, D. G. Devia Cypria, Oxford, 18809. ———- Hierapolts Syrtae, in B.S.A. xiv (1907-8), pp. 183 ff.

Hogarth, D. G., and Munro, J. A. R. Modern and Ancient Roads in Eastern Asta Minor, in R.G.S., Suppl. Pap., vol. ili, part v, pp. 643 ff.

Holland, H. Travels in the Ionian Isles, Albania, Thessaly, Macedonia, London, 1815. Hope, Thomas. Anastasius, London, 1819. Hottinger, J. H. Historia Orientalis, Tiguri, 1660. Huart, C. Konta, Paris, 1897. Hughes, T. S. Travels in Greece and Albania, London, 1830. Hugonnet, L. La Gréce Nouvelle, Paris, 1884. Humann, C. Ueber die Ethnologie Klein-Asiens, in Verb. Ges. f. Erdkunde, vii (1880), pp. 241 ff.

Hume Grifhth, Mrs. M. E. Behind the Veil in Persia and Turkish Arabia, London, 1909.

Huntington, Ellsworth. Through the Great Canon of the Euphrates River, in Geog. ‘Journ. xx (1902), pp. 175 fi. Hutton, W. H. The Influence of Christianity illustrated by the Lives of the English Saints, London, 1903.

Ibn Batuta. Tr. S. Lee for Orient. Ir. Fund, London, 1829, and tr. B. R. Sanguinetti for Soc. Astatigue, Paris, 1853-9. *[ken, —. Touti Nameb. Imhoof-Blumer, F. Nymphengruppen, in Four. Int. Num. xi (1908), pp. 181 ff.

Imperato, F. Historia Naturale, Naples, 1599. Ioannides, S. ‘loropia Tpamefobvros, Constantinople, 1870. Ippen, T. Alte Kirchen in Albanien, in Wiss, Mitth. Bosnien, vii (1900), pp. 231 ff.

xlii Periodicals and Books consulted Ippen, T. Alte Kirchen in Albanien, in Wiss. Mitth. Bosnien, vii, (1902) pp. 131 ff. —— Novi Bazar, Vienna, 1892. —— Skutar1 u. die Nordalbanische Kiistenebene, Vienna, 1904. Italian Travels in Persia. Ed. Hakluyt Society, London, 1873.

Jaba, A. Recueil de Notices et Récits Kourdes, St. Petersburg, 1860. Jacob, G. Bettrage zur Kenntnis des Derwisch-Ordens der Bektaschts, Leyden, 1908. —— Die Bektaschijje in threm V erhaltnis zu verwandten Erscheinungen,

in Abh. Bayr. Ak. xxiv (1909), Ph.-Ph. Cl., Abb. ii. —— Fortleben v. antiken Mysterien und Alt-Christlichem 1m Islam, in Der Islam, ii (1911), pp. 232 ff. Janin, R. Musulmans malgré eux: Les Stavriotes, in Echos d’Orient, xv (1912), pp. 495 ff. Jaray, G. L. Au Feune Royaume ad’ Albanie, Paris, 1914. —— L’ Albanie Inconnue, Paris, 1913. Fardin des Mosquées, in Hammer-Purgstall, Hist. Emp. Ott., ed. Hellert, XVill, q.v.

Fatakas, ed. Cowell, Cambridge, 1895-1913. De Jerphanion, G. Notes de Géographie et d’ Archéologie, in Byz. Lett. xx (I9II), pp. 492 ff. —— Note sur Studia Pontica, III, in Mél. Fac. Or. v (1911), p. Xxxvill. De Jerphanion, G., and Jalabert, L. Inscriptions @ Aste Mineure, in Mél. Fac. Or. iii (1908), pp. 437 ff. Jessup, H. H. Lhe Women of the Arabs, London, 1874. Jewett, I. Kuzzelbash Koords, in Amer. Miss. Her, liv (1858), p. 109. Fewish Encyclopaedia, New York and London, 1916 ff. Jirecek, C. [K. J.]. Archdologische Fragmente aus Bulgarien, in Arch. Epigr. Mitth. x (1886), pp. 43 ff.,128 ff. Jireéek, K. J. Das Fiirstenthum Bulgarien, Vienna, 1891. —— Die Heerstrasse von Belgrad nach Constantinopel, Prag, 1877. Joanne, A. L. Itinératre de la France ... Bretagne, Paris, 1883. Jocher, C. G. Gelehrten-Lexicon, Leipzig, 1726. Jochmus, A. Notes on a ‘fourney into the Balkan in 1847, in F.R.G.S. XxXlV (1854), pp. 36 ff.

Johnson, J. Augustus. Juscriptions discovered at Hamath, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1871, pp. 173 ff. Jordanus, C. Description des Merveilles dune Partie de V Asie, in Rec. de Voyages, iv (1839). Jorga, N. Geschichte des Osmanischen Reiches, Gotha, 1908-13.

Josephus, F. Guvres Complétes (Panthéon Littéraire), ed. Buchon, Paris, 1838.

Jouannin, J. M. Turquie, Paris, 1840.

List of Authors xlin

1844. .

Jowett, W. Christian Researches, London, 1822. De Juchereau de Saint-Denis, A. Histoire de PEmpire Ottoman, Paris, —— Révolutions de Constantinople, Paris, 1819. de Julleville, L. Petit. Recherches en Gréce,in Arch. des Miss. v (1869), pp. 469 ff. *Julliard, —. Voyages Incohérents, 1903.

Justinian, J. Description de Chio, Paris, 1606. Kalevras, P. ’"EmuoroAat, Athens, 1856. Kambouroglous, D. G. ‘Ioropia trav ’"AOnvatwr emt Tovpkoxparias, Athens, 1889-1900. —— Monpeia ris ‘Ioropias taév *A@nvaiwv, Athens, 1891. Kammas, G. in Mixpao. ‘Hyepod., 1915, p. 281. Kandis, B. I. [Lpodaa, Athens, 1833. Kanitz, F. Donau-Bulgartenu. der Balkan, Leipzig, 1875-9. (A French translation was published as La Bulgarie Danubtenne et le Balkan, Paris, 1882.) Karabashek, K. Guigliato des karischen Turkomanenfiirsten Urchan-beg, in Num. Zeit. 1x (1877), pp. 200 ff. Karolides, P. Ta Kowava kat 7a "Epeimia adrmv, Smyrna, 1882. Kastorches, E. Ilept ris év Anunroavy ‘EAAnuxis SyoAns, Athens,

1847. :

Kelly, W. K. Syria and the Holy Land, London, 1844. Keppel, G. T. Narrative of a Fourney across the Balcan in 1829-30, London, 1831. De Kergorlay, J. Chypre et Rhodes, Paris, 1913. ——~ Sites délatssés d’ Orient, Paris, 1911.

Kesnin Bey. Le Mal @ Orient. Paris, 1887. *Khitrovo, Madame 8. /tinéraires Russes, Geneva, 1880. Kiepert, Heinrich, Karte von Kleinasien, Berlin, 1902-6. —— Memoir iiber die Construction der Karte von Kleinasien, Berlin, 1854.

—— See also Dernschwam. King, Mrs. Annie. Dr. Liddon’s Tour in Egypt and Palestine, London, 1891.

King, é. W. Natural History of Precious Stones, London, 1865. Kinneir, J. M. ‘Fourney through Asta Minor, London, 1818. Kitchener, H. H. Reports, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1877, pp. 116 ff., 165 ff. Kleonymos (M.) and Papadopoulos (Ch.). Bu@uriea, Constantinople, 1867.

Knolles, R. The Lurkish History, London, 1687. Koch, John. Die Siebenschlaferlegende, Leipzig, 1883. Koechlin-Schwartz, A. Un Tourtste au Caucase, Paris, 1881.

xliv Periodicals and Books consulted Koerte, A. Die Ausgrabungen am Westabhange der Akropolis, in Ath. Mitth. xxi (1896), pp. 287 ff. Koléas, S. = Berati, S., ¢.v. Koran, tr. G. Sale, London, 1868 (Chandos Classics). Korten, J. Reise nach dem Gelobten Lande, Halle, 1743. Kortholt, —. De Calumniits Paganorum, Kiel, 1668. Koukoulis, I. Ta Néa MvAaoa, in Sevodarys, iii, 448 ff. Koumas, C. M. “Iaropiat THv "AvOpwruwdv ITIpagewv, Vienna, 1830. Von Kremer, A. Aegypten, Forschungen iiber Land u. Volk, Leipzig, 1863.

—— Geschichte der herrschenden Ideen des Islams, Leipzig, 1868.

Krumbacher, C. Geschichte der Byzantinischen Litteratur. Munich, 18go.

Kunos, I. Forty-four Turkish Fatry Tales, London, 1913. —— Tiirkische V olksmarchen aus Adakale, Leipzig, 1907. —— Tiirkische V olksmarchen aus Stambul, Leyden, 1905. Kutsch, F. Azttische Heilgotter und Heilheroen, Giessen, 1903.

Kyprianos, Archimandrite. “Ioropta tijs Kumpov, Nicosia, 1902. Kyriakides, EX. 1. “Ioropta tis Movijs Lovpeda, Athens, 1898. De Laborde, L. E.3S. J. Athénes aux xu", xvt®, xvit® stécles, Paris, 1854.

—— Voyage en Orient, Paris, 1838 (Aste Mineure = vol. i, Syrie = vol. 11).

De La Boullaye Le Gouz, F. Voyages et Observations, Paris, 1653. De La Brocquiére, B. In Wright, Early Travels, g.v. Also ed. Schefer and Cordier as Voyage d’Outremer, Paris, 1892. Lacour, J. LL. Excurstons en Gréce, Paris, 1834. Lafont, E. Trois Mots de Chasse en Albanie, Paris, 1899. De La Guilletiére, —. Athénes Ancienne et Nouvelle, Paris, 1675. De lla Magdeleine, Claude? Le Miroir Ottoman, Basle, 1677.

De Lamartine, M. L. A. Souvenirs pendant un Voyage en Orient, Paris, 1835. De La Martiniére, A. A. Bruzen. Le Grand Dictionnaire Géographique et Critique, La Haye, 1726-39. De La Mauviniére, H., abbé. Pottiers et Angouléme, Paris, 1908. Lambakis, G. Oc ‘Enra ’Aorépes tis "Amroxadtibews, Athens, 1909. —— Ilepunynots,in AeAriov Xpicr. ’ApyatodA. ‘Erawetas, H’ (1908), pp. 3 ff. Lambros, 8. P. ’Avéxdora "Eyypada zrepi ‘Priya, in AeAriov ‘Iorop. ‘Eratpeias, iii (1889), pp. 587 ff. —— ’Avékdorov Xpovixcy mepi trav “APnvayv Kata tov w5° Aidva, in “A@nvaiov, vi (1877), pp. 438 ff. —— *Amroxadvibers epi rob Maprupiov rot Piya, Athens, 1892. —— Ai’ A@jvar wepi ra TéAn tot dbwSexarov Alidvos, Athens, 1878.

Ltst of Authors xlv Lambros, S, P. “EvOupyncewv row Xpovexav Aynuecwparwv LvaAoyn mpwrn, in Néos “EAAnvopwjpwr, vii (1910), pp. 113 ff. Lammens, H. Le Massif du Gabal Siman, in Mél. Fac. Or. ii (1907), pp. 366 ff. De La Mottraye, A. Travels through Europe, Asta, and Africa, London, 1723-32. —— Voyages, la Haye, 1727. Lamprides, I. "AAW [Tacds (—=pt. ii of "H7retpwrixa Medernpara, Athens, 1887). Lanciani, R. A. Pagan and Christian Rome, London, 1892. Lanckoronski, C. Stadte Pamphylhiens und Pisidiens, Vienna, 1890. Lane, E. W. Manners and Customs of the Modern Egyptians, London, 1871.

—— Thousand and One Nights, London, 1895. Langlois, V. Voyage dans la Cilicte, Paris, 1861. De La Roque, J. Voyage de ? Arabie Heureuse, Paris, 1716. —— Voyage de Syrte et du Mont-Liban, Amsterdam, 1723. De Launay, L. La Bulgarte @hter et de demain, Paris, 1907. —— Chez les Grecs de Turquie, Paris, 1897. —— Géologte de Lemnos, in Annales des Mines, xiii (1898), pp. 197 ff. —— Notes sur Lemnos, in Rev. Arch. xxvii (1895), pp. 305 ff. Laurent, P. E. Recollections of a Classtcal Tour, London, 1821. Lavriotes, A. E. “H ‘Eoprn ta@v 40 Mapripwy, in Opaxixy’Enernpis, i (1897), pp. 32 ff. Lawson, J. C. Modern Greek Folklore, Cambridge, 1gto. Layard, A. Description of the Province of Khuztistan, in F.R.G.S. xvi (1846), pp. 1 ff. —— Discoveries in Nineveh and Babylon, London, 1853. Leaf, W. Notes on the Troad, in Geog. Fourn. xl (1912), pp. 25 ff. Leake, W. M. ‘fournal of a Tour in Asta Minor, London, 1824. —— Travels in Northern Greece, London, 1835. Lear, E. Fournals of a Landscape Painter in Albania, London, 1851. —— Letters, London, 1907.

Le Blant, E. Les Persécuteurs et les Martyrs aux premiers stécles de notre ére, Paris, 1893. Le Boulicaut, A. du Pays des Mystéres, Paris, 1913. Le Braz, A. Au Pays des Pardons, Paris, 1900. Le Bruyn, C. Voyage au Levant, Paris, 1725 (Delft, 1700). Lechevalier, J. B. Description of the Plain of Troy, Edinburgh, 1791. —— Voyage de la Propontide et du Pont-Euxin, Paris, 1800. Leclercq, J. Voyage au Mont Ararat, Paris, 1892. Lecoy dela Marche, A. La Chaire Francaise au Moyen A ge, Paris, 1886. Lee Childe, Blanche. Un Hiver au Catre, Paris, 1883. Legrand, E. Bibliographie Albanaisc, Athens, 1912.

xlvi Periodicals and Books consulted Legrand, I. Recueil de Contes Populaires Grecs, Paris, 1881. Lejean, G. Excursion a la Recherche de Gordium, in Bull. Soc. Géog. XVli (1869), pp. 62 ff.

Van Lennep, H. J. Travels in Little-known Parts of Asia Minor, London, 1870. Lenoir, P. Le Fayoum, le Sinai, et Pétra, Paris, 1872. Lenormant, F. La Voie Sacrée Eleusinienne, Paris, 1864. Le Quien, F. M. Ortens Christianus, Paris, 1740. Le Roy, J. D. Rutnes des Monuments de la Gréce, Paris, 1770. Le Strange, G. Eastern Caliphate, Cambridge, 1905. —— On the Mediaeval Castle and Sanctuary of Abrtk, in F. R. Astat. Soc., 1895, pp. 739 ff. —— Palestine under the Moslems, London, 1890.

Lesur, C. L. Annuaire Historique pour 1839, Paris, 1841. Lethaby (W. R.) and Swainson (H.). Sancta Sophta, London and New York, 1894. Leunclavius, J. Annales, 1648 (in Corpus Byzantinum). —— Pandectes, 1hid.

Levides, M. Aé év MovoAi8ois Movai ris Karzadoxias, Constantinople, 1898. Levy, M. A. Don Foseph Nast, Breslau, 1859. Lewis, Mrs. A. 8. Horae Semtticae, London, 1904, &c. Liégeois, C. Gilles de Chin, London and Paris, 1903. Lilek, E. Ethnologische Notizen aus Bosnien, in Wiss. Mitth. Bosnten, vili (1902), pp. 267 ff. —— Vermahlungsbrauche in Bosnten, in Wiss. Mitth. Bosnien, vii (1900), pp. 291 ff.

— Volksglaube in Bosnien, in Wiss. Mitth. Bosnien, iv (1896), pp. ol ff. Lithgow, W. Rare Adventures, Glasgow, 1906. Livingston, W. W. The Kuzzelbash Koords, in Amer. Miss. Her. \xi (1865), p. 246. Loftus, W. K. Travels and Researches 1n Chaldaea and Sustana, London, 1857.

—— On the Excavations at Susa in 1851-2, in Trans. Roy. Soc. Lit. v (1856), pp. 422 ff. Lonicerus, Ph. Chronicorum Turcorum Libri, Frankfurt, 1584. Lorenzo, Pére San. S. Polycarpe et son Tombeau, Constantinople, 1911.

De Lorey (E.) and Sladen (D. B. W.). Queer Things about Persia, London, 1907. Lortet, L. La Syrie d’ Aujourd’ hut, Paris, 1884. Louvre: Catalogue Sommaire des Marbres Antiques. Lubomirski, Prince J. Férusalem, Paris, 1882. Lucas, Paul. Voyage au Levant, La Haye, 1705.

List of Authors xlvii Lucas, Paul. Voyage dans la Gréce, Amsterdam, 1714. —— Voyage fatt en 1714 dans la Turquie, l Asie, Sourte, Palestine, Amsterdam, 1720. Lucian. De Dea Syrta. Lucius, EF. Die Anfange des Hetligenkults in der Christlichen Kirche,

Tiibingen, 1g04. A French translation was published at Paris in 1908.

Ludolf von Suchem. De Lttnere Terrae Sanctae, ed. F. Deycks, Stuttgart, 1851. Lueken, W. Michael, Gottingen, 1898. Lukach [Luke], H. C. City of Dancing Dervishes, London, 1914. Luke (H. C.) and Jardine (D. J.). Handbook of Cyprus, London, 1913. Luke, J., in B.Mf. Sloane MS. 2720 f.

Von Luschan, F. The Early Inhabitants of Western Asia, in F. R. Anthr. Inst. xii (1911), pp. 221 ff. Von Luschan (F.) and Petersen (E.). Reisen in Lykien, Vienna, 1889. Lynch, H. F. B. Armenia, London, 1901. Lynch, W. F. Narrative of the United States’ Expedition to the River ‘Jordan and the Dead Sea, London, 1849. Mabillon, J. Acta Sanctorum Ordintis §. Benedicti, Paris, 1668. Macalister, R. A.S. Lhe Excavation at Gezer, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1g09, pp. 183 ff.

Macarius of Antioch. Yravels of Macarius... Written by Paul of Aleppo, tr. Belfour, London, 1829-36. MacFarlane, Chas. Constantinople in 1828, London, 1829. —— Turkey and tts Destiny, London, 1850. Macintosh, A. F. Miltary Tour in European Turkey, London, 1854. Mackenzie (G. M. M.) and Irby (A. P.). Travels in the Slavonic Provinces of Turkey in Europe, London, 1877. —— The Turks, the Greeks, and the Slavons, London, 1867. Mackintosh, Mrs. Damascus and its People, London, 1883. De Maillet, B. Description de l’ Egypte, La Haye, 1740. Makris, P. ‘HpaxdAeta rob [Tdvrov, Athens, 1908. Makris, P. G. To KarupAi, Constantinople, 1888. Malcolm, Sir J. Atstory of Persia, London, 1829. Mandeville, Sir J. Le Lapidatre du Quatorziéme Stécle, Vienna, 1862. —— Travels, in Wright’s Early Travels, q.v. Manzour, 1. Mémotres sur la Gréce et l Albanie, Paris, 1827. Mariti, G. Travels in Cyprus, tr. C. D. Cobham, Nicosia, 1895. Markovit, M. R. Volksmarchen, in Wiss. Mitth. Bosnien, i (1893), pp. 483 ff.

De Marmont, A. F. L. Viesse, Present State of the Turkish Empire, London, 1854.

xl vii Periodicals and Books consulted Marsigh, L. F. Stato Militare dell? Imperto Ottomanno, La Haye, 1732

(text in French and in Italian). Da Martoni, N. Athen im Fahre 1395, ed. Judeich, in Ath. Mitth. Xxli (1897), pp. 423 ff. Marulli, G. Vite de’ Gran Maestri della Sacra Religione dt 8. Giovanni Gierosolimitano, Naples, 1636. De Mas Latrie, J. M. Yrésor de Chronologie, Paris, 1889. Masoudi. Les Prairtes d’Or, tr. Barbier de Meynard, Paris, 1861-77. Massignon, L. Les Saints Musulmans enterrés a Bagdad, in Rev. Atst. Relig. viii (1908), pp. 329 ff. Mathas, Z. KardAoyos ‘Ioropucos ta&v Ilarpiapywv, Nauplia, 1837. Mattioli, P. A. Commentarit in Libros sex Pedacit Dioscorides, Venice, 1$54-

Maundrell, H. Voyage @’ Alep a Férusalem, in Wright’s Early Travels, g.U.

Maury, L. F. A. Croyances et Légendes de ? Antiquité, Paris, 1863. —— Croyances et Légendes du Moyen Age, Paris, 1896. —— La Magie et P Astrologie, Paris, 1860. —— Temple appelé Sosthentum prés de Constantinople, in Rev. Arch. vi (1849), pp. 144 ff.

Megas, G. A. Qualia Tatpwv cai Kpidv ev 77 BA. Opden, in Aaoypadia, iii (1911), pp. 148 ff. Von Megenberg, C. Das Buch der Natur, ed. I’. Pfeiffer, Stuttgart, 1861.

Melek Hanum. Trente Ans dans les Harems d’Ortent, Paris, 1875. Meletios. "ExxAnovaotixy ‘[oropia, Vienna, 1783-95. Melton, E. Zee- end Land-Reizen, Amsterdam, 1681. Menassik-el-Hadj. Kitab, tr. Bianchi, in Rec. de Voyages, 11 (1825), . 81 ff.

Menavino, G. A. I Cinque Libri delle Cose Turchesche, Venice, 1548. Mérimée, P. Etudes sur les Arts au Moyen Age, Paris, 1875.

Meringer, R. Das Volkstiimliche Haus in Bosnien, in Wtss. Mitth. Bosnien, vii (1900), pp. 247 ff. Mertzides, S. Ai X@pat tod [TapeAGovros, Athens, 1885. Merula, P. Cosmographia, Leyden, 1605.

Metaphrastes, Symeon, in Migne’s Patr. Gr., .v. Meyer, G. Die griechischen Verse im Rababnama, in Byz. Zett. iv

(1895), pp. 401 if. | _

Meyer, M. Balkanstaaten und Konstantinopel (Hand-book), Leipzig, IQI4.

Meyer, Paul Alexandre le Grand dans la Littérature Frangatse du Moyen Age, Paris, 1886. Meyer, Philipp. Die Haupturkunden fiir die Geschichte der Athoskloster Leipzig, 1894.

List of Authors xlix De Mezeray, F. E. Histoire des Turcs, Paris, 1650.

Michaelides, M. G. Kapzaftaxa Anporixa “Atopara, Constantinople, 1913.

Michaelis, A. ‘T. F. Ancient Marbles in Great Britain, Cambridge, 1882.

Michaud (J. F.) and Poujoulat (J. J. F.). Correspondance d’Orient, 1830-31, Paris, 1833-5. Michel, L. Tunis, Paris, 1883. Michell, R. L. N. 4 Mushim-Christian Sect in Cyprus, in Nineteenth Century, 1xiii (1908), pp. 751 ff. Michon, J. H. Solution Nouvelle de la Question des Lieux Saints, Paris, 1852.

Migeon, G. Le Catre, le Nil, et Memphis, Paris, 1906. —— Manuel @ Art Musulman, Paris, 1907. Migne, Pabbé J. P. Dictionnaire des Apocryphes, Paris, 1856-8. —— Patrologta Graeca. —— Patrologia Latina. Miklosich (F.) and Miller (J.). Acta et Diplomata Graeca, Vindobonae, 1860, &c.

Muller, W. Greek Life in Town and Country, London, 1901. —— Latins in the Levant, London, 1908. —— Ottoman Empire, London, 1913. Mullin de Grandmaison, A. L. Voyage dans les Départemens du Midi, Paris, 1807-11. Van Millingen, A. Byzantine Churches in Constantinople, London, 1912. —— Byzantine Constantinople : the Walls, London, 1899. Mills, John. Lhree Months’ Residence at Nablus, London, 1864. Mirkovic, P. Bilder aus der bosnischen Krajina, in Wiss. Mitth. Bosnten, i (1893), pp. 457 ff. Molanus, J. De Historia SS. [maginum, Louvain, 1771. Molyneux-Seel, L. A Journey in Dersim, in Geog. Fourn. xliv (1914), . 49 ff.

De Monconys, B. Voyages, Lyons and Paris, 1677. Monnier, Marc. Les Contes Populatres en Italie, Paris, 1880. Monro, Rev. Vere. 4 Summer Ramble 1n Syria, London, 1835. Montagu, Lady Mary Wortley. Works, London, 1805. Montandon, R. Bibliographte Générale des Travaux Palethnologiques et Archéologiques, Geneva and Paris, 1917, &c. Montet, E. Le Culte des Saints Musulmans dans l Afrique du Nord, Geneva, 1909. De Montfaucon, B. L’Antiquité Expliquée et Représentée en Figures, Paris, 1724. Mordtmann, A. D. Belagerung und Eroberung Constantinopels, Stuttgart, 1858.

3295 d

I Pertodtcals and Books consulted Mordtmann, A. D. Seid: Ghazt, in Gelehrte Anzeigen d. Bayr. Akad. 1860, pp. 260 ff.

—— Seid. Cadi, in Diror. LvdAroyos 8" (1874-5), mapdprypa, pp. xii ff. Mordtmann, J. H. Dte Kapttulation von Konstantinopel 1m Fabre 1453, in Byz. Zeit. xxi (1912), pp. 129 ff. Morrison, W. The Ceremony of the Doseh at Baalbec, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1869, pp. 120 ff.

Morritt, J. B.S. Letters, ed. Marindin, London, 1914. Moryson, Fynes. Itinerary, Glasgow, 1907. Mouliéras, A. Le Maroc Inconnu, Oran, 1895, 1899. Miinster, 5. Cosmographte Universelle, ed. F. de Belleforest, Paris, 1575.

Muraton, L. A. Antiguttates Italtae Medit Aevt, Milan, 1738-42. Murray, John. Handbooks: for Asta Minor, London, 1895 ; for Constantinople, London, 1900 ; for Egypt, London, Igoo. *Museum W orsleyanum, London, 1824.

Napea, Osep. In Hakluyt’s Travels, 11. Nau, M. Voyage Nouvelle de la Terre Sainte, Paris, 1679. Naumann, E. Vom Goldnen Horn nach den Quellen des Euphrat, Berlin, 1893.

Néov Aetpwvdprov, Venice, 1819 (Athens, 1873). Néov MaprupoAdyrov, Venice, 1799 (Athens, 1856). Neophytos of Kapsokalyvia. “Ioropia tod Lovpeda, Leipzig, 1775. Newton, C. T. YDravels and Discoveries in the Levant, London, 1865. Newton (C. ‘T.) and Pullan (R. P.). Altstory of Discoveries at Halicarnassus, Cnidus, and Branchidae, London, 1861-3. Nicephorus Gregoras. Byzantina Historia. Nicolaides, Cleanthes. Macedonien, Berlin, 1899. De Nicolay, Nicolas. Navigations, Peregrinations, et Voyages faicts en la Turquie, Anvers, 1576. —— Ratsz und Schiffart in die Turckey, Antwerp, 1577.

Niebuhr, Carsten. Retsebeschretbung nach Arabien (vol. ii = Reise durch Syrien und Palastina), Copenhagen and (for vol. ii) Hamburg, 1774-1837. —— Voyage en Arabte et en dautres Pays Circonvoisins, Amsterdam, 1776-80." —— Voyage en Arabte, En Suisse, 1780. Nikolaos, I. “H ’Odnoaa0s, Varna, 1894.

Noél, F. J. M. Dictionnaire de la Fable, Paris, 1810. 1 Except where otherwise indicated, references in the text refer to this, and not the Swiss, edition.

List of Authors li De Nolhac, 8. La Dalmatte, les Iles Iontennes, Athos, Paris, 1882. *North. Essay on Anctent and Modern Greeks. North, Hon. Roger. Lives of the Norths, London, 1902. Nutting, G. B. The Kuzzelbash Koords, in Amer. Miss. Her. \vi (1860), P- 345-

Oberhummer, FE. Dte Insel Cypern, Munich, 1903. Oberhummer (R.) and Zimmerer (H.). Durch Syrien und Kletnasten, Berlin, 1899. Oesterretchisches Archdologisches Institut, Forschungen in Ephesos, Vienna, 1906 ff.

Oesterretchisch-ungarische Monarchie in Wort und Bild: Ungarn, Vienna, 1886-1902.

Ohnefalsch-Richter, Magda H. Ltn altes Bauwerk bet Larnaka, in Arch, Zeit. xxxix (1881), pp. 311 ff. —— Griechische Sttten und Gebrauche auf Cypern, Berlin, 1913.

Ohnefalsch-Richter, Max. 4 Pre-Htstortc Building at Salamts, in F.H.S. iv (1883), pp. 112 ff. D’Ohsson, I. de Mouradja. Tableau Général de PEmptre Othoman, Paris, 1787-1820. Oikonomos, C. Ta Liwldueva, Athens, 1809. Oliphant, L. Haifa, or Life in Modern Palestine, Edinburgh, 1887. Olivier, G. A. Voyage dans PEmpire Othoman, Paris, 1801-7. Omont, H. Athénes au xvit? stécle, Paris, 1898. —— Misstons Archéologiques aux xvit et xuttt® stécles, Paris, 1902.

d’Oppenheim, Max. Voyage en Syrie et en Mésopotamie, in Tour du Monde, 1899, pp. 349 ff. Ormerod (H. A.) and Robinson (E. 5. G.). Notes and Inscriptions from Pampbylia, in B.S.A. xvii (1g10-11), pp. 215 ff. Osman Bey. Les Imans et les Derviches, Paris, 1881. Otter, Jean. Voyage en Turquie, Paris, 1748.

Ouseley, Sir W. Travels in Various Countries of the East, London, 1819-23.

Ouvré, H. Un Mots en Phrygie, Paris, 1896. Pacifique, Pére. Voyage de Perse, Paris, 1631. Palerne, J. Peregrinations, Lyon, 1606. Palgrave, W. G. Ulysses, London, 1887. Palmer, E. H. The Desert of the Exodus, Cambridge, 1871. —— History of the Haram, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1871, pp. 122 ff. —— Notes of a Tour 1n the Lebanon, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1871, pp. 107 ff.

Pantelides, G. ‘Ioropia rijs Ajpvov, Alexandria, 1876. Panthot, J. B. Tratté des Dragons et des Escarboucles, Lyon, 1691. Paoli, §. Codtce Diplomatico del Sacro Militare Ordine Gerosolimitano oggt dt Malta, Lucca, 1733-7. d2

li Pertodicals and Books consulted Papadopoulos-Bretos, A. In Sathas, NeoeAA. DiAodAoy., 7. v-

Papadopoulos-Kerameus, A. I. Fontes Histortae Trapexuntini, Petrograd, 1897. Pardoe, Julia S$. H. City of the Sultans, London, 1837. Pargoire, ]., Pere. Le Mont Satnt-Auxence, Paris, 1904. —— Les Saint-Mamas de Constantinople, in Proc. Russ. Arch. Inst. C'p. ix (1904), pp. 261 ff. Paris, s.v. Louvre. —— Catalogue du Musée @ Artillerte (aux Invalides), 1889-93. —— Catalogue du Musée des Thermes et de Cluny, 1881 or 1883. Paris, G. Histoire Poétique de Charlemagne, Paris, 1905. —— Légendes du Moyen Age, Paris, 1903.

Parker, Sit G. Donovan Pasha, London, 1902. Parsons, J]. W. An Interesting Kuzzelbash, in Amer. Miss. Her. liv (1858), p. 24. Pashley, R. Travels in Crete, Cambridge, 1837. Paspates, A. G. Bulavrwat MeAéra:, Constantinople, 1877. Pater, W. The Renaissance, London, 1877. Paton, A. A. History of the Egyptian Revolution, London, 1870. Patsch, C. Das Sandschak Berat, Vienna, 1904. Paulus, H. E. G. Sammlung der Merkwiirdigsten Reisen in den Ortent, Jena, 1792-1803. Pauly, A. Real-Encyclopadte der classischen Altertumswissenschaft, ed. G. Wissowa, Stuttgart, 1893 ff. Pausanias. Description of Greece, tr. Frazer, London, 1898. Pears, Sir E. Destruction of the Greek Empire, London, 1903. —— The Spanish Armada and the Ottoman Porte, in Eng. Hist. Rev. viii (1893), pp. 439 ff. —— Turkey and its People, London, 1911. Peralta, L. Mosul-Nineveh, in Chambers’ Fourn. 1919, pp. 23 ff. Perkins, J. Letter, in Amer. Miss. Her. lui (1857), pp. 304 ff.

Perrhaibos, C. Broypadia rot ‘Piya Bepaiov rod Gerradod, Athens, 1860.

Perrin, A. Le Prieuré de Chamounix, Chambéry, 1887. Perrot, G. L’lle de Créte, Paris, 1867. ——— Souvenirs d’un Voyage en Asie Mineure, Paris, 1864.

Perrot (G.) and Chipiez (C.). Htstoire de Art, Paris, 1882-99. Perrot (G.) and Guillaume (E.). Exploration Archéologique de la Galatie et de la Bithynte, Paris, 1862-72. Perry, Chas. View of the Levant, London, 1743. Pertusier, Charles. Promenades Pittoresques dans Constantinople, Paris, I8IS. Petachia Ratisbonensis. Tour du Monde, tr. Carmoly, in Nouv. ‘fourn. As, vill (1831), pp. 262 ff.

List of Authors hin Petermann, A. Mitthetlungen, Gotha, 1860, &c.

Petermann, H. The Moabite Stone, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1871, pp. 135 ff.

Petermann, J. H. Reisen 1m Orient, Leipzig, 1860, 1861. Petit, Mer. Les Confréries Musulmanes, Paris, 1902. Petrides, A. [Tepit Auxoupaiov, in [Lapvaccos, ii (1878), pp. 636 ff. Petrus Diaconus, in Geyer, [tin. Hteros., q.v. Peyre, R. Nimes, Arles, Orange, Saint-Rémy, Paris, 1903. De Peysonnel, C. C. Lettre contenant quelques Observations relatives aux Mémoires de M. le Baron de Tott, Amsterdam, 1785.

Pharasopoulos, 8. 8. Ta SvAara, Athens, 1895. Philadelpheus, Th. N. ‘loropta trav "AOnvav emi Tovpxoxparias, Athens, 1902. Philippson, A. Karte des Westlichen Kleinasiens, Gotha, Igto-13. —— Reisen und Forschungen im Westlichen Kleinasien, in Petermann’s Mittheitlungen, q.v. 1910-5, Erganzungsh. 167, 172, 180, 183. Piacenza, F. L’Egeo Redivivo, Modena, 1688. Picenardi, F. G. Sommi. Jtinératre dans Ile de Rhodes, Lille, 1900. Pierotti, E. Customs and Traditions of Palestine illustrating the Ancient Hebrews, Cambridge, 1864. The French edition, Légendes Racontées et Coutumes Bibliques Pratiquées par les Arabes Musulmans de Palestine, Lausanne, 1869, has made a different selection from the original.

de Pinon, Carlier. Voyage en Orient, ed. Blochet, in Rev. Or. Lat. xu (1909), pp. 112 ff. Pittakys, K. S. L’Anctenne Athenes, Athens, 1835. Pittard, E. Dans le Dobrodga, Geneva, 1902. Plauchut, E. La France en Tuntste, in Rev. Deux Mondes, Oct. 1890, pp. 622 ff. Pococke, R. Description of the East, London, 1743-5. —— Voyages en Orient, Neuchatel, 1772, 1773. Poiré, E. La Tunisie Frangaise, Paris, 1892. Poiret, J. L. M. Voyage en Barbarie, Paris, 1789. Polano, H. Selections from the Talmud, London, 1877.

Polites, N. G. *Avékdotos Adyos [Taywpiov tot ‘Povoavov, in Aedriov ‘Iorop. ‘Eratpeias, i (1883), pp. 101 ff.

—— Ai ’Acdverat xata tods Mu@ovs tod ‘EdAnvixod Aaoid, in AcAriov ‘Iorop. ‘Eraspeias, i (1883), pp. 1 ff. —— Anpwddyn "“Atopara rijs Apaxovroxtovias ayiov I'ewpytov, in Aaoypadia, iv (1912), pp. 185 ff. —— ‘EAAnvixot Mecawwrxot MoGor, in AeAriov ‘lorop. ‘Erapeias, i (1883), pp. 77 ff.

—— ‘O"Hnduos xara tovs dnudders Mvbovs, Athens, 1882. —— Aaoypadixn ’Embedprats, in Aaoypadia, i (1909), pp. 654 ff.

liv Periodicals and Books consulted Polites, N. G. MedAérat émit rod Biov trav vewrépwv ‘EAjvwv, Athens, 1871-1904. —— Neo-eAAnuixy MvBodoyia, Athens, 1871. —— ITapaédoeis = vols. v and vi of MeAérat, q.v. —— ITapowsiae = vols. iti and iv of MeAérat, q.v. Pomardi, 8. Viaggio nella Grecia fatto negli Anni 1804, 1805, ¢ 1806, Rome, 1820. Pomet, P. Compleat History of Drugs, London, 1712. Porphyrogenitus, C. De Admintistrando Impervo. —— De Thematibus. Porte, J. B. F. Recherches Historiques sur les Fétes de la Tarasque, in Mém, Acad. Aix, iv (1840), pp. 261 ff.

Porter, Sir J. Lurkey, London, 1854. Porter, Josias L. Five Years in Damascus, London, 1870. —— Giant Cities of Bashan, London, 1865. Porter, Robert K. Travels in Georgia, Persia, Armenia, 1817, 1818, 1819, and 1820, London, 1821-2. Possot, D. Voyage de la Terre Sainte, ed. Schefer and Cordier, Paris, 18go.

Poullet, A. Nouvelles Relations du Levant, Paris, 1668. Pougueville, F.C. H. L. Histoire de la Régénération de la Grece, Paris, 1824.

—— Travels in Epirus, London, 1820, &c. —— Travels in the Morea, London, 1813. —— Voyage dans la Gréce, Paris, 1820-1. Preger, T. Scriptores Originis Constantinopolitanae, Leipzig, 1901 ff. Preindlsberger, J. Bettrage zur V olksmedicin in Bosnten, in W1ss. Mitth. Bosnten, viii (1902), pp. 215 ff.

Prentice, W. K. Greek and Latin Inscriptions, in Amer. Exped. 10 Syria, vol. 111.

Prignet, A. 4 travers l’ Algérie, Paris, 1914. Procopius, De Bello Persico. —— De Fustiniant Imperatoris Aedificus. Prodikos, —. ‘H Iavynyupis tHs XnAvBpias, in Opaxixy ’Erernpis, i (1897), pp- 55 #. Von Prokesch-Osten, A. Denkwiirdigkeiten und Erinnerungen aus dem Orient, Stuttgart, 1836, 37. —— Smyrna, in Fabrbiicher d. Lit. \xvii (1834), pp. 60 ff. Psichares, J. Autour de la Gréce, Paris, 1895. Puaux, R. La Malheureuse Epire, Paris, 1914. Quétif, J. Scriptores Ordinis Praedicatorum, Paris, 1719. De Quetteville, P. W. The Pardon of Guingamp, London, 1870. Quicherat, J. E. T. Mélanges d’Archéologie et d’ Histoire, Paris, 1885. Quiclet, —. Voyages a Constantinople par Terre, Paris, 1664.

List of Authors ly Radermacher, L. St. Phokas, in Archiv f. Religtonsw. vii (1904), pp. 445 ff.

Radet, G. Fournal de Voyage, in Arch. des Miss. vi (1895), pp. 428 if. Rambaud, A. N. Etudes sur PHistoire Byzantine, Paris, 1912. Ramsay, Sir W. M. Cuilicta, Tarsus, and the Great Taurus Passage, in Geog. ‘Fourn. xxii (1903), pp. 357 ff. —— Cities and Bishoprics of Phrygia, Oxford, 1895. —— Cities of St. Paul, London, 1907. —— Geographical Conditions determining History and Geography in Asta Minor, in Geog. Fourn. xx (1902), pp. 257 ff. —— Historical Geography of Asia Minor, London, 1890. ——— Impressions of Turkey, London, 1897.

—— Inscriptions from Nacoleta, in F.H.S. itt (1882), pp. 119 ff. —— Intermixture of Races in Asia Minor, London, 1917. ——— Pauline and other Studies in Early Christian History, London, 1906.

—— The Permanence of Religion at Holy Places in the Kast, in Exposttor, ser. vil, vol. ii (1906), pp. 454 ff. —— On the Permanent Attachment of Religious Veneration to Spectal Localities in Asta Minor, in Trans. Orient. Congr. 1 (1893), pp. 381 ff.

—— Revolution in Turkey, London, 1909. —— The Seven Churches, London, 1904.

—— Sketches in the Religious Antiquities of Asta Minor, in B.S.A. XVili (IQ1I-12), pp. 37 ff. ——— Some Recent Works on Asta Minor, in Class. Rev. xin (1899), pp. 136 ff. ——— Studies in the History and Art of the Eastern Roman Provinces, Aberdeen, 1906.

Ramsay (Sir W. M.) and Bell (Miss G. M. L.). Thousand and One Churches, London, 1909. Randolph, B. Present State of the Islands in the Archipelago, Oxford, 1687.

—— Present State of the Morea, London, 1686. Von Ranke, L. History of Servia, London, 1847. Rawlinson, Major G. Notes on a March from Zohab 1n 1836, in F.R.G.S. ix (1839), pp. 26 ff. Ray, John. Collection of Curtous Travels and Voyages, London, 1693. —— Travels through the Low Countries, London, 1738.

Raybaud, J. F. Histoire des Grands Prieurs de Saint-Gilles, Nimes, 1904, &c.

Reclus, e L’Homme et la Terre, Paris, 1905 ff.

Redhouse, Sir J. W. The Mesnevt of Mevlana Felalu-’D-Din (tr.), London, 1881.

lvi Periodicals and Books consulted De Régla, P. La Turquie Offictelle, Paris, 1880. Reid, J. Yurkey and the Turks, London, 1840. Reinach, 8. Cultes, Mythes, et Religions, Paris, 1905. —— Répertotre de la Statuaire, Paris, 1897 ff. —— Une Statuette de Bronze représentant Alexandre le Grand, in Rev. Arch., ser. iv, vol. v (1905), pp. 32 ff. Reinach, Th. Une Inscription Grecque du Pont,in Rev. Arch., ser. 1v, vol. xxi (1913), pp. 41 ff. Renan, J. E. Misston de Phénicie, Paris, 1864. Rendel Harris, J. Dzoscurt in the Christian Legends, London, 1903. Reville, J. La Date du Martyre de S. Polycarpe, in Rev. Hist. Relig. iti (1881), pp. 369 ff. Reymond, M. Grenoble et Vienne, Paris, 1907. Von Rheinfelden, I. Newe Ferosolomytanische Pilgerfahrt, Constance, 1664.

Richardson, S. Letter, in Amer. Miss. Her. lii (1856), pp. 296 f. Von Richter, O. F. Wakfahrten 1m Morgenlande, Berlin, 1822. Ridgeway, Sir W. Essays, Cambridge, 1913. Rizos, N. 8. Kazzadoxixa, Constantinople, 1856. Robertson Smith, W. Religion of the Semites, London, 1889.

Robinson, D. M. Ancient Sinope, in A. F. Phil. xxvii (1906), pp. 126 ff.

Robinson, E. Biblical Researches in Palestine in the Y ear 1838, London, 1841.

Rodd, Sir J. R. Customs and Lore of Modern Greece, London, 1892.

Rodenwaldt, G. Thespische Reliefs, in Fabrbuch, xxviii (1913), pp. 3009 ff.

Rohricht, R. Studien zur mittelalterlichen Geographie und Topographte Syriens, in Z.D.P.V. x (1887), pp. 195 ff. Rohricht (R.) and Meisner (H.). Deutsche Pilgerreisen nach dem Heiligen Lande, Berlin, 1880. Rogers, E. T. Excavation of the Tell Salahtyeh, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1869, pp. 43 ff. Rogers, M. E. La Vie Domestique en Palestine, Paris, 1865. Rolland, C. La Turquie Contemporaine, Paris, 1854.

Romanoff, H. C. Rites and Customs of the Greco-Russian Church, London, 1869. Roscher, W. H. Lextkon, Munich, 1884, &c. —— Die Tessarakontaden und Tessarakontadenlebren der Griechen und anderer V élker, in Verh. Sachs. Ges. 1xi (1909), pt. ii, Pb.-H1st. Cl. —— Die Zabl 40 1m Glauben, Brauch, und Schrifttum der Semiten, in Abb. Sachs. Ges. lvii (1909), PA.-Atst. Cl, art. 4. Rosen, G. Geschichte der Tiirke1, Leipzig, 1858. Ross, H. J. Letters from the East, London, 1902.

List of Authors vit Ross, L. Retsen auf den Griechischen Inseln des Aegaischen Meeres, Stuttgart, 1840-5. —— Reisen nach Kos, Halle, 1852. —— Wanderungen in Griechenland, Halle, 1851. Rott, Hans. Anno 1440, Pilgerreise, ed. Bernoussi, in Bettr. x. Vaterl. Gesch. Basels, i (1882), pp. 343 ff. —— Kleinastatische Denkmaler aus Pisidien, Pamphylien, Kappadoktien, und Lykien, Leipzig, 1908. Rottiers, B. E. A. Description des Monumens de Rhodes, Brussels, 1830 (Atlas, Brussels, 1828).

Rueckert, F. Amrilkais (tr.), Stuttgart, 1843. Rushforth, G. McN. 8. Marta Antiqua, in Papers B.S.R. i (1902), pp. 1 ff.

*Rutgerius. Variae Lectiones, Leyden, 1618.

Rycaut, Sir P. History of the Turks, London, 1687, &c. (vol. it of Knolles, Yurkish History). —— Present State of the Greek and Armenian Churches, London, 1679. —— Present State of the Ottoman Empire, in Knolles, Turkish History, vol. ii. Sa’ad-ed-Din. Chronica del? origine della casa Ottomana, tr. V, Bratutti, Vienna, 1649. Sabatier, P. Vite de S. Frangots d’Assise, Paris, 1896.

Sachau, C. E. Am Euphrat und Tigris, Leipzig, 1900. —— Retse in Syrien und Mesopotamien, Leipzig, 1883. Sainéan, L. Les Rites de la Construction, in Rev. Hist. Relig. xlv (1902), pp: 359 #f.

Saint Clair (S. G. B.) and Brophy (C. A.). 4 Residence in Bulgaria, London, 1869. Saint-Martin, J. A. AZémotres Historiques et Géographiques sur P Arméntie, Paris, 1818-19. De Saint-Martin, Vivien. Description d’ Asie Mineure, Paris, 1852, &c. Saint Silvia’s Pilgrimage, in Geyer, Ltin. Hierosol., q.v. Saintyves, P. Les Reliques et les Images Légendaires, Paris, 1912. —— Les Saints Successeurs des Dieux, Paris, 1907.

Sakkeliou, I. [Tavaywwrdkyn tot Maydva . . . pera tivds Bavdy "Edévdn, in AeAriov ‘Iarop. ‘Eraipeias, iii (1889), pp. 235 ff. Saladin, H. Tunts et Kairouan, Paris, 1908. Salima, Niya. Harems et Musulmanes d’Egypte, Paris, 1902. Salverte, A. J. E. Baconniére. Sczences Occultes, Paris, 1856. Sandwich, John, Earl of. Voyage in 1738 and 1739, London, 1799. Sandys, G. Travels, London, 1673. Sansovino, F. Historia Universale dell’? Origine, Guerre, et Imperio de’ Turchi, Venice, 1654.

Iviii Periodicals and Books consulted Sanuto, M. Diarii, Venice, 1879-1902. Sarre, F. Reise in Kleinasien, Berlin, 1896. Sathas, C. N. Meoatwvixy BiBrvoOjKn, Venice, 1872-94. —— Moypeia ris “EXAnuris ‘Toropias, Paris, 1880~go. —— NeoedAdAnvix7) PiArodAoyia, Athens, 1868.

De Saulcy, L. F. J. Caignart. Souvenirs dun Voyage en Terre Sainte, Paris, 1867.

Savary, C.K. Le Coran, Paris, 1783. —— Lettres sur P Egypte, Paris, 1786.

Schaffer, F. X. Cilicia, in Petermann’s Mittheilungen, Erganzungsheft no. 141. Schefer, C. H. A. Nouveaux Mélanges Orientaux, Paris, 1886. De Schepper, C. D. Missions Diplomatiques (ed.), Brussels, 1856. Von Schiller, J. C. F. Der Kampf mit dem Drachen. Schiltberger, J. Bondage and Travels, tr. J. B. Telfer, London, 1879. —— Reise in den Orient, ed. A. J. Penzel, Munich, 1813. Schlechta-Wssehrd, —. Die Osmantschen Geschichtschreiber der neueren

Lett, in Denk. Wien. Akad. viii (1857), Ph.-Hist. Cl, Abb. i. Schliemann, H. /i10s, London, 1880. Von Schloezer, A. L. Krittsch-Historische Neben Stunden, Gottingen, 1797.

Schlumberger, G. L. Le Stége, la Prise, et le Sac de Constantinople en 1453, Paris, 1914. Schmidt, C. E. Sevilla, Leipzig, 1902. Schneider, R. L’Ombrie, Paris, 1905. Schumacher, G. Across the Fordan, London, 1885. Schumacher, R. The Faulan, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1888, pp. 1 ff. Von Schweiger-Lerchenfeld, A. Armenien, Jena, 1878. Scott Stevenson, Mrs. E. Our Ride through Asia Minor, London, 1881. Seaman, W. Reign of Sultan Orchan, London, 1652. Sébillot, P. Le Folk-Lore de France, Paris, 1904-7. Seidel, A. Neugriechische Chrestomathie, Vienna, 1896. Seligman, C. G. Ancient Egyptian Beliefs in Modern Egypt, in Ridgeway Essays, pp. 448 ff. Seligman (C. G.) and Murray (M.A.). Note upon an Early Egyptian Standard, in Man, xi (1911), pp. 165 ff. Sell, E. Religious Orders of Islam, London, 1908. Sestini, D. Lettere Odeporiche, Livorno, 1785. —— Lettres, Paris, 1789. —— Viaggio da Costantinopolt a Bassora, Yverdun, 1786. —— Voyages dans la Gréce Asiatique, London, Paris, 1789. Severus, S. Opera Omnia, Amsterdam, 1665. Seville, J. Notre Dame de Constantinople, in Notre Dame, iv (1914) pp. 117 ff.

List of Authors lix Shaw, Thomas. Travels to Barbary, London, 1757. —— Voyages dans Plusteurs Provinces de la Barbarie, La Haye, 1743.

Sherif-ed-Din. Histotre de Timour Bec, tr. F. Pétis de la Croix, Paris, 1722.

Shishmanova, Lidiya. Légendes Religieuses Bulgares, Paris, 1896.

Siderides, X. A. At ev KwvoravrwovmdAe. Kwoardpvat rot *Aeriou Kat Tov "Aamapos, in Dror. AVAAoyos, KO" (1902-5), pp. 249 ff.

—— AiBvooa, AaxiPila, Pxéyrovta, in BiroA. LvAXoyos, xb’ (1895-9), pp. 264 ff. Sieber, F.W. Reise nach der Insel Kreta im Fabre 1817, Leipzig and Soranzo, 1823.

Sincerus, Jodocus. [tinerartum Galliae, Amsterdam, 1649. Skene, F. M. F. Wayfaring Sketches, London, 1847. Skene, J. H. Anadol, London, 1853. Slade, A. Records of Travels in Turkey, Greece, (5c., London, 1854. Sladen, D. B. W. Oriental Catro, London, 1911. —— Queer Things about Egypt, London, 1910. Smith (Eli) and Dwight (H. G. O.). Missionary Researches in Armenia, London, 1834. Smith, Thomas. Septem Asiae Ecclestarum Notitia, Utrecht, 1694. Smyrnakes, G. To “Ayov ”Opos, Athens, 1903.

Sonnini de Manoncourt, C. N. 8. Voyage en Gréce et en Turquie, Paris, 1801. Soury, J. Etudes Historiques sur la Gréce, Paris, 1877. Southgate, H. Tour in Turkey and Persia, New York, 1840. Spencer, E. Travels in European Turkey, London, 1851. —— Turkey, Russta, the Black Sea, and Circassia, London, 1854. Spiegel, F. Die Alexandersage bet den Ortentalen, Leipzig, 1851. Spiro, J. Htstotre de Foseph suivant la Tradition Musulmane, \ausanne and Paris, 1907. Spon, Jacob. Voyage d’Italie, Amsterdam, 1679. Spratt, T. A. B. Travels and Researches in Crete, London, 1865.

Spratt (T. A. B.) and Forbes (E.) Travels in Lycia, Milyas, and the Cibyratis, London, 1847. Stanley, A. P. Sinat and Palestine, London, 1857. Steinschneider, M. Apollonius von Thyana, in Z. D. Morgenl. Ges. xlv (1891), pp. 439 ff. Steinwald, E. Geschichte der deutschen Evangelischen Gemeinde zu Smyrna, Berlin, 1904. Stephani, L. Retse durch einige Gegenden des Nordlichen Griechenlandes, Leipzig, 1643. Stern, B. Die Moderne Tiirket, Berlin, 1908.

Sterrett, J. R.S. Epigraphical Fourney, = Papers AS.A. ii. —— Wolfe Expedition = Papers A.S.A. in.

Ix Periodicals and Books consulted Stochove, V. Voyage, Brussels, 1662. Storari, G. Plan of Smyrna, 1855. Story, W. W. Roba dt Roma, London, 1863. Strack, H. L. Der Blutaberglaube in der Menschheit, Munich, 1892. Strickland, H. E. Memoirs, London, 1858. Struck, A. Makedonische Fahrten, Leipzig, 1904. Struys, Jan. Voyages, Amsterdam, 1681. Strzygowski, J. Die Sophienkirche in Salonik, in Oriens Christianus, i (1901), pp. 153 ff. See also Forchheimer. Stuart (James) and Revett (N.). Antiquities of Athens, London, 1762. Suriano, F. Lrattato di Terra Santa, Milan, 1900. Svoronos, E. Mia ‘Ioropiuxy Eikwv, in Mixpac. ‘Hyuepod., 1916, pp. 384 ff. Sykes, E. C. Persia and tts People, London, 1910. Sykes, Sir M. Dar-ul-Islam, London, 1904. —— ‘Fourneys in North Mesopotamia, in Geog. ‘fourn. xxx (1907), pp. 384 ff.

Sykes, Sir P.M. Ten Thousand Miles in Persia, London, 1902. Synaxaria, Constantinople. Talmud, ed. H. Polano (Chandos Classics), London, 1877. Tavernier, J. B. S1x Voyages (with which is included the Relation of the Seraglio), London, 1677, 78. Taylor, J. G. Fournal of a Tour in Armenia, Kurdistan, and Upper Mesopotamia, in F.R.G.S. xxxviil (1868), pp. 281 ff. Tchamich, M. Astory of Armenia, Calcutta, 1827. Tchihatcheff, P. Le Bosphore et Constantinople, Paris, 1864. See also Tschihatscheff, P. von. Temple, G. Travels in Greece and Turkey, london, 1836. Teonge, H. Diary 1675 to 1679, London, 1825. Texier, C. F. M. Description de ? Asie Mineure, Paris, 1839-49. Texier (C. I’. M.) and Pullan (R. P.). Byzantine Architecture, London, 1864.

Thenaud, Jean. Voyage d’Outre-Mer, ed. Schefer and Cordier, Paris, 1884.

Theodericus of Wiirzburg. De Locts Sanctis, ed. T. Tobler, St. Gallen, 1865.

Theodoros Prodromos. Rhodanthe and Dostcles, in Hercher, Script. Erot., 9. v.

Theodosius. De Situ Terrae Sanctae, in Geyer, Itin. Hieros., q.v. Thévenot, J. B. Voyages, Amsterdam, 1727. —— Travels into the Levant, in Harris’s Navig. Bibl., q.v. Thevet, A. Cosmographie de Levant, Anvers, 1556. —— Cosmographie Universelle, Paris, 1575.

Last of Authors Ix1 Thiers, J. B. Tratte des Superstitions, Paris, 1704. Thomas, N. W. Animal Folklore in Georgia, in Man, 1 (1901), pp. 56 f.

Thompson, R. C. Some Unmapped Routes in the Western Hitttte Country, in Proc. Soc. Bibl. Arch. xxxii (1910), pp. 289 ff. Thomson, W. McC. Lhe Land and the Book, London, 1859. Tinayre, M. Notes @une Voyageuse en Turquie, Paris, 1910. Tischendorf, L. F. C. Terre-Sainte, Paris, 1868. Tisdall, W. St. C. ‘ The Book’ of the ‘ People of the Book’ in Mosl. World, 11 (1912), pp. 164 ff.

Tobler, T. Bethlehem in Paldstina, St. Gallen and Bern, 1849.

—— Descriptiones Terrae Sanctae ex saeculo vttt, tx, xtt, et xv, Leipzig, 1874. -_—— Golgatha, seine Kirchen und Kloster, St. Gallen and Bern, 1851. —— Palaestinae Descriptiones ex saeculo iv, v, v1, St. Gallen, 1869. —— De Siloahquelle und der Oelberg, St. Gallen, 1852. —— Topographte von Ferusalem und seinen Ungebungen, Berlin, 1853, 54.

Tobler (T.) and Molinier (A.). J/ttnera Hterosolymitana, Geneva, 1877-85.

Tollot, J. B. Voyage au Levant es années 1731 et 1732, Paris, 1742. Tomaschek, W. Zur historischen Topographie v. Kletnasien 1m Mittelalter, in Sitzb. Wien. Akad., Ph.-Hist. Cl. cxxiv (1891), AbA. viii. Torr, Cecil. The Mausoleum, in Class. Rev. i (1887), p. 79. —— Rhodes in Modern Times, Cambridge, 1887. De Tournefort, J. Pitton. Relation d’un Voyage au Levant, Amsterdam, 1718.

Tozer, H. F. Lslands of the Aegean, Oxford, 1890. —— Researches in the Highlands of Turkey, London, 1869. —— Turkish Armenia and Eastern Asta Minor, London, 1881. Transfeldts, J. G. Examen Antiquitatum Atheniensium, in Ath. Mitth. 1 (1876), pp. 102 ff. Trant, T. Abercromby. Narrative of a Fourney through Greece in 1830, London, 1830. Trede, Th. Das Heidentum, Gotha, 1889-91. Triantaphyllides, P. Ot Duyddes, Athens, 1870. —— Toa ITovrixa, Athens, 1866.

Trikoupis, Sp. ‘Ioropia tis ‘EXAnunis "Exavacracews, London, 1853~7.

Tristram, H. B. Eastern Customs in Bible Lands, London, 1894. Tsakyroglous, M. ITepi Iovpovnwyv, Athens, 1891. —— Die Smyrna, in Z. f. Volksk. 1 (1889), pp. 103 f. —— Ta Spvpvaira, in Movoeiov, i (1876), pp. 1 ff. Von Tschihatscheff, P. Retsen in Kleinasten und Armenien, ed. Kiepert. In Petermann’s Adtttheilungen, Ergdnzungsheft no. 20 (1865-7). See also Tchihatcheff.

Ixi Pertodtcals and Books consulted Tsoukalas, G. [Tepuypady DiAutmov7eAews, Vienna, 1851. Tuch, F. Antoninus martyr, Leipzig, 1864.

Tuker (M. A. R.) and Malleson (Hope). Handbook to Christian and Ecclestastical Rome, London, 1897, &c. Turner, W. ‘Fournal of a Tour in the Levant, London, 1820. Tyndale, W. L’Egypte @hter et daujourd’ hut, Paris, 19to. Tyrwhitt Drake, C. F. Letters, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1872, pp. 7 ff. —— Reports, tb1d., pp. 174 fi.

Ubicini, J. H. A. Lettres sur la Turquie, Paris, 1853, 54. Ugljen, Sadik Eff. Der Brautkauf in Prozor, in W1ss. Mitth. Bosnten, Iv (1896), pp. 522 ff. —— Der Name Sokac, in Wtss. Mitth. Bosnien, i (1893), p. 488. Unger, E. Die Dartusstele am Tearos, in Fahrbuch, Arch, Anz. xxx

(1915), pp. 3 ff. |

Urquhart, D. Spirit of the East, London, 1838. Valentini, M. B. Afuseum Museorum, Frankfurt, 1704-14. Valavanis, I. Muxpaotarixa, Athens, 1891. Vambéry, A. Das Tiirkenvolk, Leipzig, 1885. —— Die Primitive Cultur des Turko-T atarischen V olkes, Leipzig, 1879.

*Vassif Effendi. Guerre de 1769-74.

De Vaujany, H. Description de Egypte: Alexandrie et la Basse Egypte, Paris, 1885. —— Description de VEgypte: Le Catre et ses Environs, Paris, 1883.

De Vertot d’Aubeuf, R. A. Histoire des Chevaliers Hospitaliers de S. Fean de Férusalem, Paris, 1726. Veryard, E. Account of Divers Choice Remarks, London, 1701.

De Vigenére, B. Histoire du Serratl, in de Mezeray, Histoire des Turcs, i. —— Illustrations sur Chalcondile, in de Mezeray, op. cit. De Villamont, J. Voyages, Arras, 1598. De Villeneuve-Bargemont, L. F. Monumens des Grands-Maitres, Paris, 1829.

Villotte, J. Voyages d'un Misstonnaire de la Compagnie de Fésus, Paris, 1730.

Vincent, H. The Archaeological Invocation of a Biblical Site, in P.E.F., O.S. for 1911, pp. 143 ff. Vitoduranus, J. Chronicon, in Eckhart, Corp. Hist. Med. Aev., q.v.

Viviani, D. Tempio di 8. Angelo in Perugia, in Boll. d’ Arte, 1911, pp. 28 ff. De Vogiié, C. J. M. Flortlegium, Paris, 1909. ——— H1stotres Orientales, Paris, 1880.

—— Syrie, Palestine, Mont Athos, Paris, 1876.

List of Authors Ix Vollers, K. Chidhber, in Archiv f. Religionsw. xii (1909), pp. 234 ff. De Volney, C. F. Chassebeeuf. Voyage en Syrie et en Egypte, Paris, 1787.

De Voragine, J. Légende Dorée, tr. T. de Wyzewa, Paris, 1902. Wace, A. J. B. Laconta in B.S.A. xii (1905-6), pp. 407 ff. —— A Modern Greck Festival at Koron, in Liverp. Ann. Arch. iti (1910), pp. 22 ff. Wace (A. J. B.) and Thompson (M.8.). Nomads of the Balkans, London,

IgI4. Waddington, W. H. Lsaurte et Lycaonte, in Rev. Num. i (1883), pp. 24 ff.

Waechter, A. Der Verfall des Griechentums in Kleinasten im xtv. Jahrhundert, Leipzig, 1903. Walker, M. A. Eastern Life and Scenery, London, 1886. —— Old Tracks and New Landmarks, London, 1897. Walpole, Hon. F. The Ansayrit and the Assassins, London, 1851. Walpole, Rev. Robert. Memoirs relating to European Turkey, London, 1817, 1820. 2 vols. (vol. 1 = Memoirs; vol. it = Travels), ——~ Memoirs, 2nd ed., London, 1818. Walsh, R. Constantinople and the Seven Churches, see Allom. —— Narrative of a‘fourney from Constantinople, London, 1829 (3rd ed.). —— A Residence at Constantinople, London, 1836.

Warburton, B. E. G. The Crescent and the Cross, London, 1860. Ward, W. H. Unpublished or Imperfectly Published Hittite Monuments, in 4, 7.A. 11 (1886), pp. 49 ff. Warkworth, Earl. Notes from a Diary in Astatic Turkey, London, 1898. Warren, Capt. Our Summer 1n the Lebanon, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1869, pp. 215 ff. Weber, G. Dinair, Gueikler, Besancon, 1892. —— Die Wasserlettungen von Smyrna, in Fahbrbuch, xiv (1899), pp. 4 f., 167 ff.

Weigand, G. Die Aromunen, Leipzig, 1894-5. Weil, G. Geschichte der Chalifen, Mannheim, 1846-62. *Weil, R. Sinaz. Welschinger, H. Strasbourg, Paris, 1905. Wey, W. Jtinerartes, London, 1857. Weyh, W. Merpov AapBavew, in Byz. Zeit. xxiii (1914), pp. 164 ff. Wheler, Sir G. Fourney into Greece, London, 1682. White, C. Dhree Years in Constantinople, London, 1845. White, G. E. The Alevi Turks of Asia Minor, in Contemp. Rev., Nov. 1913, pp. 690 ff. —— Evil Spirits and the Evil Eye in Turkish Lore, in Mosl. World, ix (1919), pp. 179 fi.

Ixiv Pertodicals and Books consulted White, G. E. 4 Primitive Cattle Shrine in Asia Minor, in Records of the Past, vi (1907), pp. 99 ff. —— Saint Worship in Turkey, in Mosl. World, ix (1919), pp. 8 ff. —— The Shia Turks, in Trans. Vict. Inst. x] (1908), pp. 225 ff. —— Survivals of Primitive Religion among the Peoples of Asia Minor, in Trans. Vict. Inst. xxxix (1907), pp. 146 ff.

Wide, S. “Awpou BratoPdvaror in Archiv f. Religionsw. xii (1909), pp. 224 ff.

Wiegand, Th. Milez, Berlin, 1906 ff. —— Zur Lage des Hannibalgrabes, in Ath. Mitth. xxvii (1902), pp. 321 ff. Wiener, W. Sippurim, Sammlung Fiidischer Volkssagen, Prague, 1848.

Wilkinson, J. G. Modern Egypt and Thebes, London, 1843. Willebrand von Oldenburg, in L. Allatius, Sidjppxra, i, 7.v. Williams, G. The Holy City, London, 1849. Willibald. Vita seu Hodoeporicon, in Mabillon, Acta SS. Ord. Ben. Wilson, C. W. Notes on the Physical and Historical Geography of Asta Minor, in P.R.G.S. vi (1884), pp. 305 ff. Wilson (Sir C. W.) and Warren (Sir C.). The Recovery of Ferusalem, London, 1871. Wilson, 8. S. Narrative of the Greek Mission, London, 1839. Wilson, W. R. Travels in Egypt and the Holy Land, London, 1834. Winchester, O. W. Call to Labor among Kuzzelbash Koords, in Amer. Miss. Her. \vii (1861), p. 71. Wittman, W. Travels in Turkey, Asia Minor, Syria during 1799, 1800, and 1801, London, 1803. Wood, J. T. Discoveries at Ephesus, London, 1877. Woolwich Museum of Artillery. Catalogue, London, 1906. Worcester, L. 4 Sermon Delivered at the Ordination of the Rev. Elnathan Gridley, Boston, 1825. Wright, Thomas. Early Travels in Palestine, London, 1848. Wiilzinger, C. Dret Bektaschtkloster Phrygiens, Berlin, 1913. *Wurm, —. Museum Wurmianum, 1722. Yakut. Lexicon Geographicum, 1850, &c. Yorke, V. W. Fourney tn the Valley of the Upper Euphrates, in Geog. ‘Fourn. vill (1896), pp. 453 ff. Yung, E. Sous le Ciel Breton, Geneva, 1894. Ziller, E. Die Antitken Wasserlettungen Athens, in Ath. M1tth. ii (1877), pp. 107 ff. Zinkeisen, J. W. Geschichte des Osmantschen Reiches in Europa, Gotha, 1840-63.

Zotos (B. D.) Molottos. Aeftxov rav “Ayiwv ITdvrwy ris ’OpPod0fou “ExxAnoias, Athens, 1904.

TRANSFERENCES FROM CHRISTIANITY

TO ISLAM AND VICE VERSA

I

INTRODUCTION ROFESSOR SIR WILLIAM RAMSAY has in re-

Preated articles laid stress on the tenacity of local religious traditions in Asia Minor, especially directing the attention of travellers to important Mohammedan

holy places as possible heirs to Christian traditions. The following essay is an attempt to bring together

some available cases of sites and cults transferred from

Christianity to Islam, and to draw from them such conclusions regarding the causes and process of such transference as seem justified by the evidence at our disposal. Though my reading of this evidence often leads me to conclusions differing widely from Ramsay’s,

J am confident that he will recognize and appreciate any honest attempt to work out his own suggestions : nor can the arrangement of so much widely scattered material be without a certain value. My own conclusion, derived, I hope, impartially from

the evidence, is that a survival of religious tradition is so far from inevitable that it is only probable under favourable conditions. A violent social upheaval, such as a conquest by aliens, may possibly, and a change of population involving a wide area will probably, obliterate such traditions altogether. In the transition from Christianity to Islam both these conditions obtained in

many country districts of Asia Minor. In European Turkey the Christian element has always been in the majority, but the conquest of 1453 meant considerable 1 Trans. Ortent. Congr. (London), 1893, i, 381-91 ; Expositor, 7th series, 11 (1906), pp. 454-75 ; Pauline Studies, chap. vi; cf. also Im-

pressions of Turkey, pp. 71, 265; Geog. Fourn. xx (1902), p. 274; B.S.A. xviii, 61. B2

4 Introduction social changes for Constantinople, from which of neces-

sity, owing to the comparative completeness of its records, many of my cases in Chapter II are taken. On

the other hand, in the pagan-Christian transition ! period the process was gradual and without violent shock. It is logical to expect less survival from Christianity to Islam than from paganism to Christianity, and

such facts as we have are in harmony with this expectation.

Despite the readiness with which the eye of faith

detects ‘ survivals ’, well-documented instances of the imposition of Mohammedan cults on Christian are rare

in Turkish lands. This may be partly discounted by the considerations (1) that our knowledge of the Christian cults obtaining in the interior of the country at the Turkish conquest is lamentably meagre, and (2) that little or no research has been directed to the investigation of the origines of Mohammedan holy places.2, We cannot in the nature of things expect more than a very limited number of proved or probable transferences of cult. For the purposes of the present investigation we may divide our instances of transferred or supplanted sanctuaries into the following main categories : (a) Urban sanctuaries, where the transference is ex-

pressed outwardly by the transformation of parish church into parish mosque (Chapter II). (6) Suburban or rural sanctuaries, where the characteristic outward change is from monastery to tekke or dervish convent, or from Christian chapel to Moslem oratory (Chapter V). (c) ‘ Natural’ cults, depending ultimately for their sanctity on physical characteristics of the site, where 1 Cf. Hasluck, Letters, pp. 47, 57. 2 This could alone excuse my own presumption in intruding on such

a field without sufficient knowledge of the languages to consult

oriental sources at first hand.

Introduction 5 buildings and organization are non-existent or of negligible importance (Chapters VIII and IX). In all apparent cases of Christian cults transferred to Moslems we must distinguish as clearly as possible the character of the newcomers’ inheritance from the displaced religion. Is it, so to speak, ‘ material ’ or ‘ spiri-

tual’? Has the Christian site or building alone fallen into alien hands, or has there passed with it some of the pre-Mohammedan religio loci, e.g. the personality of the saint supplanted or the local legends and customs of the sanctuary? And how far has the previous sanctity of the spot affected its selection by later comers?

IT

TRANSFERENCE OF URBAN SANCTUARIES Cc must the case urban against cults particularly a special caveat be of entered the arbitrary assumption that, because a church was taken over by the conquerors and used as a mosque, the religio loct was transferred

with the building. It was the normal custom of a Mohammedan sovereign, on conquering a town, either to build a mosque or to appropriate to that use as soon as possible the best available building, which was frequently, as is natural, a church. ‘This he did, primarily in order to seal his conquest by having official prayer (khutba) said for him as sovereign, and in the second place with the less personal object of providing for the public worship of his co-religionists.: Thus, even during a temporary occupation, mosques were not infrequently built, as by the Arabs at Missis in a. p. 703,? by Harun-al-Rashid at T'yana,3 and (according to tradition) by Maslama at Galata 4 during the Arab siege of Constantinople. On the other hand, the first action of the Ottoman sultan Osman, after the taking of Karaja

Hisar, was the transformation of the church into a

mosque.5 Mohammed II at Constantinople first transt Fabri (Evagat. ii, 228) notes that, when either Christians or Saracens take a town, they change the cult, mosques becoming churches and vice versa. ‘The reason in both cases 1s propter aptitudinem. Even the apostles did not destroy temples, but removed the idols and consecrated the buildings : see Hasluck, Letters, pp. 233 ff.

2 Brooks, in 7.H.S. xviil, 204-5. 3 Bury, LE. Roman Empire, p. 250.

4 This seems, however, to be a ‘ discovery’ of Mohammed III’s reign (1595-1603) : cf. Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. O7t. xviii, 71, and below, pp. 719-20. 5 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. 1, 75.

Churches as Friday Mosques 7 formed S. Sophia into a mosque and later built one of his own, the latter being officially the ‘ Friday ’ mosque of the city. Still later, it is recorded of Suleiman the Magnificent that he converted churches into mosques in every one of the towns and fortresses he had won

from Christendom. All churches in towns taken by assault were at the disposal of the conqueror, though the principle was not always insisted on.2 The significance of the ‘ Friday > mosque in conquered towns is thus primarily political rather than religious,3 and the change from church to mosque was in most cases dic-

tated merely by precedent and convenience. When whole villages of Christians were converted, the village 1 Evliya, Travels, 1, i, 82. An inscription at Chios (Hasluck, in B.S.A. xvi, 154, no. 16b) testifies to Turkish practice at this same period. A curious commentary on this is provided by the passage in Michon, Solution nouv. de la Ques. des Lieux Saints, p. 72. In the eighteenth century the Cenaculum at Jerusalem was known also as the Tomb of David. Some Moslems obtained entry to the convent on the

plea of its being David’s tomb, and said their prayers there, after which it was automatically recognized as a mosque. Omar, on the contrary, when he took Jerusalem, said his prayers at the spot now marked by a minaret near the Holy Sepulchre church (Stanley, Sinaz, p. 460). This was a mark of clemency, because he could have done so within the church, thereby transforming it into a mosque. 2 At Damascus we find the curious compromise of dividing the great church between the two religions (Le Strange, Palestine, p. 265: cf. Menasik-el-Haj, Kitab, tr. Bianchi, p. 36, in Rec. de Voyages, ii, 11 5). At Larnaka in Cyprus the church of §. Lazaros was transformed into a mosque, and afterwards bought back by the Christians (de Villamont, Voyages, 1, 284: cf. Kootwyck, in Cobham, Excerpta Cypria, p. 190). At Constantinople part of the city was regarded as taken by storm, part

as surrendered (Mordtmann in Byz. Zeit. xxi, 129-144). The transformation of churches into mosques after this date seems due to special circumstances, political, religious, or even personal. 3 In the same way the churches on Mount Athos had scarcely suffered from the Turks until the political troubles of the Greek revolution arose (Hasluck, Athos and its Monasteries, pp. 50 ff.). Miss Durham found that the Turks had desecrated a church from policy, and states that this terrorism had a great moral effect (Burden of the Balkans, pp. 122-3).

8 Transference of Urban Sanctuartes church probably became a mosque automatically in the same way.!

It is further to be noticed that a mosque is only by exception a holy place? in the superstitious sense that a church often is, since it is not normally a place of burial 3 or the repository of relics. Both these functions

belong in Islam rather to the turbe or mausoleum. In towns only a limited number of privileged graves are gathered round the mosques, the great burial-grounds being outside the walls. The conjunction of mosque t A case in Cappadocia, dating back less than two centuries, is cited

by Oberhummer and Zimmerer (Durch Syrien, p. 143): cf. Rott, Kleinas. Denkm., p. 199. On the other hand, the Vallahadhes of SW. Macedonia (see Wace and Thompson, Nomads of the Balkans, p. 29; M. M. Hasluck, in Contemp. Rev., Feb. 1924, pp. 225 ff.) have preserved

some churches as such. According to information supplied to me by a police officer of Chotil, there 1s at Vrosdan a church of the Anargyri,

whose feast is kept by the local Mohammedan women, if sick; an Orthodox priest celebrates at the church, crossing these women’s fore-

heads with oil from the saint’s lamp: the women are particular that this oil, and no other, should be used. At Vrondiza a church of S. Nicolas remains unchanged. Once a man stole a tile from the church but restored it after S. Nicolas had appeared and threatened him in a dream, and ever since a lamp has been kept burning in honour of the

saint. A shepherd feeding his flocks near Vinyani was rebuked by Kasim (S. Demetrius), who appeared to him. A man who neglected to fulfil his vow to light a lamp to $8. Demetrius was struck cross-eyed.

[My personal inquiries in 1922 suggested that these and similar churches survive in some Vallahadhes villages because the villages in question were till lately chiftliks worked by Christian labourers, for

whose benefit the church was tolerated. M.M.H.] Cf. the Moslem Albanians of Kachanik (Bérard, Macédoine, pp. 110 f.).

2 Even the great mosque of Mecca is used by poor pilgrims as a lodging (Burckhardt, Arabia, 1, 273). They eat and sleep there, but may not cook.

3 Mohammed himself even forbade the bringing of corpses into mosques at burial (d’Ohsson, Tableau, i, 240). Lane, however, states that in Cairo bodies are brought into a mosque before burial (Mod. Egyptians, 11, 263). Mohammed’s own tomb at Medina is separated

from the mosque lest it should become ‘an Object of Idolatrous Adoration’ (Burton, Pilgrimage to Meccah, 1906, i, 314). For the Sultan of Egypt and S. Barbara’s body see below, p. 235, n. I.

S. Sophia 9

and turbe either is, as, ¢. g., at Eyyub at Constantinople,

a development of the idea that the graves of departed saints impart a peculiar efficacy to prayer ;! or, as, é. 2., at the Ulu Jami at Manisa, it is due to a pious founder’s desire that prayer for his soul may be suggested by the

presence of his tomb in or near the mosque.? In cases where a ‘ transferred’ church possessed a grave, for instance, of peculiar sanctity, this sanctity might (but need not) be inherited by the mosque, either through the adoption of the tomb under another name or by some less obvious process.

The following instances of ‘ transferred’ churches illustrate the abolition, adoption,3 or transference of the cults involved : 1. S. Sopu1a, ConsTANTINOPLE. Here, in spite of

the ‘superstitious’ sanctity attaching to the Christian church from the numberless relics and sacred objects deposited in it, especially the tomb of S. John Chrysostom,4 the building became at the conquest primarily a gamt or place of assembly for the Faithful. The case of S. Sophia is, however, remarkable as illustrating the tendency, not only of certain old superstitions to survive—the selection being apparently quite arbitrary— but also of new ones to come into being after the change

of masters. In this case certainly the resultant mass of superstitious legend is due at least as much to the 1 The mental attitude of Mohammedans with regard to the saintly dead, which of course varies greatly from class to class, has been ad-

mirably explained by Gibb (Ottoman Poetry, i, 180, n. 2: quoted below, pp. 256-7): the above is a perfect orthodox point of view. See the fuller treatment below, pp. 250 ff. 2 See below, p. 228. 3 For the assimilation of non-Islamic ideas by Islam see especially Goldziher, in Rev. Hist. Relig. 11 (1860), p. 298. The Holy Land in particular affords well-documented examples of Christian cults taken over by the Moslems. 4 See especially an anonymous fifteenth-century pilgrim’s account in Khitrovo, /tin. Russes, pp. 225-7.

IO Transference of Urban Sanctuartes inherent beauty and impressiveness of the building itself as to its antecedent consecration.

In S. Sophia, then, though the Christian cults of

saints’ relics were abolished when the church became a mosque, at least three of the sacred antiquities of the Christians continued to be recognized as such by the Turks.t (1) The doors said by the Christians to have been constructed from wood of the ark were still an object of reverence to Moslems, who said a fattha for the repose of Noah’s soul before them as a preliminary

to setting out on a voyage.3 (2) The sacred well,

covered, as Christians said, by a stone from the well of Samaria,4 afforded the Turks a cure for palpitation of

the heart. (3) The curative virtues of the ‘ sweating column ’, attributed by the Christians to $. Gregory,5 were fathered by the Turks on the Moslem saint Khidr: t Of S. Sophia Quiclet says (Voyages, p. 170): ‘il y a une pierre de marbre, sur laquelle les Turcs croyent que la Vierge a lavé les langes de nostre Seigneur, qu’ils honorent extrémement pour cette raison ’. 4 Khitrovo, [tin. Russes, pp. 225-7. 3 Evliya, Travels, 1, i, 63, and C. White, Constantinople, 1, 272. Cf. Lonicerus, Chron. Turc., tom. I, vol. ii, cap. i, p. lor: ‘ vnam [januam]| e ligno arcae Noae extructam esse fabulantur, qua etiam de caussa perforato aere tribus locis lignum osculis adeuntium, & remissionem inde

peccatorum sibi promittentium, patere aiunt’. Cf. also G. Sandys, Travels, p. 25; Aaron Hill, Ottoman Empire (1709), p. 138. ¢ Antoniades, “Ayta Xodia, ii, 169 ff. 5 C. White, Constantinople, i, 270, and Evliya, op. cit. 1, 1,63. Ailing Christians rubbed their shoulders against it for cure (Antony of Nov-

gorod (1200), in Khitrovo, [tin. Russes, p. 90, and in Lethaby and Swainson, S. Sophia, p. 102). Aaron Hill (Ottoman Empire, p. 138), says that in his day both Christians and Turks held the column for that at which Christ was scourged : ‘ and upon this only ground you may see great numbers of promiscuous People wiping off the Moisture with their Cloaths or Foreheads, some expecting by its sovereign Power, to be protected from the least Misfortune’. The moisture of the column is held to cure ophthalmia if patients wet their fingers in the hole made by Khidr’s thumb and touch their eyes with the damp finger (Guthe, in Z.D.P.V. xvii, 303). For the connexion with S. Gregory see Sandys, Travels, p. 25; Antoniades, “Ayia Lodia, ii, 226-7. 6 For Khidr see below, pp. 319 ff.

S. Sophia II

both saints are said to have appeared near the pillar. Further, a series of legends grew up associating the building both with the conquest of Constantinople and

with much earlier events in the history of Islam. ‘Thus, the hole in the Sweating Column was said to have been made by Khidr as a sign to Mohammed, the conqueror of the city.t. When the Turks first entered the building, the corpse of one of their warriors was found in it laid

out ready for burial, with the invocation Ya Vudud (‘QO All-loving ’) inscribed on his breast in crimson letters.2, By a further stretch of imagination the ‘ praying-places ’ of heroes like Eyyub, Sidi Battal, and others who fought in the Arab sieges of Constantinople, were pointed out.3 The site and building itself were islamised by various traditions. ‘The site had been sanctified by the prayers of Solomon: 4 at the building Justinian’s architect was

aided in his work by the Moslem saint Khidr,5 who attempted to orientate the building after its construction : 6 and, finally, a legend connected the repairs after the earthquake of a.p. §38 with Mohammed himself.

The dome, so ran the story, fell in on the day the Prophet was born,? and could not be repaired till Elias (Khidr) appeared to the Greeks and prescribed the use of mortar compounded of sand from Mecca, water from

the well Zem-zem, and saliva of the Prophet. ‘The t Guthe in Z.D.P.V. xvii, 303. 4 Evliya, 1,1, 443 1, ii, 14. The story is possibly influenced by the legend current in Mandeville’s time (in Wright, Early Travels, p. 135 ; cf. Bovenschen in Z. f. Erdk. 1888, p. 216, for Mandeville’s sources), that the body of a man was found in 8. Sophia with an inscription showing that he had believed in Christ long before His birth. For this ante-dating type of legend see below, pp. 72-3.

3 Evliya, 1,1, 59 f. 4 Ibid. 1, 1, 60. 5 Ibid. 1,1, 55: cf. 21 f. 6 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, p. 29. The Turkish folk-lore regarding S. Sophia collected in the work shows that many of the traditions of Evliya are probably current in our own day. 7 Achurch at Erzerum did the same (Haji Khalfa, tr. Armain, p. 651).

12 Transference of Urban Sanctuaries place where Elias appeared was held sacred by the Turks

and pilgrims, who, saying their prayers there for forty days in succession, were infallibly granted their hearts’ desire by the intercession of Elias. Loss of memory was cured by seven successive prayers at the spot and the observance of certain prescribed forms of prayer and

diet. : It appears indeed from Evliya’s account that two

hundred years after the Conquest $. Sophia was as ‘ superstitiously ’ holy to the Turks as it had been to the Greeks before them. Of this holiness, as we have seen,

part only was actually inherited: the rest may be regarded as the outcome of the impression of almost supernatural magnificence made by the building on the conquerors, and their natural desire to associate it with

the history of their own religion since it had become a mosque. Any remarkable ancient building may attract to itself a cycle of legend: the fact that S. Sophia is now a mosque has more to do with the religious colouring of its T'urkish folk-lore than the fact that it

was once a church. This point is illustrated by the history of the ‘ Tower of the Winds’ at Athens, which

had no religious associations till it was adopted by dervishes,? of which adoption there is no earlier record

than that of Stuart and Revett.3 At a later time the tower was supposed to be haunted by the Moslem saint Kara Baba.4 The religious-superstitious association is t Evliya, 1, i, §5 and 64; more fully in C. White’s Constantinople, i,

267 ff.; Khidr also appeared in 8S. Sophia in the reign of Sultan Selim II (Evliya, 1, i, 61). 2 ‘They came or returned between Pococke’s visit in 1740 (Descr. of the East, 11, 1, 168) and Stuart and Revett’s in 1753 (Ant. of Athens, i, 14: cf. Le Roy (1754), Mon. de la Gréce, ii, 10, and Chandler (1765), Travs. in As. Min. and Greece, ii, 117). 3 The dervishes then in possession of the building were Kadri, as is shown by the still remaining plaster finial in the form of a twelve-sided Kadri mitre (tay). 4 Kambouroglous, ‘[aropia, ii, 125 ; for Kara Baba, who was buried

Mohammed IPs Mosque 13 probably here suggested in the first instance by the resemblance of the building to an octagonal Seljuk turbe.?

It is noteworthy that, while the greatest respect was shown to 8S. Sophia, the mosque of Mohammed II was

by some considered a specially propitious place of prayer, ‘ because the workmen employed in building it were all Musulmans ; and to this day neither Jews nor Christians are allowed to enter its blessed doors,’ ? 2.¢. because it had never been a church. This is in direct contradiction to the theory of inherited sanctity.

2. Partuenon, AtHEens. ‘he history of the transformed Parthenon offers phenomena exactly similar

though not so fully documented. Of its Christian

marvels at least one continued to attract the admiration of the new congregation—the transparent marble windows by which light was admitted to the interior. This at the east end of the Acropolis, see Dodwell’s Tour through Greece, i, 305. 1 Whereas the account of Athens in 1390 by N. da Martoni (below, p. 181, n. 5) is full of medieval saints, relics, and miracles, the curious

notice of its wonders written about the time of the Turkish conquest and entitled Ta Odatpa Kai AtdacKanreta rev’ Abnvaiv by the so-called Anon. Viennensis (in Kambouroglous’ Mvnpeia, i, 92, and elsewhere) displays a purely classical interest. Here (§ 2) the Tower of the Winds is called the school of Socrates, an association kept up till the middle of the seventeenth century, though the building itself becomes a convent (tekke) of dervishes called the ‘ Tekke of Ibrahim’. This is first mentioned by another anonymous author (Anon. Parts., published by Forster in Ath. Mitth. viii, 31, and by Kambouroglous in Mvnpeia, 1, 95,

and ‘Ioropia, i, 125, 159). He has been placed by various authors in the fifteenth, the sixteenth, and even the second half of the seventeenth century (Gregorovius, Stadt Athen, i1, 361, note), and considers

the building to have been the ‘temple and school’ of Socrates. The French missionary Babin, dated with certainty in the middle of the seventeenth century, considers it, however, a tomb (Babin, Relation ad Athénes, Lyon, 1674, p. 41; cf. Nointel, ap. Laborde, 4thénes, 1, 122, and Consul B. Goujon in Omont, Miss. Arch. i, 335 3 see also Perry’s View of the Levant, p. 492). ‘This is, to my mind, the Turkish contri-

bution to the myth. 2 Evliya, Travels, 1, 1, 66-7.

4 Transference of Urban Sanctuartes simple miracle, thought by Martoni in 1395 to indicate the presence of a buried saint,' was considered by the

seventeenth-century Turks to be a sign given by the Prophet to Mohammed the Conqueror the day the church was changed into a mosque.? The antecedent Christian sanctity 3 of the building and the potency of Christian magic were credited with

two miracles of the ‘ black’ sort. (1) A Turk, who

ventured to open a marble chest or tomb, was struck

dead, and his action brought plague on the town.5 (2) Another, who fired at an etkon of the Virgin in the building, was killed outright by the ricochet of the bullet, or, according to other accounts, was punished by the withering of his arm.6 Further, we have evidence, though on the doubtful authority of La Guilletiére, that about the middle of the seventeenth century the Parthenon became the centre of an important Moslem pilgrimage administered by dervishes from Asia Minor, who, however, had been driven out some ten years before our author wrote (1.¢. about 1659). The passage concerning this neglected chapter in the Parthenon’s history is giveninfullonp.755. La Guilletiére’s statement is denied by Spon on the authority of Consul Giraud and local Greeks ten years later (1679). But Giraud was not consul at the time to which La Guil1 Martoni in 4th. Mitth, xxii, 429. For other ‘ burning stones’ of the same sort see below, p. 181 and n. 5. 4 La Guilletiére, Athénes Ancienne et Nouvelle, p. 196. 3 The Parthenon is sometimes supposed to have been a church of the Wisdom of God, but Lambros has shown it belonged to the [Tavayia "A@nuaricoa (Abjvae trepi ra TéAn Tod LP’ aidvos, p. 34). 4 On such miracles see below, pp. 36-7. 5 Babin, Relation d’ Athénes, pp. 32-3; La Guilletiére, op. cit, p. 198 ; Wheler, Fourney into Greece, p. 364; Galland, Journal, 1, 38.

6 Babin, Relation d’Athénes, pp. 32-3; La Guilletiére, op. cit., p- 193; Galland, loc. cit. ; Wheler, loc. cit. During the Turkish occupation of Mount Athos a soldier shot at the Virgin over the gate of the monastery of Vatopedi: the image bled and the soldier was found hung (Didron, [conographie Chrétienne, p. 461).

Parthenon 15 letiére refers, and some considerations support the latter’s testimony. His description of the interior of the building hung with rags and other offerings rings true, and the movement against the dervish orders under Mohammed IV from 1656 onwards! fits exactly with the expulsion of the dervishes mentioned by La Guil-

letiére.2 It is, however, possible that he has con-

fused the Parthenon with another building. If not, to whom were the dervish cult and pilgrimage

directed ? Athens was particularly connected by learned

orientals with the Greek philosophers, and on that account called by them the ‘ City of the Sages ’ (Medinat al Hokama).3 The local traditions of the later Middle Ages associated nearly every ancient building at Athens

with some philosopher. The tradition of Athens as the dwelling-place of Plato ‘ the divine’ was still alive among the Turks in the middle of the seventeenth century.5 Itis quite possible that the Parthenon at Athens, like the church of 5. Amphilochius at Konia,® figured 1 For this movement see below, pp. 419-23. 2 As to the reputation of La Guilletiére, the general verdict of our own times is that his forgery consisted in his using the material of other people, notably the Athenian missionaries, passing it off as the fruit of his own travels. 3 D’Herbelot, Bibl. Ortentale, s.v. ‘Athiniah’: cf. Saad-ed-din, in Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. i, 351. 4 Anon. Viennensts (ed. L. Ross in Fahrbiicher der Litt. 1840): also Kambouroglous, Myypeita, i, 159). 5 Cf. Haji Khalfa, Rumeli und Bosna, p. 109: ‘Atina...der Wohnort des géttlichen Plato und der beriihmtesten Philosophen, und deshalb die Stadt der Weisen genannt ’.

6 See below, pp. 364-5. Another house of Plato was shown at Pergamon in the fourteenth century (Ibn Batuta, tr. Sanguinetti, 1, 315; tr. Lee, p. 73), though Galen, not Plato, was the philosopher connected with that town: possibly the two were fused in the popular mind. A reputed house of Hippocrates (to Arabs, Bokrat) in Kos served in the eighteenth century as a mosque (Egmont and Heymann, Travels, 1, 263) ; already in 1420 Buondelmonti had spoken of the house and spring of Hippocrates (Liber Insularum, § 45), the latter at first identified with a curious built well-house above the town of Kos, and later,

16 Transference of Urban Sanctuartes as Plato’s observatory. The dervishes of La Guilletiére’s time came from Konia,? where the cult of Plato was predominant. 3. S. Demetrius, SALONICA, was not converted into a mosque till some years after the taking of the city by the Turks. The grave of the saint, to which primarily

the church owed its sanctity, was respected and remained a Christian pilgrimage :3 it was, further, to some extent adopted as a place of healing by the Moslems.4 after this had reverted to its classical name of Burinna, with a spring called kéxxwa vepa (Herzog, Koische Forschungen, p. 161). Other references to Hippocrates in Kos are Galland (1673), ed. Schefer, ii, 21 ; Perry (1743), View of the Levant, p. 481 (‘imperfect Vestiges of the house on a high rocky hill about a mile west of Burinna ’) ; zbid., p. 480 (Burinna = dormitory and study of Hippocrates) ; Des Barres, Voyage, i, 179 (palace of Hippocrates) ; 11d. 1, 180 (school in the town, now turned into a mosque). The Greeks told Michaud (Corresp. d Orient, 1830-1, iti, 464) that his chamber was in the castle of Kos. Tucher, in Feyerabend (1480), Reyssbuch, p. 371 B, speaks of the house of Hippocrates,

1 It is interesting to note in this connexion the letter (1641) signed by the Turkish notables of Athens, including the head of the dervishes, commending the Jesuit missionary Pére Blaizeau for his knowledge of astrology (Carayon, Rel. Inéd. de la Compagnie de Fésus, p. 147). 2 See the extract given below, p. 755. 3 The profit derived from pilgrims is here of course a consideration : cf. Mackenzie and Irby, Lravels in Slavonic Provinces, p. 10; G. F. Abbott, Tale of a Tour in Macedonia, p. 14. 4 Joan. Anagn., De ext. Thessalon. Excid., cap. xvi; Eustathius, Opuscula, p. 173; L. Garnett, Women of Turkey, 1, 151, n.13; for the cult in 1489 see Khitrovo, tin. Russes, p. 263. The Turkish name of the mosque, Kasimiyyeh (after Kasim, the sixth Imam), seems merely to

refer to the original Christian festival, S. Demetrius’ day (Oct. 26) being also sacred to Kasim (Rycaut, Greek and Armenian Churches, p. 152). I can find no suggestion that the tomb of 8. Demetrius was regarded as that of Kasim (cf. Cantimir, Hist. Emp. Oth. 11, 39) by the Turks, though this is not an impossible development (cf. especially

below, p. 48; Elwan Chelebi) in spite of the fact that a tomb of Kasim exists at Bagdad (Southgate, Travels, ii, 167; Massignon, in Rev. Hist. Relig. lviii (1908), p. 337). For the ‘ measuring ’ of S. Demetrius see below p. 263, quoting de Launay, Chez les Grecs de Turquie, pp- 183-4.

S. Demetrius, Salonica 17 The exact converse of this phenomenon (2.e. a Moslem place of pilgrimage situated in a church in a Christian country and respected by Christians) is to be found in the case of the reputed tomb of a ‘ sister of Mohammed ’ at the church of 5S. Peter and Sophia at Tarsus under the rule of the Armenian kings."

4. 5. Ampuitocuius, Konia. Here the miracle-

working grave of $8. Amphilochius, bishop of Iconium,

was identified by the Seljuk Turks with that of Plato the philosopher. The church was in the fifteenth century a pilgrimage for both religions.3 5. S. ANDREW oF CreTE (Kuoja Mustara Jamisi), ConsTANTINOPLE. The miracle-working Christian saint buried here 4 was superseded on the ‘ discovery ’ in the

reign of ‘Sultan Mahmud’ of apocryphal graves of Fatima and Zeinab, the daughters of the Imam Husain, who were said to have been brought captive to Constantinople and to have killed themselves to avoid being t Willebrand of Oldenburg (1211), ed. L. Allatius, Lvppexra, i, 137. The grave was in angulo quodam extra fores [sic] Ecclesiae. ‘The church

is now replaced by the Ulu Jami (Langlois, Cuilicie, p. 317). See further below, p. 698. 2 A parallel case is that of Aristotle at Palermo. Gregorovius, quoting (W anderjahre, iii (Stctliana), p. 114) Amari’s translation of the tenth century Ibn Haukal, says ‘im Al-Kassar (der Palaopolis des Polybius) bewunderte er die grosse Festtagsmoschee [evidently meant for Frettagsmoschee|, die ehemalige Kathedrale der Christen, worin man ihm eine Kapelle zeigte, in welcher der Sarg des Aristoteles in der Luft schwebte. Zu ihm, so sagt er, beteten ehedem die Christen um Regen’. It is to be noted that the Arabs took Palermo in 831, the Normans in 1071, Like Plato at Konia, Aristotle is probably a Christian saint taken over

by the Arabs as Plato by the Seljuks, and re-named. See further, below, p. 364. 3 Khitrovo, Itin. Russes, p. 256 (1466): ‘ily ala une église chrétienne [consacrée], selon eux, 4 Platon, & selon nous, 4 Amphilothée. .. ’huile sainte découle de lui jusqu’a présent’. For the Seljuk cult and legends

of Plato see below, pp. 363 ff.; for the subsequent history of the church, see below, chap. iui, no. 9. 4 Van Millingen, Churches in Constantinople, p. 108; Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, p. 116.

3295.1 C

18 Transference of Urban Sanctuartes married to Christians, or to have died in prison for refusing to deny their faith. The transformed church thus acquired a respectable Mohammedan tradition, and the Moslem saints continued the miracles of healing with which the Christian church was formerly associated.! 6. S. Tuexra (Toxtu Mesyip1), ConsTaANTINOPLE. The saint and healer ? here celebrated by the Christians was replaced by a Turkish saint, apparently apocryphal,

called Toklu or Doghlu Dede. This personage is supposed by the Turks to have acted as a sort of regimental

bhistt at the siege of 1453 ;3 the legend is probably evolved from the name, originally a corruption of Thek-

la, which was borne by a Turkish saint, Doghlu Baba, buried at Brusa. Doghlu Baba was so called because he drank sour milk,4 whereas his namesake at Constantinople purveyed it to the troops.

7. 9. Evtas (Daup Monastir), Brusa. This church —we know nothing of its Christian past—was given a new sanctity by the interment in it of the remains of Sultan Osman. It thus became not only a holy place for Mohammedans, but a national Ottoman sanctuary.5 It was never a Friday mosque, its small proportions and circular plan marking it out for a turbe. 1 Carnoy and Nicolaides, loc. cit.; Meyer’s Konstantinopel, p. 319. Before this discovery the tomb of a ‘ Companion of Eyyub ’ was shown at the mosque (‘fardin des Mosquées in Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. xvill, 35 (349)). 2M. Hamilton, /ncubation, p. 135. 3 Paspates, Bul. MeAérat, p. 359; Van Millingen, of. cit., p. 207;

Meyer, op. czt., p. 340; Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. xviii, 16. The word dogh is represented as an old Turkish word for whey. 4 Seaman, Orchan, p. 120; cf. the Yoghurtlu Dede of von Hammer

(Brussa, p. §7). But this saint seems also known as Daghli Baba (‘ Mountain Father ’), cf. Gibb, Ottoman Poetry, ili, 364. 5 ‘The church was badly damaged by an earthquake in 1804 and is

now destroyed: see Texier and Pullan, Byz. Architecture, p. 157; G. Wheler, Fourney into Greece, p. 216; von Hammer, Brussa, pp. 47 ff.; J. Pardoe, City of the Sultans, i, 24 ff.; W. Turner, Tour in the Levant, il, 175-6.

Isa Bey’s Mosque at Ephesus 19 Though at least one church in every conquered city was made over to Islam in the way we have described,

it must not be assumed that the local tradition of a mosque having been a church is in all cases a true one.! An instance which can be checked is that of the great

mosque of Isa Bey at Ephesus, which down to quite recent times was pointed out as the church of 8. John. The entirely frivolous reasons for this identification are discussed and dismissed by Falkener.2 The church of S. John was indeed transformed into a mosque, and is mentioned as such down to the middle of the fourteenth century.3 But the mosque of Isa Bey is a purely Turkish building dating from 1375.4 In our own times a relatively modern mosque at Uskub has been claimed by the Serbian conquerors as a church of S. Simeon and bids fair to change its religion on that obviously untrue assumption.5 ‘ Della Valle mentions (Voyages, iv, 61) a mosque claimed by Armenians as an ancient Armenian church, apparently falsely. 4 Falkener, Ephesus, p. 155.

3 Ibn Batuta, tr. Sanguinetti, 1, 308; Wilhelm von Boldenseele (1336). Ibn Batuta wrote about 1340.

4 Austrian Expedttion to Ephesus, i, 131. 5 F. W. H.

C2

Ill ARRESTED URBAN TRANSFERENCES

N fecnce os cases are on to record which transference of a church Islaminhas beenthe attended or followed by untoward incidents which have been regarded by the Christians as miracles and by the Moslems as due to black magic.t When these warnings are considered too serious to be neglected, the usual course

is to close the church altogether or to put it to some secular use,? not to restore it to Christian worship. Examples are common, and, though the stories are usually told by Christians, we shall find that they are also accepted, and indeed acted upon, by Moslems. Thus :

1. A Cuyurcy at Marsovan was transformed into a mosque, but it was found impossible to keep its minaret from falling down as soon as it was built.3

2. S. Joun, Ruopes. The minaret added to this transformed church was five times struck by lightning.+ 1 The same may happen when a mosque is turned into a church, as in the case of a mosque at Akka (Le Strange, Palestine, p. 331). Early Christians also recognized and feared the potency of pagan magic, taking precautions accordingly ; cf. Allard, L’ Art Paien, p. 262 (a law of 435 (Cod. Theodos. xvi: x, 25) orders pagan ‘ fana, templa, delubra, si quae etiam nunc restant integra, praecepto magistratuum destrui, collocationeque venerandae christianae religionis signi expiari’).

2 After the fall of Jerusalem the Ascension church was made a mosque, but, as Christians could not be kept away, the Saracens spoiled it of its marbles and left it common (Fabri, Evagat. 1, 389). 3 Cuiner, Turquie d’ Asie, i, 761 ; Haji Khalfa (tr. Armain, i, 682) recognized the mosque as a Christian building but without mentioning the superstition connected with it. At Jerusalem the house of Ananias

is now a mosque, but three attempts to build a minaret have failed (Goujon, Terre Sainte, p. 33). Similarly, infidels could not put images in the rebuilt temple (Petachia, in Nouv. Four. As. vill, 400). 4 Stochove, Voyage, p. 223; cf. Veryard, Choice Remarks, p. 330.

Minarets Destroyed 21 3. The Merropouis, YANNINA, was converted into

a mosque in 1597; the same year the minaret fell, owing, as was said, to the intervention of the Archangels. 4. ‘5S. Joun ’, Percamon (the great ruin now known as * Kizil Avli’) had a minaret added when it was first

adopted as a mosque. The doorway opening on the gallery, designed to face Mecca-wards, insisted on turning to the north, which in some obscure way led to the

fall of the minaret. The building is now abandoned.? 5. °S. Sopuia ’, Soria, was half ruined by an earthquake when transformed into a mosque.3 6. S. Francis, GALATA (1701) was struck by lightning for a similar reason. In this case the miracle was attri-

buted by the Franks to the patron saint.‘ t Contemporary MSS. note published by Lambros in Néos ‘EAAnvo-

pv7wy, vil, 183. We may perhaps infer that the date of the accident was the feast of the Archangels (Sept. 6) or that the church was dedicated to them: a church of $8, Michael in the castle 1s mentioned in the MS. History of Yannina published by Leake (NV. Greece, iv, 562), but this seems to have been destroyed in the reign of Murad IT in 1431, cf. however, p. 563.

2 Arundell, Seven Churches, p. 288; C. B. Eliott, Travels, u, 126. The same miracle is told by Rycaut, perhaps owing to some confusion,

of S. Demetrius in the same town: ‘there are two churches, one anciently dedicated to S. Fohn, and another to 8. Demetrius, both which the Turks have relinquished, the first because (as report goes) the Walls fall as much by night as they are built by day ; and the other, because the Door of the Menareh or Steeple, which above where they call to Prayers points always towards Mecha ... did in a miraculous manner after it was built turn itself to the North, to which point that Door now looks, of which I myself have been an Eye-witness; but what deceit may have been herein contrived by the Greek Masons I am not able to aver’ (Rycaut, Greek and Armenian Churches, p. 67). J. B.S. Morritt, Letters, p. 134, heard that a small mosque near the church had fallen down every time the Turks attempted to build it. 3 Kanitz, Bulgarie, p. 295: this church-mosque was also said to be

haunted by the ghost of ‘Sophia the daughter of Constantine and Helen (! !) ’, who was buried there (Benaglia, Vzaggio, p. 45). ¢ De La Mottraye, Travels, i, 166, 206.

22 Arrested Urban Transferences 7. S. SOPHIA, PERGAMON. Here a cross insisted on

replacing the newly built minaret and became such an obsession that the Turks built a dome over it.!

8. Cuurcu at Tuyatira (Axuisar). Here the top of the minaret fell repeatedly. This or another transformed church in the same town possesses a column which ‘ wept’ when a Christian entered the building and ‘ high above the roof is a small cross, the removal of which would cause the collapse of the mosque ’.3 The destruction of minarets, which are the characteristic Mohammedan feature of a transformed church, may be attributed either to the anti-Moslem influence of the building itself, as below in No. 12, or simply to the ‘ evil eye ’ of the deprived Christians.4 It is sufficiently obvious that the tall and slender minaret is in the nature of things the most likely part of any mosque to suffer from lightning or earthquake. Some transformed churches were much more dangerous, é.g.: g. S. AMPHILOCHIUus, Konia (see above, p. 17, No. 4),

though transformed into a mosque, as may be seen from the still existing mzhbrab, was found to be unlucky for

Moslems, who died 5 after entering it, and it was disused in consequence.® t Elliott, op. czt. i, 127. 2 Wheeler, ‘Journey tnto Greece, p. 236. 3 Ramsay, Studies in History and Art, p. 290: also in his Lnterm. of Races in Asta Minor, p. 21.

4 ‘The minaret of the Green Mosque at Bulak (Cairo) falls if a ‘Frank’ draws it. David Roberts, whose drawing shows the minaret much higher than it is now, may have been the innocent cause of the superstition, see Hasluck, Letters, p. 75. 5 Similarly, Moslems cannot live in the Christian village of Sidnaya near Damascus (d’Arvieux, Mémotres, 11, 462), in the church of S. Thomas at Jerusalem (Goujon, Lerre Sainte, p. 242: cf. Thévenot, V oyages, ii, 650), in the cell of S. Paul at Jerusalem (Goujon, p. 34), or

in the house of Veronica there (Tobler, Topogr. von Jerusalem, i, 252). Maundrell (ed. Wright, p. 459) mentions a village Booteshallah [Beit Jala] near Bethlehem in which no Turk can live more than two years: none, he adds, will risk it: cf. Robinson, Palestine, ii, 322. The

Fatal Entry 23 10. Jumanun Jamist, Apatia. A chapel of the ‘ Friday ’ mosque at Adalia (a transformed church) was shut up because it was found that all Moslems who entered

it died.7 The whole building is now abandoned and appears still to have a bad reputation: a few years ago a wall was built round it on account of an outbreak of plague in the immediate vicinity. Moslems retaliate in kind, saying no Christian can live long in the Persian city of Chardabago (Maundeville, ed. Wright, p. 205). The same prejudice exists between Jew and Moslem. Thus, no Jew can live at Thaurus (Ludolf, De [tinere, p. §8) or at Caesarea (Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de P Aste Mineure, pp. 224-6), and Turks die at the Jewish Jobar (d’Arvieux, Mémozres, ii, 461: cf. the inscription warning

strangers away from the Temple of Herod at Jerusalem on pain of death, mentioned by Josephus, 4ntzg. xv, 14). Occasionally, a compromise is made: for instance, the house of Judas at Damascus could not be converted into a mosque, so both Turks and Christians worship

side by side in it (d’Arvieux, 11, 456). The mention of the house (church) of S. Thomas on Zion raises several very interesting problems. According to Tobler (Lopogr. von Ferusalem, i, 446) it was first mentioned by T’chudi (1519) as the house of S. Thomas and inhabited by

Indian Christians from India. It was thought the site of Christ’s appearance to Thomas. In 1586 Zuallart says it was a church but in ruins [the year 1561 saw the whole group of buildings on Mount Zion in Moslem hands. F. W.H.] Boucher (1610) says that all Jews and Moors who entered it died, either immediately or within three days (cf. also Quaresmius, 1616-26, and Nau, 1674). ‘Troilo (1666- _+) heard the story from a Turk. Yet from 1681 onwards a mosque stood on the site and was seen by Tobler. 6 It is now a clock-house and store (cf. Ramsay, Pauline Studies, p- 170; Studies in History and Art, p. 290). It was probably first intended on account of its conspicuous position for the Friday mosque of Konia, this place being taken eventually by the adjacent mosque of

Ala-ed-din. In theory the Friday mosque, or at least its minaret, should overtop all Christian churches. 7 Lucas, Voyage dans la Gréce, i, 245 ; the same author (zb7d. i, 95)

notes the case of a church at Kutahia, of which the anti-Moslem influence was so strong that Turkish houses built near it fell down.

8 H. Rott, Kleinas. Denkm., p. 46; cf. above, p. 22. When the Armenian renegade, Ali Pasha, was governor of Beyrut, he turned the church of S. George there into a mosque. Although (for a consideration) he allowed the Christians to carry away all the sacred furniture,

24 Arrested Urban Transferences 11. 5. Nrcozas, Auzessio (Albania). This church was transformed into a mosque at the conquest (1478), but has since been abandoned as unlucky, three successive muezzins having fallen from the belfry while announcing the hour of prayer.: The explanation given by Lucas in the case of No. 10

is probably good for all.z The Turks held that the Christians had laid a spell on the building, while the Christians admitted the working of the holy relics left inside. In the case of Alessio we know that Skanderbeg was buried in the church, and that at the conquest his tomb was rifled by the ‘Turks who used his bones for charms.3 He was probably held responsible for the accidents also.

12. Mosque oF ZACHARIAH, ALEPPO. A curious story

of compromise after hostile manifestations in a converted church comes from Aleppo. At the Mohammedan conquest of that city a church, now called the Mosque of Zachariah, was transformed into a mosque. The first muezzin who gave the call to prayer from its tower fell and was killed: the second died by a violent death. His successor prayed to the Christian saint to spare his life. The request was granted on condition that the Christian ¢risagzon should take the place of the orthodox Moslem call to prayer. The office of muezzin is hereditary in this mosque, and an author of the seventies assures us that the ¢rzsagion (in Arabic) 4 is cried

from the minaret once in twenty-four hours.5 pictures, &c., ill-luck pursued the pasha for his sacrilege : falling ill, he was taken to Constantinople where he was beheaded, his body being thrust into the sea. See d’Arvieux, Mémozres, 11, 376-7.

t Von Hahn, Alban. Studien, i, 93; Hecquard, Haute Albanie, p.- 57; Degrand, Haute Albanie, p. 241. 2 Above, p. 23. 3 Barletius Scodrensis, Vita Skanderbegt, xiii, ad fin. (in Lonicerus, Chron. Turc. 1, 36, and elsewhere). For their motive see also below,

° Cutts, Christians under the Crescent, 1876, pp. 46 f.: ‘it is said

Partial Haunting 25 The haunting or bewitching of churches might, as at first in the case of Adalia (No. 10), be partial only, just as a visitation might fall upon the minaret and spare the main building. ‘The sacristy of a church in Belgrade

remained intractable long after the conversion of the church,® and one of the galleries of the S. Sophia mosque at Okhrida seems to have had a bad reputation down to the Balkan war, without, however, rendering the building as a whole unfit for Moslem worship.7 ‘The

house of S. Anne at Jerusalem has been turned into a mosque, but Moslems die if they enter the crypt.® that the proclamation made at midnight from this minaret, and made with the hand before the mouth so as to disguise the words, is not the usual proclamation of the muezzins, but is a proclamation of the Name of the Holy Trinity ... to this day the listener can hear the voice from the minaret of Zechariah begin: ‘“‘ Kadoos Allah, kadoos, etc.”, and go off into an unintelligible cry, clearly different from the usual cry, and believed to be that which is written above’ [7. e. ‘ Kadoos Allah, Kadoos el kawi, Kadoos ilezi la iemoot, erhamna,’ the Arabic version of dytos 6 Deds, aytos 6 iayupes, aytos 6 aBdvaros, erX€noov Huds]. It should be remembered that the Christian doctrine of the Trinity is most repugnant to Moslem theology. 5 Milder versions of the same theme are recorded by Thévenot and dela Brocquiére. The former states that a certain mosque at Damascus was reputed a former temple of Serapis and said to contain the body of S. Simeon Stylites. ‘Le Muesem n’y peut crier la priére comme aux autres Mosquées, & ... lorsqu’1l veut crier, la voix lui manque ’ (Thévenot, Voyages, iii, 61). When the muezzins climbed the minaret of the transformed church of S. Barbara at Beyrut, ‘ they were so beaten that from that day no one has ventured to return thither’ (B. de la Broc-

quiere, ed, Wright, pp. 296 f.). It is remarkable that the mosque of S. Simeon Stylites in Antioch of Syria is a recognized Moslem pilgrim-

age (Menasik-el-Haj, tr. Bianchi, in Rec. de Voyages, 1, 105), from which town the body of the saint was transferred to Damascus, accord-

ing to Thévenot, loc. cit. 6 Poullet, Nouvelles Relations, 1, 129. 7 Durham, Burden of the Balkans, p. 140. Wace in 1912 found the mosque disused (Ridgeway Essays, p. 280). Edmund Spencer in 1850 (Travels, ii, 72) says it was in his time a military store. 8 At the time (1735) of d’Arvieux’ visit to Beyrut Turks no longer

ventured to descend into the crypt of its chief mosque, which had formerly been a church belonging to the Cordeliers. ‘ Les premiers

26 Arrested Urban Transferences 13. 5S. StepHen, Barron (near Tripoli in Syria), offered a still more violent supernatural resistance to the Moslem usurper. Originally a Benedictine monastery church, it was transformed into a dervish convent. In the space of a year no less than thirty-five of the inmates died sudden and violent deaths : ‘Les uns estoient trouvez renversez par terre, tous livides de coups, qu’ils disoient leur avoir esté donnez par un phantosme,qui leur apparoissoit dans cette Eglise, vestu 4 la facon des Papazes Chrestiens. Les autres estoient tous fracassez et meurtris de leur

cheute du haut de la tour de ladite Eglise, d’ou ils estoient renversez par une vertu occulte et divine qui les ébloiiissoit, lorsqwils y montoient. Si bien qu’épouvantez d’un si grand chastiment, ils n’oserent plus s’opiniastrer 4 y demeurer, et ’abandonnerent malgré eux; ce qui m’a esté raconté sur les lieux mesmes, que ]’ay veus et visitez.’ 1

If we may attempt to define at all the agency by which such miracles are supposed to be performed, we must take into account not only the buried saints and patrons, but also the spirits belonging to the buildings concerned. qui y descendirent depuis que l’Eglise eut été convertie en Mosquée, perdirent la viié, Dieu les punissant ainsi de leur trop grande curiosité.’ To avoid all risk of similar accidents they blocked the door of the staircase which led to the crypt (d’Arvieux, Mémotres, ii, 347). This was

dangerous to Moslems for the further reason that it contained the famous ‘ Bleeding Crucifix’ of Beyrut (d’Arvieux, loc. cit.: Goujon, Terre Sainte, p. 325: dela Brocquiére, ed. Wright, p. 297). The story went that some Jews had outraged the crucifix, whereupon it shed a quantity of blood. Most of the blood was distributed abroad in bottles, but one portion was preserved in the crypt of the church, though the Turks of d’Arvieux’ time refused to allow Christians to see it. The crucifix also was preserved in the crypt. Once some rich Christians had

subscribed considerable sums in order to buy it, but the Turks were unable to remove it, some dying then and there, others becoming blind and dying later (d’Arvieux, loc. cit.). For a possible explanation of the origin of the legend see Hasluck, Letters, p. 151. t Febvre, Théatre de la Turquie, p. 46. Savary de Bréves (Voyages, p. 43) cites other miracles related of this church and admitted by local Turks. He seems, however, to think the dedication S. James.

Guardian Spirits 27 14. Thus, at the church of S$. Nicoztas, CANEA, now a mosque, the Greeks hold that unless the picture of the

saint is duly provided with a lamp, the spirit of the building (not S. Nicolas himself) appears and kills the guardian for his neglect. 15. At S. CaTHERINE’s Mosque, Canpzia, also a trans-

formed church, the spirit of the building contents itself with a yearly demonstration of a terrifying sort. It has the form of an ox.? The presence of such spirits in sacred buildings is not

contingent on the transformation of a church into a mosque, since churches as such are often inhabited by spirits of this class.3 “hey generally appear in animal

form, and, as Polites hints,+ probably represent the spirits of beasts immolated at the erection of the buildings to which they are attached. But the transformation, and still more the destruction, of the church, excites their hostility,5 as the Turks themselves admit.$

1 Polites, [Tapaddcets, no. 517. 2 Ibid., no. §18. 3 Ibid., nos. 507 (Zante), §11, §12, §13, 515 (Athens) ; also 503, 509,

cf. 487. On the Mohammedan side similar phenomena occur: for instance, at the mosque of Muhyi-ed-din at Damascus any khoja who

ascends the minaret is thrown down by an ‘ Arab’ (F. W. H. from Husain Aga of Chotil): there is, so far as I know, no Christian tradition, and the ‘ Arab ’ is generally a merely secular ‘ spook ’ or ‘ demon’ :

for this see below, pp. 730-5. 4 Note on no. 507. 5 Cf. de Bréves, Voyages, p. 127: ‘ vinsmes a la maison de sainct Thomas, que la deuote Imperatrice de Constantinople fit eriger en Fglise, maintenant deserte, & demy ruinée: souuent les Turcs ont essayé de la reparer, pour s’en servir de Mosquée, mais soudain que les

Architectes y entroient, vn hideux serpent sortant d’entre les ruines leur faisoit quitter outils & dessein tout ensemble’. A serpent in the same way prevented the desecration of the Nativity church by the Saracens (Fabri, Evagat. i, 474-5) and by Jews (Goujon, Terre Sainte, p- 273). For a similar belief in Albania see Durham, High Albania, . 264.

. 6 Triandaphyllides, Ov. Dvyddes, i, 36: barobéres 6 Totipxos srt Exovot Ta ToLAdTA olKOdop Hata TVE}pa dvAaKa a’Ta@v, Kal was 0 KaTaKpypvidwy Toladra Kripta erepebiler THY OpynV Kal EeKdiknow

Tot mvevpatos ... Hxovoa adrovs dinyoupévous moAAa mapadely-

28 Arrested Urban Transferences Merely to threaten a sacred building might bring down the vengeance of Heaven. Wheler relates a story connecting the explosion in the Propylaea some twenty years before his time with the impious action of a Turk, which was miraculously frustrated : ‘A certain Haga of the Castle, a zealous Enemy to Christianity, resolved one day to batter down a Church ; who having prepared all things in readiness over Night to do the intended Execution next day, being a Festival according to their Law,

they meant thus maliciously to celebrate, by the Ruin of a Christian Church. But were the same Night miraculously pre-

vented by Thunder and Lightning from Heaven; which set the Powder on Fire, and blew part of the Roof, whereon the Haga’s House stood, together with him, and his whole Family, up into the Air... . The next day they found Bows and Arrows, Shields, and other Armour, all about the Country ; but never heard they any news of the Haga again.’ !

This story is still current in Athens in connexion with the church of 8. Demetrius on the slopes of the pata mabdvrwy dnbev, didte eroAunoav v’ adaipéawat AiPouvs povov €x TovovTov epermiwlevTos oikodouypatros. Christians are equally superstitious about taking stones from churches: people who do this either die suddenly or lose a hand or a foot (H. Rott, Kleznas. Denkm.,

p.192). The sheikh at Angora, who in 1834 pulled down part of the Augusteum (the property of his own zekke), was nevertheless pursued by

ill-luck (Perrot and Guillaume, Explor. de la Galatie,i,297). Thesultan who removed three of the columns which supported the dome of 5S. Euphemia’s, Chalcedon, could not move the fourth: it weeps on the feast-

day of the church (but the priests deliberately arranged this miracle) : see Sestini, Lettres, ii, 171. The Saracens could not build on the site of S. Mary of the Swoon, nor could they take away its stones (Fabri, Evagat. i, 359). The image of the Virgin of Sidnaya near Damascus turned to flesh when stolen and so frightened the thief into restoring

it (Maundrell, Voyage, p. 220): for this image see further below, p. 462, n. 7, and Porter, Damascus, p. 130. The Saracens were so terrified by a vision that they could not remove the columns of the Nativity church (Ludolf, De [tinere, p. 72). 1 Wheler, Journey into Greece, p. 359, who probably had it from the French consul Giraud (cf. Collignon in Mém. Ac. Inscrr. 1897, p. 63). A similar miracle occurs in Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. xviii, 79 (697).

Punishment for Sacrilege 29 Museum Hill, surnamed ‘the Bombardier’ (AovpBapdcépns)

on account of the incident. According to the version related to me in 1914 the agha tried to bombard the church on a Christian feast-day when it was full of people, but his cannon turned against himself. Spoliation of churches is likewise apt to bring with it untoward results. The bey who stole the famous * burning stone ’ of Angora went blind till he returned it, and only recovered his sight by the intercession of a sinless

child. Instances of this sort could be multiplied, but they are mostly told by the Christians and seem practically to have had little or no restraining influence.3 It is interesting to find the Turkish soldiers quartered on

Athos during the Revolution sparing the pictures of saints in the monastery churches,4 but mutilating those of devils in representations of the Last Judgement, &c. Their conduct, both here and in other circumstances mentioned above, amounts to a tacit confession of Turkish belief in, and fear of, Christian magic.5 ‘This betrays itself also in various other ways.6 At the conquest of Salonica Sultan Murad II, before entering 8. Deme™ Lucas, Voy. dans la Gréce, i, 111-12: cf. below, p. 181. For the power of virginity see below, p. 200. 2 Cf. Blancard in Charriére, Négociations dans le Levant, i, 351.

3 Cf. however, Fabri, Evagat. 1, 474-5, and the instances given

above, p. 27, n. 6. 4 Slade, Travels in Turkey, p. 492. 5 Lamartine, Voyage en Orient, ili, 173, tells the amusing story that, if a Christian says the Creed continuously, a dervish at the Tower of the Forty at Ramleh must go on turning (these dervishes are Mevlevi) until he dies: once the dervishes caught a Christian doing this and

made him recite the creed backwards and so stop the charm. The stories of defiling mosques and churches seem to indicate that both religions may also indulge in reckless defiance of the other’s magic: for such stories see Fabri, Evagat. i, 268 (an exact parallel to which is in Burckhardt, Arabia, 1, 307-8 : cf. also Fabri, Evagat. i, 380). Cf. also

E. H. Palmer in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1871, p. 125. Cf. Hasluck, Letters,

177.

° 6 ne Moslems will not cut wood near former Christian churches (Durham, High Albania, p. 160).

30 Arrested Urban Transferences trius, sacrificed a ram with his own hands,: after which he proceeded without scruple to sack the church. The sacrifice was of course apotropaic ? and amounted to an acknowledgement of the hostile potentialities of the

church.3

The power of the Cross is also admitted by Moslems. [bn Batuta at Constantinople says he was ‘ prevented ’ from entering 5. Sophia by the numerous crosses placed

on and around the building to exclude infidels.s It is this belief in the hostile potentialities of the Cross,6 not mere wantonness, which is responsible for the common

defacing of sculptured crosses in occupied Christian

buildings: as a rule the horizontal limbs only are obliterated.7 On the other hand, Christian magic may be conciliated, and the Cross itself pressed into the service of Moslems. A stone decorated with a cross at F]jik in Galatia cures sickness ; § the Kizilbash of Pontus mark their bread before baking with a cross ; 9in Tunis 1 Ducas, cap. xxix (p. 201 B).

2 'The root-idea of all sacrifice (kurban) among Semites seems to have been that of communion with God: it is now regarded as apotropaic, a life being given for life threatened or spared. In practice

kurban is apt to degenerate into a free meal: see further below, pp. 259 fi. 3 Chateaubriand, quoting Pére Roger, verbatim, says ([tinér. ii, 373) that the Turks are so scrupulous about the Sakhra because, all prayers being efficacious, those of a Christian might succeed in driving out the Turks altogether. ¢ Poiré, Zuntste Frangatse, p. 173, says that the Moslem women of Algeria tattoo crosses on their faces and arms.

5 So in G. Temple, Travels, ii, 127; Lee’s translation, however, gives (p. 84) quite a different rendering of the passage.

6 Before ‘ Hamor’ could build the Dome of the Rock a cross on Mount Olivet had to be removed (Fabri, Evagat. ii, 217). 7 e.g. at 8. Sophia (Grelot, Voyage to Constantinople, p. 99); at

Adalia (Hasluck, in B.S.4. xv, 271); Amastris (Hasluck, in B.S.4. xvii,

136 (1)); Smyrna (Hasluck, 1b7d., 149). In later conquests, ¢. g. Rhodes and Chios, the crosses were spared. 8 See below, p. 206, n. 3. 9 G. E. White, in Trans. Vict. Inst. x] (1908), p. 230.

Cross as a Moslem Charm 31 women tattoo a cross on their faces ; ! a phylactery worn by the Moslem women of Egypt is called ‘ wood of the

Cross ’ ; and Sir Edwin Pears has noted at the present day the use by Turks of the’prophylactic cross on buildings in course of erection.3 In 1916 an English resident

of Constantinople told me that the building of a

mosque at Bulgurlu, a village in Asia opposite Constantinople, was constantly interrupted by accidents of various kinds. A learned khoza discovered that the reason of this was that the site chosen was that of an old Christian church, and that the ill-luck could be turned by placing a cross in the crescent crowning the minaret

of the mosque. His advice was followed, the accidents ceased, and the cross and crescent are, according to my informant, still to be seen on the minaret of the village mosque. A similar tale was told d’Arvieux of the chief mosque

in Beyrut, the former church of the Cordeliers.4 When the Turks captured Beyrut and placed a crescent where

the cross had been on this church, the steeple was destroyed by lightning. A second shared the fate of the first, as did a third, a fourth, and a fifth. ‘A la fin un Renegat qui avoit été Chrétien dans sa jeunesse ... persuada au Gouverneur & au Peuple, que le seul moyen qu’il y avoit d’y faire tenir un croissant, étoit de mettre une croix au-dessus, les assurant que par ce moyen les sortileges cesseroient & n’auroient plus d’effet.’

The expedient proved successful, as d’Arvieux saw for

himself.5

Like the Cross, both the rites of the Church and the gospel itself may be turned to account by Moslems. For example, the baptism of the half pagan Turkoman princes of southern Asia Minor, attributed by Bertran1 Covel, Greek Church, p. 391; Poiré, loc. cit.

4 Lane, Mod. Egyptians, ii, 317. 3 Turkey, p. 79. 4 Mentioned above, p. 25, n. 8. 5 D’Arvieux, Mémoires, 11, 348.

32 Arrested Urban Transferences don de la Brocquiére to their wish to ‘ take off the bad smell ’ which distinguished Mohammedans,! was almost

certainly a prophylactic measure. Busbecq in the middle of the sixteenth century knew several Turks who

had had their children baptized in secret, the reason being that ‘they were persuaded that the ceremony contained some good in itself and they were sure that it had not been arbitrarily introduced ’.2 A passage in Story is very interesting and clear on the point. Quoting from Casalius,3 he says : ‘These ablutions became much less frequent among the Christians on account of the expiation made upon earth by the blood of Christ, for the innate foetor in the blood of man was expelled by baptism ; and it is related of certain tribes on the confines of Armenia, who generated exceedingly unpleasant smells, that whenever they were washed in the waters of bap-

tism they at once lost this bad odour. Indeed, the Patriarch of Constantinople observed, that some of those who came to receive baptism from the Christians demanded it not for the orthodox reason of purifying their souls and obtaining sancti1 Ed. Schefer, p. go (ed. Wright, p. 315): ‘ Ramadan... avoit esté filz d’une femme crestienne laquelle l’avoit fait baptisier a la loy gregiesque pour luy enlever le flair et le senteur qu’ont ceulx qui ne sont point baptisiez. I] n’estoit ni bon crestien ni bon sarazin.’ Cf. p. 115 (ed. Wright, p. 324), where the prince of Karaman is similarly said to

have been ‘ baptistié en la loy greguesque pour oster le flair’. The supposed smell of the unbaptized Turk (see Hahn, Alban. Studien, i, 38; Durham, High Albania, p. 74) has been used by Greeks in modern times to account for his otherwise inexplicable custom of washing (Hobhouse, Albania, 1, 33).

2 Busbecq, Lettres, 1, 111 f. The same author cites (p. 110) the curious fact that the Turks had the greatest respect for the ‘ Blessing of the Waters ’ by the Greek Church at Epiphany, before which they never put to sea, and for the yearly ceremony of the digging of the Lemnian earth, at which a Christian priest regularly presided (for this

see below, pp. 675 ff.). The reason given was that ‘there are several ancient customs among them which daily practice has proved very useful and of which the reason is unknown ’, and that their forefathers were wiser than themselves. 3 De Thermts et Balnets V eterum.,

Mohammedans Baptized 33 fication, but considering it as a sort of incantation by which they could obtain corporal cleanliness. So also, in the same manner

and for the same purpose, the Agerini* sought baptism, as Balsamum ? relates in his commentary on the nineteenth canon

of the ‘ Concilium Sardicense ’, and elsewhere on the fortyninth canon (Synod VI in Trullo) where he says that these same Agerini were persuaded that their children would be vexed by

demons, and smell like dogs, unless they received Christian baptism. In a similar way the Jews stink and are freed therefrom by baptism.’ 3

More worldly reasons are sometimes admitted. Thus,

among the Druses ‘on a méme des exemples, que de vieux Emirs & Shechs, qui croyent que leur posterité pourroit avoir quelque avantage de l’amitié des Chré-

tiens, se sont fait baptiser sur leur lit de mort ’.4

A young Druse prince, having been circumcised to please the Turks, was baptized at the instance of his Maronite tutor to get him the political goodwill of the Maronites.5

Later, we find Mohammedan mothers in Albania baptizing their children as a charm against leprosy, witchcraft, and wolves.6 A Venetian Relaztone of 1579 1 Agareni=Moslems. Cf. Fabri, Evagat. i, 275 (Jerus.); ili, 50 (Cairo).

2 Theod. Balsamon (middle of the twelfth century). 3 Story, Roba di Roma, ii, 31. He adds a reference to Fortunatus, Carmina V (de ‘fudaeis baptisatis, A.D. §79), who says ‘ abluitur Judaeus odor baptismate divo’, and another to Bosio, Relig. di S. Giovannt, li, 1589, who mentions the dogs of Halicarnassus (Budrum) who detected Turks by smell (cf. also Fabri, Evagat. i, 261-2). Isabel Burton (/aner Life of Syria, p. 203) and Fabri (Evagat. 11, 370) also mention the supposed smell of Jews.

4 Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabie, ii, 353. The Druses permit their children to be baptized if a Maronite monk or bishop wishes it. 5 Ibid., p. 385. Cf. Fabri, 1, 275 (Jerusalem Saracens). 6 T. W. Arnold, Preaching of Islam, p. 156, quoting the unpublished seventeenth century MS. of Bizzi, for which see Ranke, Servia, pp.

367 ff. In the acta of the Albanian council of 1703 it is stated that Mohammedan parents baptized their children ‘non ut Christianos

3295-1 D

34 Arrested Urban Transferences says that Turkish mothers generally considered baptism

as a protection against the first, and another of 1585

says that Sultan Murad III was baptized, the ceremony being held for a specific against the falling

sickness.?

With regard to the superstitious use of Christian symbols and texts Thomas Smith writes of the seventeenth century Turks : ‘Some of them, notwithstanding their Zeal for Mahomet and the Religion by him establish’d, retain not only a favourable and

honourable Opinion of our Blessed Saviour, but even place some kind of confidence in the usage of his Name, or of the words of the Gospel, though it may seem to be wholly in the way of Superstition. Thus in their Amulets, which they call Chaimailt, being little bits of Paper about two or three fingers breadth, roll’d up in pieces of Silk, containing several short Prayers or Sentences out of the Alcoran, with several Circles with other Figures, they usually inscribe the holy and venerable Name of Jesus or the figure of the Cross, or the first words of St. Fohn’s 3 Gospel and the like.’ 4 efficiant sed pro corporali salute, ut liberentur a foetore, comitiali morbo

[epilepsy], maleficiorum periculo, et a lupis’ (Von Hahn, Alban. Studien, 1, 38). Conversely, Christian children in Albania (Durazzo) are circumcised (Bérard, Turquie, p. 16): cf. Pears, Turkey, p. 172. In the same way the conversion and baptism of the Arian tribe cured them of leprosy (Gregory of Tours, De Mirac. S. Mart. 1, xi): this idea probably depends on the prototypes of the Jordan baptism and the cure of the leprous Naaman in the Jordan (cf. Gregory, De Glor. Mart. i, xix). I Riper Relaziont deglt Ambasciatort V enett, ser. ILI, vol. iti, 1, 455 : ‘le mogli dei Turchi purché possano furtivamente battezzare 1 figlioli,

non mancano, et molti Turchi ancora se ne contentano, siccome molti che hanno figliuoli di moglie turca li fanno battezzare, avendo essi credenza che il battesimo non lasciera venir loro la lebbra ’.

2 Alberi, op. cit. ser. III, vol. iti, i1, 280: ‘una opinione... regna fra i Turchi, che i lor figliuoli quando sono battezzati abbiano miglior ventura e non sogliano patire di mal caduco’. 3 Thiers, Traité des Superstitions, i, 315, condemns amulets containing the gospels and, quoting Augustine (Tract. 7 in cap. 1 S. ‘foban), says the gospel of S. John was placed on the head for headache: ¢f.

S. ‘Fohn’s Gospel as a Moslem Charm 35 Georgewicz, an Hungarian Croat, who lived thirteen years in captivity among the Turks, mentions this use

much earlier and gives a hint of the thought which underlay it: ‘ Inveniuntur inter eos [sc. Turcos], qui elus sint superstitionis, vt 1m aciem prodituri, primum caput Evangelij Joannis Graece conscriptum de collo suspendunt, persuasum habentes, certum hoc aduersus hostilem impetum &9 insidias esse amuletum.’s At the time of which our author writes (the reign of Suleiman I, 1520-66), Turkish arms were turned chiefly against Christendom : it is hard to resist the conclusion that the Christian charm was here used expressly to nullify Christian opposition, magical or otherwise. Similarly, in the Jewish wars certain Maccabean soldiers killed in a skirmish were found to be wearing idolatrous charms 7

and were supposed to have lost their lives for their impiety. But we may well doubt whether the rest of the troops were so pious as their survival was held to imply. So, in Crete, as late as the revolution of 1897, Maury, Croy. du Moyen Age, p. 357 (service of exorcism included reading

this gospel and passing the priest’s stole round the patient’s neck). Collin de Plancy (Dict. des Reliques, ii, 34, 5.v. Fean) says it was used to expel demons, to cure epilepsy, to find treasure, and to avert thunder :

further, when Siberian Cossacks plunder a house, they place a key at this chapter of the Bible ; if the key turns, there is money about. Cf. also Estienne, Apologie pour Hérodote, ii, ch. xxxii, § vii. 4 In Ray’sVoyages,u,71. Pére Pacifique (Voyage de Perse, p. 31) cites

a case of a Turkish woman with a paralysed hand who was cured by having the latter passage read over her, the miracle taking place at the words Verbum caro factum est. For an example of the use of the latter charm against foul weather by a Greek seaman, see Cockerell’s Travels, . 130.

, 5 Th Lonicerus, Chron. Turc. 1, ili, 208 (the italics are mine). The date of Georgewicz’ first published work is 1544.

6 Similarly, Mohammed II himself is said to have worn an amulet made of the seamless tunic of Christ and an enkolpion of the Virgin (Francesco Suriano, Trattato di Terra Santa (late fifteenth century), pp. 94f.). Cf. also the case of Skanderbeg, above, p. 24. 7 ‘Tep@para trav aro ‘layveias ciddAwyv, ad’ dv 6 vopos amrypyer tovs *Iovdatous (2 Macc. xii, 40).

Dz

36 Arrested Urban Transferences we are told that the holy tables of churches in Christian villages sacked by the Turks were systematically broken in pieces : ‘the explanation given by persons of both creeds was always the same. When the church is consecrated, the bits of candle used are melted together into a lump, and the sacred relics placed in the middle; the whole is then put into the hollow column which supports the altar-slab. The Moslems believe that if they wear a Christian relic Christian bullets cannot hurt them.

What is more curious still 1s that the Mussulmans, believing that the spell only lasts a few years, actually take back the relics to the Christian priests, who are said, for backsheesh, to place

them on the altar during Mass; having thus regained their power, the charms are handed back to their possessors.’ !

Much of this participation in Christian superstition certainly arises from the enforced intimacy of Christian and Moslem women, and especially from mixed mar-

riages and the introduction of Christian women to harems.? It does not of necessity imply that the Moslem populations which use the Cross or even baptism as prophylactics are converts from Christianity, though in

some districts (¢. g. Albania and Crete) this is at least an important contributory cause of the anomaly. To sum up, all such miracles of ‘ Arrested ‘Transference ’ are thus seen to be really a subdivision of the theme of ‘ Punishment for Sacrilege ’. The instrument is the foundation animal or negro3 or the saint (by ap-

parition) or relics. The ultimate cause of the fatal 1 Bickford Smith, Cretan Sketches, pp. 71 £.

2 Cf. de la Brocquiére and the Venetian Relazioni cited above, and especially, for the form of mixed marriage known as cubin, de la Mottraye, Travels, 1, 335; Alberi, Relazioni degli Ambasciatort Venett,

ser. III, vol. ii, 454 f.; and for an interesting and probably typical case Gédoyn, Fournal, ed. Boppe, p. 130. 3 This is almost the same thing as guardian spirit, negro, or snake, the connexion being the guardianship functions commonly exercised by negroes (see below, p. 732).

Edessa a Prototype 37 entry seems to be the presence of relics, and of this the Christian type may lie in Edessa. The letter of Christ to Abgarus was preserved there, and its presence was supposed to render the town uninhabitable for heretics and infidels.t Edessa was in a good situation geographically for the dissemination of its legends and the antiquity of its Christianity gave them considerable prestige. t Ludolf, De [tinere, p. 62. See also Hasluck, Letters, p. 172.

IV

SECULARIZED URBAN CHURCHES SECOND category of ‘ arrested’ transferences is

A formed by the churches devoted by the Moslem

conqueror to civil uses. ‘T’his seems to have been done when a sufficient number of churches in a conquered city had been converted into mosques. Of the secularized churches, some lost their religious character permanently, some retained a tradition of sanctity among the ousted Christians.: Others, again, after an interval of secular use, became mosques and accumulated Moslem traditions, others, like certain churches in the last

chapter, proved ‘ unlucky’ for Moslems and were in rare cases restored to Christian use. Examples are: I. S. [RENE, CONSTANTINOPLE, transformed at the

conquest into an armoury. 2. S. Marx, Ruopes, converted into a bath. Other instances of the conversion of sacred buildings into baths are given below (Nos. 3, 4, 5,): these may explain3 the Christian religious associations of other baths, where there is no further evidence of an original church.

3. A Batu exists at Marsovan where the Christians still celebrate S. Barbara.4 ‘This bath is said, and probably correctly according to my informant, to have been

a church. On 58. Barbara’s day the bath is always 1 e.g. the church of 8. John at Ephesus was used by the Turks as a market-house, but remained intact and accessible to Christians (Ludolf, De Itinere, p. 24). 4 Belabre, Rhodes of the Knights, p. 153, cf. p. 156. 3 But cf. ch. ix, no. 1o (Kainarja), note.

4 Cumont, Stud. Pont. li, 142: the saint seems to be localized in Pontus as well as at Nicomedia, but the original legend, in which a bath figures, locates her in Egypt (at Heliopolis in her acta as set forth by Symeon Metaphrastes—see de la Roque, Voyage de Syrie, i, 130: her body was preserved at Cairo according to Ludolf, De Itinere, p. 54).

Churches become Baths 39 accessible to Greeks who come there and light candles in

honour of their saint. The bath is said in local legend

to have been at one time the abode of Piri Baba, a Moslem (Shia) saint buried on the outskirts of the town.!

This legend is at least as early as Evliya Efendi, who records a tradition current in his day that Piri Baba frequented the bath in order to heal the women who resorted there, causing thereby some scandal.

4. A Batu in Smyrna is called by the Christians after S. Catherine, whose day is still celebrated there by

Greek women.3

5. Batu of Yitp1z Depr, Constantinopie. This bath is said by a Turkish authority to have been originally a church transformed soon after the Conquest. It has to some extent acquired sanctity for Moslems by

the burial in its immediate vicinity of the founder, Yildiz Dede (‘ S. Star ’).4

The history of this cult, which comes from a single (eighteenth-century) source, offers considerable opportunity for speculation. ‘ Yildiz Dede’ may have been (1) an historical personage (from his name a dervish) of

the date indicated. But the ‘ time of the Conquest ’ is by the eighteenth century already for the Turks a mythical period to which ancient saints are readily attributed. Or (2) he may have been an imaginary person evolved from a translation of the name of the Greek saint Asterios,s to whom a monastery at Cont Information kindly supplied me by Professor White of Marsovan. 2 Evliya, Travels, ii, 213-14. A curious Christian parallel for this is recorded in Stephen Graham’s With the Russian pilgrims to ‘ferusalem,

p: 254. 3 Fontrier in Rev. Et. Anc. ix, 116.

4 Fardin des Mosquées in Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. xvi, 52 (489) : ‘ Le fondateur, Yildiz dédé, changea, au temps de la conquéte, une église en un bain qui prit son nom; son tombeau fut reconstruit lorsque le Sultan Mahmoud I monta sur le trdne, et un cloitre y fut établi en 1166 (1752) ’. 5 For another possible connexion between Yildiz and Asterios see below, p. I0I.

40 Secularized Urban Churches stantinople was dedicated.t Or (3) he may have been a canonized bath-spirit 2 supposed to be attached to a hammam, whose name or sign was Vi/diz (‘ Star’).

Of churches which, after an interlude of civil

use, again became sacred buildings, probably owing mainly to their suitability for the purpose, we may

cite:

6. The church of PANToKRATOR, CONSTANTINOPLE.

It became a mosque after being used some twenty years as a store.3 7. S. THEODOSIA (GuL Jami), CoNnsTANTINOPLE, has

a similar history, but 1s from a religious point of view more interesting. ‘The reputation of the saint’s tomb as a place of healing in Byzantine times is brought out especially by Stephen of Novgorod (1350).4 When the city was taken by the Turks, the tomb was desecrated

and the remains of the saint scattered. The church was used as a naval store till the reign of Selim II (1566-74), when it became a mosque. In the seventeenth century it was held by the Turks to be a founda-

tion of the Arab invaders of Constantinople.s The tomb of the saint, in the south-east pier of the dome, seems to have been rediscovered during repairs in 1832

and is now Turkish in form. The doorway leading to it bears the curiously inappropriate Turkish inscription ‘Tomb of the Apostles, disciples of Jesus’; and it is regarded by some authorities as that of Constantine Palaiologos, but this tradition cannot be traced farther back than the restoration of 1832.6 1 Du Cange, Constant. Christ. iv,1§3; Siderides in DiAoA. XSvAAoyos,

KO", 255. 2 Cf. below, ch. ix, no. Io.

3 Van Millingen, Byz. Churches tn Constantinople, p. 233. 4 Khitrovo, /tin. Russes, p. 125. 5 Evliya, Travels, 1,1, 24: cf. below, p. 717. 6 Van Millingen, Byz. Churches 1n Constantinople, pp. 162 ff.: no one with any idea of the meaning of evidence will, I think, dispute van Millingen’s reasoned conclusions as against the fantastic assumptions on which the legend of the grave of Constantine rests. Only one point

Fatal Consequences 41 The secularization, however, of a church might, like transformation, bring with it disastrous consequences.

Thus: 8. A chapel of S. Nicotas at Emrrcuian on the Bosporus was desecrated and turned into a private house by a Turk during the Greek revolution. The owner, not content with this, threw down the ezkon of

the patron saint: he died the same night. Exorcism of the ‘ spirit’ by a Greek priest proved in vain: successive tenants of the house were equally unlucky, and it was perforce abandoned. ‘The story was firmly believed by Greeks and Turks alike. The phenomena are not confined to Christian places of worship. It is recorded that a synagogue in Rhodes,

transformed into a bath by Suleiman I, turned unlucky on this account.? In some cases the manifestations following the secularemains unexplained: why do the Turks call the grave that of the Apostles ? I suspect that this comes from a misunderstanding or wilful

perversion of the late Constantine legend, which insists that the remains of the Emperor were brought from the church of the Apostles, when the latter was destroyed, to the present Gul Jami (then a naval store). See further below, p. 354, n. I. 1 J. Pardoe, City of the Sultans, i, 168. A very similar instance is recorded from Sylata by Pharasopoulos (Ta LvAara, p. 28). It is also said that Mustafa Beg in 1618 turned the Chapel of Flagellation at Jerusalem into a stable. In the morning he found his horses dead : each time he renewed the experiment the horses died. At last a ‘ wise man of El Islam ’ told him the Christians venerated the site because of

the Flagellation of Christ, so Mustafa Beg abandoned it as a stable, but would not give it back. It fell to ruins eventually, but [brahim Pasha gave it to the Franciscans, for whom Maximilian of Bavaria rebuilt it in 1838 (I. Burton, /uner Life of Syria, p. 346: cf. Goujon, Terre Sainte, p. 181). Tobler (Topogr. von Ferusalem, 1, 347) gives the above and other versions, Quaresmius (1616-26) being the first to tell the tale, with Lafhi (1675) copying him, and Roger (1647) and Legrenzi

(1673) following him: Legrenzi introduces an earthquake. The pedigree of the chapel seems very doubtful, and the site does not appear to have been recognized much, if at all, before the miracle. 4 Egmont and Heymann, Travels, i, 268 f.

42 Secularized Urban Churches rization of a sacred building led to its restoration to its original use. Of this a good instance is that of a church in Cyprus. g. S. James oF Persia, Nicosia, was desecrated, and for some time used by a fanatical janissary as a stable.

The saint appeared to the janissary ‘ tout brillant de lumiére, vestu d’habits sacerdotaux, tenant un baston pastoral en main’ and threatened him and his house with disaster if he continued in his sacrilegious course.

The janissary tried to treat his ‘dream’ lightly, but a second and more terrible vision, followed by the sud-

den death of the camels kept in the church-stable, brought him to his senses, and he abandoned the stable and the adjoining house. As no one else dared purchase the property, it eventually came into the hands of the Capuchins at a nominal figure, and the church was restored to its original use. It was henceforward greatly reverenced by local Mohammedans, who anointed their sick with oil from the saint’s lamp.! It is interesting to note that near the mother-church of 5. James of Persia at Nisibin there exists, or existed, a small building once used as a granary by a Mohammedan. But S. James appearing to him in a dream and asking him why he profaned his temple, the proprietor abandoned his granary, which was in Niebuhr’s time used as a chapel by the Jacobites.2 The connexion is obvious,3 as is the superior handling of the theme in the 1M. Febvre, Thédtre dela Turquie, pp. 7 f.: ‘ Il ne se passe pas jour qu’ils n’y viennent faire quelques prieres & demander aux Religieux par

devotion un peu de l’huile de la lampe qui briile devant l’image du Saint pour en oindre leurs malades, en reconnoissance de quoy ils donnent des cierges, ou une phiole d’huile pour entretenir toujours cette lampe allumée. J’en ay veu d’autres qui en passant devant l’Eglise, la saluoient avec une inclination de teste, & touchoient la muraille des deux mains comme pour en attirer la benediction ’. 2 C. Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabie, ii, 308-9. 3 For a similar inheritance from the mother-church cf. the case of an Armenian convent at Dar Robat, near Mardin, which was regularly

Mamasun Tekke 43 Cypriote version, where the church itself is in question, not an insignificant building in its vicinity. A particularly interesting and well-documented instance of similar development is afforded by the churchmosque at Mamasun.

10. Mamasun TKke, near NevsHeur. Possibly the most extraordinary case of an ambiguous cult in Asia Minor is the worship of the Christian saint Mamas under his own name by Turks and Greeks in the wholly

Turkish village of Mamasun. The sanctuary, called fiaret Kilise (‘ Pilgrimage Church’), was discovered, apparently in the last century,' by a series of ‘ miraculous’ accidents. The site was apparently an outhouse and was formerly used as a barn,? but it was found that hay kept in it caught fire. Asa stable it proved equally unlucky, the horses kept in it dying one by one.3 These warnings finally induced the ‘Turkish owner to excavate,

very possibly in the hope of finding the ‘ talisman ’ which bewitched the building. A rock-cut Christian church and human bones were then discovered, the church being attributed to $. Mamas, probably on account of the name of the village, and later adapted for the modern cult. At the east end stands a Holy Table (at which itinerant Christian priests officiate), with a picture of 8. Mamas, while in the south wall is a niche swept out by an exorcised devil (Niebuhr, 09. cit. ii, 324, note). This miracle is borrowed from the great monastery of Echmiadzin (Rycaut, Greek and Armenian Churches, p. 406).

™ It is not indicated in the map of the Archbishop Cyril (1812), which generally marks even Moslem tekkes of importance, nor is it noticed in his Llepeypadn (1815). 2 So Nicolaides (in Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de Asie Mineure,

p- 193), but from Rott’s account (Kleinas. Denkm., p. 263) it would appear that the tekke is one of a series of rock-cut churches, many of

which are still used as barns. 3 Cf. above, no. 9.

4 For the procedure see the tale of the ‘ Priest and the Turkish Witch’ in Polites, [Tapaddceis, no. 839. 5 Mamasun would be near enough to the Turkish genitive from

Mamas.

44 Secularized Urban Churches (mtbrab) for the Turks. There is no partition between the Christian and Moslem worshippers, but the latter, while at their prayers, are allowed to turn the picture

from them. The skull and other bones of the saint, discovered on the site, are shown in a box and work miracles for Christian and Turk alike: sick people are also cured by wearing a necklet preserved asa relic. The sanctuary 1s tended by a dervish.: The bones of S$. Mamas are of course not authentic. He was born at Gangra (Changri) in Paphlagonia 2 and

suffered at Czsarea, near which are ruins of a church still associated with his cult.3 The bones at Mamasun were in all probability identified with the saint on account of the name of the village, which is really derived from the ancient Momoassos.4

The accounts of the sanctuary and cult at Mamasun are given in full below.s It will be noticed (1) that the Greek versions entirely ignore the miraculous circumstances attending the discovery and (2) that they reproduce to some extent the ‘ haunted stable ’ motif used in the similar stories of the churches of S. James the 1 For the tradition of the haunted building and the origin of the cult see Carnoy and Nicolaides, loc. c7t. : for the church-mosque see Levides,

Movat 79s Kamzasoxias, pp. 130 f., and Pharasopoulos, Ta L'vAata, pp- 74 f. It is mentioned also by H. Rott, Kleinas. Denkm., p. 163. I am indebted to Mr. Sirinides of 'Talas for first-hand information not

contained in these authors. The church-mosque is mentioned as a place of pilgrimage of Greeks, Armenians, and Turks by H. Rott, loc. cit.

Other churches frequented by both religions, who similarly partition the building, are 5S. John’s at Sebaste in Palestine (d’Arvieux, Mémotres, 11, 82) and 8. George’s at Lydda (de Bréves, Voyages, p. 100).

2 Here a turbe is still associated with his name by Christians (below,

P Pe inet, Turquie d’ Aste, i, 310. For the early cult of S. Mamas see Theodosius, de Situ Terrae Sanctae (c. §30), ed. Geyer, p. 144, and Delehaye, Culte des Martyrs, pp. 203 f. 4 The equation Momoassos-Mamasun has Ramsay’s sanction (H7st. Geog., p. 285), and is readily parallelled in the local nomenclature of

this district. 5 Pp. 759-61.

Mamasun Tekke 45 Persian at Nicosia! and the chapel of the Flagellation

at Jerusalem.2 It is, however, probable that some foundation for the tale, whether real, alleged, or artificial, existed at Mamasun, since it is otherwise difficult to account for the discovery in a Turkish village and its

exploitation by a Turk. A somewhat similar case is related by Lady Duff Gordon from Egypt, in which a Mohammedan mason in Cairo received spontaneously, or at least from no recorded suggestion, instructions in

a dream from a Christian saint buried in a Coptic church at Bibbeh to come and repair his church. The instructions were acted on, the mason putting his services gratuitously at the disposal of the local Coptic community.3

My latest information 4 on the cult at Mamasun, derived from a Greek native of Urgub who has been recently exiled, seems to show that it has become of late years markedly more Mohammedan in type. According to my informant, the custodian is no longer a dervish but a ‘ Turk ’—the antithesis 1s significant— who professes himself a dervish only to conciliate Christian pilgrims. There are no longer pictures (edxdves) in the church, only the remains of frescoes (dytoypadies, toropies) on the walls: nor are the relics shown or handled.s

The saint, now called Mamasun Baba, is buried in a turbe a short distance from the church, where his tomb is shown and pilgrims go through the common ragtying ritual. The establishment is supported by the tithes of a neighbouring village called Tekke. 1 Above, p. 42.

2 Above, p. 41, n. 1, from Tobler, Ferus. i, 347, and I. Burton, Inner Life of Syria, p. 346. ‘The miracle, it will be remembered, is alleged to have occurred in 1618 and is recorded by a contemporary, Quaresmius.

Letters from Egypt (1902), p. 30. The saint appears to have been S.$3 Turkish George. 4 April, 1916. religious law insists on immediate burial (cf. d’Ohsson, Tableau, i, 235, and the other references given below, p. 235, n. 1.)

46 Secularized Urban Churches The nearest parallel I can find for so amicable a juxtaposition of religions is the sanctuary formerly frequented by sailors, Christian and Moslem, at Lampedusa,: mid-

way between Malta and the Barbary coast, where a single rock-cut chapel served by a Catholic priest and at times wholly untenanted, sheltered a Christian altar with a statue of the Virgin and the grave of a Mohammedan saint, receiving in consequence the veneration of both religions. Closer in some respects is the analogy between the tekke of Mamas and a Christian monastery

of S. George situated in a Mohammedan village near Bethlehem and venerated by both religions.3 But S. George is in Syria particularly susceptible to identification with the Moslem saint Khidr,4 whereas Mamas has no Moslem affinities. 1 See below, p. 757, n. I. 2 A notice of this sanctuary is given by Ashby in Liverpool Ann. Arch. iv, 26-9. Some seventeenth- and eighteenth-century accounts of it are reprinted below, pp. 755-9. 3 Einsler, in Z.D.P.V. xvii, 49; Baldensperger, in P.E.F., Q.S for 1893, p. 208; cf. Chaplin, zbid. 1894, p. 36, n., and Hanauer, Folk-

Lore of the Holy Land, p. 52. Cf. the similar phenomenon in the churches of 8. George at Lydda (Fabri, Evagat. i, 219), Rama (Pococke, Voyages, 111, 15), Homs (La Roque, Voyage de Syrie, i, 191-2): in the chapel of the Ascension at Jerusalem (Pococke, Voyages, iii, 82), in the

Cenaculum at Jerusalem (Robinson, Palestine, i, 356), and in the church of S. John at Sebaste (Thévenot, Voyages, 11, 683). 4 See below, pp. 326 ff.

V

TRANSFERENCE OF RURAL SANCTUARIES \ X / Eside havetowns, now to consider of churches where therethe is 2case przorz no reasonoutfor Mohammedan intrusion, since there is no congregation at hand to worship in the converted church. The occupation of such churches, 7. ¢. monasteries or country chapels, was generally effected by the dervish orders, and seems usually actuated by the actual sanctity of the spot,! especially as manifested by healing miracles. In certain of the cases cited below Christians, retaining

their tradition, continue to frequent the converted sanctuaries and to participate in the cult. I set first a group of apparent or reputed instances of the imposition of Mohammedan on Christian cults, in

which there is a considerable amount of evidence, historical, archeological, or traditional, for the change of religion, and in a few cases suggestions of the manner in which it came about.

1. Erwan Cuetesi, a village fifteen miles east of Chorum (Paphlagonia), is named after a Turkish saint buried there in a now decayed tekke. ‘The village has been identified with the medieval Euchaita,? which seems to have owed its whole importance to its being the burial-place of S$. Theodore.3 The church of S. t We are for the present ignoring as of minor importance for our inquiry the practical considerations of site, &c., including the appropriateness of buildings. A round or octagonal plan, for instance, inevitably suggests the zurbe of a Mohammedan saint, cf. chap. 11, no. 7. 2 So Anderson (Stud. Pont. i, 9 ff., cf. ili, 207 ff.), who 1s responsible for the discovery of the ‘ survival ’.

3 Originally S. Theodore Stratelates, later S. Theodore Tiron. For the SS. Theodore, see Delehaye, Légendes des SS. Milttaires, pp. 11 ff. ;

48 Transference of Rural Sanctuaries Theodore, who was said to have slain a dragon in the neighbourhood, was celebrated as a miracle-working shrine in the eleventh century. Euchaita is now placed at Avghat,! but Elwan Chelebi is well within the area of S. Theodore’s popularity, and may represent, if not the great shrine, at least a subsidiary one of importance, perhaps the scene of the dragon-slaying.* In the middle of the sixteenth century Busbecq 3 and

Dernschwam ‘4 passed through the place, then called Tekke Keui, on their journey to Amasia. They found there a tekke of dervishes devoted to the cult of Khidr, a Mohammedan saint generally identified with 8. George,

whose horse and dragon-legend he shares.5 The dervishes showed their visitors some traces of the dragon, a hoof-mark and spring made by Khidr’s horse, and the tomb not of the saint himself (who found the Water of Life and became immortal) © but of his groom and of his sister’s son, who accompanied him on his dragonslaying expedition. Cures were performed at the site by the use of earth and scrapings of the wall which

surrounded the place of the dragon. Finally, Haji Khalfa (1648) notices in this district the pilgrimage to the tomb of Sheikh Elwan;7 the sheikh was an historical personage who died in the reign of Orkhan (1326-60)

W. Hengstenberg in Ortens Christianus, N.S. ii (1912), pp. 78 ff,. 241 ff.,

and review by Ehrhard in Byz. Zeit. xxii, 179 ff. For another tomb of S. Theodore Tiron shown at Benderegli (Herakleia Pontica) see below, pp. 88-9. The tradition placing the passion of 8. Theodore at Benderegli is early (Synaxaria, Feb. 8 ; Conybeare, Monuments of Early Christianity, p. 224), but seems no longer current there (cf. P. Makris, ‘“HpaxdAcia rob IIévrov pp. 115 ff.). ™ Grégoire in Byz. Zeit. xix, 59-61 ; cf. Jerphanion, zb7d. xx, 492. 2 So in the local dragon-legend of Kruya in Albania, Kruya itself is regarded as the slaying-place, but Alessio is introduced as the place where the dragon fell (see my article in B.S.4. xix, 208, below, p. 436, n. 1). 3 Lettres, 1, 166 ff. 4 1553-5. See Kiepert in Globus, lii, 186 ff., 202 ff., 214 ff., 230 ff. 5 See below, pp. 321 ff.

6 Le Strange, E. Caliphate, p. 175. 7 Tr. Armain, p. 681.

Kirklar Tekke 49 and 1s chiefly known as the translator of a Persian mystic poem.*

From these indications we may reconstruct the history of the sanctuary somewhat as follows. The site of the church of S. Theodore was at some time taken over by the Mohammedans, who identified the saint on the ground of his ezkon-type * (he is generally represented on horseback) and dragon-legend, possibly helped by his name, with theirown Khidr. After the transference the interment of Sheikh Elwan on the site gave it a new and more concrete sanctity.3

2. Kirxvar TExke, Zite. At three-quarters of an hour from Zile (Zela) in Pontus is the village of Tekke, formerly called Kirklar Tekke or Convent of the Forty. 1 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. 1, 211 ; Gibb, Ottoman Poetry, 1, 178.

2 The ‘nephew’ of Khidr does not belong to the original Khidr story, and may be introduced here to explain an ezkon depicting both S. Theodore Stratelates and S. Theodore Tiron. The importance of eikonography can scarcely be exaggerated. By it our ideas of the devil,

fairies, and even saints are made precise. Carroll made the word ‘ Jabberwock ’ and Tenniel drew the idea: but for the drawing, ‘ Jabberwock ’ would convey no precise mental idea, The lack of images is one reason of the fluidity of Turkish saints. ‘Turks generally arrive only at the rough classification, warriors, dervishes, &c., whereas the Greeks, with their ezkons, not only use this kind of classification but have their appropriate distinguishing marks. In the case of SS. George and Demetrius, for instance, S. George has a white horse and conquers a dragon, S. Demetrius has a red horse and conquers a pagan. Turks can in Khidr fuse the aged ascete Elias and the young soldier George, Greeks could scarcely do so. J. C. Lawson never could persuade a Greek child to draw his conception of a Kallikantzaros and so prove or disprove his Centaur theory: this is because there is no eikonography of Kallikantzari. For the curious similarity between the influence of

oral literature on folk-lore and the influence of eikonography on popular hagiology see Hasluck, Letters, pp. 169-70.

3 ‘There seems no reason to doubt the authenticity of the tomb of Sheikh Elwan. It was shown already, as Dernschwam’s plan of the tekke (Kiepert in Globus, lii, 232) makes clear, in Busbecq’s time. But the tomb of Khidr’s companions occupies the place of honour right of the entrance.

3295.1 E

50 Transference of Rural Sanctuartes The religious centre of the village is a tekke containing the mausoleum (turbe) of Sheikh Nusr-ed-din Evliya, a fourteenth-century saint of Bokhara. The turbe is of

some antiquity and contains Byzantine fragments: parts of 1t seem to be of Byzantine construction. In it repose the sheikh and his children: a crypt beneath is looked upon as specially holy and is visited by Greek and Armenian as well as Turkish pilgrims. The site of

Kirklar ‘ekke checks exactly with what we know of Sarin, the burial place of the Forty Martyrs of Sebaste

(Sivas). The name Kurklar (‘the Forty’) is indeed common in the district, but this is not to be wondered at, considering the vogue of the Forty Martyrs in their

own country. In the case of the ‘ Convent of the Forty ’ the name could easily be explained to Mohammedans by supposing a convent originally containing forty dervishes or dedicated to one of the Mohammedan groups of forty saints.3 Both at Kirklar Tekke and at Sheikh Elwan it is to

be noted that the transference from Christianity to Islam is made by way of an intermediate stage, in which the cult 1s directed to rather shadowy and non-commit-

tal personages comparable to ‘ Plato’ in Chapter II, no. 4, above.

3. Kirxuar TEexxe near Nicosia, Cyprus. This Cypriote tekke4 seems to be an example of a similar Moslem encroachment, though Mr. H. C. Luke informs me that he has had the local archives searched in vain for evidence of the time or process of the transference : 1 Grégoire, in B.C.H. 1909, pp. 25 ff. and Stud. Pont. iii, 243; Jerphanion, in Mél. Fac. Or. 1911, p. xxxviii. The latter considers the identification Sarin-Kirklar Tekke possible, but does not think it was the chief burial-place of the Forty Martyrs. 2 Grégoire and Jerphanion, loce. cztt. 3 For the Forty in Near Eastern folk-lore and religion see below, Pps 391-402 ; at Zile, p. 574. 4 About ten miles ESE. of Nicosia.

Kaltakra 51 there is no dervish establishment on the spot. The sanctuary is frequented not only by Mohammedans but by Christians, who recognize in the Moslem ‘ Kirklar ’ their own ‘ Forty Saints ’.1

4. Kirxiar Texke, Kirk Kiztsz. The precedents

afforded by the Mohammedan ‘ Convents of the Forty ’ in Pontus and Cyprus go far towards substantiating the

Christian origin of the outwardly modern Convent of the Forty (Kirklar Tekke) at Kirk Kilise in Thrace.? The Christian cult of the Forty Martyrs of Sebaste 3 flourishes in Thrace, and Kirk Kilise itself has a modern church of that dedication. ‘The town may well take its name from the original church or monastery.4

5. Katiakra, Butcarta. A cave at Kaliakra, near

Varna, was in the seventeenth century exploited by Bektashi dervishes as the tomb of a saint called Kilgra Sultan, identified with Sari Saltik 5 and the scene of his

victory over a dragon. The Bektashi identified their saint with S. Nicolas, to whom probably the Kaliakra site was dedicated in Christian times.6 At the present day the site forms part of a Christian kingdom, but

the population is still mixed. The ‘tomb’ was till recently visited by Christians as that of S. Nicolas and by Mohammedans as that of a saint called Haji Baba.7

t Hackett, Church of Cyprus, p. 421; Luke and Jardine, Handbook of Cyprus (1913), p. 47. On the significance of the number ‘ Forty’ see the references given below, p. 393, n. 3. 2 F,LW.H. The tekke is mentioned by M. Christodoulos, “H Opaxn, - 245.

° 3 e an earlier date the saints were probably identified with the local (Adrianople) group celebrated on I Sept. 4 This is one of the explanations put forward by Christodoulos (0p. cit., pp. 196, 245). See further below, p. 397. 5 On Sari Saltik and his legend-cycle see below, pp. 429 ff. 6 For this see below, p. 578. 7 Jireéek in Arch. Epigr. Mitth, 1886, p. 189. Professor Skorpil informs me (1913) that the tekke of Kaliakra no longer exists. The cave, which seems to be the seat of the present cult is mentioned by H.C. Barkley, Bulgaria before the War, p. 321. E2

52 Transference of Rural Sanctuaries 6. At Harpar-zs-Suttan, a ‘ Kizilbash’ village southeast of Angora, Crowfoot found a tekke containing the tombs of the eponymous Haidar and his family, together with a well emitting sulphurous fumes and used as an oracle.t_ He was informed by the sheikh that the tekke occupied the site of a Christian monastery. In spite of a slight discrepancy as to position, the well is probably to be identified with the ‘ Madmen’s Well’ near Angora mentioned as a ‘ kill-or-cure’ remedy for lunatics by Haji Khalfa (1648) : the latter says nothing of a tekke but remarks that there was a ruined Christian church near the well.? The legends of the buried saint as told to Crowfoot belong evidently to two strata: (a) Haidar is apparently identified with the father of Shah Ismail of Persia and the founder of the Haidari sect of Shias. But, in fact, this Haidar neither was, as Crowfoot was told, son of the King of Persia, nor did he die in Asia Minor. The real Haidar 3 is probably a local hero or tribal ancestor

of a Shia clan and elsewhere unknown to fame. (6) Whoever the buried Haidar may be, he is locally identified with the sheikh Khoja Ahmed of Yasi in Turkestan.

In local legend Khoja Ahmed is regarded as one of Haji Bektash’s disciples, who, having married a Chris-

tian woman of Czesarea named Mene, settled at the 1 In 7. R. Anthr. Inst. xxx (1900), pp. 305-20. 7 Tr. Armain, p. 703 (‘east of Angora on this side of the Kyzyl Irmak”). Madmen were made to look into the well and either recovered or died of this treatment. Sane people only noticed a sulphurous smell. Near the well was a cemetery where unsuccessful patients were buried. A well, where exactly similar cures are practised

at the present day, is cited by Halliday (in Folk-Lore, xxiii, 220) at Sipan Dere in the Taurus. The parallelism is so exact that the two wells can hardly be without connexion. 3 Haidar (Jzon) is a name specially connected with Ali, the ‘ lion of God’. Haztdarl: is the name of a tribe of Kizilbash Kurds in the Dersim (Molyneux-Seel in Geog. Fourn. xliv, 1914, p. 68). On such tribal heroes see below, chap. xxi. 4 This seems a local error: see below, p. 404, n. 2.

Hatdar-es-Sultan 53 village of Haidar-es-Sultan. The apocryphal connexion

between Khoja Ahmed and Haji Bektash, discussed below,! was confirmed by the sheikh of Hasan Dede, a neighbouring ‘ Kizilbash ’ village, and is acknowledged

also by the Bektashi dervishes to whose influence the identification is probably due. The marriage of Khoja Ahmed with a Christian woman Mene may, as Crowfoot remarks, point to a connexion between this cult and a Christian predecessor.2 But the only evidence for the latter is (a) the local and Moslem tradition of a monastery on the site, backed by (4) the somewhat equivocal testimony of Haji Khalfa and (c) the antecedent probability of the sulphurous well having been adopted by Christianity. It is probable that in most of the cases cited above the transference of holy places to Islam was actuated to a greater or less degree by religious or superstitious, as opposed to political or politico-religious motives. ‘Though all religions may share the blessings of a holy place, its

actual servants may be regarded as having a special claim on the good offices of its patron, and the revenues to be obtained by discreet exploitation of him must not be ignored as a contributory stimulus.

7. 9. Nersrs, Rumxare. It is in this spirit, as appears from Christian evidence, that the ancient Armenian church of 8. Nerses at Rumkale3 on the Upper Euphrates was forcibly occupied by Mohammedans in the latter part of the seventeenth century.4 8. A well-documented modern instance of Moslem ™ Pp. 403 f. 4S. Menas? See below, p. 403, n. 3. 3 The church is mentioned as a place of Christian pilgrimage by Pococke, Descr. of the East, u, i, 1§7. Rumkale was the seat of the

Armenian patriarchs from 1147 to 1298 (J. A. de Saint-Martin, Mémoires sur ? Arménte, i, 1963 ii, 443), and was the birth-place of the patriarch Nerses IV Klaietsi. He died there in 1173. 4 Febvre, Théatre de la Turquie, pp. 45-6: ‘il y a environ dix ans qu’ils prirent aux Arméniens I’Fglise d’Ouroumcala, dite Saint Nerses, qui est fort ancienne, illustre en miracles, & fameuse par la quantité des

54 Transference of Rural Sanctuartes intrusion on a Christian monastery is afforded by the case of Domuz Dere Texke (near Keshan in Thrace). This (Bektashi) tekke occupies the site and buildings of a small Greek monastery of S. George. The usurpation by the Bektashi is said to have taken place ‘ about sixty

years ago’, the depopulation of the neighbouring Christian village by an epidemic of plague ' giving the dervishes an opportunity to intrude themselves without opposition. At the present day a panegyris takes place at the tekke yearly on S. George’s day and is frequented by Turks and Greeks. The original monastery church has been divided by the dervishes into several compartments, including living-rooms and a tomb-chamber for the burial of their deceased abbots. The sanctuary end

of the church still retains to some extent its original character: the upper part of the screen (templon) is preserved, and on the north wall of the church is hung an ancient e1kon of S. George flanked by lighted lamps.?

It need hardly be pointed out that this example of a usurped Christian monastery throws important light on the circumstances in which other such sites were, or may have been, usurped.3 9. To a similar process may tentatively be assigned the transference to Islam of the tekke near Esxr Basa (Thrace), which offers a similar example of an ambigu-

ous cult. Eski Baba (‘S. Old’) is mentioned under that name, thus implying the existence of the Turkish cult, as early as 1553.4 The tekke itself is said by several authors to have been formerly a church of 5. Nicolas 5 pelerins qui y venoient de toutes parts, afin de donner a entendre par la qu ils reverent les Saints, &9 que celuy auquel cette Eglise est dediée, estott de leur party, &F Musulman comme eux’. Here one is inclined to suspect dervish, especially Bektashi, influence.

1 For this see below, p. 520. 2 See further below, p. 521. 3 See especially the case of Eski Baba, below, no. 9. 4 Verantius, ap. Jirecek, Heerstrasse, p. 167. 5 Gerlach, Bargrave, and Covel (quoted below) : cf. Pococke, Deser. of the East, 11, i, 140.

Eskt Baba 55 and the saint buried in it was held by the Turks to be S. Nicolas himself, of whom sundry apocryphal relics

were shown.!

The cult seems certainly to have been administered by Bektashi dervishes, who identify their own saint Sari Saltik with S. Nicolas.2, The ‘ Baba’ of Eski Baba was thus one of the usual Bektashi ambiguous saints.3 ‘The tekke was evidently an important pilgrimage in the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries, and in 1667 provoked the remonstrances of the strict Sunni preacher Vani Efendi, who would have abolished the cult as superstitious.4 It continued, however, in spite of opposition, as is seen by Covel’s account in 1675,5 and at the present day is admittedly frequented by Christians

as well as Turks.6 It is a nice question whether 5. Nicolas has come to his own through these vicissitudes, or whether he is a pure invention of the Bektashi occupants of the sanctuary, devised to attract local Christians of the humbler classes. ‘The building seems quite

certainly to have been a church originally, since my 1 Gerlach, quoted below, p. 761.

4 See below, p. 430. 3 Below, pp. 564 ff. 4 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. xi, 250. The saint is here spoken of as Kanbur Dede (‘S. Humpback ’), but the identification seems certain from the location of the cult near Khavsa, which 1s half a day’s journey from Eski Baba. 5 Quoted below, p. 257: cf. also the account of the Serbian patriarch Arsenij Cernojevit (a. p. 1683), in Glasnik, xxxiii, 189, quoted by

Bury, E. Roman Empire, p. 345 (‘the tomb of a certain Nicolas, a warrior who had accompanied the fatal expedition of Nicephorus [809] and seen a strange warning dream, The Turks had shrouded the head of the corpse with a turban’). 6 M. Christodoulos, [Teprypady Lapavra ’ExxAnaav, p. 47 (quoted in full below, p. §78, n. 6): the fact was confirmed to me in 1907, when

I was told that Christians incubated in the church, and that a round stone on which patients sat gave oracles by turning under them, right for recovery and left for death. The zekke-church has not yet fallen into ruin, and down to the Balkan war was more or less occupied by dervishes, according to one of my informants.

56 Transference of Rural Sanctuartes informants insist on the existence in it of frescoes of saints (dyvoypadies).

10. 5S. Cuariron, Konia. A possible case of the ‘arrested transference’ of a rural sanctuary ‘ is to be found at the monastery of S. Chariton, an hour north of Konia, where a small rock-cut mosque has been excavated beside the churches of S. Chariton, $. Amphilochius, 5. Sabbas, and the Virgin, inside the monastery

enclosure.2 The mosque is of the simplest possible form, a small rectangular chamber with a plain rockcut prayer-niche. Legend has it that the son of Jelaled-din, the first ‘ Chelebi ’, or General, of the Mevlevi dervishes, falling from the cliff above the monastery, was saved from injury by a mysterious old man, afterwards identified from the ezkon as S. Chariton himself. This is the explanation given of the existence of the

mosque and of the still friendly relations between the monastery and the tekke of the Mevlevi at Konia.3 There is no hint in the legend of aggression on the part of the Mevlevi, nor do the local Christians of to-day appear to resent so apparently unorthodox an intrusion. ‘The

legends of the Mevlevi themselves speak of a great friendship between the abbot of the ‘ Monastery of Plato ’ (evidently by the description that of S. Chariton)

and their own founder, who convinced the abbot of his sainthood by his miracles.4 In the Christian version, therefore, the Moslem is half converted to

Christianity, in that of the Mevlevi the converse is the case.

For the presence of a mosque within the monastery enclosure some approach to a parallel may be found at 1 For another see chap. vi, no. 15 (S. Naum near Okhrida). 2 It should be remarked that this enclosure is recent, dating from the

middle of the last century: but the monastery is much older, as is shown by inscriptions of 1068 and 1290 (repairs) published by the Arch-

bishop Cyril: see below, pp 379-83. 3 See below, p. 374. 4 Redhouse, Mesnevi, pp. 72, 87; cf. chap. vii, below, p. 86.

Agents of Transference 57 the monastery of S. Catherine on Sinai,t where a mosque was built at an early date as a concession to Mohammedans. A somewhat similar concession was made by the Templars at Jerusalem, who voluntarily made over to the use of a Saracen emir a chapel of the mosque E] Aksa.?

In the above examples it will be noted (a) that the transference of cults and holy places of the ‘ rural ’ class

is very often accomplished, not by the representatives

of the official religion, but by the dervish orders. Dervishes are not only the natural successors to monks,

but are undoubtedly in Turkey the element in Islam least hostile and most conciliatory to Christianity. As in Pagan-Christian transferences,3 nomenclature sometimes aids the identification, ‘ Thekla ’ becoming ‘ Toklu ’,4 Amphilotheos ‘ Eflatun ’,5 and so on.

It will further be noted (4) that the transference, if it is more than a mere matter of occupation, seems generally effected by means of a rough identification of

the Christian saint with his Moslem successor, often a remote or ambiguous figure (like Khidr, Plato, ‘ the

Forty’) who tends in turn to be supplanted by an actual buried saint.6 In the same way S. Polycarp at Smyrna, while his alleged tomb was in Turkish hands, seems to have been frankly accepted as ‘ an Evangelist t ‘The mosque at Sinai, said by a Russian pilgrim of 1560 to have been a chapel of S. Basil (Khitrovo, [tin. Russes, p. 303), existed at least as early as 1381, though traditionally attributed to the reign of Selim [ (1512-20); see R. Weil, Sinaz, p. 242; Burckhardt, Syria, PP- 543-4, cf. pp. 546-7; Fabri, Evagat. ii, 501 ; Ludolf, on the contrary, who returned from his travels in 1341, does not mention the mosque (De Itinere, p. 65), but says (p. 66) that the monastery was already favoured by the ‘soldan’, ‘ qui dare consuevit eis maximas eleemosynas ’.

2 Arnold, Preaching of Islam, p.77: but the orthodoxy of the Templars may well be called in question. 3 M. Hamilton, Greek Saints, chap. ii; Saintyves, Saints Successeurs

des Dieux, pp. 303 ff. 4 Chap. il, no. 6. 5 See below, p. 368, n. 4. 6 Chap. v, nos. I, 2; cf. no. S.

58 Transference of Rural Sanctuartes of God and a friend of the Prophet ’ ; * but we do not know what hazy identification underlies this statement. As to the process by which sites of this class were transferred from one religion to another, it is obviously impossible to generalize, but, broadly speaking, there are three possible processes : (a) Occupation by force ; (6) Gradual and peaceful intrusion ; (c) Re-occupation of an abandoned site. (a) Forcible occupation may be said to be regular in the case of town churches, so often converted into mosques,?

but exceptional in the case of rural sanctuaries. The church of S$. Nerses at Rumkale 3 and the tomb of S. Polycarp at Smyrna ¢ are our only proved instances. (6) Gradual and peaceful intrusion seems rather the rule than the exception in transferences of the ‘ rural ’ type of sanctuary, to judge from the evidence of tradition in the cases cited. The form of the transference is not as in ancient mythology, ‘ reception ’,5 but rather identification of the supplanter with the old occupier : this is rendered particularly easy by vaguely current ideas of metempsychosis. The mystic teaching, as well as the religious tolerance, of the dervish orders should

be borne in mind throughout. The normal stages of a peaceful intrusion may perhaps be tabulated hypothetically as follows :

(i) Mohammedans frequent a Christian holy place and are convinced by miracles of its sanctity and efficacy.®

Gi) The Christian saint is in consequence identified

by his new clientéle with a Mohammedan saint: or considered to have been a crypto-Mussulman.? Under % Pacifique, Voyage de Perse, p. 12 (quoted below, p. 407); of. Stochove, Voyage, p. 18; and for a full treatment of the subject see

below, pp. 406 ff. 2 Above, chap. ii.

3 Above, p.53. 4 Below, pp.411-12. 5 See below, pp. $960.

6 See below, chap. vi, ad init. 7 See below, pp. 442 ff.

Process of Transference 59 favourable conditions a tekke, turbe, or mosque may be built in the neighbourhood.:

(ii) The Mohammedan establishment ousts the

Christians entirely, owing less, probably, to Moham-

medan intolerance than to accidental reasons such as disappearance (by conversion or otherwise) of the local Christian population or reluctance of a Christian minority to mix with Turks at festivals, either from instinctive social reasons? or from fear of tampering

with black magic and incurring the wrath of the Church. When the process is complete, tradition and, possibly,

the internal evidence of building or continued frequentation by Christians, would be the only traces of the original religion of the site. A comparative examination of the legends which relate to similar clashing of religions in ancient times and in the Pagan-Christian transition period shows that such legends fall into two main groups. The first includes the legends of violent collision, implying a determined resistance of the old god to the newcomer. ‘This resistance might result in the victory or the defeat and displacement

of the old god. Inmythit takes the form of a physical struggle (e. g. Apollo and Python, Apollo and Herakles, S. George and the Dragon), or of a competition (Poseidon and Athena, Thekla and Sarpedon,3 cf. Elijah and

the Prophets of Baal) ; the story is of course told from the winner’s side. The second group of legends records compromise between the original god and the new-

comer, a compromise which the ancients generally allegorize as the ‘ reception’ of the new god by the old 1 Cf. chap. v, no. 9. 2 An interesting example of the potency of such motives as this is afforded by a cult of Samson at Bethshemesh, which has been deserted by its Moslem clrentele on account of its adoption by the inhabitants of a recently settled Jewish village (Vincent, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1911,

p- 147). 3 M. Hamilton, Incubation, p. 136.

60 Transference of Rural Sanctuartes (e.g. Asklepios by Amynos).t ‘This scheme is in the nature of things not overtly admissible in the PaganChristian transition legends, owing to the exclusiveness of Christianity : the limit of Christian concession is the ante-dating type of legend. In Pagan-Christian transitions, therefore, the occupation was generally peaceful. In the legend-cycle of the Christian- Mohammedan transition allegories representing the victory of Islam after struggle or competition are hard to find,3 except in the late and sophisticated legend of Sari Saltik, which

I have treated separately elsewhere. There are a cer-

tain number of ‘ drawn battles ? commemorated in such

stories as those of the miraculous preservation of the church of Sylata from Ala-ed-din,5 of the monastery of 5. Panteleémon at Nicomedia from Sultan Murad, and of the monastery of Sumela from Selim I ; 7in these the hostile princes are so far converted that they desist from their hostility and become benefactors of the churches

in question. Our ‘ arrested transferences ’ in Chapter IV, nos. I to §, where neither religion can claim a complete victory, fall into a similar category. (c) Re-occupation of an abandoned site seems to be exemplified in Chapter V, nos. 6 and 8. In many cases, probably, wholly deserted Christian sites were thus occupied either for practical reasons such as site, suitable 1 A, Koerte in 4th, Mitth. xxi, 307 ff.; Kutsch, Attische Hetlgotter und Heroen, pp. 12 ff. 2 As in the well-known legend of Ara Coeli and in that of the Cyzi-

cene Dindymon, where the dedication of a temple to the ‘ Mother of the Gods’ is regarded as a mistake for ‘ Mother of God’ (Hasluck, Cyzicus, p. 161). 3 For a possible case in Asia Minor see Cumont, Stud. Pont. 11, 261 (Niksar). 4 Below, pp. 429 ff. 5 Pharasopoulos, Ta L'vAara, p. 132; of. above, chap. iv, no. 8.

6 Kleonymos and Papadopoulos, Biurvixd, p. 68; M. Walker, Old Tracks, pp. 34 f. (Murad IV is probably meant; cf. below, p. 603). 7 Joannides, “Ioropia Tpazelotvros, p. 127; Palgrave, Ulysses, p. 40, cf. p. 33, where a similar legend is related of Murad IV.

Process of Transference 61 buildings, &c.,t or on account of ‘ revelations’, but these can hardly be reckoned as more than ‘ material’ transferences, since the new cult is spiritually inde-

;-.

pendent of its predecessor. To simple and devout minds the discovery of ruins, especially if accompanied by dreams ? or other accidental phenomena (cf. Chapter IV, no. 10), suggests the previous existence of a holy place, generally of the finder’s religion, and anything remotely resembling a sacred building,3 a tomb,4 or a

cultus-object § readily evokes a suitable legend and saint. So the recently ‘ revealed ’ church of S. Charalambos in Pontus,® though it actually occupies the site 1 The Khalveti order in Egypt systematically occupied the deserted Christian monasteries (Sell, Relig. Orders of Islam, p. 55).

2 It is impossible to estimate the purely accidental influence of dreams and visions on all departments of Oriental life, though its importance cannot be denied. This influence, as also the fantastic and arbitrary methods of interpreting dreams, is exemplified by the following story, told me of himself by a Cypriote friend. Having been long ill and under medical treatment, he was visited by an apparition which

bade him abstain from doctors’ stuff. He was convinced that the apparition was Dr. D. G. Hogarth. His daughter, however, assured him that it was S. Panteleémon, as tt had no beard, and to 8. Panteleémon he went successfully for cure. But to himself the vision is still

Dr. Hogarth. A similar story from an ancient source would undoubtedly be accepted as evidence that in Cyprus the hero Hogarth was identified with the god Panteleémon. A confirmatory vision proved the genuineness of the tradition that Hasan’s head was in the mosque of Hasaneyn in Cairo (Lane, Mod. Egyptians, 1, 270). 3 See the unvarnished account by Hobhouse (an eyewitness) of the discovery by a dream of a ‘ church of S. Nicolas’ at Athens (4lbanza, ll, 530). 4 The cult of Hulfet Ghazi at Amasia (Cumont, Stud. Pont. 11, 169) is probably based on no more than the discovery of the (ancient) sarcophagus in which the hero is said to rest : similarly, in Karpathos two ancient sarcophagi are supposed to be those of Digenes Akritas and his wife (Polites, [Tapaddcets, no. 122). 5 The acceptance by Greeks at Koron of a Hellenistic terra-cotta as S. Luke (Wace, in Liverpool Ann. Arch. iii, 24) is an extreme case.

6 Th. Reinach, in Rev. Arch. xxi (1913), p. 42. The Moslem cult occupying a site formerly sacred to Zeus Stratios in Pontus (Cumont,

62 Transference of Rural Sanctuartes of a temple of Apollo, has no more than an accidental connexion with the ancient cult ; nor have the cults,

Christian and Moslem, at pre-historic buildings in Cyprus! any proved connexion with the ancient religious past of those buildings till the /acunae in their history are satisfactorily bridged. Stud. Pont. 11, 172) is probably another case of accidental superposition. ™ See below, p. 704.

VI

CHRISTIAN SANCTUARIES FREQUENTED BY MOSLEMS ip ally the preceding chapters we havethe touched on several points illustrating popularincidentTurkish attitude towards the * magic’ side of Christianity, and we have reached the following conclusions: (1) Christian ritual is looked on as capable of setting

in motion a supernatural world which is harmful to Mohammedans. For instance, a Christian building may be rendered antagonistic to Moslems by Christian spells, and the cross is a piece of pro-Christian magic, the hostile potency of which must be taken into account

by Mohammedans. |

(2) The supernatural powers set in motion by Christian ritual may, however, be conciliated by Mohammedan : for instance, baptism may be regarded as giving

an additional security to Mohammedan children, or Christian charms may be worn with salutary effect by Mohammedans. Similarly, an outraged Christian church-spirit, if properly approached, may become beneficent, or at least neutral, in its action towards

Mohammedans.

We have next to consider the attitude of Turkish peasants towards the God and the saints of the Chris-

tians. In the face of a common disaster, such as a prolonged

drought or an epidemic, Christian and Moslem will combine in supplication and even share the same procession. Such a combination of Mohammedans, Christians, and Jews is recorded at Aleppo during a plague

of locusts. At Athens, in Turkish times, a continued ™ Bousquet, Actes des Apotres Modernes, 11, 953; cf. Rycaut, Greek and Armenian Churches, pp. 375 ff., where there is a description of the

64 Christian Sanctuaries frequented by Moslems drought occasioned a public supplication of Christians and ‘Turks together, which, failing of its effect, was

followed by a second of Turks alone. This likewise proving without result, the negro quarter prayed and obtainedrainatonce. Thefrank comment of Athenians, Christian and Moslem, was, ‘ Why, the negroes have more faith than we have!’! A similar occurrence is reported by a Jesuit missionary from Chios. At a time of prolonged drought the Turks and Greeks in turn made prayer for rain without success. Finally, the Catholics organized a procession, in which an image of the Virgin was carried, and were rewarded by a copious

shower. The Turks attributed the miracle directly to the Catholic Virgin. One explanation of the friendliness of the fanatical sultan, Selim I, to Christians is that at a time of plague their intercessions had been successful, when the Turks had prayed in vain.3 In the same way the heads of all religions at Cairo, including Catho-

lics, Copts, Greeks, and Jews, meet at the mosque of Amr to implore the mercy of God whenever an insufficient inundation of the Nile is feared.¢ The mosque of the prophet Daniel at Alexandria is similarly vener-

ated for the same reason by Jews, Christians, and Moslems.5

proceedings too long for insertion here, yet heartily recommended to the curious. t * Boé, ot "Apamddes Exouv mo miott amo pas’ (Kambouroglous,

Mynpeia, i, 312). At the tomb of the Virgin in Jerusalem, Greeks, Armenians, Copts, and Abyssinians have each a chapel, while the Turks

have a mibrab (d’Arvieux, Mémotres, 1, 180). During a drought at Saida, Greeks, Latins, and Jews prayed without result for rain, which was, however, obtained by a Mussulman procession, ending in a ritual ploughing by the Pasha (La Roque, Voyage de Syrte, i, 7 ff.). 2 * Les Turcs disoient que la Mertem des papas francs étoit la plus puissante ’ (Carayon, Rel. Inéd. de la Compagnie de ‘Fésus, p. 23). 3 Schepper, Missions Diplomatiques, p. 181. A similar story is related of the caliph Mamun (d’Ohsson, Tableau, i, 220). 4 De Vaujany, Care, p. 297. 5 De Vaujany, Alexandrie, p. 112. In Savary de Bréves (Voyages,

Moslem Appeals to Christianity 65 A story still more remarkable than the above was related to me in 1916 by a Greek native of Urgub in Cappadocia. This town possesses the mummified body of an Orthodox neo-saint, S. John ‘ the Russian ’, who is supposed to have lived and died in the eighteenth century.t The body enjoys considerable respect both from Christians and Mussulmans. On the occasion of an epidemic of cholera in 1908 among the children of the Turks, the latter begged and obtained as a favour

from the Greeks that the saint should be paraded through their quarters. During the procession the Turkish women threw costly embroidered handker-

chiefs on the bier as offerings to the saint, who in answer to their faith immediately put an end to the epidemic. In a strongly Moslem village in Albania Miss Durham saw two men and four women, all Moham-

medans, and three of the women with ailing infants, crawl under the altar during mass and stay there until

it was over. Afterwards the priest blessed them: * Moslem charms had not succeeded, so they were trying Christian ones ’ for their sickness.? Again, the frequentation of Christian healing-shrines pp. 246 ff.) there is an interesting account of the inundation and attendant ceremonies. In August and September the daily increase is cried by small boys, inciting the people to praise God. Maillet (Deser. de ’ Egypte, 1, 78-9) records the miraculous prediction of the height of the Nile by means of a well, Brr-el-jernus, in a Coptic church in Upper

Egypt. On the night of the Drop the governor goes to this church, a mass is celebrated on an altar placed over this well, and a cord is hung

and left to soak in the well: the prediction is made according to the length of cord wetted during the mass (cf. also i, 81 for another such church). Chastel (Hist. du Paganisme, p. 90) says paganism was unusually tenacious in Egypt on account of the importance of the Nile flood ; Constantine removed to a Christian church the measure of the flood kept in a temple at Memphis (td:d., p. 73), Julian replaced it (tbid., p. 134). Analogous is the story of Omar’s letter to the Nile (Savary, Lettres sur Egypte, i, 86-7 ; Lane, Mod. Egyptians, ii, 230). See also Hasluck, Letters, p. 57.

3295.1 F

™ See below, pp. 440-1. 2 High Albania, p. 316.

66 Christian Sanctuaries frequented by Moslems by Turks is so common a phenomenon at the present day that it would deserve no more than a passing men-

tion here but for the fact that it may have been an important stage in the transference of many holy places from Christianity to Islam. We therefore give a selection of cases showing that the practice was of early date and common to the whole Turkish area from Bosnia to Trebizond and Egypt. (4) GREEK ORTHODOX CHURCHES.

I. ‘Notre Dame pu Pioms’ (Kursuuntu Jam), SARAJEVO. This church, possessing a miracle-working

picture of the Virgin, was frequented for cures by Greeks, Latins, and Turks.: 2 and 3. The churches of $8. Micuaen at Syx1? and Trpzyik 3 in Bithynia, both famous for cures of madness, are frequented by Turks as well as Greeks. 4. 9. PHoTINE, Smyrna. The holy well in the church is frequented for the cure of eye-diseases by Turks.4 5. VIRGIN oF SuMELA, TREBizonp. The picture, painted by S. Luke, has special virtue against locusts and is visited by the surrounding population, irrespective of religion, for relief from all kinds of misfortune.5 6. AssuMPTION, ADRIANOPLE (Marasu). ‘Turks and

Jews participate in the mud-bath cure for rheumatism associated with the Greek Church and Festival of the Assumption.°® 1 Des Hayes, Vozage, p. 57.

2 MacFarlane, Turkey and its Destiny, i, 87. 3 Covel, cited by M. Hamilton, /ncubation, p. 222. Both here and at Syki there are cells for raving patients, an unusual feature of such places (Hasluck, Cyzzcus, p. 62). ¢ M. Hamilton, Greek Saints, p. 643; cf. below, p. 409, n. 2. 8 Fallmerayer, Fragmente, p. 121.

6 Covel, Diaries, p. 247; cf. below, p. 680, n. 1; for Jewish participation see Danon in Onziéme Congres d’Ortentalistes, Paris, 1897, sect. vii, p. 264. Similarly, Turks assisted at the yearly miracle of the Sealed Earth at Lemnos, connected with the Festival of Transfiguration (see below, p. 675; of. Busbecq, cited above, p. 32, n. 2).

Moslem Appeals to Christianity 67 7. Annunciation, TEenos. ‘Turks have come even here successfully for cure, though the cult dates only from 1821, is strongly pervaded by Greek national ideals, and is comparatively inconveniently situated for Turkish pilgrims.: 8. S. GeorceE, Catro. ‘Turks, having a great venera-

tion for 8. George, frequently say their prayers on Friday in this church, where mad people are cured with certainty if detained three days in the church.? (B) ARMENIAN CHURCHES.

g. A church at Ancora, possessing a miracle-working cross of transparent marble, was a Turkish pilgrimage at least as early as the fifteenth century.3 10. The same is true of the church of S. JoHN THE Baptist at Casargea in Cappadocia, which is famous for its cures of animals.4

11. Thechurchof $.Curysostom, Bezirieu (Pontus)s is frequented by Turks as by Christians of all three rites. 12. So alsois the Monastery oF ARMASHA near IsmID,

which is a comparatively modern holy place, its foundation dating only from 1608.6 (C) A LATIN SAINT.

13. An instance of a Latin saint reverenced by Turks

is to be found in S. AntHony or Papua, Cuios. A picture of the saint in this church was famous for its miracles and venerated both by Latin and Greek Chris-

tians. A Turkish bey, who was anxious for news of a ship long overdue, abstracted the picture, placed it in 1M. Hamilton, Incubation, p. 200. 2 Pococke, Descr. of the East, i, 28; cf. Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabie, 1,100; Thévenot, Voyages, ii, 439; Vaujany, Catre, pp. 293 f. 3 Schiltberger, Reise, ed. Penzel, p. 85 (ed. Hakluyt, p. 40). For the church and miracles see Lucas, Voyage dans la Gréce, i, 111 ; Tournefort, Voyage, Letter xx1; Pococke, Descr. of the East, u1, ii, 89 ; Walker, Old Tracks, p. 71, cf. p. 65. 4 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. Pop. de ? Aste Mineure, p. 203.

5 Cuinet, Turquie d’ Aste, i, 735. 6 Ibid. iv, 365. F2

68 Christian Sanctuartes frequented by Moslems

his house, and placated it with flowers and candles, hoping by this means to bring his ship safely to port. This treatment proving unsuccessful, he took away the candles and flowers, beating the picture and threatening the ‘infamous Christian ’ who dared to ‘ mock a Mus-

sulman’ that he would cut him to pieces (7. ¢. the picture), 1f he did not ‘ give up’ the ship. At this juncture the ship came to port, and the picture was returned to the church with a gift of a hundred piastres.: The above instances suffice to show that throughout Turkey the frequentation of Christian holy places by

Moslems is not conditional on the antiquity of the sanctuary in question or on any particular form of Christianity being professed in it. Nor is it to be put off by any cult practices theoretically repugnant to Moslems, such, ¢.g. as involve the use of the cross or of pictures. Practically any of the religions of Turkey may share the use of a sanctuary administered by another, if this sanctuary has a sufficient reputation for beneficent 1 Dumont, Nouv. Voyage, pp. 221 ff. Moslems used to reverence the tomb of the Steur de Chateuil in the Lebanon (d’Arvieux, Mémoires, 1, 418). The naiveté of threatening an inanimate representation of a saint can be paralleled in the West: Sébillot (Folk-Lore de France, iv, 166) gives examples from France. Lucius (4ufange des Heiligenk., p. 287) gives others from early Christian times : for instance,

S. Domitius’ lamps were broken by a Syrian crowd because he had healed a Jew and left a Christian unhealed. Gregory of Tours (De Glor. Conf., cap. Ixxi, cited also by Collin de Plancy, Dict. des Reliques, il, 202) records that a bishop of Aix, indignant at having one of his vil-

lages stolen, cut off the candles offered to S. Mitre of Aix until the village should be restored, which it eventually was. The image of S. George of Villeneuve was thrown into the Seine because frost on his

day damaged vines (Collin de Plancy, op. cit. i, 430); the same fate threatened S. Peter in Navarre (zb7d. 11, 434). His own monks threatened

S. Etienne de Grandmont with dismemberment if he did not cease to work the miracles for whose sake pilgrims crowded to his tomb and so disturbed the repose of the monks (zbzd. iii, 225). A Jew entrusted his house to an image of 5. Nicolas, but the house was robbed notwithstanding, so the Jew beat the image, whereupon S. Nicolas at once ordered the robbers to return the spoil (ibid. ii, 217).

Frequentation without Usurpation 69 miracles,! among which miracles of healing play a predominant part. 14. Rurnep Cyurcu, PHILADELPHIA (ALASHEHR).

Particularly curious is the frequentation by Turks of a ruined and abandoned Christian church at Philadelphia (Alashehr), which was, moreover, reputed to be haunted by Christian ghosts.» The explanation is the usual one: a candle lighted in the ruins ensured relief from toothache. The tendency to participation is of course strongest where the level of culture is lowest and all sects meet on a common basis of secular superstition. Consequently, we may be fairly sure that what is true of to-day is true

also of the period of ‘Turkish conquest. It is further important to remark that this frequentation of Christian

sanctuaries by Moslems does not seem to imply any desire on the part of the Moslem population to usurp the administration of the sanctuary in question. Participation is in normal circumstances sufficient for them, and they are perfectly content to leave Christian saints

in the hands of Christian priests. Usurpation comes from the organized priesthood or the dervish orders, who, in the event of successful aggression, stand to gain

both in prestige and materially. Where, as in many 1 Montet (Culte des Saints Musulmans, p. 24) gives a case where Jewish women frequent a Moslem saint for sterility. Moors frequented the synagogue of Bona at prayer-time on Friday evening ‘ pour obtenir la guérison de leurs maladies, la fécondité, ou la réussite de leurs projets’ (Poiret, Voyage en Barbarie, i, 132). A miracle, acknowledged by both Moslems and Jews, justified this faith: when the Jews were building the synagogue, the Book of the Law was seen floating on the waves ; no Moslem could seize it, but it came readily to a Jew, who deposited it in the synagogue. ‘This miracle is noteworthy as being the favourite Christian theme of a picture or image cast up by the sea, but transferred to the sacred book, the ‘ Book of the Law’ taking the place

in the estimation of Jews which images hold in the imagination of Christians.

2 C, B. Elliott, Travels, ii, go. The ruins are now built up among Turkish houses (Lambakis, ‘Hara ’Aorépes, p. 375).

70 Christian Sanctuaries frequented by Moslems rustic chapels, there was no permanent Christian organization or endowment, the intrusion of a dervish guardian need make little or no immediate difference to Christian worshippers. But in many cases such sanctuaries were doubtless left throughout their history without this administration and took their religious colouring simply from the population which happened to use them.

In the following instance, probably not isolated, Moslem pilgrimage to a Christian church seems to have

been attracted, not only by the material benefits of healing to be obtained from it, but also by the direct stimulus offered by a Mohammedan sect. 15. S. Naum, Oxuripa. The tomb of the saint, one

of the ‘Seven Apostles of the Slavs’, has curative powers especially for lunatics.: It is frequented by Bektashi Mohammedans from the surrounding district, who identify the saint with their own Sari Saltik.2, Even the orthodox Sunnirecognize thesaint as one of theirown, alleging (a) that he lived before the rise of the Bektashi heresy and (4) that the Christians usurped his tomb.3 J have endeavoured in another place 4 to show that the cult of S. Naum by Bektashi Mohammedans dates from the propagation of their faith under, and with the secret connivance of, Ali Pasha of Yannina, and is in all probability to be regarded as a preliminary, checked by the opportune revival of Christianity, to the occupation of the church as a tekke by Bektashi dervishes. It is in fact an arrested transference somewhat similar to our examples in Chapter III. All these Christian holy places, and numberless others, are frequented by Moslems primarily on account of the 1 Spencer, Travels (1851), 1, 76; von Hahn, Drin und Wardar, p. 108. Walsh (Constantinople, ii, 376) says the ‘Turks claim S$. Naum as a holy man of their religion. 2 From information collected on the spot : for Sari Saltik see below,

pp. 429 ff. 3 From an orthodox Mohammedan at Okhrida.

4 See below, pp. 586 ff. ;

Turkish Belief in Christian Satnts 71 acknowledged power of the saints or relics in question as manifested by beneficent miracles. There are also cases where Turks have been led to believe in the power

of the Christian saints by the manifestation of their hostility. Cantimir cites that of a Turkish dey in the Dobruja who reverenced 5. Phocas and kept his feast as a holiday, since he had been convinced by a disaster to his crops that neglect of this precaution brought upon him the

anger of the saint.t Similarly, Ali Pasha of Yannina, having seized a plot of ground belonging toa church of S. John, was visited by the saint inadream; he promptly restored the land and contributed to the church.? Inthesame category of hostile manifestations by Chris-

tian saints, often admitted (at least tacitly) by Turks, may be ranged the protection of churches by these patrons against Turkish aggression 3 and the miraculous working of transformed churches against their new owners.4 It is clear that in the Turkish popular mind Christian saints, like Christian magic, have power and may be offended or placated. ‘The sentiment with which they are regarded depends simply on the nature, beneficent or maleficent, of their manifestations, but, as we have seen from the case of S. James at Nicosia,5 a manifestation of hostile power implies the possibility

of beneficence. A saint who has power to avenge an insult has power also to reward an act of homage. 1 Hist. Emp. Oth. 1, 237. The reason given in some parts of Bosnia for the observance of S. Procopius’ day by local Moslems is identical (Ugljen, in Wiss. Mitth. Bosnien, 1, 488).

2 Aravantinos, "AAR Ilacd, p. 418. Similarly, and probably for similar reasons, the Moslems of Albania, many of whom are of course converts of comparatively recent date, are said to reverence S. George and 8, Nicolas (Hecquard, Haute Albantie, pp. 153, 200). It is said that a Catholic bishop of Skutari was desired from Rome to give less prominence to the Feast of 5. Nicolas, but he replied that he was powerless in the matter, as the bulk of the people who attended the festival were

not his own parishioners but Moslems. 3 Chap. v, ad fin.

4 Chap. iii, ad init. 5 Chap. iv, no. 9.

72 Christian Sanctuartes frequented by Moslems

This is an extremely simple rustic point of view, little if at all removed from that which instigates the placation of sinus and peris: it would probably be reprobated as a vulgar error by most instructed Mussulmans.t A higher reading of the phenomena of miraculous healings and other supernatural manifestations by alien saints is quite easy for those imbued with the teaching of the dervish orders, and is not impossible for orthodox Mussulmans. By the latitudinarian Bektashi, for instance, the religion professed during his lifetime

by a dead saint is a matter of indifference ; ‘a saint’,

as I have heard it put, ‘is for all the world’. In an

aphoristic story in the (Mevlevi) Acts of the Adepts ‘one of the greatest of God’s cherished saints ’ is recognized in a poor Frank, who had been insulted bya Mussulman.?

Identifications of Christian with Moslem saints are,

again, rendered possible by the theory of metempsychosis, which is current even in stricter circles: and thoroughly orthodox Moslem divines have considered Khidr and Elias, for example, as the same person rein-

carnated at different periods. Further, certain prominent Christian saints, of whom the type is Christ Himself,3 are regarded as pre-Islamic Mussulmans, just as certain pre-Christian pagans, like ‘ Hermogenes the Wise Man ’,¢ Plato,s Aristotle,6 and Virgil, were cont Cf. Einsler in Z.D.P.V. xvii, 69, where a distinguished, sheikh asked how it came about that Moslems who made vows to Khidr often paid them in churches of S. George, did not dispute the fact, but was of opinion that only very ignorant Moslems could so act. 2 In Redhouse’s Mesnevi, p. 34. 3 Also S. John: cf. the eighteenth-century pilgrim’s book (Menasikel-Haj, Kitab, tr. Bianchi, in Rec. de Voyages, 1i, 116) and Thévenot, Voyages, 11, 445.

4 Mandeville, ed. Wright, p. 135: this is probably an error for ‘Hermes Trismegistus ’. Gregory the Great got Trajan salvation in consideration of his virtues (Hare, Walks in Rome, 1, 135). 5 Cf. Cousin, Hist. de PEglise, 1, x, 203. Michael Psellos (in Rambaud, Et. Byz., p. 145) interprets Homer in a Christian sense and calls

Plato a precursor of Christianity. © Cf. Comparetti, Virgilio, i, 287.

Secret Conversion to Islam 73 sidered by medieval Christendom to have been to some extent Christians born out of due time. On some such

footing the tomb of ‘ Hazret Shimun’ (S. Simeon) at Antioch of Syria takes a place among the official pilgrimages for Moslems,! as did also ‘8. John Polycarp’ at Smyrna.?

More than this, it is held that even since the revelation of Mohammed certain persons among the Christians

were recognized by Allah as of His Elect,3 and after their death were transported from their graves among the Christians to the cemeteries of the Mussulmans 4 by 72,000 camels set apart for the purpose. This tradition is only a slightly wider and more liberal version of others current in our own day. ‘Two stories using the theme were recently told to Gervais-Courtellemont at Mecca itself. In one, the mysterious camels were seen at their work in the famous Meccan cemetery of El Maala; in the other, the body of a Christian (Rumi) princess,5 who, being in love with an enslaved Moorish prince, had made the Profession of Faith in secret,® was

substituted by the agency of the camels for that of a professing but reprobate Mussulman buried in the same cemetery.7 1 See above, p. 25, n. 5. 2 See above, p. 58; below, p. 408. 3 See below, p. 443. 4 De Bréves, Voyages, pp. 24 f. (quoted in full below, pp. 446-7).

5 Is this a story of North African origin connected with the ‘ tomb of the Christian Woman’ near Algiers (Berbrugger, Zombeau de la Chrétienne)?

6 Cf. below, p. 448.

7 Gervais-Courtellemont, Voyage a la Mecque, pp. 105 ff.; the writer’s informant was a sheikh of the strict Hanifite sect. Lady DuffGordon heard a similar story told in Egypt as an actual occurrence of Mohammed Ali’s time (Letters from Egypt, pp. 198 ff.). At Monastir the favourite place for praying for rain in times of drought is a turbe said to cover the remains of a non-Mohammedan princess, which were

miraculously substituted for those of a khoja; see further below, p. 360.

74. Cbhristtan Sanctuaries frequented by Moslems

The same theory of secret believers ' is used in the following :

16. Cuapet aT ApatiaA. De Bréves found at Adalia a cave-chapel, still retaining traces of Christian frescoes, in which was shown the tombof a Christian hermit. ‘The

latter, according to the Turks, had on his deathbed confessed himself a Mussulman, and on this account received from Believers the honour due to one of their own saints.? This is an exact Moslem counterpart to the Christian legend of Shems-ed-din at Konia.3 1 For the similar secret conversion of a Christian princess of Genoa see Lane, Thousand and One Nights, p. 202. 2 De Bréves, Voyages, p. 23: ‘ Comme nous estions la, vn renié nous mena voir vne grotte, qui est au pied des murailles de ce chasteau, sur

le bord d’vn haut et noir precipice, que la fente du roc fait en cest endroit: Il y a dedans vn tombeau de pierre éleué enuiron de deux pieds, of on dit qu’est inhumé le sainct homme qui y residoit. Ceste grotte seruoit de Chapelle, du temps des Chrestiens, & s’y void encore la peinture de la Vierge Marie, demy effacée: auiourd’huy les Turcs s’en seruent de Mosquée, font voeu au Sainct, en leurs maladies, prient Dieu sur son tombeau, & y bruslent de l’encens, disans auoir eu reuelation qu’encore qu’ il eust vescu en la Religion des Jaours, qu’ils appellent, ou Infidelles, (ainsi n6ment-ils les Chrestiens) il estoit neantmoins en son ame bon Musulman, & qu’en mourant il s’estoit declaré tel.’ 3 Below, chap. vii, no. 6.

Vil MOHAMMEDAN SANCTUARIES

FREQUENTED BY CHRISTIANS L- seems then, in default between of historical evidence, impossible to distinguish the three classes of occupation. ‘The material evidence of building is com-

mon to all three and we are thus thrown back on (1)

tradition, which is more or less circumstantial but generally ambiguous and unreliable, and (2) the inference we may draw from the frequentation by Chris-

tians of outwardly Mohammedan holy places. The latter 1s a fairly constant phenomenon in the betterdocumented transferred cults ' and at first sight appears to be the last vestige and the most tangible evidence of

previous Christian occupation. May we then, in default of other evidence, regard the frequentation of a Mohammedan sanctuary by Christians as proof that the

sanctuary in question was originally Christian? It is true that the orthodox Christian peasant theoretically regards the Mohammedan religion as unclean, whereas the ‘Turk has no such prejudice against Christianity : even if Sunni and learned, he considers it less as bad in itself than as imperfect,? as being based on an earlier

revelation than Islam, and degenerate as regards the worship of ‘idols ’.3 An outward expression of this point of view is the fact that in the reconquered coun™ Such as S. Sophia, Constantinople; the Parthenon, Athens; S. Demetrius, Salonica ; Elwan Chelebi; Kirklar Tekke, Zile. 2 When a Christian marries a Jewess, Moslem law says the children must be brought up in the Christian as ‘ the better faith ’ (Lane, Mod. Egyptians, 1, 123.)

3 On this subject see the answer given by the strict Sunni preacher

76 Mohammedan Sanctuaries frequented by Christians tries a mosque, unless it has been (or is thought to have been) a church is rarely, if ever, taken over as a church by the Orthodox.: On the other hand, when we come

to consider the popular Christian attitude towards Moslem saints in Turkey, as manifested practically, 2.¢.

in the frequentation of Mohammedan sanctuaries by Christians, we shall find that it is little if at all different

from the Mohammedan attitude towards Christian saints.

Of Syria it is said that Christian holy places are less frequented by Mohammedans than Mohammedan by Christians. In ‘Turkey, probably owing to the superior education of the Christian element, the reverse seems to be the case at the present day. On the other hand, despite the strong theoretical prejudices of Christians, the popular religious thought, and still more the ritual practice, of Oriental Christendom have much in common with those of Islam. ; In the case of saints the attraction of healing miracles goes far to overcome all scruples, and Greek no less than ‘Turk admits the idea Vani Efendi to Sir Thomas Baines (J. Covel, Diaries, p. 270). As to the personal uncleanness of Christians, the Turks hold, and not without reason, very decided views (cf. Pacifique, Voyage de Perse, p. 21). 1 T know of no instance. The beautiful disused mosque at Sofia, like those at Athens, Nauplia, Chalkis, and Monemvasia, is turned to civil

uses. At Nauplia one mosque is adapted as a church, but by Latins. In the later Venetian period one mosque at Athens became a Catholic and another a Lutheran church (Philadelpheus, “Joropia ’A@nvav, p. 178). A mosque at Theodosia (Kaffa) in the Crimea was taken over as a church by the Armenians (Demidoff, Southern Russza, li, 205). Doutté,

Marabouts, p. 70, states that the Catholic cathedral of Algiers was formerly a mosque. The resources of the community concerned would naturally count for much in such things. [This no doubt explains the

most exceptional conversion into a Greek church of the mosque at Balchik in Thessaly, one hour from Mavrokhor station and two from Tempe, though the villagers do not pretend that the mosque was

originally a church. I owe its discovery to the accident of being trapped in Thessaly in the winter of 1922 by the flooded Peneios. M. M. H.] 2 Kinsler in Z.D.P.V. xvii, 42; d’Arvieux, Mémozrres, ii, 21.

Christian Appeals to Islam 77 that, if his own saints fail him, an alien may be invoked.

This unorthodox theory was enunciated to me in so many words by a Cappadocian Greek, and is, as we shall

see, borne out in practice. An amusing instance of the actual conversion of a Christian Albanian to Islam on these lines is related by the renegade Ibrahim Manzur Efendi. ‘The Albanian in question, finding himself, as he believed, pursued by a run of ill-luck, solicited in vain the help of Christ, the Virgin, and S. Nicolas. As these did nothing for him, he turned to Mohammed with satisfactory results, especially, as he naively remarks, to his pocket, and on the strength of his experi-

ence he became a Mohammedan.: |

‘Ifa common Turk hath a horse sick,’ says an acute and experienced observer, Sir Dudley North, ‘he will have the Alcoran read over it, and, rather than fail, the law of Moses or the Gospel of Christ. And there are poor Christians that will get a holy man, though a Turk, to read over a sick child; and the poor Jews the like. It is the reading over that they value, together with the venerable phiz of the holy man that performs, without much distinction what it is he reads.’ 2

' Scarlatos Byzantios, writing in the fifties, says frankly that in his own time Christians, and frequently even priests, when ill, invited emirs and dervishes to ‘ read over’ them, while Turks frequented Christian priests for the same purpose.3 Exorcism by ‘ reading over ’ being largely considered as a specific against witchcraft, 1 Mémoires, p. xxi. 2 R. North, Lives of the Norths, ii, 146; Pére Pacifique, Voyage de Perse, p. 31. 3 Kwvoravrwovmodts (1869), iii, 583. Cy. also Biliotti and Cottret, p- 634; Pears, Turkey, p. 78; Dorys, Femme Turgque, p. 76; Lane, Mod. Egypttans, i, 297. Selim III being seriously ill, his mother called in Procopius, the Greek patriarch of Jerusalem and much respected for his goodness : bringing his deacons and apparatus, he came and prayed successfully for the sultan’s recovery (Dorys, Femme Turque, p.78: he gives no authority but great detail).

78 Mohammedan Sanctuartes frequented by Christians ‘overlooking’, &c., it is easy to understand that, just as the Turkish soldiers ‘in aciem prodituri’ wore Christian

charms to render Christian weapons ineffectual,: so Christians, when they suspected the hostile working against them of black arts, possibly or probably put in motion by Moslems, resorted to Moslem incantations to avert or overcome them. 5o ina Greek folk-story of a priest whose wife was bewitched, the priest ‘ began with prayers and readings, but when he found that was no good, he went off to a Turkish witch’, who was eventually successful in removing the (Turkish) spell. The following story is given on the excellent authority of a French missionary priest working among the Uniate

Bulgarians of Thrace.3 In one of their villages an epidemic of measles made its appearance. A child of Bulgar-Uniate parentage, apparently healthy in the first instance, was placed as a prophylactic measure in an oven, a fire being lighted at the mouth.4 The child t See above, chap. iu, ad fin. 2 Polites, [Lapadocets, no. 839: 0 7amds THY apxice pe Tais edyats Kat Ta StaBdopara, adda oav cide mas Sév Exave TimoTa, ETpe€e oe pa TovpKiooa paytooa ; cf. Durham, High Albania, p. 88. 3 ‘They occupy a small group of hill-villages above Kirk Kilise.

4 The practice of putting children in ovens to cure fever is condemned as superstitious by Bede and others (see J. B. Thiers, Traité des Superstitions, p. 433). The oven motif recurs in the Evang. de l’Enfance (in Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, 1, 997), where a child protégé of the Virgin 1s placed in an oven by his wicked stepmother, but escapes

unharmed. Migne (note ad loc.) says a similar tale was told by the Arabs of Moses, who was hidden from the emissaries of Pharaoh in an

oven by his mother: though a fire was inadvertently lit underneath, the child was unhurt: the story is also told by Spiro, Hist. de Foseph, p. 61. Cf. the tale of the Imam Bakir (Molyneux-Seel in Geog. Fourn. xliv (1914), p. 65; below, p. 147, where there is a play on the word bakir (Tk.=copper) and a cauldron is substituted for the oven. The same motif 1s found in a tale told by Greg. Turon. (de Glor. Mart. i, x)

after Evagr. iv, 36, and Niceph. xvi, 25. A Jewish child, who had taken the sacrament with his Christian playmates, was put in an oven

Christian Appeals to Islam 79 was so frightened that it became epileptic. This was put down to the evil eye, and a cousin was called in to

treat it: the treatment consisted in burning a lock of the child’s hair and a candle before an etkon with appro-

priate incantation. This proving unsuccessful, a khoja was consulted, who prescribed a written amulet. This in turn failing, the parents, against the priest’s advice, took the child secretly to a Greek Orthodox church of the Archangels for a course of forty days’ incubation.: Another story, illustrating a slightly more sophisticated point of view, is told of Constantinople Greeks by N. Basileiadou.z ‘This, though put into literary form,

rings so true that one can hardly doubt its essential authenticity. The theme is the dilemma of a Christian

mother who had tried in vain all the resources of Christian pilgrimages for the cure of her sick daughter, and was at length, against the advice of her own confessor, induced by a (Christian) neighbour to go to the

Turkish sanctuary of Eyyub as a last resort.3 In the course of the ceremony, which consisted in a ‘ reading over’ by the khoza of the mosque, the patient and her mother suffered so severely from nervous strain that the former died within three months and the latter lost her reason. ‘Ihe comments of the neighbours on the double

tragedy are characteristic. Some said the guilty pair had been punished for their sin against God: others that the devil was irritated by their half-heartedness in seeking his aid and then repenting: others that the whole affair was due to witchcraft : and others, again, that you should not mix religion and the black art, but by his father as a punishment, but was preserved by the Virgin who appeared to him in a vision: the same miracle is said to have taken place at Bourges. 1 Marcelle Tinayre, Notes d'une Voyageuse, pp. 148 ff. 2 “Hyepod. ®. LikdKov, 1913, pp. 288-95. 3 The neighbours’ words are: “Oda ris OpnoKeias pas Ta Exapes. Tépa 9a xdpovpe eEwrixa. ‘O xovvrovpyticpeévos [1.¢. the devil, Z7t.

‘the mad one ’], ds elve cai €€w am’ €60, wavrod déavec.

80 Mohammedan Sanctuartes frequented by Christians keep to one or the other.t All thus agreed that Turkish miracles were sorcery and nothing more. From one point of view Christian priest and Mohammedan khoja are medicine-men differentiated for their respective sects ; side by side with them certain laymen practise magic, black or white, for all indiscriminately. Experience has shown that the help of the religious, as of the lay, medicine-man can be enlisted on behalf of

a client of whatever religion he may be by the use of a very concrete argument.? The saints are in popular thought similar intermediaries, though of a higher grade,

and are treated in exactly the same way. It must further be remarked that the actual procedure at a Mohammedan healing-shrine is familiar to Christians through ‘folk-lore’ usages common to the whole population if not shared or countenanced by their own religion

as are knotting rags, driving nails, incubation, contact with relics, propitiatory sacrifice (kurban),3 the offering

of votive candles, and exorcism by ‘reading over’. Even ritual practices generally considered quite exceptional, such as ‘ walking over’ ailing children by the Rifai dervishes,s are paralleled in the Orthodox t ‘Kad, 7) auaptia rovs evpe. Tovs twme kK’ 6 mvevpaTiKos.’

‘Kane, tovs eBAawe 6 e€w an’ ed [1.e. the devil]. I]#yav ora TOOLA TOV Kal TO METAVOLWOUP.”

‘Timore. Ta pdyta éxouv réro.o Oavaro.’

Ano’ ayidopatra ora Ewrixa. Atrada wafovv. "H 70 &va To aAdo.’

Eis €va povov ovpdwvoicay ores, 70d Efrvvav Tov Képdo Tovs. 2 This is true even where great opposition exists officially between the two religions ; cf. Saint Clair and Brophy, Restdence in Bulgaria, . 68.

, 3 For this practice among Anatolian Christians see White, in Trans. Vict. Inst. xxxix (1907), p. 154; cf. Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de P Asie Mineure, p. 196 (sacrifice of cocks by Armenians); Polites, ITapadecets, no. 503 (sacrifice to S. George near Kalamata); Miller, Greek Life, p. 196 (sacrifice of cock at Athens). For a sacrifice of bulls

in Thrace, at which an Orthodox priest presides, see G. Megas in Aaoypadia, iii, 148-71. 4 W. Turner, Tour in the Levant, iti, 367.

Imam Baghevt 81 Church ‘as is the ceremony, apparently common among the Shia Mussulmans,? of the ‘ selling ’ of them to the saint.3

The difference between a Mohammedan and a Chris-

tian saint thus reduces itself largely to a matter of names. ‘The instances cited below of outwardly Moham-

medan holy places frequented by Christians exemplify

this point of view and tend to show that the alleged Christian origin of such ‘ mixed cults ’, unless supported

by more tangible evidence, must be regarded as ‘ not proven ’, just as a tradition that a certain mosque was once a church must not be accepted without scrutiny, though churches have been changed into mosques often enough.

Our first instance of a Moslem sanctuary frequented by both religions has no vestige of a tradition linking it

with Christianity. It 1s an example of the thesis we have put forward above that religious prejudice succumbs to the desire of healing.4 1. Imam Bacuevi, Konia. Outside the humble turbe of the Imam Baghevi in the station suburb at Konia are two stones, popularly supposed to represent the horses

of the Imam turned to stone: the idea is easily explained by their rough resemblance to pack-saddles.s 1 At the Tenos festival. A similar ritual existed formerly in the Latin church at Andros (La Mottraye, Travels, 1, 277).

2 Haji Khan and Sparroy, With the Pilgrims to Mecca, p. 273 (children so sold are called ‘ dogs of Abbas ’) ;_ cf. the Yuruk ceremonies

on Ida (Leaf in Geog. Fourn. xl (1912), p. 37). For the same custom in Syria see Curtiss, Prim. Semitic Relig., p. 167.

3 It is done by the Orthodox at Balukli (Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constant., p.64), Selymbria (Prodikos, in Opaxixy ’"Evrernpis,

1, 67), and elsewhere (M. Hamilton, Greek Saints, pp. 56 f.). 4 This example is selected only for its detail. ‘ Folk-lore’ practices by Christians (especially women) at Mohammedan shrines could probably be found in any mixed town. In Rumeli at Lule Burgas a dede named Tendem Baba is similarly frequented by Christians and placated

with candles, though he has no turbe or establishment whatever

(F. W. H.). 5 See further below, p. 196.

329501 G

82 Mohammedan Sanctuaries frequented by Christians Cures are worked in two ways. If the patient is a child who cannot walk or a woman who cannot conceive, he

or she sits astride the stones as if they were a horse. Persons afflicted with pains in the belly prostrate them-

selves over the stones so as to touch them with the

afflicted part.t The cure is used by Christian and Turkish women indifferently. A similar women’s cult is that of :

2. Eser Dai, THyatira (Axuisar). The tomb of Esef (Eshref?) Dai is visited by Christian as well as Moslem women, who light candles in his honour. The adjoining mosque is held by the Christians to replace a church of 8. John, of which, however, no trace now remains. 3. Mosque or Eyyus, ConsTanTinopie. This historic mosque has Christian traditions, but they are demonstrably of small value. The mosque owes its sanctity for Moslems to the supposed grave of the Arab warrior Eyyub, which was discovered on the site shortly

after the conquest.3 But the reputation for healing of its sacred well attracted to it a Greek clientele who explained its virtues by the assumption that the Moslem saint Eyyub, buried in the mosque, was identical with the Job of the Old Testament 4 or with Samuel!5 A third identification of the site with that of an earlier 1 The first procedure is evidently suggested by the form of the saddle-like stones. The cure of belly-pains (baghersak = bowels) is attri-

buted to the Imam on account of his name, really the ethnic from Bagthur in Khorasan (see d’Herbelot, s.v. Bagavz). I suspect that the modesty of my informant or a misunderstanding of my own prevented me while on the spot from realizing that the second cure was really for ‘binding ’ (bagh), for which see Abbott, Macedonian Folklore, pp. 171, 232, 234; [Blunt], People of Turkey, u, 236; d’Ohsson, Tableau, ii, 14, &c.

; 2’ Lambakis, ‘Era “Aorépes, pp. 317-18. Such cases could pro-

bably be multiplied indefinitely. 3 See below, pp. 714-16. 4 Gerlach, Tage-Buch, pp. 187, 341. 5 Canaye, Voyage (1573), p. 110. Ata later date Gyllius’ hypothesis also was current among learned Greeks (below, p. 83).

Hajt Bektash 83 church of S$. Mamas, current slightly earlier, is due to the archaeologist Gyllius: though more scientific than the others, it has been completely disposed of by Par-

goire.t There is thus no reason to believe that the sanctity of Eyyub is pre-Turkish. Two of the most important dervish tekkes, at Haji Bektash near Kirshehr in Cappadocia, and at Konia, containing the tombs of the founders of the Bektashi and Mevleviorders respectively, havealso their Christian traditions. 4. Hajyt Bexrasu TExke, near Kirspeur. The tekke of Haji Bektash is frequented not only by (Moslem)

adherents of the Bektashi order,? of which it is the

head-quarters, but also by Christians, who, on entering the turbe of the founder, make the sign of the cross.3 Levides, a local authority, holds that the present cells of the dervishes formed part of a Christian monastery and, like most of his compatriots, claims the site for 5. Charalambos.4 The connexion of the site with this saint is so general that the founder’s tomb itself is supposed by some Christians to be that of S$. Charalambos,5 but without much probability as the local connexions t Proc. Russ. Arch. Inst. (Constantinople), 1x (1904), pp. 261 ff. 2 Sunni Moslems are not welcomed, the Bektashi order being now

confessedly Shia: the mosque, forced upon the dervishes by Mahmud II, is served by a resident Nakshbandi sheikh (F. W. H.). 3 Cuinet, Turquie d@’ Aste, i, 341. The tekke has been visited also by P. Lucas (Voyage dans la Gréce, i, 124), Naumann (Vom Goldnen Horn,

193 ff.), and recently by Professor White of Marsovan (see Contemp. Rev., Nov. 1913, pp. 690 ff.).

4 Movat ris Kammadoxias, pp. 97f.: “Ev d€ tats "Oypas (raviv Xabdlyn-llexras) hv ro wepidnpov Movacrjpiov tot ayiov XapaAdptrous, omrep TrepinABe viv eis yeipas TMV aoknTa@v Tod AepBicou

Xabbq [lexrdon-BeXt, c@Cov Kai oixjuara dua rovs mpooxuvnras Kat KeAXia dia Tovs aoxyTas, Kat Bovow Kat apeAdvas. § Cuinet, loc. ctt., confirmed to me by Mr. Sirinides of ‘Talas. The Bektashi dervishes seem rather to encourage the identification. It is said that they will kill any Mussulman who blasphemes Christ or S. Charalambos ; see further below, pp. 571-2. G2

84. Mohammedan Sanctuartes frequented by Christians of this saint are with Magnesia ; he is, however, much revered all over Orthodox Christendom,' especially as an averter of plague,? and there is nothing irrational in supposing that a monastery in Cappadocia was dedicated

to him.3 On the other hand, it is quite possible that a healing or prophylactic miracle of Haji Bektash during an epidemic has led to the identification,+ and that the idea, once in the air, has been promoted by the Bektashi.

It is so far accepted that the well-known story of Haji Bektash, which tells how he outdid Ahmed Rifai, who rode on a lion, by riding on a wall,5 was related to Mr. Dawkins by Greeks in Asia Minor of S. Charalambos and Mohammed. But the identification of Haji Bektash with S. Chara-

lambos does not seem to be of great antiquity.6 A hundred years ago the archbishop Cyril claims both

tekke and saint for S. Eustathius,7 who is connected in the Synaxaria § with Rome, not Anatolia, and is by no means an important saint in the Eastern Church.9 t Cf. the recent ‘ revelation ’ of a church of his near Niksar (Reinach, in Rev. Arch. xxi (1913), p. 42). 2 See Polites in AeAriov “lorop. ‘Eratpeias, i, 22, and cf. his [apaSdcets, no. 908; also M. Hamilton, Greek Saints, p. 71. The saint is

popularly called KapdAwBos as from (Turkish) Kara (‘ black’) and wBn.

PI: italy, I have heard S. Charalambos identified with S. Roch

by a Greek priest. 4 The neighbouring village of Mujur was still largely Christian in the seventeenth century (Tavernier, Travels, p. 39: ‘ abundance of Greeks, which they constrain ever and anon to turn Turks’). 5 Degrand, Haute Albanie, p. 229, &c.; below, p. 289.

6 It has, however, taken firm hold, and appears to be believed in Macedonia.

7 ITepuypady, p. 11: XarlyA Ilexrds, oov texés, row povaoTnpiov mexTaciowy dSepBiotdwv, mapwvouacpevoy amo tov “Aytov Evordbov, X. ITexras Aepouevov map atra&v, tov omotov GéAovew

below, p. 379. 8 20 Sept.

apxnyov Tob Tayparos atvra&v. For the author of this rare work see 9 Churches are, however, dedicated to him by the Orthodox, e.g. at Konia (Ramsay, Czties of St. Paul, p. 377).

flajt Bektash 85 His link with Haji Bektash is probably to be found in the incident, regularly figured in his ezkons and common to

the legend of S. Hubert of Liége, of his conversion while hunting by the apparition of a stag with a cross between its horns, which cried out with a human voice:?

‘Why pursuest thou me? I am Jesus Christ.” This story is paralleled by another told of Kaigusuz,? an

eminent saint of the Bektashi order. In his youth, while out hunting, he wounded a stag, which turned into a dervish. Stricken with remorse, he retired to a convent, where, cutting wood one day for the brotherhood, he heard a tree he was cutting cry out, ‘ Why smitest thou me?’ ‘This incident was the cause of his recognition as a saint.3 In another story Haji Bektash himself converts an unbeliever by exhibiting on his own

person the wounds inflicted by the latter on a stag.4 Further, Haji Bektash’s reputed master was Karaja Ahmed,5 literally, Stag Ahmed. The identification of Haji Bektash with 8. Eustathius was probably made on the ground of some similar story. 5. Mevuevi Texxe, Konia. At the great tekke of the

Mevlevi dervishes in Konia Lucas was told by an Armenian that a Christian bishop Efsepi (Eusebius ?) °

was buried beside Jelal-ed-din, the founder of the t Talking animals are elsewhere recorded ; cf. Spiro, Hist. de Foseph,

, For this saint see further, below, pp. 290 f. 3 Told by an Anatolian to Mr. W. H. Peckham, formerly H. B. M.’s

consul at Uskub. It is to be noted that in the Christian legend of S. Eustathius the stag episode is merely picturesque. In the Moslem version it falls into place; the stag which becomes a dervish, and the tree which

cries out, alike symbolize the unity of nature, full comprehension of which is one aim of the dervish’s life of contemplation. Both Christian and Mohammedan legends probably come ultimately from a Buddhist source. On the connexion of deer with dervishes see further, below, pp: 460 ff.

4 F,W.H. 5 Evliya, Travels, ut, 213 cf. 11, 215.

® No such bishop occurs in the Greek lists of Iconium bishops which have come down to us.

86 Mohammedan Sanctuaries frequented by Christians

Mevlevi order, at the latter’s special request. The legend explaining this anomaly tells how the ‘ Chelebi’

Jelal-ed-din, going on pilgrimage, charged his great friend the bishop with the care of his household and the government of the city during his absence. The bishop gave into his hands at his departure a small box, bidding

him keep it closed till his return, and accepted the charge on this condition. On the return of Jelal-ed-din his wives and household slaves accused the bishop of evil conduct towards them, and the ‘ Chelebi’ in a fit

of anger ordered his instant execution. The unfortunate bishop implored as a last favour an interview with the ‘ Chelebi ’, in the course of which he called on him to open the mysterious box committed to his charge. It was found of course to contain indisputable proof of the bishop’s innocence. ‘The ‘ Chelebi’ in his remorse insisted that, when the good bishop died, he

should be buried beside his own tomb as a mark of their indissoluble friendship.:

This story was told me with the omission of the bishop’s name by Prodromos Petrides of Konia in 1913.

In a variant story told by Levides? and, a hundred years ago, by the archbishop Cyril,3 the hero is the abbot of 8. Chariton. ‘The Mevlevi dervishes themselves acknowledge that there is truth in the legend, but in their version of it the ‘ bishop ’ or ‘ abbot ’ becomes a monk, who came from Constantinople and was converted by Jelal-ed-din to the Mevlevi doctrines. 6. TEKKE OF SHEMS-ED-DIN, Konia. Another instance from Konia of a similar ambiguous cult is given by Schiltberger (c. 1400). 1 Lucas, Voyage dans la Gréce, 1, 151 ff.

2 Movai ris Kammadoxias, p. 156; cf. N. Rizos, Kammadsoxcxd, p- 130, and above, chap. v, no. Io. 3 ITeptypady, p. 42 (quoted below, p. 375, n.2). The ‘ tomb of the monk ’ is mentioned in general terms by Macarius of Antioch (Travels (c. 1650), i, 8) and by Miss Pardoe (City of the Sultans, i, 52).

Secret Conversion to Christianity 87 ‘ There is also,’ says he, ‘ in this country [Karaman] a city called Konia, in which lies the saint, Schenisis, who was first an Infidel priest, and was secretly baptised ; and when his end approached, received from an Armenian priest the body of God in an apple. He has worked great miracles.’ '

This early legend refers of course to the tomb of

Shems-ed-din of Tabriz, the friend and instructor of Jelal-ed-din, which is situated in Konia, but at some

distance from the great tekke of the Mevlevi. It is naturally a tomb much revered by that order as being that of their founder’s master. The story is remarkable as the converse of the Mevlevi version of the ‘ Eusebius ’

legend; here a Mohammedan is converted to Christianity, thereaChristiantoIslam. In eachcase the sanctuary in question is made accessible to both religions.?

7. S. Aras, Larnaxa (Cyprus). This is another

ambiguous cult first mentioned by Mariti (eighteenth century).3 At the present day this sanctuary is still frequented both by Turks and Greeks. By the former it is known as Turabi Tekke, by the latter as 8. ‘Therapon. Turabi is the name of a wandering dervish from Kastamuni in northern Anatolia, who lived in the reign of Mohammed II and was noted for his liberal views as

to religions outside Islam.s 5. Therapon is a wellknown saint and healer in Cyprus, where he has several churches ; he is not, however, specially connected with Larnaka.® As to the origins of a cult of this sort, it 1s impossible to be dogmatic. From the evidence we have it seems probable that it began as a secular cult of an t Hakluyt society’s edition (ed. Telfer), p. 40. 2 See below, p. 377. 3 Travels, tr. Cobham, p. 41 (quoted in full below, p. 735). 4 Hackett, Church of Cyprus, p. 421; Luke and Jardine, Handbook

of Cyprus (1913), p. 47: there is now, Mr. Luke tells me, no dervish establishment attached to the tomb. s Von Hammer, Osman. Dichtkunst, 1, 214. 6 For the S. Therapon of Cyprus see Delehaye in Anal. Boll. xxvi, 247 ff.

88 Mohammedan Sanctuaries frequented by Christians

‘Arab’ jginn,: later identified with Turabi (perhaps through the Greek roi ’Apday 6 texxés, % onda), from which it is an easy step to the Christian herapon. If this theory is correct, we have here a cult now shared by both religions, whose origins were neither Christian nor Mohammedan, but secular.’ 8. ‘Toms oF 8. T'HEoporE,’ BENDEREGLI (HERAKLEIA

Pontica). Herakleia on the south coast of the Black Sea has been celebrated for many centuries as the place of martyrdom of 8. Theodore Stratelates (‘ the General ’), who, according to legend, suffered under Licinius and

was buried at Euchaita, the scene of his conquest of

a dragon which infested the country. His tomb at

Euchaita was a famous pilgrimage in the early Middle Ages.3 It is possibly owing to his connexion with other localities besides Euchaita (Amasia and Herakleia) that

his rather shadowy twin, 5. Theodore Tiron (‘ the recruit ’),4 came into existence. In 1389, when the whole coast was already in Turkish hands, we hear from a Russian pilgrim of a church and tomb of 8. Theodore

Tiron at Herakleia.s Halfway through the seventeenth century a reference to the martyrdom of a 8. Theodore (this time the ‘ general’) at Herakleia in the Travels of Macarius © shows that the tradition was not forgotten. At the present day a turbe in a cemetery on a hill above Arapli a few miles west of the town is visited yearly by 1 For the ‘ Arab’ in folk-lore and cult see below, pp. 730-5. The cult of a ‘S. Arab’ could be reconciled to Greeks by the assumption of their conversion. Cf. the case of ‘S. Barbarus’ at Iveron on Athos (Smyrnakes, “Aytov “Opos, p. 471 ; Tozer, Highlands of Turkey, i, 83; Hasluck, Athos, p. 165, n. 1) and that of ‘ S. Schenisis ’ above,

p. 87. 4 Synaxaria, 9 Feb.

3 For the legends of S. Theodore and their development see refer-

ences above, p. 47, n. 3. 4 Synaxaria, 17 Feb.

5 Ignatius of Smolensk in Khitrovo, Jtim. Russes, p. 134: ‘ily a la [viz. 4 Pandoraklia] l’église de saint Théodore Tiron, batie sur le lieu méme de son martyre & contenant son tombeau ’. 6 ‘Tr. Belfour, 11, 424.

Stages of Frequentation 89 Christians as containing the tomb of S. Theodore ‘ the

general’.1 ‘The turbe seems to be no more than a wooden hut, and contains two outwardly Turkish tombs,? attributed by the Greeks to 8. Theodore and his disciple Varro, and by the Turks to a warrior-saint named Ghazi

Shahid Mustafa and his son. ‘These are tended by a Turkish woman, who receives offerings from pilgrims of both religions in money or candles. In view of this graduated series of compromises between the competing religions it seems clear that, while some of the Moslem sanctuaries claimed by Christians as originally Christian may really be so, the development

indicated above in Chapter V from Christianity to Islam is paralleled by a converse development from Islam towards Christianity, the stages being : G) A Moslem sanctuary attracts by its miracles a chientéle of Christians (Chapter VII, no. 6).3

(ii) These justify their participation in the cult by

the assumption that the site, building, or saint in question was originally Christian 4 and by the fabrication of a suitable legend 5 (Chapter VII, no. 4). 1 P, Makris, “HpaxdAeia tot [[dvrov, pp. 115 ff. 2 See below, p. 575, n. 2. 3 Soa Turkish pasha, buried at Drivasto in Albania, works miracles for Christians, when he sees that their hearts are secretly inclined to Islam (Hecquard, Haute Albanie, p. 326): the latter clause of course ‘ saves the face’ of the saint in case of failure. 4 There is at least a possibility that a similar process of thought underlay the recognition by the Christians of the Holy Sepulchre beneath the temple of Venus, if we assume that, as is not unlikely in Syria (cf. especially Frazer, ddonis,i, 13 ff.; Heisenberg, Grabeskirche, 1, 197 ff.), the death, burial, and resurrection of Adonis were there celebrated.

5 An extremely interesting illustration of the ‘ white’ or ‘ black’ interpretation of Moslem saints is afforded by two folk-stories from Greece cited by Polites ([Japaddceis, nos. 209, 446), in which (1) a Turkish saint called Delikli Baba (‘ Old Man of the Hole’) at Pylos is accepted as originally Christian, while (2) his namesake at Nauplia becomes a specialized form of the ‘ guardian Arab ’ demon common in Greco-Turkish folk-lore. In all probability both ‘ saints ’ were Turkish

90 Mohammedan Sanctuaries frequented by Christians (iii) It is quite possible to imagine a Christian political and ecclesiastical ascendency completing the process of conversion by the formal recognition as Christian of such indeterminate sanctuaries, for instance, as those of Haji Bektash and $8. Mamas. g. At the Trexxe of Axyazit1 Bazpa (Hariz Kuatriy Basa near Batcuik (now in Rumania) a transformation on the lines indicated seems in a fair way to be completed. Of this sanctuary we have luckily three independent accounts written before and after the liberation of Bulgaria. (1) Kanitz, writing in 1872, describes the tekke as one

of the most celebrated Mohammedan shrines in the Euxine district, in point of size probably unsurpassed in European Turkey, and still sheltering twenty-six dervishes. The magnificent turbe was built by Suleiman I]? and contained various relics of the saint, including a Moslem pilgrim’s staff, a pair of shoes, besides a

tomb of orthodox Mohammedan form. ‘The tekke was burnt by the Russians in 1829, which looks as if the Ortho-

dox at that date held it in no particular reverence.3 (2) Jirecek, writing apparently of the eighties, gives interesting particulars of the development of the cult in his day. ‘The saint was then known as Akyazili Baba.s ‘ pierced stone’ or cave cults anthropomorphized ; one of them, and not the other, performed miracles for Christians. Cf. below, p. 223. 1 Professor White of Marsovan declares he has ‘seen shrines now Christian once Mohammedan, and, conversely, shrines now Mohammedan which were once in Christian keeping’ (Trans. Vict. Inst. xxxix (1907), p. 156). For the transition to [slam from Christianity in Syria see Curtiss, Prim. Semitic Relig., pp. 239 ff. 2 It appears to have been dated : Jirecek’s account supports the idea that the turbe was purely Turkish. 3 Kanitz, Donau-Bulgarien, ii, 211 ff. (in the French translation, pp. 474 ff.): the passage in Haji Khalfa (Rumel: und Bosna, tr. von Hammer, p. 27), cited by Kanitz as mentioning this tekke, really refers to that of Kilgra (see below, p. 431). 4 This may be designed to facilitate the identification with Athanastus.

Akyazilt Baba gI His main function was the recovery of stolen cattle, but his powers, down to the period of the Crimean War, were available only for his co-religionists. After this, evidently under the pressure of a change in popula-

tion, he began to exert himself in favour of Christians also as 8S. Athanasius. In 1883 (1. e. after the foundation of the Bulgarian principality) his two personalities

were recognized. The gifts made by Moslems to Akyazili Baba were kept separate from those made by Christians to 8. Athanasius, and the latter contributed

to a Christian school, then in building at Balchik. The Moslem side of the saint was evidently on the wane. We now hear first of the development of the medical side of the cult (doubtless, however, older), fever

patients making the circuit of the tomb in the saint’s slippers. A copy of the Koran was still kept on the tomb.?

(3) Nikolaos,3 a local Greek author of the ’nineties, speaks of the zekke as an undoubted Christian church, though tended by dervishes, and standing in a village of Circassian refugees. It holds festival on 2 May, the

day of 5. Athanasius of Alexandria, whose tomb it contains. Miuracles of healing are frequently wrought

at the place. Patients incubate all night, locked in

the ‘ church ’, inserting the ailing part, if possible, in a

hole near the tomb of ‘ Athanasius’; on the tomb are placed a gospel, lamps, and a pair of shoes which

the saint wears when he appears to patients. The 1 A refugee of 1878 from Varna, now resident at Beikoz, informed me that the herds of the saint went out and returned from pasture untended and unharmed, whereas strange animals sent out with them did not return. 2 Jirecek, Bulgarien (1891), p. 5333; also in Arch. Epigr. Mitth., 1886, p. 182. The former passage is given in full on p. 763 below. 3 J. Nikolaos, "Odnaads, pp. 248-50, quoted below, p. 764, at length. 4 Cf. the somewhat similar Christian superstition with regard to S. Michael at Syki (Bithynia) in B.S.4. xiii, 297 (Hasluck), and Polites, ITapaddcets, no. 200, with notes.

92 Mohammedan Sanctuaries frequented by Christians incubation seems still to be supervised entirely by a dervish.t According to information gleaned in 1914 from a resident of Varna, the village by the tekke is now inhabited by Bulgarians, and a transference of the sanctuary to Christianity, such as has been suggested above, actually took place during the late Balkan War, when the Bulgarian priest of the village erected a cross on the turbe. The crescent was, however, shortly afterwards replaced by the invading Rumanian army. In such cases as this

it is impossible to prove, except by the argument a stlentio, that the Moslem cult had not ultimately a Christian predecessor. But at Balchik especially we have at least a strong presumption in favour of Moslem origin, since (1) there is no natural feature of the site

which renders an antecedent cult probable; (2) the buildings seem to be entirely Turkish ; (3) the tomb of

Athanasius is obviously unauthentic; (4) 2 May is only a secondary festival of S. Athanasius, his great day

being 18 January. It is possible that the coincidence of the original feast-day (mevlud) of Hafiz Khalil with 2 May has determined his Christian pseudonym.

Io. Texxe Keui, near Usxus. The case of Balchik

has an exact parallel in Serbian Macedonia. Before the Balkan War Evans found at Tekke Keui near Uskub a purely Mohammedan (Bektashi) sanctuary, with the

grave of a Mohammedan saint, to which Christians also resorted on S. George’s day. A local Mohammedan

informed me in 1914 that the place was now formally claimed for 8. George by the erection of a cross, though the dervish in charge was not (as yet) evicted.3

It. [TurBati TEkKe, near Puarsata. ‘The last re-

™ Professor Skorpil informs me (1913), through Mr. Gilliat Smith, H. B. M.’s consul at Varna, that the tekke is now ruined, only part of a kitchen of Turkish construction remaining besides the tomb.

4 In 7.H.S. xxi, 202, and in Archaeologia, xlix, 110: cf. below,

pp- 274-7 ff. 3 [He had gone by 1923. M. M. H.]

Impending Transferences from Islam 93 maining Bektashi convent in Thessaly, near the village of Aivali in the district of Pharsala, seems to be a similar case. ‘The mausoleum of the saint Turbe Ali, which is

purely Turkish in form like all the buildings of the tekke, and probably dates from the sixteenth century, is visited by Christians as a sanctuary of S. George, and

a ‘tradition’ is current that the tekke was once a

monastery dedicated to that saint. When the Bektashi community follows the example of its once numerous neighbours and abandons the site, a church, as a local Christian admitted as a matter of course, will probably take its place on the strength of the tradition.! 12. SERSEM ALI TEKke, KALKANDELEN. Similarly, in

Serbian Macedonia the once flourishing Bektashi tekke

just outside Kalkandelen, founded by a certain Riza Pasha less than a hundred and fifty years ago and now doomed to extinction under the pressure of Serbian taxation, is quite likely to be replaced by a church of S. Elias, with whom the Bektashi saint buried there (Sersem Ali) is identified by the local Christians. For this identification there seems to be no other warrant than the likeness between the names Ali and Elias : 2 the site is not an eminence, as are most of those dedicated by the Orthodox to Elias, and the buildings are perfectly in keeping with the date given on the founder’s tombstone (a.H. 1238).3 It thus seems clear that a certain number of Moslem holy places manage to perpetuate their sanctity through

a period of Christian conquest and even Moslem emi1 F, W.H. See further details below, pp. 531-2. + A Christian from Premet, where the Bektashi sect is influential, told me, independently of the above example, that Ali and Elias were commonly identified in Bektashism. In Bosnia the Mohammedan (Bektashi ?) festival of S. Elias is known as Alijun (Lilek in W1ss,. Mztth.

Bosnien, vil, 273). It should be noted that the Albanian for S. Elias is Shen Li. It may be that the saint Abbas Ali, who haunts Mount Tomor in S. Albania, is also equated locally to S. Elias, see below, p. 548, n. 2.

3 Further below, pp. 524-5.

94 Mohammedan Sanctuaries frequented by Christians

gration: this at first sight bears out the view that the religious traditions of a locality cannot be extinguished. But it 1s equally clear that such of these holy places as have come under our view owe their survival not to well-

authenticated traditions of previous Christian sanctity but to adroit management (aided by good luck) on

the part of their dervish administrators. We thus

arrive at the negative result that, in default of more cogent evidence, it is not safe to accept that of ‘ tradition ’ backed by Christian frequentation, as proof of the antecedent occupation by Christians of a sanctuary now outwardly Mohammedan. In several of the ambiguous cults cited above the Christian version of the local religious legend is not only accepted but welcomed, and even, to judge by Gerlach’s account of the church-tekke of Eski Baba, promoted (for Christian consumption) by the Mohammedans in charge of the sanctuary in question. ‘This tendency is specially prominent in the case of ambiguous sanctuaries administered by or connected with the Bektashi* order. ‘The two following sanctuaries, which are insufhciently known, are recommended for investigation on these lines. 13. SHAMASPUR LTEKKE,? Aaja (in Paphlagonia). This

is a half-ruined sanctuary under Bektashi administration. Sir Charles Wilson calls it a cruciform church,3 but Hamilton’s description makes it clear that it was a tekke, probably of Seljuk date, planned like the Konia medresehs as a cross inscribed in a square.4 It is signifi-

™ See below, pp. 564 ff. 2 See below, pp. 710 f. 3 In Murray’s Asta Minor, p. 36. 4 Hamilton, Asta Minor, 1, 402 f.: ‘ The building 1s square . . . on the east side is a handsome marble entrance in Saraceno-Gothic style, while within it is built in the form of a Greek cross, having one of the four recesses facing the east’. H. J. Ross (Letters from the East, p. 243) recognized the building as Mohammedan, as did Perrot (Souvenirs d'un V oyage, p. 418), who found two or three Bektashi dervishes there in 1861.

Christian and Moslem Burted Together 95 cant that the Turks of Alaja ‘ said the building was an old Greek monastery ’.t. The saint buried at this tekke is Husain, the father of Sidi Battal. Its name, however, connects it with Shamas, the Christian governor of a castle near Kirshehr, who was converted after being

defeated in single combat by Sidi Battal himself. It seems likely that the tomb of the converted Shamas was

shown beside that of the Moslem hero, just as that of the Christian princess was shown beside the grave of Sidi Battal,3 and that of the Christian monk beside Jelal-ed-din’s at Konia,4 as an attraction to Christian pilgrims.

14. The skeleton of a similar double legend is probably to be recognized 5 in two notices of a building called Mryip Tsu, outside Changri (Gangra) in Paphlagonia. Ainsworth speaks of this as a Mohammedan monument, apparently a Seljuk turbe, containing several

tombs, which the local Christians vehemently claimed as those of their own saints ; © Cuinet in his description

of Changri notices ‘un turbé ou chapelle funéraire musulmane, autrefois couvent grec orthodoxe dédié a S. Mamas ’.7

15. Pampuk Basa,’ Osmanjix. My account of the t Hamilton, loc. cit. 2 See below, p. 711, n. 3.

3 See below, pp. 705-8. 4 See above, p. 86. S The suggestion here made is, of course, subject to correction, and is designed to stimulate further inquiry. 6 Travels,i, 110: the monument was dated by an Arabic inscription referring it to the reign of John Laskaris. Cf. Wilson (in Murray’s Asia

Minor, p. 10), who says it is the ‘reported site of a massacre of

Christians ’. 7 Turquie @ Aste,iv, 553. ButS. Mamas, born at Gangra, was buried

at Caesarea (Theodosius, De Situ Terrae Sanctae, ed. Geyer, p. 144, who mentions 8S. Galenicius at Gangra) : see above, p. 44. 8 Pambuk Baba (‘ Cotton Saint ’) seems to have succeeded, or to be identical with, the Bektashi saint Koyun Baba (‘ Sheep saint ’), whose convent at Osmanjik is mentioned by Evliya (Travels, 1, 96). The con-

vent is still of importance, though it seems to have passed into other hands.

96 Mohammedan Sanctuaries frequented by Christians cult is derived from a single source, a Greek native of Urgub, and is given for what it is worth. Pambuk Baba is reputed the builder of the stone bridge! across the river Halys which divides the two quarters of the town. My informant told me that the saintly architect, ‘ being unwilling to use the oxen of unbelievers ’ for the transport of material, had cursed the townspeople, and to this day the inhabitants of one quarter were one-eyed

and those of the other afflicted with ringworm. He added that the stones for the bridge were eventually brought by stags. This outline has certainly to be filled in somewhat as follows. Former bridges had been swept away by the river; the saint, not yet recognized as such, promised to build a substantial structure if the inhabitants would lend their draught animals: they, doubting his ability

and laughing at him for pretending to know about bridges, refused : he then cursed them, manifesting his supernatural power, not only by building the present

wonderful bridge, but by pressing wild deer (the favourite animals or familiars of dervishes) + into his service for the transport of the stone required. So far, we have no more than a naive piece of local mythology. The special interest of Pambuk Baba for us is that he is said to have been a converted Christian named 8. Gerasimos. This may be read as an admission

that the site of Pambuk Baba’s convent was once Christian and so dedicated : but (1) Osmanjik is a town

of purely Turkish origin and has probably never had a Christian church ;3 and (2) if it had, S. Gerasimos is a very unlikely dedication. The latter consideration renders it equally difficult to assume that the tradition is one of those devised to attract Christians like that of 1 A photograph of this bridge, really the work of Bayezid II, is given

by Anderson, Stud. Pont. 1, 103. 4 See below, pp. 460 f. 3 Jt 1s, however, in a Kizilbash district : cf. v. Flottwell, Stromgebtet des Qyzyl-Y'rmagq, p. 11.

Pambuk Baba 97

Shems-ed-din at Konia.t In the Greek Church the Palestinian monk, S. Gerasimos, has no wide vogue, and

the importance of the neo-saint Gerasimos of Zante, though great locally, is confined to that island and its neighbourhood. On the other hand, in Russia 5. Gerasimos of Palestine is widely reverenced and Gerasimos is a common name among the laity. We know that after the Russo-Turkish war of 1807-8 Russian prisoners were brought into this district as slaves, many of whom

turned Turk and settled in the country.? Is S. Gerasimos a reminiscence of one of these Russian renegades turned dervish ? 3 1 Above, p. 86-7.

2 Kinneir, Fourney through Asia Minor, p. 88: ‘ During my stay [1813] at Ooscat [Yuzgat] I was frequently visited by several Russians

. .. who had been taken in the wars and brought here by this Pasha. They had changed their religion, married Mahomedan women, and, following their respective professions, enjoyed, as they said, a much happier life than they had ever done before’ (cf. Oberhummer and Zimmerer, Durch Syrien, p. 211, note, for Russian renegades at Urgub). Are these the real ancestors of the fair-haired ‘ survivals of the Galatians? seen by several over-sanguine travellers in this district? See further below, p. 441, n. 6.

3 Some confirmation of this still hazardous theory exists in the prestige enjoyed by renegade marabouts. The saint of Mogador, for example, is Sidi Mogdul, Mogador being a Portuguese distortion of Mogdul, but the saint’s real name was MacDonald (? MacDougall) : see Montet, Culte des Saints Musulmans, p. 15.

3295-1 H

VIII

TRANSFERENCE OF NATURAL SANCTUARIES—MOUNTAINS

W/ acho we turn to consider the transference of cults at holy places chosen primarily for their physical peculiarities, that is, ‘ natural ’ as opposed to “ artificial ’

sanctuaries, we are confronted by serious difficulties, material and psychological. The rustic nature of these

cults often deprives us of the evidence afforded by

buildings, and, further, the idea of the sanctity of mountains and springs (to choose the commonest forms

of ‘natural’ holy places) is very widespread among primitive peoples. Both mountains and springs are held sacred by the nomad Yuruks, who can hardly have been greatly influenced, like town-dwellers, by the beliefs of their Christian neighbours. Hence, even where one religion is demonstrably superseded by another, it must remain doubtful whether a site has been chosen by the new-comers on account of its inherited sanctity or independently, merely because it struck them as an appropriate place for worship. Still less, where, as in the majority of cases, no proof of pre-Mohammedan religious occupation is obtainable, must the primitive type of the cultus be held to prove its chronologically

ancient, and therefore inherited, origin.2 In dealing with mountain cults, then, we have not only to consider

their inheritance of sanctity, proved or possible, but also to take into account certain ideas predisposing men t Among the ancients also temples were rarely built on mountains, a precinct and altar being held more appropriate.

2 For more adequate illustration I have admitted in this section several cases of ‘ natural’ cults of which Christian origins have not been suspected.

Types of Mountain Cults 99 in general, and especially Moslems, to their selection. These include : (a) The widespread idea of primitive humanity that the god controlling the weather, and especially rainfall, is best propitiated on mountain-tops where clouds gather.! (b) The secondary aspect of mountains, common to

Islam and Christianity, as the abode of ascetics. The Bithynian Olympus, for example, was not only a resort

of Christian monks, but in the early Ottoman period the abode of Moslem anchorites. Mountain hermits are often weather-prophets and rain-makers.?

(c) Quite independent of this is the secular, ‘ folklore’ conception of a mountain or a mountain-top as the grave of a giant, conceived of originally as a ‘ black ’

figure, but liable, under the religious influences of the associations suggested in (a) and (4), to become a saint of

superhuman proportions.3 The presence on a mountain-top of anything resembling or suggesting a grave, such as a cairn, a rough stone enclosure, or even a tree or trees, may be accepted as the grave of the saint, and welcomed as a tangible, yet not idolatrous, object of

veneration.s

The following examples illustrate the various stages :

1. Kapu Dacu (Dinpymon). One of the bare summits of the Cyzicene Dindymon is named Dede Bair, which can be roughly translated ‘ Saint’s Hill’, or perhaps better, less literally, ‘ Sacred Hill’: there is, so 1 For the ‘ high places’ which are regularly devoted still by Sunnis to the rain prayer outside Turkish towns see below, p. 102, n. 4. 2 Cf. R. Walsh, Constantinople, i, 294. 3 The ‘tomb of the prophet Joshua’ on the Bosporus is, as I have shown elsewhere (below, p. 305), an instance. 4 Cumont, Stud. Pont. il, 211, records a case where two prominent trees standing on a mountain are so accepted. 5 This process of development seems to be world-wide : cf. Halliday, in B.S.A. xvii, 182 ff. ° For the vague use of dede for a holy place or numen see Ramsay, Pauline Studies, p. 172. H2

100 Transference of Natural Sanctuaries—M ountains

far as know, no cult. The classical traditions of Dindymon are well known. There is an important Christian pilgrimage-church, not on the hill, but in one of the valleys beneath it.

2. Ipa. The double summit of the Trojan Ida is held by the Yuruks to represent the graves of a nameless ‘ Baba ’ (/tt. ‘ father ’, but generally with the mean-

ing ‘saint’) and his (nameless) daughter Sari Kiz

( Yellow Girl’). But at the same time the peaks repre-

sent stones sifted by the daughter. A trace of a previous Christian cult may be seen by the eye of faith in the fact that the Yuruks hold festival here on 15 August (Assumption of the Virgin), and the fact that the daughter, despite her sex, seems the more important figure of

the two. But certain dates in the Turkish year, e. g. 5. George (Khidrelles), which are reckoned by the Syrian

calendar, seem to be older than Christianity and not

derived from it: of these 15 August appears to be one.3

3. The Hasan Dacu, near Cagsarga, has on its summit (1) a ruined Christian chapel and (2) a turbe associated with the sheikh Tur Hasan Veli,4 who can boast a respectable cycle of tradition.s He represents, in all t Hasluck, Cyzicus, p. 161: the church is connected by a medieval tradition with the Jasonian temple of Dindymene. 2 Leaf in Geog. ‘Fourn. xl (1912), p. 37.

3 August 15 is said to be kept as a feast by the Bektashi at Kruya (Degrand, Haute Albante, p. 234), and I have been told by Christians that this is the ‘ great Bairam’ of the sect, though Bektashi deny it. A Bektashi festival might in any case be derived from Christianity, but the same date is chosen for the assembly of witches in Georgia (N. W. Thomas, in Man, 1901, p. 57); ¢f.also below, no. 4, and, further, p. 132. Lucius (Anfange des Heiligenk. p. §21) says the date of the Assumption appears first in Syria and as ‘ Obitus Deiparae pro Vitibus’ ; see further Hasluck, Letters, p. 95. 4 Ramsay and Bell, Thousand and One Churches, p. 256, where it is said that the mevlud (anniversary festival) is still kept. § Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de Asie Mineure, pp. 212 ff.

Yildiz Dagh IOI probability, a tribal eponymous hero,* and may even be historical.?

4. The Yitpiz Dacu (‘ Star Mountain ’), near Sivas, exhibits the same combination of Christian and Moham-

medan sanctuaries, here not superimposed, but on separate peaks. ‘There is a Mohammedan festival on the mountain in August.3 A sanguine interpreter of these facts may here make out a good case for a survival,

starting from the equation yzldiz = star = dorip.

A Christian saint Asterios is celebrated in the Greek calendar on 7 August,4 and a bishop of Amasia bore the

name about a.p. 400.5 Did the pious bishop re-dedicate the hitherto pagan mountain to his name-saint ?

On the other hand, the district of which the ‘ Star Mountain’ forms part bears officially the name of Yildizili (‘ Land of Yildiz’).6 Yuildiz is a not uncommon personal name among the Turks,7 and in particular it was borne by one of the six sons of Oguz, a semimythical ‘Turkoman chieftain; each of these six sons

was the founder of a tribe. So that here, as at the Hasan Dagh, there is a good case for supposing the saint to be tribal and Turkish. As regards the August festival, it seems probable that the Kizilbash keep one on the fifteenth of the month.9 5. The Arr Dacu, near Carsarga, is said by Mohamt There is a village bearing the (tribal ?) name, Dur Hasanlu, near Kirshehr: see below, p. 339.

2 A local chief in this region named Hasan is mentioned in the eleventh century (Anna Comnena, xiv, I: cf. the crusading writer quoted in full by Tomaschek, in Sitzb. Wien. Akad., Ph.-Hist. Cl., cxxiv (1891), vili, 85). 3 Wilson, in Murray’s 4s1a Minor, p. 42; Cumont, Stud. Pont. ii, 233. 4 “Oawos "Aorépios suyKAntikos Kai Oavparoupyds 5 Le Quien, Oriens Christianus, 1, 526. 6 Cuinet, Turquie d’ Aste, i, 608. 7 For Oguz and his sons see d’Herbelot, s.v., and Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. i, 6 ff. 8 See d’Herbelot, s.v. I/diz, and Hammer-Hellert, xviii, 52. 9 Above, p. 100, n. 3.

102 Transference of Natural Sanctuaries—Mountatns medans to have been made by Ali, who, while helping

the Prophet to make Argaeus, let fall a mass of earth through the breaking of a sieve. The Christians associate the mountain with S. Basil, who is said to have resorted to it to pray. On one of the two conspicuous summits are remains of a Christian church, on the other the Moslems have built a place of prayer.3 The development thus seems to be as follows, leaving

inheritances from Christianity for the moment out of sight : (i) An eminence is chosen by a neighbouring population as a place for propitiating the weather-god.+4

(ii) Its existence or peculiarities are attributed to a

miracle.

(iii) The peak itself 5 or any existing building on it is accepted as the grave (tumulus or turbe, as the case may be) of a saint, often the author of the miracle. Subsequently, additions (a built grave, turbe, or tekke) may be made and a name found for the saint: but in primitive communities he often remains nameless. The t Thompson, in Proc. Soc. Bibl. Arch. 1910, p. 292 ; Scott-Stevenson, Ride through Asia Minor, p. 206. 2 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de? Asie Mineure, pp. 191 f.; Texier,

Asie Mineure, ii, 61; Levides, Movat ris Kammadoxias, p. 56; Rizos, Kammadoxixd, p. 138. 3 Levides, loc. cit.: of "OOwpavol éxricav emi THs mpos avatoAas

Kopudyis mpooxiyvna, Taxtad) xadovpevov: odlerar . . . Kat dpéap petayevéatepov Kadovpevov ppéap Xadl7 Ilaipay. Skene (Anadol, pp. 144 ff.) says the Ali Dagh has three peaks, occupied respectively by a ruined church, a mosque, and a Moslem cemetery connected with the famous hero Sidi Ghazi, for whom see below, pp. 05 ff.

/ : The practice survives among the orthodox populations of towns. Most Turkish towns choose an eminence on the outskirts as a place for the rain-prayer. 5 Or even the whole mountain: a popular legend relates that the site of the ‘ Giant’s Mountain’ on the Bosporus was once a plain on which a giant was buried: each mourner threw a handful of soil on the grave, thus making the mountain (Grosvenor, Constantinople, 1, 214).

Saints’ Graves on Heights 103 chances of an authentic saint being buried seem to me,

in the case of mountains, remote:! saints’ names or titles, however, account for a large proportion of the mountain nomenclature of Asia Minor: many are probably of tribal epomwymz associated by the local wor-

shippers with their praying-place. The preference for mountain-tops as sanctuaries ex-

tends also to minor heights, natural and artificial. Examples are: 6. Mourap Bair, a conical promontory in the Cyzicene peninsula, called by the Greeks $. Simeon : on its summit are remains of a rude chapel, with a roughly built ‘Turkish tomb, probably a cenotaph, inside it.? 7. BaBA SULTAN Texxe. An artificial mound outside Yeni Shehr in Bithynia is occupied by the turbe and tekke of a saint variously called Baba Sultan,3 Emir Sultan,4 and Postin Push.s

8. Tutum Bunwar. A conspicuous conical mound (tumulus or signal-station ?) near Tulum Bunar station

on the Kasaba line is crowned by the turbe of Jafer Ghazi. The tomb is probably not authentic © and the

turbe of recent construction. 9. The so-called ‘Toms or HannisBaL’ near Gebze in Bithynia is a similar example. Here again an already

existing tumulus has been used as a burial-place or accepted as such. The saint, real or :maginary, is supposed to be a ghazi of the early Ottoman period.7

10. ‘ Toms or Acuiuues’ (Troap). At the Trojan tumulus known by this name ‘ the summit of the cone 1 Cf. however, below, p. 104, n. 3. 4 Hasluck, Cyzicus, p. 18. 3 Wilson in Murray’s Constantinople, p. 133.

4 F.W.H. I believe the mound to be artificial, but not (as Wilson) a tumulus.

5 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. i, 229. 6 See below, p. 508. 7 Pococke, Descr. of the East, 11, i, 98; Lechevalier, Propontide, p- 39; Siderides, in Didod. LvAAoyos, KZ’, 280. For the real site of Hannibal’s tomb see Leake, 4sza Minor, p. 9, and a paper by Wiegand in Ath, Mitth. 1902, pp. 321 ff.

104 Transference of Natural Sanctuartes—M ountatns has been smoothed off, and contains a small mud building erected by a Mahometan Dervish, who, by a whimsical singularity of disposition, has converted the tomb of Achilles into a repository for his own ashes ’.t ‘This

gives an important sidelight on the cases, apparently fairly frequent, of ‘Turkish burials on ancient tumuli. In such cases the modern selection of the site is prob-

ably due less to its antecedent sanctity than to its conspicuousness. ws Kev THAEhavTs . . . avdpdow ety

Tois of viv yeydaot Kat ot peromabev Ecovrat.3

But, even in what would appear to be most favourable

conditions, the choice of ancient tumuli for saints’ tombs is quite arbitrary. At Haji Bektash in Cappadocia, for instance, a huge artificial mound near by has not been selected either for the site of the tekke or the burial-place of a saint.‘ t W. Francklin, Remarks on the Plain of Troy, p. 46. For the Christians of the Troad the tumulus called Ujek Tepe is sacred to S. Elias (Schliemann, /Jios, English edition, p. 658) and another to S. Demetrius (ibid., p. 669; Walpole, Memoirs, p. 372). 2 In Thrace (Covel’s Diaries, p. 187) and Rumeli generally (Ranke, Servia, p. 464; Jirecek in Arch. Epigr. Mitth. 1886, p. 63) ; also near Damascus (Rogers in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1869, p. 44). 3 Homer, Od. xxiv, 82. Beduin sheikhs are by preference buried on mountain-tops (Burckhardt, Syria, p. 612). Von Schweiger-Lerchenfeld (Armenien, p. 3) notes the presence of Moslem graves on the Lesser Ararat, as on Hor and Sinai, ‘ denn méglichst hoch begraben zu werden,

war und ist im mohammedanischen Oriente allezeit ein brennender Wunsch’. 4 White in Contemp. Rev., Nov. 1913, p. 695.

Ix |

TRANSFERENCE OF NATURAL SANCTUARIES—SPRINGS

Teesantoanalogous spring-cults, we find all the stages of development. (a) The Yuruks, who are still in the primitive stage, reverence springs not remarkable to the outside observer.t ‘I’hese cults are, of course, ill-known psychologically, and their seats indicated externally only by the rags attached to neighbouring trees: they are thus indistinguishable from the obscurer Christian dyidopara. (6) The spring is attributed to the miraculous agency of a saint.? (c) Among more developed populations some degree

of anthropomorphism is sometimes added to the ante-

cedent sanctity of the spring by the burial, real or supposed, of a saint in the neighbourhood. Examples are :

1. Avyttar, Troap. The hot springs (z/z7a) near this village are not only used medicinally, but regarded superstitiously, rags being knotted tothe surrounding bushes ; 3

but the cult seems not to be organized or affliated to either of the prevailing religions. Such springs could be found by hundreds in Asia Minor. t This I have from Dr. Chasseaud of Smyrna, whose profession has brought him into contact with the nomad tribes of the Aidin vilayet : below, p. 129-32. 2 No. 2 below. For other examples of springs which are supposed to owe their origin to the action of a saint see von Hammer, Brussa, p. 14 (Emir Sultan) ; Degrand, Haute Albanie, p. 244 (Zem Zem Baba) ; Evliya, Travels, ii, 226 (Sheikh Shami). The holy man usually makes water spring forth with his staff, which may be made to account for the frequent combination of tree and spring. 3 Schliemann, J/zos, English ed., p. 325.

106 Transference of Natural Sanctuaries—Springs

2. The spring at Ivriz: this is attributed by legend to a miracle performed by Osman, a ‘ companion of the Prophet ’, but the cult seems to have remained in the primitive stage. 3. A mineral spring in EskisHEHR adjoins a turbe containing the tombs of the (nameless) ‘ Seven ’ (Yedzler).?

4. The Esxr Kapiuya bath at Brusa, supplied by a natural hot spring, is used by women as a cure for sterility 1” conjunction with a pilgrimage to the adjacent

turbe of Murad I, the only Turkish sultan who earned the title of ‘ Martyr ’.3 It is customary for women to

take and eat grains of wheat placed on the tomb.

Wilson 4 records that the same sanctified wheat, when

mixed with seed-corn, is supposed to ensure a good crop. The earliest mention of the wheat on the tomb

is Luke’s: ‘a Plow and a Vessell of Wheat is then placed to keep in mind the encouragement he [Murad]

gave to husbandry,’ 5 and this would be a perfectly satisfactory explanation to simple pilgrims, for whom any object placed in contact with the tombs of the sainted dead may have miraculous power. It is interesting to remark that a model plough is, as all who know

the Egyptian bazaar at Constantinople will bear out, a recognized talisman. As to the wheat, it was probably intended in the first instance as an offering of firstfruits to the dead to bring good luck to the coming crop.®

The transference from agricultural to human fertility 1 Davis, Astatic Turkey, p. 251; V.de Bunsen, Soul of a Turk, p. 175 ;

cf. Haji Khalfa, tr. Armain, p. 671 ; Ramsay, Pauline Stud., p. 173.

2 FLW. #H. 3 Cuinet, Turquie d’ Asie, wv, 36.

4 In Murray’s Constantinople, p. 129. 5 Voyage to Constantinople, B.M. Sloane MS. 2720, f. 28: cf. Pardoe, City of the Sultans, i, 54.

6 So plaited wheat-ears of new corn are shown suspended on the walls of a Macedonian tekke by Evans (F.H.S. xxi, 203) and to an etkon of the Virgin by Kanitz (Bulgarie, p. 409). I noticed at the mausoleum of Jehangir near Lahore in India a pile of wheat on the tomb, possibly used in a similar way.

‘ Survivals’ at Springs 107 is an easy one. The whole is a combination of a cult of the dead with the half-religious, half-practical use of medicinal springs.t As to ‘ survival’, we have no evi-

dence for a Christian cult at these thermae, and the

grave of Murad is of course authentic ; but in the same city we have a hot spring with a long religious pedigree. 5. Between the Esx1 and Yeni Kuxvurttiv baths the Greeks celebrate S. Patricius, bishop of Brusa, who was, according to tradition, martyred at these baths, the site of which was then occupied by a temple of Asklepios.?

The Turks, independently of Christian tradition, or otherwise, have built between the two baths a turbe containing the tomb of Akchi Baba.3

6. Spring of Apu IsHax, Erzerum. This cult, centring in a spring before the Tabriz gate of the city, 1s ambiguous. The spring is connected by Armenians with the martyrdom (a.p. 796) of the Christian saints Eusebius and Isaac,4 by the Turks with a Moslem named Abu Ishak.

7. The famous hot springs at Kurt Yatova in Bithynia have a similar history. In ancient times, as their name, I7v6ita @epud, implies, they were dedicated

to Apollo, from whom the Christian 5. Michael inherited them.s For the Turks the place is sanctified by

the burial there of an ‘ abdal’ dervish.6 Here, as at

t In Syria the power of fertilizing women is attributed directly (and anthropomorphically) to the velis of hot springs (Curtiss, Prim. Semzittc Relig., pp. 116-17). 2 Acta SS. (April 28) mentions the temple of Asklepios, which, however, does not figure in the Synax. Cp. (May 19): the healing god is of

course appropriate at such a site. For the modern cult of 8. Patricius see Kandis, [Ipotoa, pp. 132 and 200. The bath known as Bekiar Hammam is by the Greeks considered sacred to S. John (zb7d., p. 82).

3 F, W. H. I could not discover whether the turbe was, as in

no. 4, connected with cures at the baths. 4 Cuinet, Turquie d’ Asie, i, 185; Lynch, Armenia, 11, 212; Evliya, Travels, ti, 27; cf. Haji Khalfa, tr. Armain, p. 652. 5 Procopius, De Aedif., v, 3. 6 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. 1, 114.

108 Transference of Natural Sanctuaries—Springs Brusa, the Mohammedan development is the weak link

in the pedigree, the connexion between the baths and the ‘ abdal’ not being made out. 8. At the hot springs of ARMuptu in Bithynia a very similar development appears to have taken place in the cult. Here we have a strong presumption of an ancient nymph cult, a well-developed medieval and modern Christian saint cult, and the materials for a Mohammedan dede cult. As no printed study of this site is available, I have discussed it in some detail later on.? But the cult of a dede is not an inseparable accompaniment of a hot spring for Turks.3 g. At Buyux Tepe Kevui on the Upper Granicus is such a spring, shown by an inscription to have been sacred to Artemis in Roman times.4 ‘The bath-house, into which the inscription is built, is still largely Roman.

The Greeks still consider the hot spring an ayasma of S. Constantine.s There is no evidence, however, for a corresponding Turkish cult.®

It may be here noted that the collocation of natural t In 1610 the French ambassador, de Gontaut Biron, found a mosque served by two ‘ santons’ (probably the turbe of the ‘ abdal ’) within a hundred yards of the baths (Ambassade, in Arch. H1st. Gascogne, xvi (1888), p. 126). But the pious Evliya Efendi, who visited the baths in 1640 (Travels, ii, 40), does not mention the saint’s tomb as a pilgrimage. 2 Pp. 466 ff.

3 It is to me very significant that Evliya, the seventeenth-century Pausanias of ‘Turkey, in spite of his excessive reverence for saints, betrays no superstitious view of the curative powers of the hot springs of Brusa, though he describes them at length (Yravels, ii, 10).

4 C.I.G. 3695 e. 5 Fr. W.H.

6 The cult of the ayasma of Yasi Euren (Tymandos) cited by Ramsay (Pauline Studies, p. 184, cf. Hist. Geog., p. 402 ; also Murray’s Asia Minor, p. 147) as a survival from antiquity would be a parallel case, were there any evidence to connect the ayasma with the dedication to Hercules Restitutor (C.J.L., iii, Supp. 6867) in the neighbouring village : but there is no such evidence, and a priorz the coldness of the spring is against its dedication to Herakles (cf. Aristophanes, Nubes, 1051: mot

wuypa oyta mwnor eldes ‘HpdkAera Aovrpa; and Athenaeus, xii, 6).

Peris of Kainarja Baths 109 hot baths and mosques (as, ¢.g., in two cases in the Kutahia district cited by Haji Khalfa)* does not necessarily imply a sacred site, since mosque, caravanseral, and

bath are regarded as the first necessities at any frequented halting-place: but a mosque at a hot spring may also be regarded as a precaution against unorthodox superstition. 10. Karnarja, Brusa. An extremely interesting case of a cure which took place at these (sulphurous) baths is

related by Lady Blunt. -It shows that superstition, unaided by religion, may go far towards establishing a cult with elaborate ritual. Lady Blunt tells her story as follows :

The patient, a woman crippled by rheumatism, incubated, armed with a petition to the perts,3 by whom the bath was known to be haunted, for a whole night in the inner bath-chamber, which smells strongly of sulphur. Her account, verbatim, reads exactly like the text of an Epidaurian stele not yet edited by the priests. She first became unconscious ; then, coming to herself,

she felt ‘invisible beings’ (it was quite dark) chafing her limbs. Next a pail of cold water was thrown over her, and the shock and fright made her stand on her feet and walk a few steps towards the door, calling for help. ‘The departure of the peris, marked by the banging of a door, was immediately followed by the arrival of her friends. In the morning the patient retained the use of her limbs, and in recognition of the cure a sheep was sacrificed, which, we may well imagine, was eaten by the peris concerned. Here we have a well-developed ritual and effective r ‘Tr. Armain, p. 688.

-2 People of Turkey, by a Consul’s Daughter [F. Blunt], ii, 226-9 ; the bath has long been considered miraculous: cf. J. Pardoe, Crty of the Sultans, 1, 58. 3 For this rather uncommon method of communication cf. Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, p. 160.

110 Transference of Natural Sanctuartes—Springs

organization joined to a cult which has never reached the stage of religion. Obviously, the perzs of Kainarja only need conversion to Islam and a turbe for their home

to rank amongst the most orthodox pilgrimages. Obviously, too, no Christian precedent is needed for such a cult, though for all we know one may have existed at Kainarja before the Turkish conquest.

It is important to note here that the conception of the ‘ manifestation of the god’ by natural hot springs, which is the usually accepted explanation of superstitious usages in connexion with them, is not a necessary factor in the development of this cult.( Baths in general, owing doubtless to their dim atmosphere ! and echoing

vaults, together with the necessity of exposing the person during their use, are well known to be dangerous

haunts of peris and jinns.» In spite of this somewhat sinister reputation a bath, like a spring, may become superstitiously associated with the name of a holy man,3 like that of the Bektashi saint, Piri Dede, at Marsovan,

associated by Christians with S. Barbara, in whose t For a well infested by jzmns see Hume Grifhth, Behind the Veil in Persia, p. 166. Deriving from the same conception is the idea in Moslem eschatology that the souls of the just remain in the Well of Souls till the Day of Judgement. 2 Palgrave, Ulysses, pp. 58 f.; [Blunt], People of Turkey, ii, 226; Lane, Mod. Egyptians, 11, 37; E. Sykes, Persta and tts People, p. 331 ; Burton, Arabian Nights, v, 54; Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. del Aste

Mineure, p. 111. Jewish women in Turkey propitiate the spirits of baths when nursing children (Danon in Onziéme Congrés d’Orientalistes, Paris, 1897, Sect. vil, 264); the reason is probably that their breasts are exposed while bathing; cf. also on this point a story in Legrand’s Contes Populatres Grecs, p. 48. Specific instances of haunted

baths are cited by Palgrave (loc. cit.: at Trebizond); J. Nikolaos ( OSnaods, p. 245: at Varna); Evliya (Travels, ii, 13: at Brusa) ; and Polites ([Tapaddcets, no. 674: at Athens, where the peris are called Nereids) ; cf. also Synaxaria, Sep. 26. L. Einsler in Z.D.P.V., x, 16081, gives an excellent account of superstitions connected with baths. 3 Schumacher in P.E£.F., O.S. for 1888, p. 151, gives a case where patients bathe in certain hot baths and then proceed to visit the tomb of a holy man in the neighbourhood.

Analogous Mill-Cults INI tegend a bath figures. Similarly, the baths constructed by Mohammed II at the mosque of Eyyub have, on

account of their position, acquired a reputation for curative powers.’

An exactly similar development in the case of mills may here be noted. Both water- and wind-mills are in Greece reputed the haunt of evil spirits (xaAuKdvrlapor),3

and no doubt the same is true of the other side of the Aegean. ‘The next step is the conception of the millspirits as beneficent. Near Monastir Lady Blunt found a mill which was deliberately selected as a suitable spot for working magic cures in ‘ the seven weeks following Easter ’.4 Finally, in Asia Minor a water-mill 1s selected

as a place of incubation on the ground that a saint named Haji Bekir performed the miracle for its owner

and, consequently (or inconsequently), haunts the building.s

These notes on the two most important classes of ‘natural’ sanctuaries lead us to the conclusion that Turk and Christian are equally prone to mountain and spring cults, which are natural to almost any primitive religion on account of their close connexion with agri-

culture. When these cults are developed, anthropomorphism becomes more or less prominent, though, t Above, chap. iv, no. 3. Similarly, the bath figuring in the legend of the Forty Martyrs is shown at Sivas (below, p. 393). Is the Mithraeum in the baths of Caracalla a classical parallel ? The waters of Alexandria Troas owe their virtue to the protection of a ‘ santon’ (Bussierre, Lettres,i, 189). Cf. also Kitchener in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1877, . 121. ° 2 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, p. 156. 3 Polites, [Japaddcets, nos. 624-6, 628~37, and note on no. 624 (p.

1341); cf. also nos. 848, 849, for the tradition that the invention or perfecting of windmills was due to devils. 4 People of Turkey, 11, 236.

5 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de l Asie Mineure, pp. 210, 335. Cf. a sanctuary of S. Mamas in a cellar with a winepress mentioned by the same authors, p. 195.

112 Transference of Natural Sanctuartes—Springs

owing to the ‘ popular’ origin of Turkish saints, as opposed to the ecclesiastical canonization required for sainthood by the Christian Churches, it reaches a completer stage among the Turks than among the Christians. The Turk is quite at liberty to choose or even invent the patron of a mountain or spring and build his tomb, whereas the Christian’s choice is restricted to the existing calendar, and, though he may bolster up the connexion between cult and saint by more or less probable legends, this rarely gets so far as to warrant a tomb. As to the question of ‘ survivals’ in mountain and spring cults, we have seen in some of the cases cited above that there 1s a tradition or even material evidence of previous Christian occupation. But the ‘ spiritual ’ inheritance is so impalpable that reasonable people will content themselves with saying that these cults, whether actually initiated by Moslem, Christian, or Pagan, belong.to the same primitive phase of religious thought and are developed along similar lines. It is the phase of thought, and not every one, or even most, of its manifestations, which is the immortal element and the true survival.

xX

GENERAL CONCLUSIONS ROM our inquiry as a whole we have arrived at the Beeonclusion that, while Islam in Turkey can be proved

in many instances to have succeeded to a material inheritance from Christendom({a corresponding‘ spiritual’ inheritance is seldom proved and generally unprovable.

In the few cases where it can be authenticated, the inherited sanctity seems due less to any vague awe attaching to particular localities than to the desire to continue the practical benefits, especially healing, derived from the cult of the dead. A wider survey of the history of Moslem sanctuaries in Turkey would probably bring into further prominence the purely human conditions governing the vogue of important holy places. We may note here that these are generally towns,! whose sanctity consists ultimately in an accumulation of saints’ tombs due to the long

importance of the town in question as a centre of population. The continuance of their vogue as religious

centres depends directly on the continuance of their population and is materially aided by the establishment in them of the religious orders and consequent organiza-

tion. An isolated sanctuary, if on a frequented route, especially the great pilgrim road to Mecca, stands a greater chance of wide popularity than one remote from it: if the road becomes less populous, the sanctuary suffers with it. The decline of the tekke of Sidi Battal with the disuse of the pilgrim road is a case in

point. Of the converse an illustration is offered by t Konia, Brusa, formerly Isnik, and probably Kirshehr, are instances. 2 See below, p. 705. A good Christian parallel is 8. Nicolas at Myra, which is no longer of religious importance, since the pilgrims, travelling

3295-1 I

114 General Conclustons Musa Tekke, a healing sanctuary near Kachanik (on the Mitrovitza line in Serbian Macedonia). Here the immediate proximity of the sanctuary to the railway secures it offerings thrown from the windows of every passing train and a publicity which it could hardly hope for if it were in a more remote situation. The popularity of country sanctuaries without these adventitious aids tends to be either strictly local (exceptionally, as in the case of the tomb of Ertoghrul at Sugut, national) or sectarian, corresponding respectively to tribal and religious divisions of the population. Of the sectarian type, the convent of Haji Bektash,' with its dependent villages inhabited by affiliated laymen, 1s a notable instance, recalling, but in no way dependent on, or surviving from, the ancient Anatolian religious polities.

‘Natural’ sanctuaries are of purely local religious importance, though curative springs, some of which fall into this category, attract for practical reasons a

wider clenteéle.

As to the larger question of the inheritance of religious tradition in Asia Minor irrespective of period, it must be admitted that the theory ‘ once a holy place, always a holy place’ does not in fact hold good. It 1s truer in Syria,? where (1) the bulk of the population has always been of the same (Semitic) stock, and (2) many saints and sites of the Old Testament cycle and some others are venerated alike in Jewish, Christian, and Mohammedan tradition. by steamer, have neither need to hug the Karamanian coast nor practical reasons for putting in there. 1 See below, pp. 502 ff. 2 Compare, ¢.g., the perpetuated holiness of such places as Jerusalem (city), Carmel and Sinai (mountains), and Hierapolis-Membij (spring) ; for the general question of ‘ survivals’ of religious practice in Syria see S. I. Curtiss, Prim. Semitic Relig., passim. In Albania, which was converted but recently, and has largely kept its population unmixed, investigation would probably disclose similar phenomena : see above, p. 71, n. 2.

Pre-Moslem Sanctity Lost 115 In ‘Turkey and especially Asia Minor we should ex-

pect, and indeed find, more connexion of this kind between paganism and Christianity than between Christianity and Islam, since the coming of Islam coincided

with a social cataclysm and a great displacement of population.

While it is always hard to demonstrate that an

existing Moslem holy place does not inherit an ancient religious site or tradition, the burden of proof

must rest with the other side. The holiest place for Moslems in Constantinople to-day, the mosque of Eyyub, had, so far as we know, no Christian predecessor.!

On the other hand, it is apparent that many sites of extraordinary sanctity both in ancient and in Christian times have at the present day lost all tradition of that sanctity. Ephesus, a place of the greatest religious importance during both periods, owes its remaining Chris-

tian sanctity to its proximity to Smyrna and the Greek coast-towns, and it seems never to have passed on its religious tradition to Islam. The existence of the fine mosque of Isa Bey, considered by Ramsay as proof that the city was a holy place for medieval Turks, seems to me only to mark the fact that it was once an important

centre of Turkish population. Any one of the still

existing turbes at Ephesus might, indeed, under favourable conditions, especially endowment, organization, and permanent Moslem population, have become and remained a popular Mohammedan pilgrimage. Failing

these advantages, they have fallen with the great mosque into neglect and ruin. The Asklepieion of Pergamon, under the administration of the ancients

one of the most frequented healing shrines of the known

world, has bequeathed to the town no religious tradition. Christian Pergamon, again, has inherited from 1 Above, chap. vil, no. 3. 2 In Geog. ‘fourn. xx (1902), p. 274, see above, p. 19, I2

116 General Conclustons the Apocalyptic Church no special Christian sanctity,

and to Islam the town has no religious significance whatever. The temple at Olba, once the seat of hereditary priest-kings and of great local religious importance, shows traces of having been transformed into a church,

but none of Mohammedan occupation.? At Athens the Erechtheum, which, if a comparatively recent build-

ing, at least inherited the most venerable traditions of the city, became a church under the Byzantines, but a dwelling-house under the Turks. Of ‘ natural ’ sanctuaries two instances in particular, the Corycian cave in Cilicia and the ‘ Chimera’ flame in Lycia, seem to afford striking confirmation of the thesis that there was much less ‘ survival ’ in the Christian-Moslem than in the Pagan-Christian transition period. At the Corycian cave, a naturally impressive place regarded with great religious awe in ancient times,

a Christian church was built on the very site of the pagan temple. The nomad Turks who now inhabit the district use the cave itself as a stable for camels 3 and scout the idea of anything supernatural about it.4 The ‘Chimera’ (Yanar) in Lycia, a natural flame issuing from the ground, was naturally connected in ancient times with Hephaestus ;5 ruins of a Christian church were found near it.6 But the mysterious flame is used by the prosaic modern inhabitants (nomads) for culinary purposes.7 t The ‘ grave of Antipas’ now held sacred by local Christians (near the reputed church of S. John : see Lambakis, ‘Eara ’Aorépes, p. 284) isarecent discovery. In the thirties his tomb was in the mosque known as S. Sophia (C. B. Elliott, Travels, ii, 127).

2 Bent in F.H.S. xii, 206 ff. 3 Bent in F.H.S. xii, 212-14. 4 Bent in P.R.G.S. 1890, p. 457. 5 Pauly-Wissowa, s.v. Hephaistion (1). 6 Petersen in von Luschan’s Lykien, ii, 138 ff.

7 Beaufort, Karamania, p. 46; Spratt and Forbes, Lycia, ii, 182. The flame, however, is so far superstitiously regarded that it is said not to cook stolen food, and its soot is good for sore eyes (Colnaghi in New-

Moslem Sanctity Lost 117 The religious awe attaching to ancient places of worship thus dwindles or dies where it is not continuously

reinforced by organization. It is human organization in the end which was responsible for the fame of all the

widely reputed sanctuaries of antiquity. All owed their extended vogue either to the external organization of politics or commerce, or to the internal organization of an astute, or even learned, priestly caste dealing in cures, oracles, or mysteries. Both classes alike were dependent on facility of communication, again largely

a human consideration, for the continuance of their prosperity. The traditions of Moslem shrines are mortal likewise. The zekke of Sidi Battal, whether a Christian holy place

by origin or not,t is doomed. It owes a’ precarious survival principally to its endowment and hereditary sheikhs,? who have preserved the continuity of its tradi-

tions despite the fall of the Bektashi order and the desertion of the pilgrims’ road. But what proportion of ‘Turkish tekkes can claim as much? For every dying

cult like that of Sidi Ghazi one could point to a hundred dead: and new ones daily grow up to take their place and satisfy the religious needs of a varying popu-

lation.3

In Europe, where Islam gives back, the stages are ton, Travels and Dtscovertes, i, 345; of. Cockerell, Travels, p. 170). The Greeks connect the mysterious flame with the Wandering Jew (Po-

lites, [Tapaddcets, il, 788), who is called Kournrjs in Lesbos (Georgeakis and Pineau, Folk-Lore de Lesbos, p. 345). The word occurs in Zotos’s AeEtxov tav ‘Ayiwv IIdvrwy in the meaning merely of ‘ silly

old fool’, For the Wandering Jew as a shepherd who offended Moses see Hanauer, Folk-Lore of the Holy Land, p. 42: for the story as a whole see G. Paris’s Légendes du Moyen Age, pp. 149-221.

t See below, pp. 705-Io. 2 Ouvré, Un Mors en Phrygie, p. 87; Radet, in Arch. des Miss. vi

(1895), pp- 446-7. |

3 For a good instance see L. Ross’s account of the discovery of a Moslem saint in 1845 at Larnaka in Cyprus (Reisen nach Kos, pp. 198 f.) ;

also the extraordinary history of the canonization of an Egyptian

118 General Conclusions clear. The story of Hasan Baba,' the erstwhile saint of

Tempe, is typical. Under the Crescent the intercessions of Hasan and the touch of his ancient weapons cured all human ills, and many halted at his tekke. Forty years ago (1882) Thessaly fell to Greece. A traveller passed through Tempe the year before the cession and found the zekke intact and the dervish guardian at his post, but on the point of departure.

The arms of Hasan Baba had lost their virtue—* God has now withdrawn His strength from them ’—and did mighty works no longer.2. To-day nothing remains of the sanctuary save a minaret without a mosque, a turbe with plundered graves, and a few roofless walls. The withdrawal of the Moslem population from Thessaly due to the change of frontier has here been sufficient to blot out spiritually and materially a sanctuary of some

local importance. ‘The inference is that changes in political and social conditions, especially change of population, of which Asia Minor has seen so much, can and do obliterate the most ancient local religious traditions, and, consequently, that our pretensions to accuracy in delineating local religious history must largely depend on our knowledge of these changes. Without this knowledge, which we seldom or never have, the

assumption too often made on the ground of some accidental similarity that one half-known cult has supplanted another is picturesque but unprofitable guess-

work.

mummy at the Seven Towers of Constantinople in the early years of the eighteenth century (below, pp. 352-4). t For full references see below, p. 357, n. I. 2 V. Chirol, Twixt Greek and Turk, p. 116.

PART II

STUDIES IN TURKISH POPULAR HISTORY AND RELIGION :

« (Certain chapters are missing here, such as ‘ The Religions of Asia Minor’ (following chap. xi), ‘ Arab Saints and Turkish Ghazis ’ (fol-

lowing the present chap. xxi); in others, sections only have been written. Thus, chap. xiii is all that remains of a projected treatment of the ‘ History of the Shia Faith in Asia Minor ’, the scattered accounts

of the Bektashi alone represent a chapter on ‘ The Mevlevi and the Bektashi ’, in chap. xiv the sections on Mountain and Spring Cults are lacking, and chap. xxii ends abruptly.—M. M. H.]

ES

Veowi

L

(?

2473)

é~&.

é eats ol &

( \e a Bite Vide SASS) aR E .[253] = é

An. ‘ * rs ~7G pry 4 sued,

6 rg , ~ % é 2 et A | a B oom | 015 Oa ~ >) b enroe 9om, —t .” [F yt nh $,¢ ee | °4Cow SS) og, ~ -omdeed

On Ki \

THE SEVEN SLEEPERS , (For a discussion of their legend see pages 309-19.)

XI

INTRODUCTION

Tis results of this of first collection, from printed sources, material relatingmainly to the popular religion of ‘Turkey will come as a surprise to many. The field as such has been touched by few articles and fewer books, yet the stray references to local cults and legends contained in works of travel, reinforced in some cases by

personal inquiries, eke out this meagre supply of information to such an extent that the outlines of the subject as a whole and even glimpses of the individual development of certain popular cults can be attempted. That the whole should be imperfect and incomplete is almost inevitable in allsuch first attempts to arrange and systematize scattered information : professed orientalists in particular will find much to censure and to correct. Yet I have preferred to run this risk rather than

to omit an opportunity of sttmulating students and travellers in the Near East to further research in a fruitful and to a large extent virgin field. Such a compilation as this, whatever its defects, may afford them at least a collection of data, possibly a quickened interest in rustic religious phenomena too often dismissed in default of background as mere isolated curiosities. The interest of Turkish religious folk-lore as such is possibly small, since it is influenced to an overwhelming extent by Persian, Semitic, and even North African ideas. The purely Turkish element is difficult to recognize and probably small. It can be disentangled only when we are better informed as to the religious practice of the pre-Islamic Turks, including the still half-pagan

*Yuruk’? Turks of Asia Minor and western Persia. Mecca, Jerusalem, Kerbela, to some extent also Con-

122 Introduction stantinople and Cairo, are exchanges and clearinghouses of the religious ideas of the Moslem world, and it is inevitable that they should affect by various agencies

(notably returned pilgrims and vagrant holy men) the current of ideas even in the remotest villages of the Empire.

Yet the same is true to some extent of all religions but the most primitive, and for the history of religion in general no people’s beliefs can be left out of sight. From the comparative point of view, and especially for the study of the religions of the ancient world in the area now occupied by the Turkish Empire, the interest of the subject seems to me considerable, as disclosing, not, as might be expected, picturesque ‘ survivals ’ from

antiquity, but as bringing into prominence certain points which have been unconsciously kept in the background by the in some ways over-logical methods pursued by recent research. Credulity and an almost entire lack of logic as regards religious matters are not peculiar to the Turkish peasant. Religious practice is not immutable, though it seems to develop within certain broad lines. Apparently primitive features may be in reality of recent origin, secondary phenomena may become primary. Secular magic may influence and pervert religious ritual, secular folklore figures may under propitious influences take their place among the saints. Religious legend springs not only from allegory and actual religious history but from idle or interested gossip or from purely accidental occurrences such as the suc-

cessful predictions of holy men and the dreams and fancies of laymen arbitrarily interpreted. Irreconcilable legends may circulate at the same time in the same place ; it occurs only to a small class to unify the whole cycle of current legend, and this class, though not necessarily dishonest or interested, is still credulous and un-

critical. Analogies in ritual and legend, however ap-

Introduction 123 parently exact, seldom or never amount to proof of common origin, entirely different origins leading through

various development to identical results. The two creative forces—the popular and the learned (which are often equivalent to the lay and the priestly)—have been at work in some form on religion as far back as we

can see. In Turkey they can still be seen at work. It is this which gives to these Turkish studies a more than local interest.

XI! HETERODOX TRIBES OF ASIA MINOR § 1. INTRODUCTORY

Pr ESSOR VON LUSCHAN, inM1nor,* his Huxley lecture on Early Inhabitants of Asia has done much to bring order into our ideas of the still insuffciently known ethnological and religious divisions of that

country. His studies are based mainly on his personal observations, and his point of view is for the most part that of a physical anthropologist. His predecessors in field work, dealing generally with narrower areas, have produced a great mass of literature, scattered or in some cases difficult of access, and no serious attempt has been

made to approach the problems involved from the

historical side. It therefore seems worth while at this stage to bring together the scattered material of explorers and collate with it such historical information as may be gleaned from printed sources, with the object of presenting in one view a summary of the facts at our disposal and the problems they suggest for the investiga-

tion of future explorers in the history, and particularly the religious history, of Anatolia. European travellers in Asia Minor, mainly classical archaeologists and very seldom orientalists, are generally

better acquainted with Christianity than with Islam. Consequently, the divisions of the Christians are more obvious to them than those of the Mohammedan popu-

lations. By most the latter are regarded as a single whole, and any divergence they may notice from orthodox Sunni practice suggests to them that the population t In this chapter pp. 124-58 have already appeared in the 7. R. Anthr. Inst. li (1921), pp. 310 ff.; pp. 159-66 in the B.S.A. xx, pp. 95 ff. 2 FR. Anthr. Inst. xli, 221 ff.

Origins of Heterodox Practices 125 in question has been affected by Christianity, that is, that it represents an originally Christian population half-converted to Islam. ("i his archaeologically attractive theory is especially dangerous in so far as it touches anthropo-

logical questions, since the supposed converted Christians are naturally assumed to be a pre-Turkish, and, in default of evidence to the contrary (which is never forthcoming), an aboriginal population.

The archaeologists, then, mainly on the evidence afforded by religion, hold that (1) the heterodox tribes are converted Christians, and they gladly accept the theory of the anthropologists, based mainly on craniology, that (2) the heterodox tribes are aboriginal. ‘The orientalists, headed by Vambéry, deny both these statements, holding that the peoples concerned are mainly of Turkish blood and comparatively recent immigrants from western Persia or beyond. As far as religion is concerned, the main purpose of the present essay 1s to emphasize the fact that, though

crypto-Christians exist in Asia Minor, many, if not most, of the unorthodox practices obtaining amongst tribes supposed to have been originally Christian, are in fact to be referred either (1) to the primitive stratum

of religion, which survives in superstitious practice among Christians no less than Mohammedans, or (2) to

the Shia branch of the Mohammedan faith, which, though orthodox in Persia, is to the Sunni Turks quite

as much outside the pale as the Christianity of the Aymenian is to the Greek or vice versa.

(1 is probable that many Turkish tribes, passing met with Islam in the Shia form, so that the Shia

through northern Persia on their way westwards, first

religion may be considered to some extent as the link between paganism and Sunni Mohammedanism.) We can certainly point to a period during which a Shia, or at least a Persianizing, form of Islam was prevalent, t See below, pp. 469 ff.

126 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor together with a culture derived almost exclusively from Persia, in central Asia Minor.! Very considerable confusion has also arisen with re-

gard to the heterodox tribes of Asia Minor owing to a vague and inaccurate use of tribal and other names. It has been more or less assumed that, whatever their original significance, the names Yuruk, Turkoman, Kizil-

bash, Takhtaji, Bektash, &c., are on the same footing and have ethnological significance. An examination of what has been written on the tribes in question leads to the conclusion that some of these names denote, not ethnological, but religious and other divisions. ‘Thus, of the names cited above, Yuruk 2 in itself denotes no more than the nomadic life of the tribes so designated, while ‘T'urkoman is a tribal name wrongly used to cover

a much larger division of the population. Takhtaji (‘ woodcutter ’) is essentially a caste-name, Kizilbash (‘ red-head ’) is a nickname for a widely distributed religious sect, while Bektash designates members of a religious organization within that sect.3 So far from these categories being mutually exclusive, it would be possible for a single person to come under all of them.

§2. Tue Yuruks The term Yuruk has long been recognized by ethnologists as of very wide and vague application : in itself, as we have said, it signifies no more than ‘ nomadic ’. Dr. ‘Tsakyroglous of Smyrna, whose profession has given

him unusual opportunities for intimacy with the Yuruks of his vzlayet, is the only writer who has dealt with the Anatolian Yuruks as a whole. He enumerates no less t See below, pp. 167 ff. 4 Tk. yurumek=to walk. ‘The word ‘ Yuruk’ is first used, as far as I can discover, by Rycaut (Hist. of the Turks, uu, 138 ; cf. Pococke, Descr. of the East, u, ul, 108) of the nomads of the Troad. 3 See below, pp. 159 ff. 4 ITepi Tvovpovcwyv (pp. 40), Athens, 1891. There is also a French

Yuruk Names 127 than eighty-eight tribes of them, varying greatly in size and importance and distributed over all parts of Asia Minor.: His list, however, does not profess to be complete, though, if we except the short list of tribes in the Aidin vilayet given by Vambeéry,? it is the only attempt

to collect Anatolian tribal names. As the pamphlet containing this list is inaccessible, the list is given in full

below,3 together with some tribal names collected by Langlois in Cilicia, and, for comparison, a list of Turkoman tribes given to Niebuhr by Patrick Russell of Aleppo, together with Burckhardt’s list.

The Yuruk tribes (ashiret) bear for the most part personal names, presumably of ancestral chiefs, with or without the adjectival suffix -/z. Examples are Durgut, Ahmedli, Gueuk Musali, Sheikhli. It is significant that the chief of the latter tribe bears the surname Sheikhli

Baba Zade (‘Son of Father Sheikhli’). Other tribes bear names apparently denoting their habitat, as Ak-

daghli (‘of the White Mountain’), and Rumli, or characteristics as Kachar (‘runners ’), ‘Tash-evli (‘ stone-

house men’), Boini Injeli (‘ slim-figured men’), SariKechili (‘ men with yellow goats’). Traces of early divisions of originally united tribes are probably to be seen in the numerous tribal names running in pairs, such as Selge- and Keles-Kachar,+ Kara- and Sari-Tektranslation printed at Smyrna. [Another in German is said to exist in Globus, but I have failed to trace the reference.—M. M. H.] t Tsakyroglous, of. cit.,pp.13 ff. and 22: in view of theories regarding the origin of the Zebeks, I note on the latter page the name Zetbekli : the significance of the name seems to be somewhat similar to that of ITadAnxapr in Greek (cf. von Diest, Reisen und Forschungen, i, 27). * Das Tiirkenvolk, p. 606 (the names which do not figure in Tsakyro-

glous’s list are marked by an asterisk): Selge Kachar*, Keles Kachar, Kara Tekkeli, Sari Tekkeli, Sachi Karali, Eski Yuruk, Farsak, Kizil Kechili, Kara Kechili*, Khorgun, Burkhan, Yel Aldi, Karin Karali*, Karagachli*, Kirtish, Akdaghli, Narinjali, Jabar*, Tash Evli, Chepni. 3 Pp. 475 ff. 4 Vambéry, op. cit., p. 606; but according to Tsakyroglous (p. 17)

128 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor keli, Kizil- and Kara-Kechili. Colour-epithets, such as

Kara (‘black’), 4k (‘white’), Kizil (‘red’), Sari

(° yellow ’), and Gueuk (‘ blue ’) are probably in all cases

taken from the natural colour or distinctive markings of the flocks of two divisions of the same tribe ; this seems clear from the occurrence of such names as Ak-koyunlu (white sheep tribe), Alaja-koyunlu (spotted sheep tribe), Kizil-kechili (red goat tribe), &c. Some of the Anatolian tribe-names occur also farther east, as Odemishin Merv:

and Kengerlu in Transcaucasia.» From the Kachar tribe, which is still to be found in Transcaucasia, was descended the late dynasty of Persia.s Nadir Shah was of the Afshar tribe of Khorasan, with which the Anatolian Afshars claim kinship. Of the Yuruk tribes in the Aidin vilayet enumerated by Vambéry, the Burkhan,

Narinjali, and Kirtish still exist among the central Asian Turkomans. Bayandir is a subdivision of the Goklen tribe.s A very large proportion of the tribal names can be found also on the map of Asia Minor as village names, presumably denoting places where tribes or portions of tribes have settled. Examples are Baindir [Bayandir], Ushak, Odemish, Kenger, Durgutlu, and many others. Though most of these tribes are pastoral, some are addicted to other callings: the Kachar and Farsak are

camel-men, many of the Yuruks of Mount Ida are woodcutters, the Abdal, whom von Luschan identifies

with the gypsies, a beggar caste.6 Other tribes are distinguished by their skill in certain crafts, as the Turkmen, Harmandali, and Zili in carpet-weaving, and the Kenger of Adala (near Kula in Lydia) in massage.7 Kula Kachar, Keles Kachar, and Ova Kachar are subdivisions (mahallas)

of the same tribe. t Tsakyroglous, p. 21.

2 Vambéry, p. §72. 3 Vambéry, pp. 572, 577. ¢ Vambéry, p. 607. 5 Vambéry, p. 394.

6 ‘Tsakyroglous, op. cit.,p. 19. Wambéry (p. 391) found a subdivision of a central Asian Turkoman tribe so named. 7 Tsakyroglous, p. 21.

Yuruk Organization 129 The head of the tribe is called bey or shetkh.t The tribe is subdivided into kadtlehs (‘ clans’) or mahallas (‘ quarters ’, ‘ wards ’), the latter a word in common use as a division of a town among the settled populations. Divisions of the same tribe are found in widely separated

districts in Asia Minor: evidence of such splitting up is to be found in the occurrence of certain tribal names allover the map. On the other hand, some tribes have a well defined area within which their settlements are thickly planted. Of this the Afshar tribe of the Taurus affords a notable instance.? Similarly, the original home of the Farsak tribe in Asia Minor seems to have been the mountainous region north-west of Selefke which bears their name.3 But scattered units of both tribes,

to judge by the evidence of the map, wandered

far.

The languages current among the Yuruks are varied.

They are mostly rough dialects of Turkish, among which those of Azerbeijan and Jaghatai have been recog-

nized.4 Dr. Chasseaud of Smyrna tells me he has found that Yuruks from different parts (presumably of the Aidin wilayet), even when they acknowledge kinship,

are unable to understand each other. ‘Tsakyroglous says, further, that some tribes speak Kurdish, z. ¢. prob-

ably, that some nomads are Kurds, and that the Abdal speak a language of their own.5 As to the religion of the Yuruks, on which subject they are extremely reticent, very varied accounts have been given. Humann speaks of them in western Asia Minor as entirely without religion.6 Drs. Tsakyroglous t Tsakyroglous, p. 17. 2 Grothe, Vorderastenexpedttion, ii, 135 and map. See also Ramsay, Impressions of Turkey, pp. 108 ff. ; Tschihatscheff, Rezsen, p.14.; Skene, Anadol, p. 184; van Lennep, Travels in Asia Minor, ui, 96. 3 Haji Khalfa, tr. Armain, p. 665. 4 Tsakyroglous, of. cit., p. 23. 5 Tsakyroglous, p. 26, where samples are given. 6 Verb. Ges. f. Erdkunde, 1880, p. 248.

3295.1 K

130 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor and Chasseaud, with their more intimate knowledge, concur in considering them (negatively) heretical. Some

nomad tribes are certainly Shia, while the Yuruks of Lycia are reported by Bent to be good Sunni Mohammedans.? These discrepant accounts are intelligible only when we realize that the Yuruks are not a homogeneous race, but a collection of tribes and sub-tribes which, originally pagan, have fallen to a greater or less degree under various missionary influences. It 1s generally reported of -Yuruks that circumcision

is not usually practised among them, and that, when the operation is performed from motives of policy, they prefer that it should not be done by a Sunni in orthodox

fashion. A similar prejudice is implied by the story quoted by Tsakyroglous 3 from the Turkish newspaper Haktkat to the effect that a Jew from the Dardanelles

is habitually invited by the Yuruks of Mount Ida to perform for them some ritual act at marriages. This is probably a confusion, the same word (duyun) being commonly used by the Turks both for marriage and circumcision (properly sunnet).4 Dr. Chasseaud tells me

that, when he has operated on Yuruks, the feast was made several days after, and a khoja duly invited. It was then explained to the latter that the operation had been already performed, and his scruples silenced by a present of money. The object of this manceuvre is

probably to ensure the proper disposal of the part amputated in order that it may not come into the 1C. B. Elliott, Travels, ii, 107 (Turkomans near Akhisar) ; Haji Khalfa, tr. Armain, p. 656 (Turkomans near Trebizond) ; ibzd. p. 683

(iva of Bozuk=Kirshehr). The Afshars are Sunni (Karolides, Ta Kopava, p. 42) but do not veil women. 2 F.R. Anthr. Inst. xx, 274; cf. von Luschan, Lykien, ii, 216. 3 ITepi Ivovpovewy, p. 33. 4 So apparently in India the Persian word for marriage (shadt) 1s used for both ceremonies (Hastings, Encycl. of Religion, s.v. Circumcision, p. 678). For the performance of the operation by non-Mussulmans, see the same article, p. 677.

Yuruk Circumetsion 131 wrong hands.: Similarly, Dr. Chasseaud tells me both Yuruk women and Turkish midwives in towns are exceedingly scrupulous that the placenta should be properly

disposed of.2 Some Cappadocian Greeks hide the umbilical cord of new-born children in a chink in the wall of church or school, which ensures that the child grows

up devout or learned.3 It is natural to compare the similar superstitions about nail-parings and extracted

teeth.

1 Hastings (Encycl. of Religion, s.v. Circumcision, p. 678) says ‘ the exuviae seem generally to be burned or buried, sometimes in a mosqu2’. At an imperial circumcision in 1582 the part amputated was presented in a golden box to the Queen Mother (de Vigenére, Jllustr. sur Chalcondile, p. 271, in de Mezeray’s Hust. des Turcs, i). In the seventeenth century the Turks burnt it (Aaron Hill, Ottoman Empire, p. 47). Among Persians of the same date aut gallints edendum dabatur aut a femints steritlibus spe progeniet consumebatur (Raphael du Mans, Estat de Perse, ed. Schefer, p. 77). Byzantios in the middle of the last century writes : To amotpnbev péepos Samreras 7 pepetat ws dudaxnripiov emi THS KedadAns 070 Tob veopwriatou ( KwvaotavtwovmoXts, ili, 485). Osman

Bey states that the part amputated is presented to the parents on a plate, where they in return place the customary gifts (Les Imans et les Derviches, p. 121). The magic power of the part in question is thus proved: it might be.used actively as a charm or merely put out of harm’s way. The modern Turks in towns are said to be very careless in the matter, doubtless regarding the superstitions concerned as old wives’ tales: hence possibly the scruples of the Yuruks, who are still punctilious in the matter. 2 On the importance attached to the placenta in Egypt and else= where, see Seligman and Murray in Man, 1911, p. 168, and in Ridgeway Essays, p. 451. For Turkey, cf. Abbott, Macedonian Folklore, p. 123.

3 Pharasopoulos, Ta LvAara, p. 41. 4 Frazer (Taboo and the Perils of the Soul, pp. 267 ff.) shows that superstitious care in the disposal of nails and teeth is world-wide, the

original idea being to prevent their malicious use by sorcerers. In Bosnia nail-parings are placed where contact with unclean things is not likely, in fountains, in the earth, or in a mosque (Wiss. Mitth. Bosnien, vil, 279). For the superstition in Asia Minor, see White, Trans. Vict. Inst. xxxix (1907), p. 159; de Bunsen, Soul of a Turk, p. 147; AucherEloy, Voyages, p. 71 (hole in mosque wall at Angora used for extracted

teeth and toothache so cured); in Macedonia, Abbott, Macedonian K2

132 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor When a Sunni preacher visits the Yuruk villages of Mount Ida during Ramazan, he is lodged in the best tent and royally entertained, but induced by a present of money to abstain from meddling with the Yuruks’ ceremonies and from preaching and teaching.! All this merely shows that the tribes in question are not Sunni. Little has been extracted from them as to the positive side of their religion. According to Dr. Chasseaud, the Yuruks have an initiation ceremony corre-

sponding to circumcision at which he has himself been present, though he was unable to see what took place. Further, their holy places—called, as all over Turkey, dedesfare frequently trees or bushes, not remarkable to the outside observer, which they hang with rags ; certain. springs, also not outwardly remarkable, are held sacred. yOn two occasions Dr. Chasseaud, when in the company of Yuruks, was prevented by them from draw-

ing water at such springs, though the tabu did not extend to the Yuruks themselves. A Yuruk mountaincult with a festival on 15 August on the summit of Ida

and vaguely connected with two giants (male and female), to whom small offerings of money are made, has come under my own observation.?. These hints, so far as they go, point to a primitive animistic religion slightly touched with anthropomorphism.

The Lycian Yuruks (as opposed to the heretical ‘Takhtaji) are regarded by both Bent 3 and von Luschan 4as good Sunni Mohammedans : they have khojas,

the Koran, and circumcision, say their five prayers, eschew pork and wine, and make pilgrimage to Mecca. Folklore, p. 214; in Lesbos, Georgeakis and Pineau, Folk-Lore de Lesbos,

. I.

’ : Hakikat, ap. Tsakyroglous, p. 33; cf. for Persian nomads Malcolm, Hist. of Persia, i, 433.

3 Cf. Leaf, in Geog. Fourn. xl, 1912, p. 37. The date seems at first sight to be a link with Christianity, but see above, p. 100, n. 3.

3 F. R. Anthr. Inst. xx, 274. 4 Lykien, ii, 216.

Yuruk Religion 133 In villages they assimilate themselves to the settled population, though intermarriage is rare.t Sunni propaganda, as we have seen, exists among the Yuruks of

Ida: it is said to have made great strides elsewhere, especially in the Konia vilayet.z, The Yuruks of Lycia are probably of comparatively recent conversion. Of the Shia heresy there is little or no trace except among the confessedly ‘ Kizilbash’ tribes,3 which we shall discuss at length ; 4 we do not know whether Shia missionaries are at work among the pagan nomads. Nor

are there among the Yuruks any positive traces of Christianity, though the idea is widely, if vaguely, cur-

rent. ‘he evidence we have points to the conclusion that, except where they have been affected by Shia or Sunni propaganda, the Yuruk tribes are ‘ primitive ’ in

religion; further, that by race and speech they are largely ‘Turkish, and may be regarded as still unsettled fragments of the nomad hordes which strayed into Asia Minor in the Middle Ages.

The Turks, before they left their home in Central Asia, worshipped the sky-god (Tafiri) 5 and spirits of t Von Luschan, Lykien, 11, 216. 2 'Tsakyroglous, [Tept [vovpovKwy, p. 35. 3 I here note the frequency of the name Haidar among Yuruks, perhaps alink with the Kizilbash. The Yuruks are said by the writer of the

fusion. .

Hlakikat article to drink wine, which is still negative evidence of Shiism, and to be visited yearly by an itinerant holy man (? from Syria), which is true of the Lycian Kizilbash and may be merely a con-

4 Below, pp. 139 ff. Some include the Chepni in this category ; see Oberhummer and Zimmerer, Durch Syrien, p. 393. Wilson, in 7.R.G.S. 1884, 314, calls them Nosairi by religion. See also von Diest, Reisen und Forschungen, 1, 27.

8)On the word see Vambéry, Prim. Cultur des Turko-Tatarischen V olkes, pp. 240 ff. This seems to have been the current word for ‘ God’ in Turkish till quite a late date, cf. Schiltberger, ed. Hakluyt, p. 74, ed. Penzel, p. 149; Leunclavius, Pandectes, §177 ; Hammer-Hellert, Hist.

Emp. Ott. iv, 64. It occurs frequently in the modern folk-tales collected by Kunos. [Among the Turkish-speaking Moslems of Macedonia it is still used as a synonym for Allah. M. M. H.]

134 Heterodox Tribes of Asia Minor earth and water; they had no priestly caste: That ancestor-worship developed early is clear from the present comprehensive use of dede (lit. ‘ grandfather ’) to describe any holy place :? gaining ground, possibly because more or less permitted in Islam, it seems to have been fused with the original elements of their religion, and especially with the cult of ‘ high places ’, originally doubtless the places where the sky-god was worshipped, especially for rain.3 We consequently find that mountains in Turkey frequently bear human names, which

are, or are said to be, those of saints. When these

saints’ names are also those of tribes, it seems probable that they are regarded as the eponymous ancestors of

the tribes concerned. In tribes still without a priestly caste the tribal chief is the natural person to invoke the sky-god on behalf of the tribe, and the eventual confusion between the sky-god who sends rain and the tribal chief whose prayers induce him to send it, 1s merely the confusion between deity and intercessor which is familiar enough in Christendom. The rainmaker-sheikh and the magician or dervish are hardly distinguishable, so that we are not surprised if ‘Tur Hasan Veli,4 the saint of the Hasan Dagh in Cappadocia,

and his tribesmen are said in folk-tales to have been dervishes,5 or if Ibn Batuta ® says of Baba Saltuk,7 the tribal saint of a group of Crimean Tatars, that he was ( Eliot, Turkey in Europe, p.79. The latter is still true of the nomads. The first Turkish ruler to embrace Islam is said to have been Satok Bogra, Khan of Turkestan, died 1048 (Grenard in ‘Fourn. Astat. xv, 1900, pp. 5 ff.). 2 See below, p. 256. For dede with the meaning of numen, cf. Ramsay, Pauline Studies, p. 172. “3 This custom is preserved among the Shia Turks (Kizilbash) of Pontus (White, in Trans. Vict. Inst. xxxix (1907), p. 154). They have also a festival at the summer solstice held on mountain tops. 4 See below, p. 339. 5 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de ? Asie Mineure, pp. 212 ff.

6 Tr, Sanguinetti, i1, 416, 445. 7 See below, p. 340.

Turkish Tribal Formations 135 ‘said to have been a diviner’. Haji Bektash himself, before the usurpation of his tomb by the Hurufi sect, seems to have been no more than a tribal ancestor.? Many of the ‘ seven hundred dervishes’ of his cycle, who came with him from Khorasan at the bidding of Khoja Ahmed of Yasi for the conversion of Rum,3 must have been tribal heroes of the same kind. This grouping round tribal leaders seems to be the basis of the early Turkish polity : the tribal tie was not always one of blood, since powerful tribes or leaders included under their own name less important allies. The tribe known from its leader as Osmanli was a political combination of this sort, and is said to have been composed of seven tribes, of which at least one (the Farsak 4) still exists independently as a Yuruk tribe. A similar political grouping in recent times is that of the Shah Savand Kurds, which was formed artificially and purely for political reasons by Shah Abbas of Persia

in the seventeenth century.5 Such probably was the grouping of tribes round the Seljuk dynasty, which succeeded in attaining to a considerable degree of material civilization and political cohesion, dominating the greater part of Asia Minor. When the central power became weakened, however,

the combination disintegrated into smaller territorial units, resting probably on similar tribal groupings, which kept their names in some cases for many centuries.6 The province of Tekke (Adalia) is a notable instance. Tekke or Tekkeli is a ‘ Yuruk’ tribe in Asia ™ See below, p. 160. 2 See below, pp. 488-9 ff. 3 Evliya, Travels, ut, 70 ff.

4 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. i, 361. 5 Bent, Report Brit. Ass., 1889 (Newcastle), Sect. H, p. 3. © Kizil Ahmedli (in Paphlagonia) and Mentesh (in Lycia) are pro-

bable examples. In 1564 the Venetian Relazioni (Alberi, ser. ITI, vol, ii, 19) mention as leading families in Asia Minor the Kizil Ahmedli

(Paphlagonia), Diercanli (Sarukhan ?), Durcadurli (Zulkadr), and Ramadanli (Cilicia).

136 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor Minor to this day!—the name occurs also in central Asia —and the Tekke-oglu, descendants or reputed descendants of the tribal eponym, were still important derebeys in the Adalia district aslate asthe reforms of Mahmud II.2

Down to the reforms and centralization of the early nineteenth century the nomad tribes were allowed a great deal of liberty and were administered by their own beys,3 only occasionally by strangers appointed from

Constantinople.s They seem to have been turbulent and easily excited to rebellion. Their risings were often fomented by sheikhs, probably Persian emissaries sent over the frontier to embarrass the Sultan.

In the wooded mountains of Anatolia and in the steppe land of the central plateau, notably in the districts of Bozuk (Kirshehr) and Haimaneh, where the natural conditions—thin soil and lack of water—are against permanent settlement, the Yuruks have been able to maintain themselves in compact masses without aban-

doning their primitive social conditions: the mountaineers turn to wood-cutting and the men of the plains to herding. Various attempts have been made to break up their solidarity and wean them to settled life, the first by the importation of Kurds,5 the second by the

formation of town-centres. Many towns of the dist Settled according to Tsakyroglous, [Tepi IuovpovKwy, p. 15, about Nazli in the Aidin vilayet: see below, p. 477. 2 Cuinet, Turquie d Aste, i, 860; W. Turner, Tour in the Levant, iil, 386; Beaufort, Karamania, pp. 118 ff. ; Cockerell, Travels, p. 182. 3 Leunclavius, Pandectes, § 61; a ‘ chief of the tribes’, Durgut, is mentioned as a feudatory of the Karamanoglu dynasty in the time of

Murad II (1421-51) by Hammer (Hist. Emp. Ott. ii, 288). The Yuruks of Rumeli in the eighteenth century supplied a contingent of 57,000 troops under their own leaders (Perry, View of the Levant, p. 48). 4 A Circassian, Abaza Hasan, was appointed Voivode of the Anatolian

Turkomans (see below, p. 138) in the seventeenth century (HammerHellert, op. cit. x, 300). Abaza Hasan’s palace at the modern Vizir Kupru is mentioned by Haji Khalfa, tr. Armain, p. 683. 5 The Kurds of the Haimaneh district are Sunni (Cuinet, Turquie a’ Aste, 1, 253).

Yuruk Diversity 137 tricts mentioned seem to be of recent origin and artificial foundation. Ak Serai is a Seljuk foundation of 1171, Nevshehr was founded by Damad Ibrahim in 1720,? and Yuzgat, the capital of the Chapanoglu, dates

from the eighteenth century.3 The two latter certainly are not spontaneous growths but artificial settlements.4 The more backward tribes are still nomadic in the restricted sense—that is, they have definite summer pasturages and fixed winter quarters, between which they alternate.s ‘The winter quarters tend gradually to become fixed villages, and despite the mutual antipathies of ‘ Turk’ and ‘ Yuruk’, some tribes are said

to be absorbed by towns. But government pressure has not yet succeeded in weaning the Yuruks from their old life, and their conversion to Islam is also incomplete. In view of all we have said, it would be surprising not to find among these heterogeneous tribes great diversity in physical type, as well as customs and religion, within

the restrictions imposed on them by their manner of life, and future investigators will perhaps do best to consider the tribes known as ‘ Yuruk’ more as separate units than has been done hitherto. Their apparent and obvious similarities, such as the absence of mosques, relatively high status of women,7 and hospitality, are probably due to the habits of life shared by the whole group irrespective of race. T It was founded by Kilij Arslan in 1171 (Le Strange, EL. Caliphate,

.I; , 2 {2 amer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. xiv, 190. Damad Ibrahim was Vizir 1718-30 (Hammer-Hellert, op. czt. xiii, 336, xiv, 225).

3 W. J. Hamilton, 4s7a Minor, 1, 387, speaks of Yuzgat as being ‘ninety years old’. ‘There was another attempt in the fifties to settle nomad Kurds near Yuzgat (H. J. Ross, Letters from the East, p. 248). 4 None of these towns is an important centre at the present day, and in antiquity the districts in question contained no towns of great note. 5 Cf. the nomads of Adana, who winter there and summer at Caesarea

(Langlois, Cilicie, p. 23). 6 Ramsay, Impressions of Turkey, p. 101. 7 Women are not veiled even among Sunni tribes: this is categori-

138 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor § 3. Tue TurKomMans The word Turkmen (Turkoman) seems properly ap-

plied to an important tribe of the Yuruk group. This tribe is widely distributed, being found in the districts of the Bithynian Olympus, Dineir, Konia, Sivas, and even Cyprus.t. Dr. Chasseaud considers that the term denotes a markedly Mongolian type and is synonymous with Tatar.2. The Turkmens with whom he is

acquainted are herdsmen by calling, not rich, and frequently serving others. This tallies with the account given by Burckhardt 3 of the Turkomans he knew. He divides them into five main tribes, namely, the ‘ Ryhanlu ’ with thirteen subtribes, the ‘ Jerid’ with six sub-tribes, the ‘Pehluvanlu’, the ‘ Rishwans’ with four sub-tribes, and the ‘ Karashukli’. Of these, the ‘ Karashukli’ are a mixed tribe of Turkomans and Arabs, living near Bir on the Euphrates. The Pehlivanli are the most numerous, while both the

Jerid and the Rishvans are more numerous than the Rihanli, who have 3,000 tents, each containing two

to fifteen inmates, and muster 2,510 horsemen all told. ‘The Pehlivanli and the Rihanli are tributary to the Chapanoglu, the Jerid to the governors of ‘ Badjazze’ (Baias?) and Adana, between which they live. The Rishvans also are now tributary to the Chapanoglu, though formerly to the governor of Besna (Behesneh) near Aintab. The Pehlivanli drive sheep as far as Constantinople, and their camels form almost exclusively

the caravans of Smyrna and the interior of Anatolia. The Rishvans are notorious liars. If Rihanli families cally stated by Karolides of the Afshars (Ta Kowava, p. 42); the veiling of women is not an original Turkish usage. t Tsakyroglous, op. cit. p. II. 7 So Tsakyroglous, p. 34, von Luschan, 7. R. Anthr. Inst. xli, 227, and van Lennep, Travels in Asia Minor, i, 296. 3 Travels in Syria, App. I, pp. 633 fi.

Turkomans 139 dislike their chief, they join another tribe. Some of the Pehlivanli have long been cultivators, but the Rihanli employ fellahs to cultivate for them. The word Turkmen, however, has for long had a wider signification, exactly corresponding to the ordinary use of the word Yuruk, z.¢. it denotes nomadic as opposed to settled ‘Turks. It is found with this meaning as early as Cinnamus * and is still so used by the modern

Turks.2, In his correspondence with Bayezid, Tamerlane calls himself and his fellow Moguls ‘Turks’, and stigmatizes the Ottomans as ‘ T'urkmans ”.3

§4. THe Kizivpasy 4 A. General The word Kizilbash (lit. ‘red-head’) is said by all authorities to be of comparatively recent origin, dating only from the establishment of the Safavi dynasty of Persia by the Shah Ismail in 1499.5 ‘ Kizilbash’ was originally a nickname given to the new Shah’s supporters

on account of their having adopted as a distinguishing mark a red cap: the name continued in Persia to designate a kind of warrior-caste or order of knighthood.°é The Persian change of dynasty brought with it a change in the official religion, since the preceding monarchs 1 P,izie: cf. Ducange’s note ad loc. ; Leunclavius, Pandectes, § 61 ; Ramsay, Hist. Geog., p. 213, and Cit. and Bish., p. 696.

2 Tsakyroglous (op. cit., p. 11) says that the words ‘ Turkmen’, ‘Yuruk,’ ‘ Geuchebeh’ (Tk. geuch etmek=to move house; Koche is the Turkoman word for nomad according to Vambéry, of. cit., p. 385) are used by the Turks indiscriminately for nomads, except that the last implies a tribe on the move. Turks and Turkomans are distinguished by Haji Khalfa, tr. Armain, p. 690. 3 Conder, Turkey, p. 11, n., a reference M. M. H. owes to Dr. Malcolm Burr. 4 ‘This section was written up by M. M. H.

5 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. iv, 90 and iv, 94, n.; cf. Leunclavius, Pandectes, § 188 ; d’Herbelot, Bibl. Orientale s.v. Haidar ; Knolles, Turk. Hist., p. 316. See below, p. 169.

6 P. della Valle, Vzaggt, , 46-7.

140 Hleterodox Tribes of Asta Minor had been of Turkish origin and Sunni, whereas Shah Ismail adhered to the Shia doctrines of his father. The name ‘ Kizilbash ’, therefore, is associated from the first both with Persian nationality and Persian (Shia) religion,

but has no ethnological significance whatever. In modern popular Turkish, owing to the long enmity between the two nations and the two religions, and to the suspicion and dislike with which the ‘Turks regard the ‘ Kizilbash ’ of their own country, the word is used merely to designate a person of loose morals. As regards Anatolia, ‘ Kizilbash ’ 1s a contemptuous term used to denote the adherents of all sects of the Shia religion, including, ¢. g., the Nosairi and Yezidi,

irrespective of race or language: the corresponding inoffensive term, by which the Anatolian Kizilbash designate themselves, is Alevi (‘ worshippers of Ali’).

Both terms include the Shia tribes of northern Asia Minor, who are said to be Iranian Turks and speak Turkish, and the so-called ‘ Western Kurds’, whose

speech is a distinct dialect (‘Zaza’) of Kurdish or Turkish, and whose race is generally thought to contain a strong admixture of Armenian blood. This opinion,

based not only on the physical characteristics of the tribes concerned but on tradition of various kinds, 1s of

some importance as bearing on the question of the Christian element in the Kizilbash religion: we shall return to it later. In the west of Asia Minor the ‘ Kizilbash ’ are found

only sporadically. In the Smyrna vélayet they are numerous in the sanjak of ‘Tekke (Lycia), where they are called ‘ Takhtaji ’,3 and are reported by Tsakyroglous to inhabit certain valleys of the Hermus 4 and 1 Similarly, dervish is used of a person lax in the performance of his religious duties or suspected of free thought.

2 Vambéry, Das Tiirkenvolk, p. 607. 3 See below, p. 158. 4 On the slopes of Mounts Tmolus and Sipylus and in the districts of Nymphi and Salikli.

Kizilbash Distribution 141 Maeander,! where they are nomadic or semi-nomadic.? The Kizilbash of Kaz Dagh (probably Ida, which other

considerations point out as a Kizilbash district) are mentioned by Cantimir,3and Oberhummer found Kizilbash villages in the neighbourhood of Afiun- Kara-Hisar,4 which forms a link on the main highway between the eastern and western groups. As to the eastern group of Kizilbash, they are known

to inhabit certain parts of the vilayet of Angora, and are admitted even by Turkish statistics to be numerous in those of Sivas (279,834), Diarbekr (6,000),7 and Kharput (182,580).8 In the case of the Sivas vzlayet the official figures represent them as exactly half as numerous as the Sunni Moslems, not only in the vilayet as a whole but in every kaza composing it. The inference is that they are in reality much more numerous than the

government is willing to admit. Grenard, the only

writer who has treated the eastern Kizilbash area as a connected whole, estimates the total number of the

sect as upwards of a million.» Of these, he places t At Denizli and Apa. 2 ITepi Fvovpovcwy, p. 29. 3 Hist. Emp. Oth. 1, 179. 4 Durch Syrten, p. 393. 5 Crowfoot, in F. R. Anthr. Inst. xxx (1900), pp. 305-20; Perrot, Souvenirs d’un Voyage, p. 423; Cuinet, Turquie d Aste, 1, 253.

6 Cuinet, Turquie d’Asie, i, 617; for further information on. the Kizilbash of this vilayet see van Lennep, Travels in Asta Minor, 1, 30 (cf. Jewett in Amer. Miss. Her. liv, 109 f., Nutting, ib7d. lvi, 345, Livingston, ibid. lxi, 246, Winchester, ibid. lvii, 71; Prof. G. White (of Marsovan College), Trans. Vict. Inst. xl (1908), pp. 225-36, and Contemp. Rev. Nov. 1913, pp. 690 ff.). Jerphanion’s Carte du Yéchil Irmagq is the first attempt to show the distribution of the Kizilbash villages. 7 Cuinet, op. ctt., 1, 322. 8 Ibid. ii, 412. Further information on the Kizilbash of Kurdistan

is given by Taylor in F.R.G.S. 1865, pp. 28 ff., 1868, pp. 304 ff. ; Richardson, in Amer. Miss. Her. lii, 296 f., Perkins, zbzd. lin, 304 ff. ; Wilson, in Murray’s Asia Minor, pp. [63] and 276; Bent, Report Brit. Ass. 1889 ; Huntington in Geog. Fourn. xx (1902), pp. 186 ff. ; Molyneux-Seel in Geog. Fourn. xliv (1914), pp. 51 ff. 9 ‘fourn. Astat. 1904 (x® série, 11), p. 521.

142 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor 365,000 in the wilayet of Sivas (kazas of Sivas, Divriji, Tonus, Yildizili, Hafik, Zile, Mejid Euzu, Haji Keui),

300,000 in that of Kharput, and 107,000 in that of Erzerum (sanjak of Erzinjian, especially kazas of Bai-

burt, Terjian, and part of Kighi). It is thus in the

‘Armenian ’ vilayets that the ‘ Kizilbash ’ are strongest. The great importance of Grenard’s statistics consists in the fact that they clearly show the close geographical contact of the Kizilbash communities of western Kurdi-

stan with those of eastern Anatolia. We may probably assume that the eastern Anatolian Kizilbash are similarly

connected with the more scattered communities of

western Anatolia.

The Kizilbash religion, if we make allowances for variation due to locality and to the natural intelligence, candour, and knowledge of different informants, is similarly homogeneous, though fluid ; there are indica-

tions that the whole sect is linked together by its

alliance with the Bektashi dervishes. Thus, in Cilicia the woodcutter caste has embraced a form of the Shia faith and would be reckoned by the Turks as Kizilbash :

some have identified their religion with that of the Syrian Nosairi.t In the province of Tekke (Lycia) also the Kizilbash are generally known as ‘Takhtaji (‘ woodcutters ’) on account of their employment, but, like the Kizilbash elsewhere, they call themselves Alevi ? and are connected with the Bektashi order of dervishes,3 whose

local centre is at Elmali. Side by side with the Lycian Takhtaji von Luschan found traces of what appeared to be a second heterodox sect, the Bektashi.4 Similarly, Crowfoot, finding that the Kizilbash of the Halys district (vilayet of Angora) 1 Tsakyroglous, op. cit., p. 18; but this identity is denied by F Schaffer, Cilicia (Petermanns Mitth., Erganzungsheft cxli, p. 27). 2 On the Lycian Takhtaji see below, p. 158, n. 5. 3 See below, p. 158. 4 Von Luschan, Lykien, ii, 203, n.

Kiztlbash and Bektasht 143 hailed each other as ‘ Bektash ’, suspected that this was

the name of a local sect of Kizilbash.t The real explanation of the apparent second sect or subdivision

lies in the close association of many Kizilbash with the Bektashi order of dervishes. Lycia has long been a field of Bektashi propaganda, and the Kizilbash villages of the Halys are not far from the central sanctuary of the Bektashi, near Kirshehr,? which contains the tomb of their titular founder, Haji Bektash, and is visited as a pilgrimage even by the distant Kizilbash Kurds.3 The Bektashi- Kizilbash of Lycia are probably Kizilbash who have become afhliated as lay adherents (muhzb) of the Bektashi order of dervishes. As to the ‘ Bektash ’ of the Halys district, which are nearer the Bektashi centre, they may either be inhabitants of villages forming part of the endowments (vakuf) of the tekke of Haji Bektash, or, if (as I have suggested elsewhere) ¢ ‘ Haji Bektash ’ himself represents the original tribal-chief and medicine-man eponymous of a tribe Bektashli, they may be a portion of this tribe.

Kizilbash, in the Turkish sense at least, are to be

reckoned the inhabitants of certain heterodox villages in the Hermus valley, regarding the population of which Ramsay gleaned the followingdetails. Like the nomads, they do not conform to orthodox Mohammedan custom in the details of veiling women, polygamy, abstention from wine, and worship in mosques. They fast twelve days in spring, their women are called by Christian names, they have no aversion to Christian holy books, and

are visited by an itinerant holy man called a Karabashs (Tk. ‘ black head ’). It happens that, among the Yezidi 1 F. R. Anthr. Inst. xxx (1900), p. 305; cf. Grothe, Vorderasten-

expedition, li, 148, n. 4. 2 See below, p. $02. 3 Molyneux-Seel, Geog. ‘Fourn. xliv (1914), p. 66.

¢ B.S.A. xxi (1914-16), p. 89: cf. below, p. 341. 5 Ramsay, Pauline Studies, pp. 180 f. and Interm. of Races in Asia Minor, p. 20.

144 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor of Syria (Jebel Siman),' there is a tribe possessing a kind

of Levitical status and called Karabash.2 The Yezidi religion is, of course, known to contain Christian elements, and the Yezidi view of Christianity and the Bible is somewhat similar to that of the Kizilbash. It would thus appear that the heterodox villages of the Hermus valley are connected with the Yezidi, which implies that they were converted or colonized from Syria. But it will be observed that the whole argument depends on the word ‘ Karabash ’, which is ambiguous, having been applied, till recently, to Christian monks and priests 3 (as wearing black caps) in general. It is

safer to suppose for the present that the story is a garbled version of an annual visitation of Kizilbash villages, which are known to exist in this district,+ by Bektashi sheikhs.

B. Religion The following 1s a summary of the information at our disposal on the religion of the Kizilbash, compiled from several sources and referring chiefly to the Kizilbash of the Kurdish and Armenian vilayets. G) Theology. God is one and omnipotent, without son or companion. 5

Alt is God incarnate, identical with Christ, and will appear again.® t This is a colony of their main settlement, grouped round the shrine

of Sheikh Adi in the Mosul vilayet. For the Yezidi see Menzel in Grothe, Vorderasienexpedttion, 1, pp. lxxxix ff. 2 Jerphanion, in Mél. Fac. Or. (Beyrut), ii, 376. The Yezidi itinerant preachers wear black turbans (Hume Griffith, Behind the Veil in Persia, . 288).

7 3 cr O. F. von Richter, Wallfahrten, p. 333; Fallmerayer, Fragmente, p. 1253; also Schiltberger, Rezse, ed. Penzel, p. 149, ed. Telfer, p- 74. Hammer mentions a Khalveti called Karabash (Hist. Emp. Ott.

XVili, 97 (805)). 4 Above, p. 140. 5 Molyneux-Seel in Geog. Fourn. xliv (1914), p. 65. © Grenard in Fourn. Astat. 1904 (x® série, ili), pp. 514 ff.

Kizilbash Religion 145 Ali is identical with Christ and is the spirit of God. ‘Ali is the best of men, excelling even Mohammed in goodness ; if Ali had not existed, God could not have created the world, but Ali is emphatically not divine.’ Ali is identical with Christ, but the Kizilbash call him Ali to deceive the Turks.?

The Kizilbash Trinity is perhaps Ali, Jesus, and Mohammed (Father, Son, and Holy Spirit respectively),

but the intrusion of Mohammed, for whom they have no reverence, is to be suspected.3 Their prayers are directed chiefly to Allah, Ali, and Husain.4

The Devil is a person and is re-incarnated to oppose each incarnation of God: he is not worshipped.s Intermediaries are the five archangels, twelve ministers of God, and forty prophets, including ‘ Selman’. The prophet Khidr is identified with 8. Sergius.§ The twelve Imams are the twelve Apostles ; Hasan and Husain are SS. Peter and Paul.7

The twelfth Imam is in hiding, and the Kizilbash await his coming.®

The great prophets are Jesus, Mohammed, Moses, Abraham, and Ali.9

The great prophets are Adam, Moses, David, and

Jesus.

The great prophets are Adam, Noah, Abraham,

Moses, Christ, Mohammed, and Ali." Moses, David, Christ, and Ali are all incarnations of the same person.? t M. Sykes, Dar-ul-Islam, pp. 121-2. 2 Dunmore in Amer. Miss. Her. liii (1857), p. 219. 3 Grenard, op. cit., p. 515. 4 Grothe, Vorderastenexpedttion, 1, 153. 5 Grenard, p. 516. 6 Ibid., p. §1§, and (for the last part) Molyneux-Seel, p. 66.

7 Molyneux-Seel, p. 66. 8 Sykes, p. 122. 9 Lbid., p. 121. to Ellsworth Huntington in Geog. ‘fourn. xx (1902), p. 187.

3295-1 L

1 Molyneux-Seel, p. 65. 12 Von Luschan, Lyhzen, ii, 201.

146 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor Jesus is the greatest of the prophets.: The Virgin is regarded as the Mother of God and much venerated. (11) Mythology.

When the Mohammedans of Damascus killed Husain, the son of Ali, they cut off his head and carried it away.

It was stolen from them by an Armenian priest, Akh Murtaza Keshish, who substituted for it the head of his eldest son, at the proposal of the latter. As the Turks discovered the fraud, the priest cut off the heads of all his seven sons and offered each in turn as the head of

Husain. In the case of the last head he received a divine warning to smear it with the blood of Husain, and by this means deceived the ‘ ‘Turks’ and kept the holy relic for himself.3 He placed it in a special apartment, which he adorned with gold and silver and silk. His only daughter, entering that apartment one day, saw not the head of Husain

but a plate of gold filled with honey. She tasted the honey and became with child. ‘ One day the girl complained of a cold, and on sneezing her father saw suddenly issue from her nose a bright flame, which changed at the same instant into the form of a child. Thus did Imam Bakir, son of Hussein, come into the world.’ ‘The fact that a descendant of Ali had been born immediately became known to the sorcerers of the Turks, who there-

1 Huntington, p. 187. 2 Grenard, p. 515. 3 Molyneux-Seel, p. 64. A variation is related by White from the Cappadocian Kizilbash country (Contemp. Rev., Nov. 1913, p. 698) as follows: ‘ There is a story that when the great Ali was put to death by his enemies, his head by some chance was placed for safe keeping in the hands of a Christian priest. Afterwards the persecutors wanted it to gloat over it or abuse it, but the priest refused to deliver it up. On being pressed, he cut off the head of his eldest son and offered that instead, but it was refused. So he did with his second and other sons, to the number of seven. Then his wife asked her husband to cut off and offer her head. He did so, and this was accepted.’

Kizilbash Hierarchy 147 upon sent people to search for the child and slay it. They came

to the priest’s house. At this time the young mother was engaged in washing the household linen, and, being told the reason

of the visit of the Turks, hastily put her child into a copper cauldron which was on the fire and covered him with linen. The Turks knew by their magic arts that the child was in a house of copper, but unable to find any such house in the precincts of the priest’s dwelling were baffled, and the child’s life was saved. On account of this incident the child received the name of Bakir, which in Turkish means copper.’ !

Ali as a child went to Khubyar and was put into a furnace for seven days as his enemies wished to kill

him.?

Gi) Hierarchy. The priests are called Dede: above them are bishops

and patriarchs. Of the latter there are two, one of whom resides in a tekke at Khubyar, fifty-five kilometres north-east of Sivas. The patriarchs are descendants of Ali and infallible in doctrine.3

The religious head of the Kizilbash resides in the Dersim.¢4

Priests are called Said; above them are bishops (Murshid) and archbishops(Murshidun Murshidu). Saids give religious instruction and receive tribute.5 The Kizilbash are visited once a year, but at no fixed time, by a murshid, who holds a service, recites the law, and gives definite readings and interpretations of the sacred books. If he pays a second visit in the year he holds no religious conversation.°®

Priests are allowed to marry,7 but celibates enjoy greater prestige.® Once or twice a year every village is visited by a dede,

« Molyneux-Seel, p. 65. 2 Grenard, p. 518. 3 Lbid. 4 Oberhummer and Zimmerer, Durch Syrten, p. 394.

5 Molyneux-Seel, p. 64. 6 Ibid., p. 66.

7 Cf. the Takhtaji (below, p. 159). § Prof. White, in Trans. Vict. Inst. xl (1908), p. 236. L2

148 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor a kind of communion takes place, as also preaching, prayers, and a religious dance in which both sexes participate.: The hierarchy is composed of ‘ Deydees’ and ‘ Seyds’ ;

the latter are hereditary, the former apostolically consecrated.?

Peripatetic dedes are mentioned by Grothe.3

(iv) Fasts and Feasts and Public Worshtp. : The twelve days’ fast and feast of Moharrem is observed.4

They fast twelve days for the twelve Imams and three days for Khidr.s

They fast before Khidr’s feast (g February) and at

the Armenian Easter.®

‘On the night of January Ist (O.S.) 7 they meet at the house of the Seids for a ceremony resembling the Communion. After prayers the Seid blesses the bread, which is called Hagg loqgmase,®

and distributes it to the communicants, who approach two by two. The blessed bread is not distributed to any person who may be declared by the inhabitants of his village to be unworthy. The communicants are called Musseib.’ 9

The Kizilbash have neither mosque nor church, but both sexes meet for prayer at the house of the Said on Fridays.7°

They have a perverted mass: the priest chants prayers in honour of Christ, Moses, and David. Water

is consecrated by the priest dipping a stick into it. There isa public confession of sins, which are punished by t Prof. White, in Trans. Vict. Inst. x] (1908), p. 231. 2 Taylor, in 7.R.G.S. xxxviii (1868), p. 319.

3 Grothe, ii, 155. 4 Grenard, p. 5143; Sykes, p. 122.

5 Molyneux-Seel, p. 66. 6 Grenard, p. 518.

7 This is one of the days on which the Nosairi celebrate their communion, the others being Christmas, Epiphany, and the Persian New Year (Nevruz). For some notes on Nevruz see Goldziher in Rev. Hist.

Relig. 11 (1880), pp. 308-9. 8 “Morsel of the Just’ (2. ¢. God).

9 Molyneux-Seel, p. 66. to [bid.

Kiztilbash Prayers 149 fines: lights are put out while the congregation mourns itssins.1 When theyare re-lighted, the priest givesabsolution,?and, having blessed breadand wine, givesasoptothe congregation. Morsels (/ogma) of the flesh of a sacrificed

lamb are given at the same time. Known evil livers are not admitted to the service.3 As to the consecrating of water the following is informing : * All the Seids keep with them a certain stick and a leather bag, about the uses of which there is some mystery, and which are said to be employed in the performance of certain pagan rites. However, the Seids say that the stick is a portion of the rod of Moses, and the bag an imitation of that carried by St. John the Baptist.’ 4

(v) Private Prayer. Private prayer 1s enjoined once a day. This prayer is secret, but contains reference to all the great prophets.5 They pray privately every morning.® ‘They never pray in private.7 They adore the sun rising and setting,’ reverence tire. and sacrifice at the sources of rivers, in particular that of the Mezur.9 (vi) Sacred Books. The Kizilbash have no sacred books, but recognize as 1 Cf. Grothe, ii, 155. 7 Cf. the Lycian Takhtaji (below, p. 159). 3 Grenard, p. 517. A ‘sort of sacrament’ is reported of the eastern Kizilbash by Huntington (/oc. czt., p. 188), a communion of bread and wine by White (Contemp. Rev., Nov. 1913, p. 696).

4 Molyneux-Seel, p. 66. 5 Sykes, p. 121.

6 Molyneux-Seel, p. 66. 7 Huntington, p. 187. 8 Cf. the similar custom of the Yezidi, mentioned by W. B. Heard in F. R. Anthr. Inst. xli (1911), p. 213. 9 Taylor, F.R.G.S. xxxvili (1868), p. 320. A local legend connects the source of the Mezur with a shepherd saint of the same name, who is said to have disappeared there (Molyneux-Seel, loc. cit., p. 60). It is probably a nature cult anthropomorphized.

150 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor inspired the Pentateuch, the New Testament, and the

Koran.! They admit the five collections of Traditions, but do not recognize Jews or fire-worshippers as ‘ People of the

Book ’.2

They have four holy books, which are the Gospels.3 They have two books, the Bouyourouk,4 which contains selections from the Old Testament, and the Yusef Kitab,s which contains extracts from the New Testament.®

They have a book, which is only in the possession of the priesthood, but it does not seem to be a corpus of dogma.7

The Lycian Takhtaji claim to have a book.®

(vil) Pilgrimage. The Kizilbash do not make pilgrimage to Mecca but to the Shia sanctuaries of Bagdad, Kufa, and Kerbela, and to certain Anatolian holy places, the most important being Haji Bektash (near Kirshehr), the centre of the Bektashi dervishes, and a reputed tomb of Hasan at Sivas.9 1 Molyneux-Seel, p. 66. Van Lennep says vaguely that they read the Christian scriptures (Travels in Asta Minor, pp. 30 ff.).

2 Sykes, p. 122. Mills records an attempt in 1841 to convert the Samaritans forcibly on the plea that they had no book. The Jews got them off on the plea that they accept the Pentateuch (Three Months, pp- 277 #f.).

3 Huntington, p. 187. This author recognizes that the Kizilbash, when questioned as to their religion by Christians, colour their answers

to make its analogies to Christianity closer. This seems to be an extreme case.

4 [‘ Book of Commandments’ from buyurmak=to command.—

M. M. H.] 5 [* Joseph’s book.’—M. M. H.] 6 Dunmore in Amer. Miss. Her. lili (1857), p. 220.

7 Grothe, ii, 151, 154. § Von Luschan, ii, 200. 9 Molyneux-Seel, p. 66. ‘This is presumably the tomb of the Holy Children (Maksum Pak), discovered in recent times in the town of Sivas. ‘The Holy Children are not Hasan and Husain but the infant

Kizilbash Marriage 151 (vil) Marrtage. The Kizilbash may marry three wives; divorce and temporary marriage are prohibited., An unfaithful wife may be killed. Divorce is prohibited. Armenians are accepted as parrains at marriages.? Divorce is prohibited.3 Strictly the Kizilbash are only permitted to take one wife, but many have lapsed into polygamy. The peripatetic dede presides at marriages when possible.¢

Prostitution of virgins to guests, and especially to

itinerant dedes, is recorded, on the authority of a bigoted Sunni by Grothe.s

It is fairly apparent that the predominating element in the Kizilbash religion is Shia Mohammedanism, and the secondary Christian, the whole having a substratum of pagan animistic elements,° many of which might be found in slightly changed form among professedly ortho-

dox Turks or oriental Christians. On the Shia side note the exalted position held by Ali, Hasan, and Husain, and the importance of their pilgrimages, as compared with the neglect of Mohammed and Mecca: note also the importance of the Imams and the Second Advent. The Christian elements, apart from the formal identification of Shia with Christian sacred figures, reduce themselves to the celebration of certain Armenian feasts,

and the ritual of the ‘ perverted mass’. It should be noted that the ‘ ritual meal’ is an idea by no means foreign to Islam,7 the Semitic element being, as in Christianity, partly responsible. Nor must it be oversons of two of the Imams: the confusion in popular thought is natural (see below, pp. 511-2).

1 Sykes, p. 121. 2 Grenard, pp. 518, §21. 3 Taylor, p. 319. 4 Grothe, li, 154. 5 Vorderasienexpedttion, il, 150. 6 Grenard, loc. cit., brings this out in detail. 7 G. Jacob, in Der Islam (ii, 232), for ‘ Bektashi’ communion.

152 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor looked that one of the prototypes of the Christian communion is found in Persian Mithraism. As regards the hierarchy it seems clear that the parish priest, who is generally called Said by our authorities, is normally married, his office being hereditary, and he himself, as his name implies, a descendant of the Prophet and therefore of Ali. A celibate monk can, however, as in oriental Christianity, officiate, if in orders, as parish priest. ‘The peripatetic ‘ bishop’ or murshid ' seems to be a (celibate ?) dervish of the Bektashi order. On this point Tsakyroglous, speaking of the Kizilbash in general but probably more particularly of those in his own vilayet of Aidin, is very explicit. He says that the communities are visited yearly by Bektashi sheikhs, who confess, catechize, and instruct their flocks. Professor White, speaking of Pontus, says that the Kizilbash villages there are organized in groups, each group having its tekke of dervishes.3 ‘The ‘ patriarchs ’, of whom

one resides at Khubyar (the other is probably the ‘ Chelebi’ of the Bektashi 4) are again hereditary (the ‘Chelebi’ certainly), their descent being important. The doubling of the office reminds us of the Armenian and Greek churches. Certain points in the Kizilbash system, mostly nega1 The word is in general use amongst dervishes for a ‘ spiritual director’; every sheikh of a convent, for instance, is a murshtd in relation to his pupils (shagird).

2 [lept [tovpovcwv, p. 30: “Ex ris povas tatrns (sc. Tod Aatlyn Bexras) e€épyovrat ernaiws eis meptodeiav Letyar émoxeMTOMEVOL TAS KWpAS Kal TA ywpia evOa Urdpyovat KoWdTHTES TOV

KuliaA-prds, €Eopodoyotow abrovs, KaTHyovot Kal Todnyerotow avrovs eis TIV ddov THS aAnGetas Kal ExovTEs CVVdpa SLKAGTLKTY

ovTws etmrety Sixatodociav e€opadvvovor Sinvé€ers Kat Siadopas UpioTapevas peraev Tov KowoTHTwv. Odror ev réAEr AapBavovow Tap aUuT iv KQL TO ETNOIWS WpLopLevov Onvapiov.

3 Trans. Vict. Inst. xl (1908), p. 231. 4 Cf. White, in Contemp. Rev., Nov. 1913, p.693. But Oberhummer speaks of a supreme religious head of the Kizilbash as resident in the Dersim (0. cit., p. 394).

Kizilbash and Sunnts 153 tive, sever them from, and form a stumbling-block to, their Sunni neighbours. ‘Thus, they do not conform to Sunni practice in the matter of veiling women, the five prayers, circumcision, and other religious duties ; they are said to eat pork and drink wine, to marry within the prohibited degrees, and to indulge in immoral orgies, men and women being assembled in a great room in

which the lights are suddenly extinguished. This is evidently a prejudiced version of the ‘ perverted mass ’ ceremony described above. Impartial investigators have found that, while marriage between brother and sister is countenanced by the Takhtaji,! the Kizilbash are very

strict about divorce and monogamy, and the grave charge of promiscuity, which has been much exploited by (chiefly ignorant) Sunni partisans and has earned for the Kizilbash the opprobrious nicknames of Zeratz and Mumsunderen (‘ candle-extinguishers’), is generally thought to be a calumny. The same charges of incest

and promiscuity are brought against the Druses by Benjamin of Tudela in the twelfth century,3 and the latter in modern times by the Arabs against the fireworshippers ¢ as by the ‘ Old’ ‘Turks against the Crypto-

Jews of Salonica.s The truth seems to be that the 1 Von Luschan, ii, 199. 2 Rycaut, Ottoman Empire (1687), p.65: cf. Niebuhr, Retsebeschretbung, 111,125. On zeratt see Gibb, Ottoman Poetry, i, 358.

3 Travels, ed. Asher, pp. 61-2, ed. Wright, p. 80. For the same charge against the Nosairi of Syria see Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabte, li, 361.

; Jerphanion in Mél. Fac. Or. ii, 405. 5 Mécheroutiette (an organ of the Turkish Liberal party), 1914, p. 16.

The same is alleged of the Russian Tatarinof sect (see A. Dumas, Russie); one of their number confessed this, but under torture. Early Christian heretics were accused by the orthodox of the same crime (Strack, Blutaberglaube, p. 71); pagans said the same of Christians (Kortholt, De Calumniis Paganorum). ‘Thévenot records that the vagabond Hhoiiames of Egypt practised promiscuity (Voyages, 11, 852),

but any mixed gathering was liable to the suspicion: cf. the accounts of the Easter Fire ceremony at Jerusalem in d’Arvieux, Mémozres, ii,

154 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor Turks are extremely strict about the degrees of consanguinity,! and that some Kizilbash infringe their rules. As a matter of fact, as we have seen above, the marriage

laws of the Dersim Kizilbash at least are in some respects much stricter than those of orthodox Islam. For the rest, Kizilbash laxity in the veiling of women and the fact that the sexes unite in an act of worship, of which no more is known than that it is unorthodox, are sufficient basis for a wholesale slander.

A certain amount of official pressure is exerted to convert the Kizilbash to the orthodox faith of Islam. To them, as to the Yuruks of Ida, Sunni missionaries are sent to preach during the month of Ramazan, and mosques are occasionally built in their villages by govern-

ment orders.3 The Pontic Kizilbash, according to Pro-

fessor White, are to some extent organized against government aggression. Some years ago, it is said, a rumour became current that the documents of the Kizilbash religious foundations (vakuf) were required at Constantinople : the leaders of the sect warned their communities to be ready to resist, and no steps were taken by the government. As regards the connexion between Christianity and the religion of the Kizilbash the latter claim that there is very little difference between the two faiths ; 5 they are certainly in their personal relations more sympathetic to Christians than to Sunni Mohammedans. An

agha of Kizilbash Kurds was actually converted to 142; Fabri, Evagat. ii, 92; Maundrell, Travels, ed. Wright, p. 182. Cf. also what Lucius says of the festivals of martyrs in early times (Anfange des Heiligenk., pp. 319-23). In the case of Jerusalem there is also an idea that a child begotten in such circumstances and surroundings is particularly fortunate (Tobler, Bethlehem, pp. 75, 139; Tobler,

Golgatha, p. 427). t Cf. Le Bruyn, Voyage, i, 405. 2 See also Hasluck, Letters, p. 16. 3 White, in Trans. Vict. Inst. xl (1908), p. 228. 4 Ibid., p. 235 : too much stress will not be laid on this story by those

who know the country. 5 [bid., p. 231.

Kizilbash and Armenians 155 Christianity by American missionaries in the fifties. An obvious link between the two religions is the fact that both are regarded as inferiors, socially and politically, by the dominant Sunni religion. Further, we have found that the Kizilbash celebrate certain Armenian feasts and are thickest in the ‘ Armenian ’ vi/a-

yets. A number of traditions also connect the two. Thus, the Kurdish, and probably also the Anatolian, Kizilbash represent their Imam as born of the virgin daughter of an Armenian priest.» The Armenians on their side claim the Kizilbash Kurds as perverted coreligionists.3 Other examples of traditions recording the conversion of Armenians en bloc to Islam are to be found in the cases (1) of a tribe classed as Turkoman and

called Pehlivanli, settled between Sivas and Angora 4 (a ‘ Kizilbash’ country, be it remarked), and (2) of the Mahalemi ‘ Kurds’, who are said to have been converted ‘two hundred years ago ’.s According to Mrs. t Dunmore in Amer. Miss. Her. lin (1857), pp. 219 f. 2 Above, p. 146. 3 Molyneux-Seel in Geog. ‘Fourn. xliv (1914), pp. 64-7: cf. Huntington, ibid. xx (1902), p. 186. 4 Niebuhr (who had it from Patrick Russell of Aleppo), Voyage en Arabie, \i, 341: see below, pp. 479, 481. 5 Sir Mark Sykes in Geog. ‘Fourn. xxx (1907), p. 387. Both these and

the Pehlivanli (Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabie, ii, 341) are said to have turned Mussulman on account of the severity of Armenian fasts. The motif is a ‘ stock’ one (cf. Pococke, Descr. of the East, il, 133; G. Kammas, in Mixpac. ‘HwepodA.1915, p. 281), but the conversion may never-

theless be a fact: on the other hand, it may be merely a reflection on the character of the tribes in question, put into currency by rivals or enemies. The Maronite villages are said to convert regularly to Protestantism when oppressed by their priests: when this pressure has gained them their point, they as regularly revert to Catholicism (Mrs. Mackintosh, Damascus, p. 286). If it were as easy and safe to revert from Islam as from Protestantism, we should doubtless find fewer Moslems in Turkey at the present day: cf. the cases of the Presba villages

(Bérard, Macédoine, p. 20), of the Karamuratadhes (Pougueville, V oyage dans la Gréce, i, 259-61), and of the Vallahadhes (Bérard, Macédoine, p. 110; Wace and Thompson, Nomads of the Balkans, p. 29).

156 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor Scott-Stevenson the (Sunni) Afshars: of the AntiTaurus claim Armenian descent,? which though probably false of the Afshars as a whole, may still be true of some sections of the tribe. ‘['schihatscheft’s picture of

Pharasa (a Greek village of the Anti-Taurus) in the fifties, ruled by Afshar chiefs and taking part with them in their forays against the T'urks,3 may show a phase in

such a development.4 As regards the Kizilbash, it is important to note that all traditions speak of them as converted Armenians, not Greeks. It must not, however, be imagined that the question of the ‘ Kizilbash’ religion is finally disposed of by classing it as Shia, since the Shia religion is sub-divided

into numerous sects and heresies. Sir Charles Wilson compares the religion of the Anatolian Kizilbash, not with that of orthodox Persian Shias, but rather with that of the Nosairi of Syria.s Bent, speaking of the Takhtaji in particular, classes their religion with that of the Nosairi and Yezidi,6 and von Luschan 7 and Oberhummer 8 are of the same opinion. It cannot be expected that the religion practised by these scattered 1 For the Afshars see Grothe, Vorderasienexpedition, 11, 135 f.

2 Ride through Asia Minor, p. 218. Others have called them renegade Greeks (Tsakyroglous, [Tepit Iuovpovcwyv, p. 13).

3 Tschihatscheff’s Reisen, ed. Kiepert, p. 14. We may compare the

conditions noticed in the early years of the nineteenth century by Burckhardt in the Cilician plain (Barker, Lares and Penates, pp. 355 ff.).

Here the Greek villages were subjected to Turkoman chiefs and had largely assimilated themselves to their protectors, from whom only details of headgear distinguished them. ‘This gives an idea how rural populations may have been gradually converted to Islam. 4 The recent (‘ fifty years ago,’ 2.¢. about 1830) conversion of Burun-

guz, an Armenian village near Tomarza, in the district of Caesarea, noted by J. F. Skene (Anadol, p. 175), is worth putting on record in this

connexion: both period and locality point to the Afshars as the ‘ missionaries ” responsible for the change. 5 Geog. ‘fourn. vi (1884), p. 313.

6 F. R. Anthr. Inst. xx (1890), p. 270.

7 Lykien, i, 202. 8 Durch Syrien, p. 394.

Bridge-Land Kiztlbash 157 and possibly heterogeneous communities is identical. But

in the present vague state of our knowledge it would be worse than useless to attempt a more exact classifi-

cation.

It is at least fairly clear that the Kizilbash religion from Mardin and Erzerum to Smyrna is identical in its main lines and an offshoot of Shia Islam containing considerable elements of Christianity, with an animistic basis, according to Grenard’s information, and that the Bektashi, the only dervish order in Turkey openly professing the Shia faith, form a sort of hierarchy among a large proportion of the Kizilbash populations. The inherence of the Bektashi, whatever its origin, is explained by the fiction that the tribal saints of the various Kizilbash villages were ‘ brothers ’, ‘ companions ’, or “ disciples ’ of Haji Bektash.t Von Luschan has already established the important

point ? that the similarities of religion between the ‘ Kizilbash’? group (including ‘ Bektash’ and ‘ T'akhtaji’) in Anatolia coincide with anthropological similarities which connect this group also with the North Syrian and North Mesopotamian Keterodox sects (Yezi-

di, Nosairi, &c.), with the Armenians, with certain types of Anatolian Greek, and with the Hittites. The locality in which this anthropological type is most fre-

quent is the mountainous ‘ bridge-land’ which lies between the fertile countries of Anatolia, Persia, Meso-

potamia, and Syria. This ‘ bridge-land’ has never been civilized, though it has been penetrated at various times by missionaries, religious, political, and military : in particular, being the old border-land between Turkey and Persia, it was naturally the resort of Persian emis-

saries during the long wars of the two nations. The result of the presumed religious propaganda carried on from the side of Persia among still pagan nomads, t See below, pp. 339-41. 2 fF. R. Anthr. Inst. xli (1911), pp. 241 f.

158 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor Kurdishand Turkish, possibly alsoamong Armenian Christians,? is a patchwork of religious compromises, of which

the outwardly predominating elements are Shia Islam and Armenian Christianity, among a people of marked physical homogeneity. A certain proportion of these peoples has migrated westwards, as probably in other directions, either from natural causes or under the pressure of the artificial transplantation, which was carried out in the sixteenth century by the Ottoman Government? as a means of breaking up the solidarity of bordertribes known to be Shia in religion and consequently in

sympathy with Persia. ‘The emigration process may have gone on for centuries, the emigrants from the mountainous ‘ bridge-land’ sometimes amalgamating with the men of the plains under the influence of a prevalent civilization, sometimes keeping themselves aloof owing to religious or other differences. ‘The ‘ bridge-land ’ type, when found in the west, may thus represent immigrations of widely different date, ranging from remote antiquity to comparatively modern times.

§5. Tue Taxutaji 3 The Kizilbash of Lycia (the province of Tekke) are, as already stated, numerous and generally known as Takhtaji (woodcutters) on account of their employment, but like the Kizilbash elsewhere they call themselves Alevis and are connected with the Bektashi order of dervishes,® whose local centre is at Elmali. They are said to owe their conversion to Shia Islam to missionary sheikhs dispatched from Konia in the fourteenth cent Or the conversion of the latter may be attributed to the persecution of already converted Kurds and Turks. * Cf. Belon, Observations de Plusteurs Singularitéz, iii, cap. xii. 3 This section has been put together by M. M. H. 4 Above, p. 142. 5 On the Lycian Takhtaji see Bent, 7. R. Anthr. Inst. xx (1890),

pp. 269-76; von Luschan, Lykien, ii, 198-213; Cuinet, Turquie

d’ Aste, 1, 855. © See above, p. 142.

T akhtajt 159

tury... This woodcutter caste of Takhtaji exists in

Cilicia also, where it has embraced a form of the Shia faith and therefore would be reckoned Kizilbash by the Turks.

Although we have little exact information on the religion of the Lycian Takhtaji, what we have confirms

the idea of their close religious connexion with the Kizilbash farther east. ‘Thus, every Lycian Takhtaji tribe, however small, has a Baba or Dede, whose office is hereditary.2, Again, confession and absolution ceremonies exist among them3 as among the Kizilbash,4

while Kizilbash and Takhtaji alike claim to have a sacred book.s Marriage between brother and sister is permitted to the Takhtaji® but not recorded of the Kizilbash.7

These indications are vague enough but sufficient to make authorities like Bent,’ von Luschan,9 and Oberhummer class the religion of the Takhtaji with that of the Nosairi 1! and Yezidi. More cannot be said in the present state of our knowledge.

§ 6. Tue BexTasui 2 The Bektashi sect is reputed to have been founded by Haji Bektash, who is represented as a fourteenth-century Anatolian saint, mainly famous as having consecrated the original corps of Janissaries,"3 but the latest 1 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. iv, 91 (from the sixteenth century Turkish historian Jenabi). 2 Von Luschan, Lykzen, uu, 201: cf. the Kizilbash, above, p. 147.

3 Ibid. ii, 202. 4 Above, pp. 148-9. 5 Above, pp. 149-50.

6 Von Luschan, op. crt. il, 199. 7 Cf. above, p. 153. 8 FR. Anthr. Inst. xx (1890), p. 270. 9 Lykten, ii, 202. 10 Durch Syrien, p. 394. 11 "T’sakyroglous similarly identified the religion of the Cilician Takh-

taji with that of the Nosairi ([Tepi vovpovKwy, p. 18), but F. Schaffer denied this identity (Petermanns Mitth., Ergdnzungsheft cxli, p. 27). 12 ‘This section has been put together by M. M. H. 13 See below, pp. 483 ff.

160 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor authorities are agreed that he is no more than a figurehead. ‘The real founder of the Bektashi was a Persian mystic named Fadlullah, and the original name of the

sect Hurufi. The traditional date—a very doubtful one—of Haji Bektash’s death is 1337-8, whereas Fad]lullah died in 1393-4, a martyr to his own gospel, at the hands of one of ‘Timur’s sons. Shortly after his death

his disciples introduced the Hurufi doctrines to the inmates of the convent of Haji Bektash (near Kirshehr in Asia Minor) as the hidden learning of Haji Bektash himself, under the shelter of whose name the Hurufi henceforth disseminated their doctrines, which to ortho-

dox Moslems are heretical and blasphemous. The heresy continued to spread more or less unnoticed, and the sect acquired considerable political power by its combination with the Janissaries, which was officially recognized at the end of the sixteenth century. Henceforward the Bektashi became more and more suspected of heresy and disloyalty, till at last Mahmud II in 1826 made an attempt to destroy at one blow the Janissaries and their dervish backers. By his action the Janissaries were permanently broken, the Bektashi only crippled:

by the fifties of the last century they had largely recovered,? and at the present day they exercise a considerable secret influence over the laymen affliated to 1 Browne in 7. R. Asiat. Soc. 1907, pp. 535 ff.; G. Jacob, Bektaschije, p. 19; cf. Degrand, Haute Albanie, pp. 228 ff. for current legends on the subject of the encroachment of the Hurufi on the convent of Haji Bektash. The Bektashi deny that the Hurufi doctrines are an essential part of their system, but admit that many Hurufi disguised themselves as Bektashi and Mevlevi at the time of their persecution under Timur. 2 Byzantios (Kwvoravrwov7oNts, iii, 494) says that one-fifth of the Turkish population of Constantinople was supposed in his time to be Bektashi. For the influence of the sect in western Asia Minor about the same time see MacFarlane, Turkey and its Destiny, i, 497 ff. The Bektashi seem to attribute their expansion to the tolerance shown them by Sultan Abdul Mejid (1839-61).

Bektasht Distribution 161 them, especially in Albania ' and out of the way parts of Asia Minor (Cappadocia, Lycia, and Kurdistan). In Albania the Bektashi are said to number as many as 80,000 adherents,? and Albanian dervishes are frequently found in convents outside their own country. A recent visitor reports that even at the central tekke of Haji Bektash in the heart of Asia Minor the majority of the dervishes are Albanian : 3 many of these would doubtless be qualifying themselves for the presidency of a tekke in their own country. As to Asia Minor, our available evidence indicates

that there the Bektashi establishments are grouped most thickly in the Kizilbash districts, but the nature of the connexion between them is still obscure. We know only that both profess adherence to the Shia form of Islam, and that widely scattered Shia communities acknowledge the spiritual supremacy of the Chelebi¢ of the Bektashi. Together with his rival, the Akhi Dede, the Chelebi lives at the central convent 5 of the order near Nevshehr in Cappadocia, where Haji Bektash lies buried. The Akhi Dede, who is known also as Dede Baba,

claims to be the spiritual or ‘ apostolic’ successor of Haji Bektash. He resides in the convent of Haji Bektash and exercises authority over it and over one part of

the Bektashi organization. The Albanian and Cretan Bektashi, for example, recognize him as their supreme head, and the appointments of their sheikhs must be ratified by him. ‘This branch of the order seems to be entirely in the hands of the Albanians: the abbots are generally from Albania. t For Bektashism in Albania see Leake, NV. Greece, iv, 284; Degrand,

Haute Albanie, pp. 230 ff.; Durham, Burden of the Balkans, p. 207 ; Brailsford, Macedonia, pp. 243 ff. 2 [Blunt], People of Turkey, ii, 277, confirmed to mein Epirus. The whole number of Bektashis is assessed by themselves at 3,000,000, 3 Prof. White, in Contemporary Rev., Nov. 1913, p. 694.

32951 M

4 See below, pp. 162-3. 5 See below, pp. 502 ff.

162 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor The Chelebi (in 1914 Jemal Efendi) claims to be the actual descendant of Haji Bektash and de jure the supreme head of the order. His office is hereditary in his family though the succession is not from father to son, the senior surviving brother of a deceased Chelebi taking precedence of his eldest son. He lives outside the convent and is employed in the administration of the property of the foundation. His genealogy is disputed by the party of the Dede Baba, who, holding that Haji Bektash had no children, regard him as an impostor. They explain his alleged descent by an intermediate legend of his ancestor’s miraculous birth from a woman

fertilized by drinking the blood of Haji Bektash.: So recently as 1909, at the proclamation of the Turkish Constitution, the Chelebi asserted his claim to be regarded as supreme head of the order by a petition to the new government to restore him his ancient rights. At

present his position is recognized by the Kizilbash populations of Asia Minor, and the sheikhs of tekkes ministering to these populations are consecrated by him. ‘These sheikhs, who appear to be hereditary,? and their flocks are looked upon with some contempt by the other branch of the Bektashi, who call them Sufi, and regard their organization as lax and their doctrines as superstitious. ‘Ihe son of the sheikh of the tekke at Rumeli Hisar explained to me the difference between 1 Cuinet, Turquie d’ Asie, i, 342. The legend admitted by the celibate branch makes the woman the wife of a khoja and gives her name as Khatun Jikana. Another variant makes Haji Bektash a nefes oglu or ‘son of the breath [sc. of God]’ (for which see George of Hungary’s tract De Moribus Turcorum, xv, ad fin.). Miraculous birth 1s alleged of many Turkish saints, especially by the Kizilbash Kurds of their Imam Bakir (see above, p. 146). For other examples see Grenard in Fourn. Astat. xv (1900), p. 11, and Skene, Anadol, p. 285. 2 Crowfoot in F. R. Anthr. Inst. xxx, pp. 308, 312 (Haidar-es-Sultan

and Hasan Dede). This is the rule also at the tekke of Sidi Battal (Ouvré, Un Mots en Phrygie, p.94; Radet, Arch. des Miss. vi (1895), pp- 446-7).

Bektasht Chelebi 163 them by saying that the Kizilbash were ‘ Catholics’, the true Bektashi ‘ Protestants’; this, coming from an old pupil of Robert College, is probably to be interpreted as meaning that the Bektashi represent a ‘ reformation ’ and have discarded what they regard as the superstitious doctrinal accretions in the faith of their backward Anatolian co-religionists.

The earliest mention of the Chelebi of the Bektashi seems to be in connexion with a rising of dervishes and

Turkomans which began in 1526-7.1. The district affected was that of Angora ; ? the leader of the rising,

generally known as Kalenderoglu, is said by some authors to have borne the title of Zelebiz [Chelebi], and all are agreed that he pretended to be a descendant of Haji Bektash. In view of the later connexion between the Bektashi and Janissaries, it is worth noting that on this occasion Janissaries seem to have had no scruples about marching against the Chelebi. As regards theology, the Bektashi, as opposed to the Kizilbash, claim the sixth Imam (Jafer Sadik) as their patron, while the Kizilbash hold that their priesthood descends from the fifth (Mohammed Bakir). There is also a very important distinction between the two sects

as regards the religious life. The Bektashi dervishes, who form the priestly caste of their branch, are nearly without exception celibate (muserred).3 ‘The Kizilbash, 1 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. v, 95; Leunclavius, Annales, 343P, s.a. 1526 and Pandectes, § 222; de Mezeray, Hust. des Turcs, i, 502.

Four tribes are mentioned by name as having taken part in the rising, the Chichekli, Akje Koyunlu, Massdlu, and Bozoklu:: there is a Chichek Dagh north of the convent of Haji Bektash, and Bozuk is the name of the district in which it stands, so that two at least of the tribes mentioned seem to be connected with the district. 3 As such the Bektashi dervishes have a special veneration for Balum Sultan, a reforming saint who lived some two generations after Haji Bektash and is buried in Pir-evi. Though Haji Bektash is regarded by

them as having lived unmarried, Balum Sultan is considered as the M2

164 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor on the other hand, have a hereditary priesthood, and their sheikhs are consequently of necessity married (mutehbhrl).x

Now if, as there seems some reason to believe, the Bektashi represent an original tribal grouping under a chief with temporal and spiritual powers,? it is probable that the Chelebt represents the original hereditary chief of the tribe, who has been ousted by the superimposed celibate dervish organization, in which the succession is

‘apostolic’. ‘The hereditary sheikhs or babas consecrated by him, again, represent the hereditary chiefs of sub-tribes or affiliated tribes ; as hereditary they must of necessity be married, and this is the chief distinction between them and the mainly celibate dervishes of the other branch. Professed dervishes, however, form only the hierarchy

of the Bektashi organization. The rank and file are laymen (called muhib 3=friend), who openly or secretly subscribe to Bektashi doctrines. All candidates for ad-

mission to the order must be believers in God and of good moral character: this latter must be guaranteed by a satisfactory sponsor. Bektashism is not hereditary, the son of a Bektashi father being perfectly at liberty to

choose at years of discretion whether or not he will enter the Bektashi order or another. peculiar patron of the celibate branch. It is interesting to find that a recent war-map marks a mountain in north Albania as Tekke Balim Sultan. In von Hahn’s map (in Alban. Studien) seventy years earlier the mountain is marked simply Balle, which is the Albanian word for peak

according to von Hahn. It would thus appear that the Bektashi have here foisted one of their own saints on another as they have done on Mount Tomor (see below, pp. 548 ff.) and elsewhere. t The relations between the Chelebi and the Dede Baba are naturally strained, but dervishes of the celibate branch are treated with respect

by the married sheikhs. 4 Cf. above, p. 135.

3 This, the ordinary name for lay adherents of a dervish order, is variously explained as ‘ Friends of the Family of the Prophet’ or ‘ Friends of the Order ’.

4 Fadil Bey Klissura, when aged twenty, informed me that his

Bektasht Religion 165 Each local congregation finds its normal rallyingpoint and place of common worship in the nearest Bektashi tekke. A tekke may, according to circumstances, be a convent containing a number of professed dervishes under a baba or abbot, or a kind of ‘ lodge’ inhabited only by the dada, as the spiritual head of the local community, and his attendants. It often contains the grave of a saint of the order (generally the founder of the zekke), and always has a room (meidan, 1badet hane) for common worship. ‘The Bektashi sect is identified with no nation or race, and is widely spread over the

old Turkish Empire from Mesopotamia to Albania : its geographical distribution has been discussed else-

where.! Orthodox Sunni Moslems are scandalized not only by the Shia beliefs of the Bektashi, but also by their every-

day practice. They are notoriously careless of the Prophet’s injunctions with regard to circumcision, veil-

ing of women, regular prayer, and abstention from strong drink ; the latter freedom undoubtedly tends to

swell their ranks with undesirables. Further, their peculiar worship is performed not in a mosque but in the tbadet bane, and with closed doors ; both sexes take part in the worship. ‘This gives rise to the scandalous suspicions usually entertained of secret religions.? The religious doctrines of the Bektashi are devised to

cater for all intellects and all temperaments: their system includes, like other mystic religions, a gradual initiation to secret knowledge by a number of grades : these form a series of steps between a crude and popular religion, in which saint-worship plays an important part, to a very emancipated, and in some respects enlightened, philosophy. The theology of Bektashism mother and aunts were Bektashis. His uncle joined late, but neither he nor his elder brother had so far joined. 1 In B.S.A. xxi, 84-124 (reprinted with additions and corrections

below, pp. 500 ff.). 2 See above, p. 153.

166 Heterodox Tribes of Asta Minor ranges from pantheism to atheism. Its doctrine and ritual, so far as the latter is known, have numerous points of contact with Shia Mohammedanism,' of which it is confessedly an offshoot, and with Christianity’, to

which it acknowledges itself akin. In theory, at least, abstinence from violence and charity to all men are inculcated : the good Bektashi should make no distinction in his conduct between Mussulmans and non-Mussulmans, and members of non-Mussulman religions may

be admitted to the order. These tenets are so far

carried into practice that in the fifties of the last century a Greek, by name Antonaki Varsamis, even became president of a local ‘ lodge’ in the Brusa vilayet : he owed his position to the purchase of lands of which the former proprietor (who, from the description given of him, may well have been an Albanian) was a Bektashi

of great local importance.3 The subject is treated in detail below. 1 ¢,g. they avowedly place Ali before Mohammed. For their doctrines see Naim Bey Frasheri’s Bektashi Pages, below, pp. 552 ff.

2 Jacob has set out the points of contact in Bektaschije, pp. 29 ff. On the use of this relationship by the Bektashi see cap. xliv. 3 MacFarlane, Turkey and its Destiny, 1, 496f.: the same person, evidently, is mentioned in Lady Blunt’s People of Turkey, 1, 278. In our own day, on the authority of the learned Sami Bey Frasheri, an Albanian from a Bektashi district, Monseigneur Petit writes (Confréries Musulmanes, p. 17) that in each Albanian convent are found some dervishes who are really Christian still, but are admitted to Bektashi membership. [Our personal investigations, conducted independently among the Albanian tekkes, discovered exaggerations in Mer. Petit’s information. M. M. H.] 4 Pp. 564 ff.

XIII

SHIA MOVEMENTS AND PROPAGANDA IN ASIA MINOR HE two main periods when Asia Minor was affected

Ty Shia ideas are (1) that of the Seljuk empire of Rum, and (2) that of the Safavi dynasty of Persia. During the former, Persian philosophic and mystic ideas became, so to speak, acclimatized, penetrating from

the court of Konia downwards; during the latter, definitely Shia doctrines were propagated in many country districts of Asia Minor, by missionaries half religious, half political, the effect of whose work, as we shall see, persists down to our own day. During the first period Konia? is of course the distributing centre. Especially during the reign of Ala-eddin [ (1219-1236) it was a focus of Persian ideas and of a culture wholly derived from Persia, and the repair of numerous philosophers and holy men from Bokhara, Khorasan, and Persia, who were driven by Mongol pressure from their homes. Best known of these are Jelal-

ed-din Rumi, the mystic poet of Bokhara, and _ his friend and master in philosophy, Shems-ed-din of Tabriz. Jelal-ed-din, the founder of the Mevlevi dervish order, which has exercised, and to some extent exercises to-day, considerable religious and even political influence in the district, was especially favoured by Ala-eddin. The Mevlevi order was never openly accused of the Shia heresy, and has been throughout its history politically loyal and morally untainted by the excesses which have brought other dervish orders into disrepute,

but its liberal and philosophic principles render its members suspect to strait-laced Sunni Mohammedans.

In the same way the neighbouring Mohammedan t See more fully below, p. 370.

168 Shia Movements and Propaganda in Asta Minor

princes looked askance on the Persian culture of the sultans of Konia.:

Of direct propaganda by the holy men who made Konia their centre we have little trace. One significant passage quoted by von Hammer from Jenabi tells us

that in the districts of Tekke (Adalia) and Diarbekr, which were later (and still are) strongholds of the Shia movement, the inhabitants were devoted to the Persian sheikhs and doctrine, the former having been spared from the fury of Timur by the intercession of the sheikh Sadr-ed-din of Konia.? If this refers to the celebrated sheikh of that name who died in 1274,3 the connexion with Timur is chronologically impossible. It is much

more likely that the Shia faith, which is particularly adapted for missionary propaganda among simple folk, was preached in those districts already under the Seljuks by sheikhs from Konia. ‘The populations subjected to Shia influences are represented by the modern Takhtaji of Lycia and the Alevi Kurds of Diarbekr vilayet.

Similarly in the north, Sunusa, a fanatical Shia town near Amasia, is mentioned already by Mustawfi (1340).4

The Shia propaganda of the second period is closely connected with the history of Persia. Uzun Hasan, the

last ruler of the (Turkish) White-Sheep dynasty of Persia, married his daughter to Haidar, son of Juneid, 1 “Dans le voisinage, on se demandait si les Seljoukides n’étaient pas devenus paiens, mages ou guébres, et Noureddin Zenghi, prince d’Alep, un musulman convaincu, exigea que Kylydj Arslan II [1192-1204] renouvelat, entre les mains de son ambassadeur, la profession de foi de ’Islamisme, parce qu’il ne le croyait pas un vrai fidéle’ (Huart, Konia, pp. 214 f.)

4 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. iv, 91, from Jenabi (sixteenth century). Similarly, Sheikh Baba saved Egerdir from Timur (ibid. ll, 118).

3 Heart, Konia, pp. 170 f.: this Sadr-ed-din was a close friend of Jelal-ed-din. But Malcolm (Hist. of Persia, i, 321) refers the incident to Sadr-ed-din, the ancestor of Shah Ismail. 4 Le Strange, £. Caliphate, p. 146.

Shabkult’s Campaign 169 a distinguished sheikh from Erdebil. Of the marriage

was born Ismail, the future founder of the Safavi

dynasty of Persia. Haidar’s family claimed descent from Ali, and Haidar himself was the founder of the Haidari sect, to which the majority of Persian Shias belong. He is also credited with the invention of the red cap or ° crown ’ (ta7) with twelve folds, commemorating the twelve Imams, which eventually became the badge

of Ismail’s followers and gained for the Shia sect in general the nickname of * Kizilbash ’.2, Haidar of Erdebil was killed in battle (1488). Ismail, his only surviving son, succeeded, after a struggle, to the throne of Persia. Even under the Turkish dynasty the Persians and the Turks had been enemies, and Ismail followed the policy of his predecessor. The followers of the Persian sheikhs

in the Turkish provinces of Tekke and Diarbekr had helped to put him on the throne and were still true to their faith. Ismail made use of them to embarrass the

Sultan in his own country. His emissaries were a certain Hasan Chelife (Khalife) 3 and another, in some accounts the son of Hasan, who passed under the names of Karabeyik, Tekkeli, Shahkuli (‘ slave of the Shah’), and, in derisive parody, Sheitankuli (‘ slave of Satan ’). Hasan and Shahkuli took up their abode in the district of Tekke and for six or seven years lived in caves as hermits, acquiring a great reputation for sanctity: the

pious Bayezid II is said to have sent Hasan a yearly pension. The political part of the propaganda matured In 1509.4

The adherents of Shahkuli, who seems to have been

1 Testa rossa (red cap) = Persian, verde =Usbek, bianca ='Turk, nera =

Georgian, according to Hammer-Hallert, Hist. Emp. Ott. iv, 94, who says the different races in the Turkish Empire were thus nicknamed from their head-dress. 2 1.¢. red head. See especially d’Herbelot, s.v. Hatdar (above, p. 139). 3 Hasan Khalife is the name of a Bektashi leader of the Janissaries in 1632 (Assad Effendi, Destr. des Fantssaires, p. 342).

4 1.¢. after the disastrous earthquake which occurred in that year at

170 Shia Movements and Propaganda in Asta Minor more of a fighter than Hasan, mustered at a place called Tascia, and, marching on Adalia, took it by surprise on a Sunday during the yearly fair. ‘They then advanced on Konia, receiving a reinforcement of Persian cavalry

and adding to their adherents on the way. Before Konia they were again victorious, but, having no guns,

could not venture an assault on a walled city. They then marched north-west, defeated the viceroy of Ana-

tolia on the Sangarius, took Kutahia by assault, and retired eastwards. An engagement followed near Angora, in which Hasan was killed, as was the Turkish general. The rebels seem to have had the worst of the fight and retired, some crossing the Halys and making off to Tekke, whither they were pursued by the Imperial troops, while others, after some fighting on the way, escaped into Persia.1 The partisans of the rebels and their doctrines were transported from Asia to the Peloponnese, Macedonia, and Epirus.? ‘The heretics of

Tekke are said to have been planted in the recent Turkish conquests of Koron and Modon.3 The topographical details of this campaign are hard to follow, owing to (1) the historians’ ignorance of the Constantinople and which the Turks considered ominous (Leunclavius, Annales, 335 P., 5.a. 1509).

1 For accounts of this campaign (1509-11) see Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. iv, 90 ff. ; Giovio, ‘ Fatti [lustri di Selim,’ in Cose de

Turcht; Spandugino in Sansovino, Origine de’? Turchi, p. 136; Knolles, Turk. Hist., pp. 316-24; Htstoria Politica, ap. Crusius, Turco-Graecia, p. 343 Leunclavius, Annales, 335 P., 5.a. 1509; 22d., Pandectes, § 179 ff.; Cantimir, Hist. Emp. Oth., pp. 134 ff. 4 Knolles, op. ctt., p. 324: remnants of this transplantation may survive in the obscure people called Erghne in the Rhodope mountains, who are said by Baker (Turkey in Europe, p. 382) to have become Mo-

hammedan (Sunni?) about a hundred years ago. ‘The reproach brought against them of having wives in common and holding great assemblies several times in the year, both sexes together, is the regular

charge made against the Kizilbash by the Sunni: cf. above, p. 153. For transportations of populations in general see Hasluck, Letters,

p. 166. 3 Hammer-Hellert, iv, 93.

Sites in Shahkulw’s Campaign I7I localities in default of maps, (2) the mutilation of names

in the Italian (probably Venetian) sources, and (3) the nature of the rebellion. The propaganda seems to have infected a wide area! and the rebels evidently scattered to their homes, various bodies of troops being detached

to follow them. Everything points to Tekke as the focus. Giovio’s ‘ Sassi Rossi’, the place of Hasan’s retirement, is evidently the modern Kizil Kaya [* Red Rock ’] district north of Adalia.2 The ‘ city of Tascia

at the foot of Monte Nero’ seems to represent the modern Kash Kasaba, near which is still a village named

Kara Dagh, while Elmali, the other chief town of the district, is also mentioned. The site of the battle by Angora, ‘ near Mount Olyga ’ (Giovio) is placed by one account3 in the plain of Chibuk Ovasi, the scene of the victories of Cn. Manlius over the Gauls and of ‘Timur over Bayezid 1. A turbe shown in the Kizilbash village of Hasan Dede near Denek Maden may be the historical resting-place of the Shia leader.

After the battle of Angora, Hammer seems to confuse two series of operations, one against the rebels remaining in the province of Tekke, centring round Shahkuli’s old haunt of Kizil Kaya, and another against

the main body retiring from the neighbourhood of Angora via Sivas, Caesarea, and the province of Zulkadr

to Persia. ‘This confusion comes direct from Giovio, who describes the operations near Kizil Kaya as having taken place not far from Celenis (Celaenae) and Maras (Marash), the seat of Aladolo (Ala-ed-Devlet), prince

of Zulkadr. The name of Celaenae (Dineir) can be ignored as based merely on the similarity between the

names of the town Marash and the (ancient) river t See below, p. 173, n. 8. a Kizil Kaya was a kadilck in the seventeenth century (Haji Khalfa, p. 697), and till recently a nahbiyeb. 3 Leunclavius, Annales, 336 P., s.a. 1509. Leunclavius is based on the Turkish historian Jemali (¢. 1550).

172 Shia Movements and Propaganda in Asta Minor

Marsyas near Celaenae.t. The Turkish historians Ali and, Saadeddin ? confuse with the battle near Angora an engagement which they place at Sarimsaklik or on the Gueuk-chai, and they mention Caesarea on the

eastward retreat of the rebels. Sarimsaklik is in all probability the village of that name north of Caesarea and the Gueuk-chai the upper waters (not of the Calycadnus, as Hammer, but) of the Sihun. Leaving aside the operations in Tekke, we have thus a consistent line of march from Angora via Sivas, Sarimsaklik, and the Gueuk-chai to Marash, the capital of Zulkadr. We have at least established that the districts devoted to the Persian sheikhs in the Seljuk period—Tekke and Zulkadr—were still in the early sixteenth century Shia. The only town in the north mentioned as a centre of Persian propaganda at this time is Beybazar near An-

gora.3 It is probable that many other districts were infected at the same time with the Shia heresy, and that these districts were inhabited by nomad Turko-

mans. For later, in spite of the measures taken to break up the solidarity of the nomad tribes and remove the heterodox element, we find the same combination of Persian sheikhs and Turkoman nomads giving constant trouble to the government, especially in the fron-

tier provinces. Thus, the principality of Zulkadr,

founded in 1378 in the Antitaurus about Albistan and Marash, and later including a wide extent of country between the Ottoman empire and the Persian dominions,

intrigued alternately with either power till its final absorption in the Ottoman empire under Selim I in 1 Giovio’s Cose de Turchi (or the Venetian reports on which it is based) seems to have been the basis of the fictitious travels in Asia

Minor of Leonardo da Vinci. 2 Hammer-Hellert, iv, 113. 3 Cantimir, p. 134. The ‘ Historia Politica’ (in Crusius, TurcoGraecia), p. 34, mentions as followers of Shahkuli the inhabitants of Karamania in general, the Farsak (Bapodxides), a tribe settled in the Taurus (see p. 129 above), and the Zulkadr (ToupxarnpAises).

Shia Colonies in Western Asia Minor 173 1515, after a successful war with Persia: : the same monarch reduced the Cilician principate of the Ramazanoglu (Ich-ili) on the Syrian frontier.

It is to the reduction of Zulkadr, according to Sir Charles Wilson,3 that the settlement of Shia Turks in western Asia Minor must be referred. We have seen that certain districts were Shia before this date, but that such a transplantation did take place is shown by the fact that the once important derebeys of Boghaz-

Keui descend from Ala-ed-Devlet of Zulkadr and still administer the revenues of the turbe of Shahruf, son of Ala-ed-Devlet, at Gemerek.+ To about the same date, when Kurdistan was reorganized as a Turkish province,5 are to be referred the Kurdish colonies in western Asia Minor. Their westernmost districts are the Haimaneh, an imperial estate ® west and south of Angora, and the Bozuk district (capital Kirshehr) south-east of it.7 The Kurds in this vdayet are Sunni.8 Bozuk was known later as a Shia district. The process of transplantation is a regular policy

devised to break up the strong tribal ties of the tur-

bulent nomad populations; the mixture both of races and religions in the newly settled districts is pro-

bably intentional. But the districts of Cilicia (Ichili) and Zulkadr remained turbulent and tribal till « Hammer-Hellert, iii, 253 ff.; iv, 213. Zulkadr included at one time Caesarea (zbid. 111,255) and Kirshehr (zb2d. iv, 29). 2 Ibid. iv, 213.

3 Crowfoot in F. R. Anthr. Inst. xxx (1900), p. 319: of. Vambéry, Das Tiirkenvolk, p. 607.

4 Wilson, in Murray’s 4s1a Minor, p. 20: cf. Warkworth, Duary,

p. 21. 5 Hammer-Hellert, iv, 253.

6 Haji Khalfa, tr. Armain, p. 704: of. the modern railway station

Beylik Akhor (‘ imperial stud farm ’).

7 Wilson, in Murray’s Asta Minor, p. [63]. § Cuinet, Turquie d’ Aste, i, 253. But Wilson (F.R.G.S., 1884, p.

313) speaks of the Haimaneh Kurds as partly Shia by religion, and Tsakyroglous suspects it of others in the vilayet of Aidin (ITepi ItovpovKwy, Pp. 32).

174 Shta Movements and Propaganda in Asta Minor

much later, and seem to have had their racial differences and political grievances accentuated, evidently at the instance of Persia, by religious emissaries. ‘Thus,

in 1526, the Turkomans of Ich-ili revolted, ostensibly on economic grounds, led by a certain Suklun Shah Veli, evidently by his name a saint or dervish. At the same time there was a rebellion in the Adana district headed by a Persian, Veli Khalife. In 1528 a reputed descendant of Haji Bektash, called Kalenderoglu, headed a revolt in the province of Zulkadr, enlisting thousands of dervishes, and was eventually defeated near Albistan.t Whether his namesake in the seventeenth century was a similar sectary we do not know.? Despite the heavy hand with which such rebellions were put down, and in particular the barbarous attempt to exterminate the Shias by the fanatical Selim,3 we find that even in the latter half of the sixteenth century Venetian reports recognize the prevalence of Shiism in Asia Minor as a whole and its political import. ‘ Many provinces of the Ottoman empire’, says Barbaro in 1573,

“recognize themselves as of the same faith as the Persians, though their inhabitants keep their opinions to themselves for fear of the Turks: the latter again dare not openly prosecute them for fear of a rebellion.’ 4 In the seventeenth century Haji Khalfa (1648) notes as specially heretic districts the neighbourhood of Trebizond, where there were Shia Turkomans, and the liva of Bozuk. The latter is of course the Cappadocian Kizilbash district of our own day. t For references see above, p. 163, n. I. 2 He is said to have been in Persian pay and to have retreated, after the failure of his rebellion, to Persia (Ambassade de Gontaut-Biron, pp. 15, 24 f., 231).

3 Hammer-Hellert, iv, 173 ff. and 425: forty thousand Shias in Europe and Asia were massacred on this occasion. 4 Relaztone, quoted by Zinkeisen, Geschichte, iii, 567; cf. Alberi’s Relaztont deght Ambasctatort Venett, 111, vol. iii, p. 201 (1562) ; vol. iii, p- 406 (1594).

XIV

NATURAL CULTS

§ 1. Tree Cutts HE simplest form of tree cult results from the con-

"T ccpton of a tree as the abode of a spirit. Certain trees are thus conceived of to-day by the primitive and half pagan nomads of Asia Minor, who bind their illnesses with knots of rag to the sacred branches, as long ago by the pre-Islamic Semites at Mecca itself.)

The primitive conception of the haunted tree survives also among much more developed communities. Some of these trees are held to be haunted by dangerous spirits, which must be placated, others by beneficent demons capable of exerting a healing power. An ex-

ample of a tree possessed with a dangerous spirit is recorded by Mrs. Walker from Mytilene. An ancient cypress near the town was regarded with considerable reverence and none dared cut it. Two hardy souls had ventured to do so. One lopped off a bough, ostensibly for building a church, and afterwards used the wood for his own house: he was pursued by ill-luck for the rest of his life.3 “I'he other, whose subsequent history is not recorded, was horrified to find that the tree bled when cut.4 Haunted trees of this description are recorded also from free Greece.5 Modern instances of t See above, p. 132. 4 Robertson-Smith, Religion of the Semttes, p. 169; cf. Goldziher in Rev. Hist. Relig. ti (1880), p. 319; Ouseley, Travels, i, 369. 3 Cf. Georgeakis and Pineau, Folk-Lore de Lesbos, p. 349. 4 Walker, Old Tracks, pp. 193 f. Mrs. Bishop (Fourneys in Persia, i, 309) mentions a similar bleeding tree. 5 Cf. Polites, [Tapaddcers, nos. 322-6 and note on pp. 916-18. Fora circumstantial account of a haunted tree near Messene see Polites in Aaoypadia, 1,658. The late Mr. Archie Charnaud told me in 1916 that a tree which obstructed one of the newly planned streets at Brusa was

176 Natural Cults tree spirits which are so far gods as to be credited with powers of healing can be cited from Balukisr and the

Dardanelles. The former cures boils by sympathetic magic, an onion, obviously representing the affliction,

being nailed to the tree. rT he latter tree was hung

with small coins by the sick, irrespective of religion.’ These cults belong strictly to folk-lore : both the trees in question stand in cemeteries and doubtless owe some of their importance to the fact. The ‘ secular’ sacred tree passes by easy transitions

into the sphere of popular religion. A tree already venerated may be connected by a tradition with a saint. In this case legend generally represents the tree as the staff of the holy man miraculously endgwed with life.3

In one case his hut becomes a tree.4 (The custom of

planting trees, especially cypresses, on graves, and the superstitions connected with such trees,5 have led to the assumption that a tree possessing magical virtue, or even a well-grown tree, marks the grave of a saint: this allowed, after solemn deliberation on the part of the authorities, to retain its position because it ‘ bled ’ at the first attempt to cut it down. For the superstition in France see Sébillot, Folk-Lore de France, iu, 430. For bleeding trees in general see Frazer, Magtc Art (1911), ul, 18, 20, 33.

I W. Hasluck, Cyzicus, p. 208. 2 Hobhouse, Albania, ii, 804: ‘In a pleasant shady green near the burying-ground, I remember to have remarked a low stunted tree, enclosed within a wall, the boughs of which were hung round with little shreds or bags of cloth and cotton, enclosing each a single para. On inquiry, it appeared that the tree was considered sacred to some demon, the inflictor of diseases ; that the appendages were either votive offerings, or charms by which the malady was transferred from the patient

to the shrub; and that Turks, Jews, Armenians, and Greeks alike resorted to this magical remedy.’ 3 Degrand, Haute Albanie, p. 244 (Zem Zem Baba at Kruya): ¢f.

on the Christian side the staff of S. Polycarp at Smyrna (F. W. H.: see below, p. 417). In Polites, Tapaddécets, no. 327, we have a secular counterpart to this: the venerated tree is held to represent a spit with which a man was murdered.

4 Degrand, Haute Albanie, p. 243. 5 Below, p. 226-7.

Tree Cult at Passa 177 is of course especially the case with cypresses. Often, doubtless, the grave of a saint has been built on this assumption beside a remarkable tree, and after a certain lapse of time it is obviously impossible to say with certainty whether the tree developed the grave or vice versa.

Della Valle’s account of Moslem veneration for a

gigantic cypress at Passa 3 is so interesting as to be worth

quoting in full. Five men, he says, could scarcely embrace it. ‘Sa grandeur est un témoignage de son antiquité, et un motif de la dévotion que les Mahométans lui portent. I] découle une certaine humeur, qui est une espéce de gomme d’un petit tronc d’une de ses basses branches, que les Perses, et sur-tout les igno-

rans, regardent comme un sang miraculeux, qui coule tous les vendredis, qui est leur jour saint et sacré. Et dans un grand trou, capable de contenir deux personnes, qui est au milieu du tronc, ils ont coitume d’y allumer des chandelles, comme dans un lieu auguste et vénérable, suivant leur cofitume, qui leur fait avoir de la vénération pour tous les grands et anciens arbres,

croians que ce soit la retraite des ames bienheureuses, et que pour cette considération ils nomment Pir, qui signifie en Persan un vieillard, ou Scetch en Arabe ; c’est a dire, plus ancien ; ou bien encor Jman, qui veut dire Prétre ou Pontife, parce que ce sont les noms ordinaires qu’ils donnent a ceux de leur secte qui sont morts dans une fausse opinion de sainteté. C’est pourquoi quand ils disent, qu’un tel arbre ou un tel lieu est Pir; ils veulent dire que l’ame de quelque Pir, c’est a dire, d’un bienheureux, y fait sa demeure et s’y plait.’ 4 t The supposed graves of S. Barbara at Nicomedia (Lucas, Voyage dans la Gréce, i, §2; dela Mottraye, Travels, i, 214) and of S. Athanasius at Triglia (Herges in Bessarione, v, 1§) are probable instances on the Christian side, as is the bark of a tree of S. Paul in the same district (P. G. Makris, To KaripAi, p. 47). 2 Cf. the case of Sheikh Abu Zeitun in Syria (Tyrwhitt Drake in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1872, p.179: cf. Conder, tbid., Q.S. for 1877, p. 101), where a dream and a fine olive tree started the cult of the saint; cf. Goldziher, in Rev. Hist. Relig. ii (1880), p. 316. 3 The ancient Pasargadae. 4 P. della Valle, Voyages, v, 355 f.

3295°1 N

178 Natural Cults Other trees are reverenced ostensibly for their supposed connexion with historical events. Typical of these

is the ‘ Fortunate Plane Tree’ of Apollonia Pontica, which, according to von Hammer, enjoyed considerable veneration among the Turks on the ground that Murad I stood under it when he received the news of the fall of the city (1372). Another plane, which stood till recently at Brusa, was held to be bound up

with the luck of the Turkish empire, having been planted as such in the court of Orkhan’s palace by the dervish Geyikli Baba. In both cases we are justified in considering the explanatory story as of later origin than the veneration of the trees in question; the practice of planting commemorative trees, especially planes, at the birth of a child 3 has helped to gain acceptance for the aetiological legends which were devised in the first place, probably, to explain the consideration in which the planes in question were held. We shall probably be safe in assuming that saints’ tombs in juxtaposition with venerated plane-trees like those at Kos 4 and at Yanobasa 5 in Bulgaria are to be classed as cenotaphs, since the plane is naturally associated with birth 6 and happy events rather than with death. (Such worship of trees comes easy to Orientals who regard nature as alive and a tree as a living creature. ) Thus, ‘ le feu Sultan Osman vit vn iour vn arbre qui luy sembla auoir la forme de I’vn de leurs Deruts, ou Religieux: & sur ceste imagination, il luy assigna vne aspre de paye tous les iours par aumosne, & choisit vn homme pour receuoir l’aspre, qui a le soin de l’arroser, & de le 1 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott., 1, 239. + 4 [bid. i, 155. ‘The plane planted by Mohammed II at Eyyub cures fevers (Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, p. 157). 3 R. Walsh, Constantinople, i, 350; Andréossi, Constantinople, p. 360. 4 Wittman, Travels, p. 1143 Sonnini, Voyage, i, 249. 5 Kanitz, Bulgarie, p. 261. 6 A cypress for a tomb, a plane for a birth (Andréossi, Joc. cit.).

Distribution of Stone Cults 179 cultiuer pour son argent.’! Osman here did not differentiate tree spirit from tree, except in the sense that we differentiate the soul of a man from his body. Nor

did Xerxes, who ‘found ...a plane tree so beautiful that he presented it with golden ornaments and put it under the care of ohe of his Immortals ’.?

§ 2. Stone Cutts 3 Introductory

The veneration of stones seems to have been worldwide at an early stage in religious development, and has left traces everywhere in the magical and folk-lore practices of civilized peoples. ( Over the Semitic area stone worship, as such, survived later and more generally than among peoples more prone to anthropomorphism ; and Islam, so far from being able to displace it, tacitly sanctioned it by allowing the reverence paid already by

pagan Arabs to the Black Stone of the Kaaba to be perpetuated on the rather far-fetched hypothesis that the angel Gabriel had brought it to Mecca.) Christlanity, somewhat in the same way, has permitted or encouraged the paying of reverence to stones associated by tradition with saintly personages, the Stone of Unction at Jerusalem being a typical example.) In both the great religions of the Near East the arbitrary association

of certain stones with sacred persons and events has 1 Des Hayes, Votage, p. 265.

2 Herod. vi, 31; of also iv, g1 (‘ the fountains of the Tearus afford the best and most beautiful water of all rivers: they were visited... by the best and most beautiful of men, Darius’). The beating of the Hellespont by Xerxes will also be recollected (see Reinach, Rev. Arch. 1905, pp. I ff.), as will the incident of the sea marriage (Reinach, Cultes, Mythes, et Reltgtons, 11, 206). See also Hasluck, Letters, p. 69. 3 [An early draft of this section appeared in the B.S./. xxi, pp. 62-83: the writing up of my husband’s new material is my work.—M. M. H.] 4 Burckhardt, Arabia, i, 297; cf. Burton, Pilgrimage to El-Medinah and Meccah, London, 1855-6, ili, 158 n., 176 n. (11, 300 n., 312 n. in the 1906 edition) ; cf. also Ray’s Voyages, i, 163. N2

180 Natural Cults been allowed to replace or mask the more primitive idea of worshipping stones as fetishes with independent power. Side by side with cults so masked by orthodoxy exist others of a purely secular sort, not necessarily more ancient chronologically, though more openly primitive in spirit, as magic and witchcraft*are more primitive than religion.

The present paper is an attempt to bring together, from what may be called roughly the Greco-Turkish area, some instances of stones venerated independently of religion and often indiscriminately by Christians and Mohammedans in common, and of others brought to a greater or less degree within the pale of Islam or of

Christianity : those of the second category, it will be noted, have frequently a more or less exact prototype, which to some extent sanctions their veneration, in the important holy places of the religion concerned. Whether from contamination, 1.¢., from the interaction of Chris-

tian and Mohammedan ideas over the area in question, or independently, z.e. from the original prevalence of

similar ideas among the populations concerned, the developments of these stone-cults in both religions will be found closely parallel. Venerated stones fall into two main groups, which to some extent overlap: those of the first class are selected

for their natural qualities, especially their material, those of the second for their shape or for work upon them. An intermediate link is formed by stones bearing

‘miraculous’ marks or imprints, presumably natural and accidental, which are generally accounted for by legends bringing them into connexion with venerated personages." 1 The extraordinary ease with which any peculiarity of a stone may be so construed as to bring it into relation with a local saint is exempli-

fied by the case of a stone seen by Wheler at the door of a church at Patras, which ‘ being struck by another stone’ sent out ‘a stinking Bituminous Savour’. This was attributed to its having been the seat

Stones with Natural Qualities 181 (1) Natural Stones A .—Stones selected for their Natural Qualities.

To the first class apparently belongs what we may consider the prototype of venerated stones in Islam, the Black Stone of the Kaaba ; this seems to be an aerolith, and is built into the Holy House in fragments. Though

it is supposed, and with every probability, to be the cultus-object of the idolatrous pre-Islamic Arabs at Mecca, all bayts piously kiss it as part of the pilgrimage. Another sacred stone, on which the Prophet is supposed to have sat, exists in a mosque at Medina. It is reputed

to cure sterility. For instances of stones venerated by eastern Christen-

dom for their material, we may cite the miraculous alabaster stone seen at Angora by Schiltberger (¢. 1400) 3

and mentioned also by later travellers. This stone was cut in the shape of a cross and built into a church, the miracle being that it ‘ burnt’, 2. ¢. was translucent in sunlight ;5 it was credited also with healing powers. In of the judge who condemned 58. Andrew (‘Journey into Greece, p. 294). In the West ‘ pierres puantes ’ are recorded at Paris (Collin de Plancy, Dict. des Reliques, ii, 439, 5.v. prerre), and at Poitiers (Collin de Plancy,

loc. cit.: better in Millin, M1dt de la France, iv, 722). Cf. the aetiological legend which connects with the saint a certain stone built into the church of 8. David at Tiflis (Gulbenkian, Transcaucasie, pp. 114 ff.).

1 It would be interesting to know whether the ‘ stone from Mecca’ built into the mosque at Hasan Dede in Cappadocia received similar reverence (Crowfoot, in F. R. Anthr. Inst. xxx, 308). Goldziher in Archiv f. Religtonsw. xiv, 308. 3 Ed. Penzel, p. 85 ; ed. Telfer, p. 4o. 4 See above, p. 67, n. 3. 5 The ‘Yanar Tash’ near Caesarea and the thin, semitransparent marble of the bishop’s tomb at Nicaea are ‘ miracles’ of the same unexciting kind, apparently not exploited as cures. Another ‘ burning stone ’ was shown in the Parthenon at Athens, both before and after the Turkish occupation, with an appropriately varied legend (Martoni,

in Ath. Mitth. xxu, 429; Galland, Journal, i, 38; La Guilletiére, A thénes, p. 196).

182 Natural Cults spite of its shape it was the centre of a pilgrimage in which Moslems participated. The selection of these stones for veneration evidently depends primarily on their pnusual material. In other cases colour plays a part. Yellow stones preserved in twoYeni mosques at Constantinople {the Ahmediyyeh * and the Valideh 2) are held to be charms against jaun-

dice.3 Analogous is the use of white stones as milkcharms,4 of which the semi-opaque prehistoric gems of Melos and Crete offer an excellent example.s A plain white marble slab built into a church on the Cyzicene Peninsula is credited with the same property, scrapings of it being drunk in water by anxious mothers.é B.—Pterced Stones.

Natural pierced stones and rocks are used superstitiously all over the Near East. In the Taurus, near a medicinal hot spring traditionally connected with 5. Helena, is a natural pierced rock bearing, at a distance, a strong resemblance to the figure of a man leaning on a stick. ‘This is supposed to represent a shepherd turned

to stone by the curse of 8. Helena, and Greeks and Turks, who make use of the healing powers of the spring, pass through the hole in the rock as part of their cure.7 Near Caesarea Mrs. Scott-Stevenson was shown

‘a large circular stone with a hole in its centre’ to 1 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, pp. 99 f.

2 Evliya, Travels, ii, 83: it must be touched by the patient three times on a Saturday. 3 The connexion between the yellow colour and the yellow disease is obvious (cf. V. de Bunsen, Soul of a Turk, pp. 156 f.; W.G. Browne, Nouveau Voyage, ii, 164). Similarly in Polites, [Tapaddcets, no. 155, yellow is symbolic of (malarial) fever, red of chicken-pox (xoxkwv7). 4 Also blue objects, on account of the relation between the words for blue (yaddfuos) and milk (yada). 5 R. M. Dawkins in Ridgeway Essays, p. 167. 6 Hasluck, Cyzicus, p. 27; cf. below, pp. 205-6. 7 I. Valavanis, Mixpactatexa, pp. 102 f.

Pierced Stones 183 which ‘ the natives bring their children soon after they ‘are born, and pass them through the hole in order that

they may learn to speak early ) Near Everek in the same district is a natural pierced rock which is traversed by persons suffering from coughs,? and barren women make similar use of a natural arch near the summit of Parnassus.3 At Gallipoli fever-patients pass through a natural hole in the rock beneath the lighthouse. At Arta in western Greece a pierced stone called Zapdzerpa is similarly used, with the familiar rag-tying rite, by Turks and Jews.5 "In Naxos, mothers of thin children passed

them, to make them fatter,° through a holed stone connected with Saint Pachys.? In Turkish Athens an t Ride through Asia Minor, p. 206. Is this a (giants’) millstone (vAdrretpa) promoted toa ‘ Stone of Speech ’ (6pA@ = speak) ? Sillier things have happened. 2 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de ? Aste Mineure, p. 338.

3 From Mr. Cole of the Lake Copais Company: cf. Niya Salima, Harems d’ Egypte, pp. 331-2 (sterility cured by crawling through a fork

like an inverted V formed by a bough of a curious tree; Mrs. Lee Childe, Un Hiver au Caire, p. 324, mentions the tree but says nothing of the cult). 4 Constantinides, KaAXizoAts, p. 76.

5 Byzantios, Aoxiusov ths "Aptyns, p. 367: ev adtH PépovTes duaBiBalovar, ydpw idcews, Tovs aobeveis abradv, eyxataAytra-

vovtes (!) wav abrady cidos dopeuatos ev tavtn 7H Oca. The nature of the aperture (natural or artificial) in this stone is not stated. The stone itself is 2:00 m. high, and I-oo m. broad. 6 W. Miller, Latins in the Levant, p. 581 f., from Sauger, Ducs de P Archipel, p. 65. 7 §. Fort at Bordeaux has similar powers (Sainéan, Bordeaux, p. 20).

Saint Pachys (‘S. Fat’) is probably 5. Pachomios, his name being punned with awayds; 5. Isidore (Loiéwpos), who patronizes weakly children, is in the same way called 6 otdnpévios adyros. Punning on saints’ names is common in Greece (see M. Hamilton, Greek Saints, pp. 24 ff.), of. LtuAvaves, AXTaparios, Ovovdpios, Edorparcos(for walking), AipvAcavds (for speech 6utA@). Both in Greece and in the West (ef. for France Sébillot, Folk-Lore de France, ii, 269) the majority of such saints are for children’s diseases. In Greece the ‘ finders’ Myvas and ®avovptos are exceptions ; Georgeakis and Pineau report that in Lesbos

incautious touching of her face on S. Simon’s (Simeon’s?) day by a

184 Natural Cults artificial passage in the rock (called zpvz10 ABdpr) above the

Stadium was similarly used for superstitious purposes, various offerings being made to the presiding spirit. Similar pierced-stone cults are cited from Bosnia.? All these examples, including the Cyprian cults discussed below, depend on the supposed magic virtue of pierced objects, which seems to be world-wide. ‘The reputed virtue of holed stones, as of other traversable pierced objects, is probably bound up with the conception of

holes as ‘ entrances’ or ‘ new starts’. All entrances,

qua beginnings, are regarded as critical points for good or evil. A sick person may be thought to ‘ change his luck’ by the act of passage alone. In the case of sacred objects which are acknowledged to possess beneficent influence, it is obvious that the ‘ change of luck ’ will be

a change for the better. Moreover, the patient at the moment of passing through is exposed to the beneficent influence from all sides. It is therefore comprehensible that, in passing through pierced objects such as stones,

contact is often desirable In the fragment of an ancient roadway near Damascus, which is reputed the spot where S. Paul fell to the earth, pilgrims in all ages have sought pebbles to preserve as relics. ‘his practice has produced a ‘ wide, arch-like excavation through the centre of the causeway ’ and pilgrims now, as a supplementary act of devotion, frequently pass through this pregnant woman may cause the child to havea mole on its face (FolkLore de Lesbos, p. 329): the sequence is Lipwr, onua, onudads. Other cases of such punning are given by Sébillot, op. cit. iv, 159; Millin, Midi de la France, i, 479; and by Estienne, Apologie pour Hérodote, § vil, p. 241; whose list provides excellent illustrations of etymology deciding the functions of saints. See also Hasluck, Letters, p. 82.

t Hobhouse, Albania, i, 325; Dupré, Voyage a Athénes, p. 36; Kambouroglous, ‘Ioropia, i, 222: cf. below, p. 222. 2 Lilek, in W1ss. Mitth. Bosnien, iv, 434 f. 3 Cf. Loretto, where pilgrims circumambulate the Holy House on their knees, trying to touch the walls (Collin de Plancy, Dict. des Reliques, 11, 294).

Pierced Stones 185 aperture, rubbing their shoulders against its pebbly sides. Similarly, at Nazareth, Turks, Arabs, and Christians alike come for healing to the two columns which mark where the Virgin and the Angel stood at the Annunciation, passing and re-passing between them, at the same time rubbing against them the part affected. ‘ Passing through’ having once become familiar as a form of ritual in connexion with objects admittedly

sacred, a natural, if illogical, confusion leads to the assumption that ‘ going through holes is lucky’, and rocks and stones or other objects capable of being so traversed tend to become respected and often to accumulate sacred traditions. In cases where the hole is not large enough to admit a person, a smaller object may be passed through, and, having absorbed the virtue of the sacred object, transfer it by close juxtaposition to the supplicant. The procedure at the grave of Chetim Tess Baba, an abdal or ‘ fool-saint ’ buried at Monastir, fully illustrates this point.3 C'.—Stones with Natural Markings.

Stones bearing miraculous markings, especially foot-

prints, find prototypes for Islam in the footprints of Abraham at Mecca,5 of the Prophet at Constantinople 6 T Kelly, Syria, p. 195.

2 D’Arvieux, Mémoires, 11, 270: ‘ Les Turcs, les Maures, & les Chrétiens du Pais ont une grande vénération pour ces colonnes. Deés qu’ils sont malades, ils viennent passer & repasser entre elles, s’y frottent

le dos, le ventre, les bras, les cuisses, les jambes, la téte, le visage, la barbe, en un mot, toutes les parties ou ils sentent de la douleur, & s’en

retournent guéris de leurs maladies.’ 3 See below, p. 359. 4 These are exceedingly common elsewhere: see Sébillot, Folk-Lore

de France, passim; Antoninus martyr, ed. Tobler, p. 24 (xxii); Oliphant, Hatfa, p. 146; Korten, Retse, p. 286; Maury, Croy. du Moyen Age, pp. 301 ff.; Millin, Mid: de la France, iv, 720; Hahn, Alban.

Studien, p. 85. 5 Burckhardt, Arabia, i, 267.

6 Fardin des Mosquées in Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. xviii, 57. It was deposited in the Mosque of Eyyub by Sultan Mahmud I (1730-54).

186 Natural Cults and Jerusalem,t of the Prophet’s camel on Sinai,? and of

his mule at Medina.3 The imprints of the foot of Sari Saltik at Kruya and Bazaar Shiakh in Albania,‘ of Haji Bektash’s hand at Sidi Ghazi, of Sheikh Joban’s at his tekke near Caesarea,® and of Demir Baba’s in Bulgaria 7

are local relics of the same sort. The hoofprint of the prophet Khidr’s horse was formerly shown at a tekke in

Pontus. The well-known imprint of the hand of Mohammed II in S. Sophia is perhaps the best-known instance. ‘This, according to Elworthy, has attained to a cult among the vulgar by a confusion of Mohammed the Conqueror with Mohammed the Prophet, and is

invoked for protection against the Evil Eyes The ‘sweating column’ in the same mosque owes its curative powers to the hole made in it by the finger of the

Prophet Khidr.

In eastern Christianity we may perhaps regard the ‘ Footprint of Christ ’,1! formerly shown to pilgrims in the Dome of the Rock at Jerusalem '? as the prototype of 1 Le Strange, Palestine, p. 136; Conder, Ferusalem, p. 11. Another occurs at Cairo (Lee Childe, Un Hiver au Catre, p. 85). 2 Pococke, Descr. of the East, i, 146; Lenoir, Le Fayoum, pp. 249 f. ; Thévenot, Voyages, ii, 536. 3 Goldziher, in Arch. f. Religionsw. xiv, 308. 4 Degrand, Haute Albanie, p. 240; Ippen, Skutart, p. 77. 5 Mordtmann in DirodA. AvAAoyos, Ilapapr. rob 9." tomo, p. xv. 6 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de ? Aste Mineure, p. 215.

7 Kanitz, Bulgarie, p. 536. Between Jerusalem and Bethlehem della Valle was shown a stone with the imprint of S. Elias’ body (V oyages, 1, 88).

8 Anderson, Stud. Pont. i, 10. Similar ‘ hoof-prints ’ are shown as those of the horse of the saint Ali Baba at Tomoritza in Albania (Baldacci, in Boll. R. Soc. Geogr. 1914, p. 978). 9 Elworthy, Evil Eye, p. 251: cf. the confusion about the Sword of the Girding (see below, p. 609-10). There is another at Cairo (Browne, Nouveau Voyage, i, 119). 1 Guthe in Z.D.P.V. xvii, 303. See above, p. 10, n. 5. 11 At Paimpol in Brittany footprints of Christ appeared as late as the 6th of January 1771 (Saintyves, Reliques et Images Légendatres, p. 318).

1 Petrus Diaconus, in Geyer, [tin. Hieros., pp. 107 f.: ‘ Super saxum

Naturally Marked Stones 187 this class of venerated stones. In modern Greece a reputed hoofmark in the rock at Philiatra (in Triphylia) is attributed to the mule of the Virgin, who appeared there, and in Crete a similar mark is pointed out as the imprint of S. Nicetas’ winged horse,? another as that of the horse of the secular hero Digenes.3 The imperishable nature and obvious interpretation

of such stones,+ if characteristically marked, tend to secure their local veneration regardless of changes in the

religion of their clientele. The footprint in the Dome of the Rock at Jerusalem, earlier attributed to Christ, is obviously the same as that held under Mussulman administration to be that of the Prophet, and probably served in Jewish times as that of Abraham.s A ‘ footprint ’ in Georgia is held by various parties at one and the same time to be that of the legendary queen Tamar, of a Christian priest flying from persecution, and of a

Mohammedan saint who converted the district to Islam. It is thus venerated by all, irrespective of their creed.6

posuit dominus Jesus pedem suum, quando eum Symeon accepit in ulnis, et ita remansit pes sculptus, ac si in cera positus esset ’. Cf, Con-

der, Ferusalem, p. 10: Antoninus martyr, ed. Tobler, p. 26 (xxiii). Another footprint of Christ was shown on the Mount of Olives (Didron, Iconographte Chrétienne, i, 217). tT Polites, [Tapaddceis, no. 192. 2 Ibid., no. 199: cf. Hare, Walks in Rome, 1, 171 (knee-marks of 5S. Peter).

3 thi, no. 120: cf. Durham, Burden of the Balkans, p. 126 (hoof-

print of Marko Kraljevich’s winged horse shown near Lake Presba). 4 Cf. Moses’ rock on Sinai (Burckhardt, Syrza, p. 580). s A pre-Crusading Moslem account (1047) of the Rock says that the footprint was then said to be that of Abraham (Le Strange, Palestine,

p- 128): see also below, p. 195, n. 5. In the twelfth century a sacred stone at Aleppo was worshipped as the tomb of a prophet by Moslems, Jews, and Christians (Yakut, Lexicon Geographicum, 11, 308). 6 Palgrave, Ulysses, p. 74.

188 Natural Cults (11) Worked Stones

Stones venerated on account of work upon them are divided into two main categories, shaped stones and inscribed stones. A.—Statues and Reliefs.

Stones carved with figures, t.¢. statues and reliefs, need hardly be considered on the Mohammedan side, since the prohibition of images by Islam has taken deep root in the popular mind. Exceptional, if not unique,

is the cult formerly attaching to a headless Roman statue still preserved in a fountain outside the Valideh Mosque at Candia, which was supposed to represent a Moslem warrior saint turned to stone by Christian magic.! Popular feeling among Mussulmans is, as a

rule, against images; there is a tradition that angels 1 Pashley, Crete (1837), 1, 194: ‘In this city the devout Mohammedan women burn incense every Friday, and some of them suspend bits of rag, and similar votive offerings, to honour an ancient statue. ... The tradition current among them is that the saint was an Arab, to whose dress the ancient robe of the statue bears some resemblance, and that he greatly distinguished himself during the famous siege of the Kastron [7.¢. Candia].’ The statue is figured on p. 186 of Pashley’s work, Cf. also Spratt, Crete (1865), i, 44: ‘ The bust [!] of a Roman

statue, at a fountain within the town... is... decorated and paid reverence to by some Turkish devotees every Friday, ...besides having a lamp with oil or incense set before it also. . . . I was informed that it [t. ¢. this worship]is due to a belief amongst the superstitious, that it is the petrified remnant of the body of a sainted Ethiopian Mussulman who was killed in the war, and whose head and lower members were cut off by the Christians, but who is destined to rise to life when the

Ghiaour are to be exterminated from the island.’ The statue is still (1915) as Pashley saw it, except that the flesh parts and lower draperies have been painted black, evidently to show that the saint was an “ Arab’: the cult is discontinued, though the lighting of lamps and candles at the place by negro women is still remembered (F. W. H.). Polites, [Tapaddcets, ii, 765, cites also Chourmouzes, Kpnrixd, p. 57, in this connexion.

Statues 189

will not enter where there is a semblance of a man,! and another to the effect that complete statues are the abode

of devils.» This leads to their mutilation, sometimes even against the owner’s interest.3 At the same time it is not uncommon to find statues or reliefs held in considerable superstitious respect by Moslems as the abode of j1uns possessed of power ; 4 but this power is evoked by secular magic. The Arabian Nights admir-

ably illustrate these different points of view. Statues there fall into four classes. There are, first, talismans

like the horseman in the City of Brass,s which are susceptible of use by those who know the trick: this horseman’s magic powers are enhanced by the inscription engraved on it. Secondly, there are ‘ idols’ inhabitedintermittently by 7zmus, who give oracles through

them to deceive the idolatrous.6 Others, again, like the t Cantimir, Hist. Emp. Otb., i, 184. Angels will not enter a house containing a picture, a dog, or a bell (E. Abela, in Z.D.P.V., vii, 93). Bells attract evil spirits, and Moslems fear them accordingly (Jessup, Women of the Arabs, p. 304: cf. Mrs. Mackintosh, Damascus, p. 31).

2 D’Arvieux, Mémotres, i, 45: ‘Us prétendent que les statués des hommes et des femmes sont en droit de contraindre les ouvriers qui les ont faites de leur donner une ame, & que cela ne se pouvant pas faire, . . « les diables se nichent & se servent de ces corps pour molester les hommes, mais que pour les empécher, il n’y a qu’a les mutiler & les défigurer, & que les diables les voyant en cet état, les méprisent, les

ont en horreur & vont chercher a se loger autre part.’ At the day of Judgement makers of images will be required to put a soul into them (Lane, Mod. Egyptians,i,120). In France, at S. Martial’s command, the devil quitted a statue of Jupiter in the form of ‘ un petit enfant noir comme un Egiptien ’ (Collin, Hist. Sacr. de Limoges, p. 231). Cf. the Abbé Caret’s letter from the Gambard Islands, dated the 6th of October 1834 (quoted by Maury, Croy. du Moyen Age, p. 198). 3 Le Bruyn, Voyage, 1, 82.

4 For instances see Le Strange, Palestine, p. 500; Garstang, Land of the Hittites, p. 95, n. 3. 5 Lane’s ed., pp. 304, 309: cf. the talisman of the Loadstone Island in the story of the Third Royal Mendicant, p. 51 (the talisman is again a horseman). Cf. also, p. 228, the eagle on a pillar in 4b0u Mohammed the Lazy, which effects its results by means of efrits. 6 City of Brass, p. 305.

190 Natural Cults jinn in the City of Brass, imprisoned to his armpits in a pillar for having opposed Solomon,! represent persons turned to stone by divine agency for sin. To a Moslem

the greatest sin is unbelief: because of it the King, Queen, and inhabitants of the Magian city in the First Lady’s Tale were petrified.2, A fourth class consists of virtuous persons petrified by the magic artifice of malicious persons, like the young King of the Black Islands, whose faithless wife half turned him into stone: 3 the

motif also recurs not infrequently in folk-lore. It is this last category into which the Candia ‘ Arab ’ falls, with the consequence that he is just as worthy of worship as if he had been buried in the ordinary way.

The Moslem or, rather, Semitic view of ‘ graven images’ has not been without its influence on the eastern churches, which officially prohibit statues and reliefs of sacred persons. In practice, however, ancient reliefs are occasionally objects of Christian cult, even inside the church, as for example the fairly numerous reliefs of the Thracian horseman used as ezkons of S. George in Thrace.4 At the village church of Luzani, in lower Macedonia, Mr. Wace tells me, a horsemanrelief is built into the low wall dividing the women’s gallery from the main building. The top of the relief is covered with the grease of votive candles, as the relief has a reputation for curing earache, neuralgia, &c., in children: the face of the horseman is washed, and the water used (dzdvyspa) applied to the ailing part. It is significant that the church is dedicated to S. Demetrius, a cavalier like 8. George. But reliefs of purely secular subjects may be consecrated by their positionin churches. Such is the white marble relief of a nude woman, pow-

dered fragments of which, drunk in water, are used as

1 City of Brass, p. 304. 2 [bid., p. 57.

3 [btd., p. 30. ,

4 Dumont, Mélanges d’Archéologie et d’Epigraphie, p. 219; Mertzides, At y@pat Tod trapeNOovTos, p. 41.

Reliefs Ig!

a milk-charm at the monastery of Ardenitza in Albania. The virtue of a relief is not dependent on such a posi-

tion, but only enhanced or consecrated by it, and a secular relief placed in no relation to a church may be thought to have power, among Christians as among Moslems. ‘Thus a relief of the Dioscuri by the village spring at Levetzova (Laconia), which was supposed to represent local spirits, was venerated by Christian villagers almost in our own day without coming into the sphere of the church at all.2 I’he same is true of the so-called ‘ Demeter ’ statue worshipped by the peasants at Eleusis for good crops.3 Clarke, the discoverer of this reputed survival of Demeter worship, rightly observes that the connexion with the crops is based on the supposition that certain ornaments on the polos headdress of the figure represented ears of corn; the statue is, in fact, no longer thought to be a Demeter.4 In all probability the finding of the statue chanced to coincide with an abundant harvest and the inference was (post hoc, ergo propter hoc) that the talisman was ‘ white ’

or favourable. A somewhat similar case is related from Byzantine Constantinople. In the course of building operations for a palace of Romanus I a marble bull’s head was discovered, which was burnt for lime. The

destruction of the talisman (as the event proved the bull’s head to be) resulted in recurrent epidemics among cattle all over the empire.5

In all these secular cults of statues and reliefs the underlying idea is that the figures represent spirits 1 Patsch, Berat, p. 154; cf. p. 1243 cf. above, p. 182. 2 L. Ross, Wanderungen 1n Griechenland, \1, 242.

3 E. D. Clarke, Travels, vi, 601 f.; Polites, IZapaddcers, no. 139,

and note. 4 Michaelis, Anctent Marbles, p. 242.

5 M. Glycas, Annales, 304P: ruwv OeweAiwv xataBadopevwr, Boos, dacwv, evpeOnvar pLappapivov Kepadrny: nv EVPOVTES Kat ovvTptwavtes els TOV TOD TiTavoU KaLVov BadAovawy. €& Exeivou Kal péypt TOV THE ypovwy ovK ETavcaTO TaVvTAayoU THs yijs OTOGNnY 7 TMV

‘Pwpyaiwy mepiéxer Suvacteia, TA THY Body diadGetpecar yevn.

192 Natural Cults enchanted for a purpose, good or evil, who have power,

within the limits of their enchanter’s intentions, and may be placated by a certain ritual. On the Moslem side, as we have seen, owing to the religious ban on representations of the human form, their activity is normally conceived of as maleficent, and their cult is placation.

B.—Columns, Se. An important and interesting group of worked stones which owe their superstitious veneration to their shape

is formed by the upright pierced monoliths used for superstitious purposes by the inhabitants in various parts of Cyprus. Of these some are used by women desirous of children, who seat themselves on top of the

stone; others by fever patients with the usual ragtying ceremony ; in other cases sick children and barren women are passed through the holes in the stones. So far as these practices have a connexion with religion, this is due to the proximity of the stones to churches. One stone is unofficially canonized as ‘Ayia Tpumnuevy (‘S. Bored ’).2 When these pierced monoliths were first discovered at Paphos, the usual extravagant hypotheses of ‘survivals’ were put forward.3 Subsequent researches

by Guillemard and Hogarth have made it clear that they are parts of ancient oil-presses,4 and that as many t Hogarth, Devia Cypria, pp. 46 ff.; of. p. 41. With the veneration of these monoliths may be compared the cult of certain dolmens in Brittany. In neither case is a survival probable. For the confusion in thought about survivals which is due to the ambiguity of meaning in the word ‘ pagan’ see Hasluck, Letters, p. 57.

2 This is interesting as an example of popular canonization by Christians exactly on Turkish lines. The Turks frequently anthropomorphise haunted places and objects they venerate in the same way, and ‘Ayia Tpumnpeévn is exactly paralleled by Delikit Baba (see above,

p. 89, n. 5). The sex in the present case 1s due to the gender of

eT pA. 3 Cesnola, Cyprus, p. 189.

4 Some light is shed on the method of working these by Macalister’s discovery at Gezer (P.E.F., Q.S. for 1909, p. 188).

Columns 193 as fifty of them exist in various parts of the island; of these only a very small proportion are used for any superstitious purpose. ‘ The belief in the mysterious virtues of these monoliths’, Hogarth concludes, ‘ exists in so few cases, and is so weak even in those few, that it may fairly be argued that it is only of modern origin and

has not had time even yet to develop into a universal tenet.’ }

The arbitrary selection of certain stones of this kind

for superstitious purposes, and the variation in the ritual attaching to them is probably due to local dealers in magic. All havea certain a prtorz eligibility, both as pierced stones (see above) and also, to a certain extent,

as columnar stones. Any isolated upright stone or column, if at all conspicuous, is apt to attract superstitious reverence. The underlying idea is doubtless that such isolated columns mark places where talismans

or objects enchanted for a definite purpose, generally

prophylactic, are buried. Most of the talismans of Constantinople cited by Evliya3 are connected with columns. The Column of Constantine was supposed already in Byzantine times to cover the Palladium and other relics 4 and to be on this account in a special sense 1 Devia Cypria, p. §2. The stones at Paphos are figured by Magda Ohnefalsch-Richter (Gr. Sitten und Gebrauche auf Cypern, pl. 17), who adheres to the old theory of their ancient religious use (p. 40). 2 A column is also the symbol of stability. The name Stylianos is given like Stamatios to children born after several children have died in infancy. 3 Travels, 1, i, 16 ff. ; Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantt-

nople, pp. 1 ff.; for the serpent column and its connexions with serpents see Chalcondyles, p. 329 Pp. ; Clavijo in Mérimée, Etudes, p. 320 ;

Quiclet, Voyages, p. 177; Savary de Bréves, Voyages, p. 33. An exception is the talisman made by Plato against the gnats of Constantinople (Evliya, 1, i, 17). The serpent talisman in 8. Ambrogio, Milan, is said to have come from Constantinople (Gauthiez, Mzlan, p. 18). + See Du Cange, Constant. Christ., i, 76P, and the same author’s

3295°! O

notes to Anna Comnena (382-3 p). A prophylactic service at the column,

194 Natural Cults the Luck of the city.«. A solemn burying of the talismans against plague in honour of S$. Charalambos under

a column in Athens little more than a century ago 1s recorded by Kambouroglous.? Similarly, when a place in Zante was discovered accidentally to be haunted, the

remedy was to set up there a column marked with a cross.3 ‘The same connexion between column and talis-

man is probably to be discerned in the account of an inscribed porphyry column discovered at Constantinople in 1563 and deposited as a precious thing in the treasury of the Grand Signior.4

Another superstition is that columns mark, possibly protect, hidden treasure. At Urfa (Edessa) there are two giant columns, one of which performs this function, while the other is a talisman against floods.s As no one knows which is which, the treasure remains undisturbed since the removal of the wrong column would flood the town. A column of a sacred building, if conspicuous for any in which the Emperor and Patriarch took part, was performed ‘ according to ancient custom ’ in 1327 (Niceph. Greg. viii, 15). 1 Ducas, pp. 289-90 B; Chalcondyles, p. 397 B. 2 ‘[oropia, ii, 182 (cited by M. Hamilton, Greek Saints, p. 71), from a contemporary note of 1792. 3 Polites, ITapaddcets, no. 510: *s Tov TOT Exeivo ylaTi Eivat KaKOs, éBadav ia KoAdvva pé Eva GTAUpPO azravou.

4 Lambros in Néos ‘EAAnvopvjpwr, vii, 176 (201) :-— 1563: Mn NoeuBpiw 5’ rot ad&y’ érous, ev KwvoravrivouroAen, ei Twos xnpas

Edri yuvaikds, dpvacovrés tives pos TO avfEjoat Tov olkov adris, exe ebpov Kiova tropdhupotv, TO ev pjKos ExovTa Oddy fle, TO SE mAdros o7Bapav tg. "EyxexdAarro 5€ rapa TH KedadAyR tavti Ta arotyeta EPP NEC. Evdéws peév ovdv 6 Baotdevs mpooratas €v Tots Bactretots Tobrov exopucav: ov wow Aiav eBavpace: wes péya dé Kal 7oAUTyLOV ypHua, Tois BactAtKots adrod Onoavpois evamréero.

5 See below, p. 368. ‘The same columns are regarded as remains of the catapult with which Nimrod hurled Abraham into the furnace, see further, below, p 317. Cf. Choisy (4ste Mineure, p. 134) for the Aizani

temple. Solomon hid treasure in the vaults of Baalbek (Volney, Voyage, i, 119). Cf. also Fabri, Evagat. ii, 55; de Bréves, Voyages, p. 237.

S. Fohn of the Column 195 peculiarity, may evolve its own cultus. Cases are to be found in the ‘ sweating’ column of 8. Sophia, mentioned above, and in the column in the Mosque of the Groom

at Cairo, to be cited later. Columns may easily be brought within the pale of Christianity by the analogy of the Column of Christ’s Scourging.t This motzf is employed to sanctify the superstitious cult of a column at Paphos, at which S. Paul is said to have been scourged ; the imprint of his hand appears on it, with curious inconsequence, on S§. ‘Fobn’s day.2 A column in a church 3 at Athens sacred to S. John is well known for its cures of fevers. Accord-

ing to local tradition S. John himself buried the spirits or talismans of fever and other sicknesses under the

column.4 The ritual of the cure is as follows. The patient, having made his vow, takes a thread, ‘ measures’ it on the ezkon of 8. John, and cuts off a corresponding

length.s He wears this thread for three nights tied 1 For the Column of Flagellation see Conder, Ferusalem, p. 15, and Tobler, Topogr. von Ferusalem, i, 346.

2 Hogarth, Devia Cyprta, p. 8. 3 Seventeenth-century writers speak of this column as dedicated to S. John, evidently before the building of a church. The miraculous marble column in the mosque at Beyrut which was formerly a church of S. George cures pains when rolled on the aching part, the procedure

being perhaps an echo of one of the tortures inflicted on the saint (Pococke, Voyages, 11, 275, with which compare for the procedure Amélineau, Contes de? Egypte chrétienne ii, 174).

4 Polites, ITapaddoes, no. 155; M. Hamilton, Greek Saints, pp. 65 ff.; Rodd, Customs of Modern Greece, p. 167; Kambouroglous, ‘Ioropia, i, 221, is the source of all. Cf. also Buchon, Gréce Continentale, p. 101. 5 This part of the ritual seems to have escaped the notice of former writers. The idea is of some antiquity (see Weyh, Mérpov Aap Pave, in Byz. Zeit. xxiii, 164 ff.), and has parallels elsewhere in modern Greece ; cf. especially de Launay, Chez les Grecs de Turquie, p. 183, where

the guardian-dervish of S. Demetrius, Salonica, gives to a Greek peasant a thread he has measured on an ornament of the saint’s tomb (see below, p. 263). The footprint of Christ in the El Aksa mosque at Jerusalem has long had sovereign virtue: as early as c. §70 a.p. An02

196 Natural Cults

round his arm and then affixes it with wax to the column. A similar miraculous column exists built into the church of the Virgin at Areopolis in Mani. Fever patients drink scrapings of it in water at the waning of the moon.! Columnar stones are similarly brought into the pale of Islam by connecting them with saints. A good example of the plain ‘ shaped stone’ class is afforded by

the stones at Konia associated with the tomb of the Imam Baghevi. These are two drums of an anglepillar from a classical colonnade. ‘The pillar, which formed the junction between two ranges of columns set at right angles, had its two antae worked as halfcolumns, so that the section of each drum is heartshaped. With the angle uppermost the two drums present some resemblance to a saddle, from which circumstance they are supposed to represent the horses of

the Imam turned to stone, and cures are wrought by contact with them in the posture thus suggested.2, Of another columnar stone, sixteen feet high, near Koch Hisar, Ainsworth tells a pretty story to the effect that a mosque was once being erected in a neighbouring village and good Mussulmans were contributing to it by the voluntary labour of bringing stones. A pious girl was enabled by her faith to transport this huge toninus martyr writes: ‘de petra illa, ubi stetit, multae fiunt virtutes: tollentes de ipsius vestigiis pedum mensuram, ligant pro singulis languoribus et sanantur’ (ed. Tobler, p. 26, xxiii: a slightly different version in G. Williams, The Holy City, ii, 375, n. 5). Mirike (c. 1684) relates an analogous practice by which pilgrims to the Holy Land measure off on the Stone of Unction at Jerusalem a piece of cloth

from which they fashion their future shrouds (pp. 46 f. in Tobler, Golgatha, p. 351; cf, Maundrell, ed. Wright, p. 464, who, however, does not mention the measuring). [At Bogatsko in western Macedonia a Greek mother in 1922 promised the Virgin a candle equal in length

to the boy’s height if she would restore her sick son to health.— M. M. H.} t Polites, [Lapaddcets, ii, 764, citing [Tavdwpa, xxii, 336.

2 F. W. H. See above, p. 82.

Stones Carried by Saints 197 stone to the spot where it now rests. Here a young man appeared to her and told her ‘ God had accepted her services and was well pleased ’ : the girl died on the spot and was buried beneath the stone. Evidently she was

one of the unknown ‘saints of God’, the mysterious messenger being in all probability Khidr. A cult or superstitious use of this stone is not mentioned. A rather more complicated story explains the pillar worshipped at a Bektashi tekke near Uskub in Macedonia.?

The saint Karaja Ahmed is said to have brought this stone, together with his own head, which had been cut off in a war, to the spot where it is now. A woman exclaiming at the extraordinary sight, the saint put down his head and the stone at the site of the present tekke.3 Whatever its origin, the pillar is in its present position part of the regular ritual furniture of a Bektashi house of prayer. Some similar hagiological legend in

all probability attaches (or will attach) to an ancient column composed of four drums and a base on the site of ‘Tyana in Asia Minor. This column is a fairly exact Moslem parallel to that of S. John at Athens. Persons suffering from fever visit it in the morning, taking with them a holy man who recites some prayers, after which ' Travels, i, 187. A similar story, with a less religious colouring, is told of the ‘ Maiden’s Stone ’ (Column of Marcian) at Constantinople (Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, pp. 107 f.); ef. Evliya, Travels, 1, i, 17. 2 See Evans in 7.H.S. xxi, 200 ff., who says without details that one version of the stone’s history was that it was brought by a holy man

from Bosnia.

3 F. W. H. This story is a broken-down version of that told of the Bosnian saint, Hazret Ali, whose head was cut off by his father for an

alleged intrigue (after the model of Joseph and Zuleika) with his father’s young wife. The saint, who was of course innocent, walked with his head in his hand till, a woman exclaiming at the sight, his head fell on the spot where the zurbe now stands and his father was turned into stone. He was brought to the grave of his son and brought to life again, a spring gushing forth when this miracle took place (Mirkovi¢ in W1ss. Mitth. Bosnien, i, 462 ; cf. Miss Durham, Burden of the Balkans, p. 228).

198 Natural Cults the patient ties a rag of his clothing to a nail and drives the nail into the joints of the column.:

The stone at Alexandrovo near Uskub is said by Evans to have two histories, which illustrate two widely

disseminated legends accounting for the presence of extraordinary stones. It is said (1) to have come from Mecca or (2) to have been brought by a holy man from Bosnia. As to (1), stones reported to have come from Mecca may perhaps be assumed to have ‘ flown ’, 2. e. to have come by levitation 2 at the request of some holy person. A very probable ‘ type-legend ’ is that told of

a column in the mosque of Amr at Cairo. The caliph Omar is said to have commanded this stone to transfer

itself from Mecca to Cairo. ‘The stone refusing to move, he repeated his command, emphasizing it with

a blow of his whip, of which the marks remain. He then remembered to add the words ‘ In the name of God ’ to the command, whereupon the stone obeyed.3 The stories of ‘ stones from Mecca ’ at Alexandrovo and

at Hasan Dede 4 in Asia Minor are probably based on this motif.s 1 Texier, 4ste Mineure, 11, 111. ‘ Le malade vient le matin, accom-

pagné d’un iman, qui récite quelques priéres ; aprés quoi le malade déchire une petite partie de son vetement, et la cloue dans un des joints de la pierre ; cela s’appelle clouer la fiévre. Les joints de la colonne sont criblés de clous plantés dans le méme but.’ 2 On levitation see below, pp. 285 f. 3 H. de Vaujany, Care, p. 296; cf. Lee Childe, Un Hiver au Caire, p- 49, and G. Migeon, Caire, p. 42. The column probably resembled those of the mosque at Mecca, and is perhaps mentioned also by W. G. Browne, Nouveau Voyage, i, 119. Tyndale, L’Egypte, pp. 120 ff., tells the same tale, not very well and substituting Mohammed for Omar. The connexion of the story with two great religious centres like Mecca and Cairo would ensure its circulation all over the Mohammedan world. 4 Cf. above, p. 181, n. 1; Crowfoot, in ¥. R. Anthr. Inst. xxx, 308. 5 Mrs. Bishop (‘Journeys in Persia, i, 276) relates that at New Julfa

(an Armenian town founded in the seventeenth century by Shah Abbas) cures are wrought by certain large stones, one being evidently the capital of a column; they ‘ flew’ from Echmiadzin to New Julfa

Flying Stones 199 From ‘ Flying Stone’ to ‘ Flying Castle’ is but a step. Ihe latter motzf occurs in the folk-tale of Mohammed Avisé in Spitta Bey’s collection * and also at Bosra as Kasr ‘T'ayaran (/2t. ‘ flying castle’). Possibly, however, this conception is influenced by the idea which

easterns seem to have that a group of columns, as found, for instance, in the Olympieum of Athens, did not surround a building, but rather supported one high in the air.3 In the case of the Olympieum the fragment of rubble which remains would confirm the idea. (2) The second explanation of the Alexandrovo stone, as we have seen, is derived tmmediately from a Bosnian

legend, mutilated in that it fails to explain why the saint was carrying the stone at all. The simplest form of this theme is analogous to the Koch Hisar legend, the

essence of it being the miraculous accident: a saintly person carrying a stone for a religious purpose has his or her attention distracted by a person of the other sex and

drops the burden. In north Albania the mozif recurs in one night, and, though seven times removed eighty miles, they

always returned to New Jfulfa. For Echmiadzin see Leclercq, Mont Ararat, pp. 223 ff.; the stone on which Christ drew its plan with a ray of light is interesting, see Collin de Plancy, Dict. des Reliques, 11, 78. ‘The ‘ flying stone’ motzf 1s certainly older than Islam. One of the numerous columns of Christ’s scourging ‘ quae fuit in domo Caiaphae ... modo in sanctam Sion jussu Domini secuta est ’ (Theodorus, A.D. 530 cited by Conder, Ferusalem, p. 15, as are also Paula, the Bor-

deaux Pilgrim, and Silvia; cf. Antoninus martyr, ed. Tobler, p. 28, xxv, and §. Eucherius in Tobler, Palaest. Descr., p. 33). Here the story is probably no more than a naive excuse for the change of site, for which see Hasluck, Letters, pp. 88-9. t See Le Boulicaut, du Pays des Mysteres, pp. 156 ff., and also Artin Pasha, Contes du Nil, p. 278.

2 D’Oppenheim in Tour du Monde, 1899, p. 364. The author acutely remarks that Kasr ‘Tayaran at Bosra was Colonia Nova Traiana, a fact which may have contributed to the modern legend. Lane mentions a flying castle ({housand and One Nights, p. 484).

3 The temple at Aizani is variously said to have been built on columns by the inhabitants to avoid brigands or by giants who had treasure there (Choisy, 4s1e Mineure, p. 134).

200 Natural Cults among Roman Catholics. ‘ A maiden, who was so holy that she was almost a saint, had vowed that she would carry it [a great rock] to the church of Berisha. Miraculously aided, she bore it a long way,’ but, distracted by the good looks and piping of a shepherd, she was led into profane thought: ‘the rock fell from her shoulders, and when she strove to pick it up she found her strength had gone.’! In all these cases the hero is a virgin, the magic power of virginity ? being impaired by thoughts

of the other sex. This is, I think, essential to the point. Through the hermit literature the idea was pushed

pretty far in the West. In France the Virgin Mary is twice said to have been carrying stones to build a church

and to have dropped them on hearing that the church in question had been completed.3 Everywhere the theme ramifies very interestingly. On the one hand, there 1s the story of profane persons, such as the devil or a giant, dropping stones at various surprises. Such was the origin of the ‘ pregnant stone ’, weighing more than 11,000 tons, at Baalbek. A sznn, who was with child, was carrying the stone upon her head to the temple, that being part of her daily task. On being suddenly informed that her brother had been killed, she let fall the stone and sat down upon it to weep: it has remained there ever since.4 1 Durham, High Albania, p. 193.

2 The magic power of virginity is of course a commonplace (cf. Frazer, Golden Bough, passim). ‘The ‘ influence of the other sex ’ idea is probably oriental, though not necessarily Mohammedan. 3 Sébillot, Folk-Lore de France, iv, 7 and 22. 4 Isabel Burton, [nner Ltfe of Syria, p. 231. The story seems a contamination of several. A simpler version is in Ellis Warburton, Crescent and Cross, p. 309; male jzmns were building Baalbek for Solomon, the females bringing stones. The great isolated stone was being brought by a female jinn, when she dropped it on hearing that her brother had fallen from the building. Cf. also Hanauer, Folk-Lore of the Holy Land, pp. 50, 74, and La Roque, Voyage de Syrie, 1, 124, 128.

Stones Carried by Penitents 201 The notion of carrying stones to build a church, as in the case of the Virgin above, recalls a time when it was usual for penitents in pursuance of vows to carry

stones, elther as a mere penance or in order to help practically in some sacred enterprise, frequently undertaken, besides, as an act of piety by pious persons. Thus, among Catholic Albanians it is a popular custom, per-

mitted as irregular but edifying by the Franciscan priesthood, for a man who has received absolution to bring a stone to the church next Sunday as a public penance. In France the monks of a relaxed convent were ordered to carry one stone per sin as a penance.’ In pursuance of a vow a pilgrim from Jerusalem carried stones from the Holy Land and discarded them only at the door of S. Peter’s in Rome.3 In these cases the symbolism is evidently the burden of sin. A case where practical use was made of a penance is the tumulus of S. Michael at Carnac in France, which was raised by penitents, who were condemned to bring each a sack of earth, if women, and a stone, if men.4 This further suggests the question whether the stones in the cairns, raised where pilgrimage places come in sight,5 were 1 Durham, High Albania, p. 104. ‘This helps to explain the quantity of ancient worked stones commonly found in Greek country churches, if an ancient site is in the neighbourhood, and incidentally the tradition that certain churches have been temples. The Armenian cathedral in Damascus has stones from Sinai, Tabor, and the Jordan (I. Burton, op. cit., P. 443).

2 Sébillot, ii, 72; cf. 11, 426, where erring washerwomen are so punished. 3 Acta SS. 17 Feb. (S. Salvinus) ; cf. Fabri, Evagat. 11, 195, who himself collected stones from the Holy Land. 4 Sébillot, iv, 41. 5 Fabri, op. ctt. 1, 175 (Saracens and Christians share the practice). Mandeville’s ‘ Mountjoy ’ is Nebi Samwil, the first point from which

pilgrims saw Jerusalem (Stanley, Sinaz, p. 214; Tobler, Lopogr. von Ferusalem, ii, 875). For Moslem practice see Montet, Culte des Saints Musulmans, p.19; Tristram, Eastern Customs, p.102; de Saulcy, Voyage en Terre Sainte, p. 100.

202 Natural Cults brought long distances for vows, but for the moment J have no clear evidence on the point. In such stories we observe a fusion between a penance

and a pious custom, the object being to explain a remarkable stone. An unusual looking stone suggests the question, ‘ How did it come here?’ and a more or less miraculous story as the answer. Such a stone also suggests that it may be remarkable not only in appearance, 1.€. that it may have remarkable powers.

Both these lines of thought tend to run along preconceived grooves, but must harmonize to a certain extent. If the origin story is concerned with jznms,

é.g., the property of the stone falls within the sz sphere. In this case the stone probably marks treasure or is a talisman of some sort. If the tale is pious, the personage figuring in it affects the stone with beneficent powers.

Both lines converge again in making either kind of stone potentially a remedy by black or white magic. In the case of a merely silly story like that of a girl distracted by a shepherd from her pious task, it may never develop, there being no particular moral, and the stone remains a mere stone to the end, as having no connexion with saint or 7zmn, white magic or black. C'\.—Written Stones.

More numerous and more interesting are the written

stones put to superstitious uses. The magical power attributed by Orientals to letters is well known.: As 1 Gregorovius, Wanderjahre, v, 121 (1874), says pilgrims to S. Michael on Gargano, the patron saint of madness, were in the habit of placing each a stone in a tree near the entrance of the church. But this

is perhaps allied to the French practice of putting stones in trees to cure pains (Sébillot, Folk-Lore de France, i, 352) ; possibly there is con-

fusion between the two. Physical and moral health are often assimilated. 2 On this see Hastings’s Encycl. of Religion, art. Charms (Mubamma-

Talismante Inscriptions 203 historical examples of talismanic written stones in Asia Minor may be quoted the inscription supposed to have been carried off by Harun-al-Rashid from Angora,! and

another, composed at the request of Ala-ed-din I for the protection of the walls of Konia by the mystic poet Jelal-ed-din Rumi.? Christian Miletus was similarly protected by a magic inscription3 and the Rhodian knights, in a like spirit, engraved the lintel of the chief gate at their castle of Budrum with the charm-text, Nist Dominus Custodtertt, &c.4 In the seventeenth cen-

tury more than one gate of Constantinople was protected by stone cannon-balls ‘ hang’d up over severall gates... with Turkish writing upon them’.s In modern dan). ‘To discover a thief a leaf of the book Phorkan was used on the Nile (Boucher, Le Bouquet Sacré, p. 49). The opening and shutting by the monks of the pentateuch kept in the church on Mt. Horeb de-

termined the rainfall of the district (Burckhardt, Syria, p. 567; an evidently related tale is in Palmer, Desert of the Exodus, p. 66). In the mosque of Sidi Shahin, Cairo, a silver ring on a column bore an inscription in cabalistic characters which was a charm against sterility and other maladies ; a passing Persian interpreted the inscription and found it quite ordinary (Vaujany, Cazre, pp. 282-3). 1 Haji Khalfa, tr. Armain, p. 703. 4 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. i, qo. 3 C.I.G.2895. Cf. also the prophylactic inscription on the land-walls of Constantinople (Millingen, Constantinople Walls, p. 100), and for the general use of prophylactic charms on Syrian buildings of the early Christian period, Prentice in Amer. Exped. to Syria, 111, 17 ff. A talisman inscription guards vast treasures at Tabriz (Von Schweiger-Lerchenfeld, Armenten, p. 105). 4 Newton, Halicarnassus, 1, 657. S Covel, Diaries, ed. Bent, p. 217. Covel probably refers to the two gates (S. Romanos and S. Barbara) now known as Top Kapust: this has generally been translated ‘ Cannon Gate ’, but the primary meaning of top is not ‘cannon’, but ‘ ball’. The inscribed cannon-ball 1s of course

a ‘reinforced’ amulet: for globular objects used as a protection against the evil eye in the East, see Hildburgh in Man, 1913, pp. 1 ff. (Egypt), and cf. Rycaut, Ottoman Empire, p. 40 (a golden ball suspended

over the entrance to the imperial divan). Gates, as entries, are specially in need of protection, just as all entries and the beginnings of new enterprises are regarded as potentially dangerous. An entry may

204 Natural Cults life we find Mohammedan houses customarily protected

by the apotropaic Mashaallah, and both houses and ships by the ‘lucky’ names of the Seven Sleepers. change one’s luck, and a city-gate is frequently a dark and echoing place such as jimms notoriously frequent (cf. baths, mills, and dark vaults in

general, on all of which see above, p. 110). Hence at a gateway the people passing through must be protected against an unlucky passage, while the gate itself must be defended against (1) the enemy’s entrance and (2) the evil eye’s possible effect on the vault; this last danger explains the bosses so often seen on Mohammedan archways. Generally

charms of various kinds were hung up: see below, p. 654, n. 4. An amusing story in Rycaut, Greek and Armenian Churches, p. 377, 1s worth recalling. Aleppo was suffering from locusts: to destroy them water was brought from Zem-Zem at Mecca ; it had to avoid passing under all gates and was taken over them instead. If, as often happened, these charms were weapons or fossil bones, they were apt to evolve a saint. Of this Rhodes gives the classical instance, the supposed head of de Gozon’s dragon having evolved the legend of the dragon-slaying dervish (Biliotti and Cottret, Rhodes, p. 153); a boot in one gateway of Old Chalkis (see below, p. 230, n. 1) has begotten a giant to match. A more drastic way of protecting the gate against an enemy’s entrance was by blocking it up altogether ; this was done at Jerusalem, Constantinople, &c. (see below, p. 753). Astrology also may be at the back of stories of Sultans walling up the gates by which they had entered conquered cities. A tale in de Lorey and Sladen’s Queer Things about Persta (p. 321) is illuminating. In 1806 a Persian ambassador was about to start on an expedition when the astrologers warned him it would be unlucky to go out by his palace gate, as there was an unpropitious astrological combination in that direction ; he therefore left by a breach in the wall of his neighbour’s garden. Presumably, the idea is that things

run in cycles and that, when the same stellar combination occurred again, the gate would become a specially vulnerable point and a new conqueror might take it. Professor Dawkins suggests that there may also be an idea that a great man’s route or chair or instrument is so sanctified by its connexion with him that common use would be a profanation. Professor John Fraser finds the custom an inverted parallel

to that of breaking down the city wall to admit Olympic victors. [On their return from Mecca Mohammedan pilgrims have been known to breach their garden walls to enter their homes by a new path. I have unfortunately lost the reference for this practice.— M. M. H.] ™ See below, p. 313, and n.2. They patronize especially the shipping of the Black Sea (C. White, Constantinople, i, 187).

Magical Inscriptions 205 Greek Christian houses are frequently protected by the

device nila over the door. Apotropaic charms, written on paper or metal, which are a similar expression of

belief in the magic potency of letters, are often worn suspended round the neck by Orientals, either for good luck generally or as cures for disease.

It is obvious that such magic is devised to serve its masters. Christian magic may naturally be regarded as hostile to Mohammedans, which accounts for the frequent mutilation of the crosses on Christian buildings

after a Turkish conquest. Similarly, at Smyrna the well-known inscription over the gate of the Byzantine castle, the sense of which is quite innocent, was removed in 1827, and, despite liberal offers from archaeologists anxious for its preservation, built into the new barracks; but not before the letters had been deliber-

ately chiselled out,? evidently with the intention of abolishing its magic power, conceived of as a priori

hostile to Moslems since it was associated with a Chris-

tian building. Inthe same spirit the Turkish proprietor of a village near Uskub gave a general order that ‘ written stones’ found on his premises should be thrown into the river, ‘ all such being works of the Devil and the cursed Giaour.’ 3 On the other hand, examples of ancient inscriptions which are supposed to have beneficial powers are numer-

ous; these powers, needless to say, have no connexion

whatever with the nature of the inscription. The colossal inscribed block from the monument of a certain

Caius Vibius at Philippi is used by many women who stop at the adjacent khan as a milk-charm,‘ fragments of it being broken off, powdered, and drunk in water.s

t C.L.G. 8749. 2 Arundell, Asta Minor, ii, 395. 3 Evans in Archaeologia, xlix, 86. 4 Heuzey and Daumet, Macédotne, i, 45.

5 F.W.H. A sinking on the top of this stone is said to be the hoofprint (ayvape) of Bucephalus.

206 Natural Cults Its selection is of course merely due to its colour and the presence on it of a supposed written charm. At Tatar Bazarjik (Eastern Rumelia) a Greek stele inscribed

with a proxeny decree (called Yesir Tashi or ‘ Slave’s stone ’) is used by sick, and (as usual) especially feverstricken,! persons for cure. Patients scrape the stone, as at Philippi, tie a rag of their clothing to it, and leave a para on it in payment. The stone is supposed to mark the grave of a saint who in his lifetime (‘ four hundred years ago’) was a Christian slave turned Moslem; he ordered the stone to be placed on his grave.? A ‘ stone font or holy water stoup’ with a Christian inscription in the interstices of a cross is similarly used to charm

away disease at Eljik in Galatia;3 here the patient drives in a nail to ‘ hold down’ the disease, a ritual act analogous to the universal tying of rags to sacred trees

and saints’ tombs. At Eljik the cross has been left intact and is probably thought to be part of the charm. A somewhat similar Christian example of a pagan stone

pressed into the service of religion and to some extent adopted by the church, is the famous Sigean inscription, which was long kept at the church of Yenishehr for the

cure of ague. Patients were rolled on it, while the priest read an appropriate Christian exorcism.4 This ™ According to V. de Bunsen (Soul of a Turk, p. 175), fever is one of

the few diseases which can be cured only by prayer. Its intermittent character encourages the idea that it is the work of a capricious jinn. 2 Tsoukalas, [epiypady DiAtwovmddews, p. 65 ; Dumontin Mélanges @’ Archéologie et a’ Epigraphie, pp. 201, 322. The Christian slave

may be introduced into the legend, since the letters of the supposed magic inscription are Greek.

3 Anderson in 7.H.S. xix, 88. The inscription in the arms of the cross, read by the editor ETT | MO | NOY | HC, may have been intended

for EMMANOYHA: for this word as a charm on lintels see Prentice, Amer. Exped. to Syria, iii, 21. With all deference to the editor, I expect this stone was a lintel used as a gravestone and hollowed for the purpose (see below, p. 226). 4 Lechevalier, Lroy, p. 17; Walpole, Memoirs, p. 97.

Stones connected with Treasure 207 stone was probably selected, in a district where inscrip-

tions are common, on account of the unusual, and to ordinary people illegible, character of its archaic letter-

ing.t Ina Bulgarian church near Monastir Chirol was shown a Greek inscription much worn by the knees of the faithful, which, the priest informed him, it was no use trying to read, since it was ‘ written in the devil’s language’. Nevertheless it was considered ‘ an excellent stone for exorcising evil spirits’. Here it would seem that the spirit or magic of the stone was originally ‘ black’ but had been, as it were, harnessed to serve the church. (iit) Survival or Development of Stone Cults

The selection of ancient inscriptions as objects of superstition is exceedingly capricious. In general, Anatolian peasants are apt to consider that inscriptions are a secret guide to treasure hidden in or near the stone on

which the letters are written.3 This idea, however, evokes no reverence for inscribed stones, and they are often split open without scruple to find the supposed

treasure.4 But even this degree of mystery does not attach to all inscribed stones. At Aizani (Phrygia),

where inscribed stelae of the ‘door’ type are very So also the irregular character of the lettering gave a magic reputation to an inscription seen by Lucas at Stenimakhos in Bulgaria (Voyage dans la Gréce, i, 192, cf. 198).

2 V. Chirol, ’Iwixt Greek and Turk, p. 67 (no political significance need be attached to the priest’s words !). 3 For [statues and] inscriptions regarded as marking places where treasure is buried, see Polites’ note on his [Tapaddécets, no. 408. Burckhardt was told that archaeologists are treasure hunters and make it fly through the air at their wish (Syria, p. 428). Treasure hunting in ruins is encouraged by the practice of burying money in houses (Tristram, Eastern Customs, pp. 252-3). 4 For an instance see Jirecek in Arch. Epigr. Mttth. 1886, p.95. Cf. the fate of the Moabite Stone (Wilson and Warren, Recovery of ‘Feru-

salem, p. 500; also Petermann’s account in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1871, p. 138).

208 Natural Cults common, they are habitually used as washing-blocks by

the women of the village. Unfamiliarity, therefore, seems certainly one condition of the selection both of ‘ treasure ’ stones and of ‘ healing ’ stones. The interest shown by ‘ Frank’ travellers ‘is another. But the ultimate choice of such stones for reverence or superstitious regard probably depends on pure accident. The follow-

ing story, told me in Thrace, illustrates the ordinary attitude of the peasant’s mind toward them. A Bulgarian peasant, living between Viza and Kirk Kilise, found an inscribed stone, which he took to his house. His wife used it as a washing-block, but was at once visited by terrifying dreams and the farm animals began to die. Next the mother-in-law of the peasant trod on

the stone and broke it; she died shortly after. The peasant, getting frightened, took the stone back to the place where he found it, and offered sacrifice (kurban) upon it. A Greek passing by saw the newly shed blood and inquired the reason of the sacrifice ; having heard the tale, he made light of it, put the stone on his horse, and rode away withit. But the ill luck followed him and his horse went blind. The moral is of course that the stone was bewitched or 7zun-haunted (orowyewwpévov) and

was one of those best left alone.2, A run of good luck following its acquisition, on the other hand, might have

proved its title to superstitious reverence, if not to adoption by religion.

The origins of such cults as these depend not on tradition but on coincidence. The chance of finding a ‘survival’, 1.¢. a stone venerated continuously from t See below, pp. 214 ff. 2 A very similar medieval Greek story of an enchanted stone, which was dug up by accident and brought ill luck, is given by Polites, [Tapaddceus, 11, 1139 f., though here the stone does not appear to have had

an inscription. The aid of the church was called in to conjure the spirits back into the stone, after which it was again buried. For jinns haunting an ancient sarcophagus cf. Lane, Mod. Egyptians, 1, 147.

False ‘ Survival’ 209 ancient times to our own, is so slight as to be negligible. It is only by chance that altars or votive stelae are pre-

ferred to monuments of a purely secular character. Supposed ‘ survivals ’ of this kind will not bear examina-

tion any more than the Cyprian monoliths. Ramsay, in his Pauline Stud1es,! mentions a written stone used by

Turks for superstitious purposes, for which he claims that its cult was continuous from antiquity. His account is as follows: ‘Three or four miles south of Pisidian Antioch we found in a village cemetery an altar dedicated to the god Hermes. On the top of the altar there is a shallow semicircular depression, which

must probably have been intended to hold liquid offerings poured on the altar, and which was evidently made when the altar was constructed and dedicated. A native of the village ... told us that the stone was possessed of power, and that if any one who was sick came to it and drank of the water that gathered

in the cup, he was cured forthwith of his sickness. ‘This belief has lasted through the centuries ; it has withstood the teaching and denunciation of Christians and Mohammedans alike.’

The fact of the cultus or folk-lore practice attached to this stone 1s clear enough, but some of Ramsay’s inferences are more than disputable. If, as seems beyond doubt, this inscribed stone is Sterrett’s No. 349, a quadrangular cippus with inscription recording the dedication of a Hermes,*1.¢. a statue of Hermes, the stone was never an altar except in form. ‘There is, therefore, no reason to refer the beginnings of its cultus-use to ancient times. It was most probably selected as a suitable stone

for a grave and transported in recent times to the Turkish cemetery. The hollow on the top of the ‘altar’ probably dates in its present form only from the adaptation of the stone to its use as a tombstone ;_ previously it may have had some kind of sinking for the attachment 1 Pp. 156 ff. 2 Wolfe Expedition (Papers A.S.A. ili), p. 218 (Alti Kapu). The text

3295°1 P

runs: 6 detva | Atolundor[s | “Epujy | avéOnxev.

210 Natural Cults of the statue of Hermes alluded to in the inscription. Circular sinkings are commonly made on Turkish tomb-

stones; the reason usually given is that birds are en-

abled to drink of the rain and dew that collect in them.: Further, Turkish Fews have a superstition that the dew which collects on tombstones cures children of fainting fits.2 This belief is possibly borrowed from, probably shared by, the Turks. It will be seen that this reduces

the fact that the stone is inscribed with the name of a god toa mere accident. Its potency comes primarily

from its use as a tombstone and is probably reinforced by the fact that it has an inscription not * understanded of the people ’, and therefore assumed to be of a magical character. Sir Arthur Evans found at Ibrahimovée, near Uskub (Macedonia), a Roman altar dedicated to Jupiter Optimus Maximus, which was used by the villagers as a rain-

charm. It is generally kept face downward, but in times of drought Christians and Mohammedans, headed tC. White, Constantinople, i, 319, ili, 347; Walsh, Constantinople, ii, 423. According to Skene (Wayfaring Sketches, p. 218), the hollows are looked upon as affording the dead a means of practising the virtue of charity to the animal world : in Syria they are said to be for souls to drink out of (Baldensperger, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1893, p. 217). There may be a reminiscence of the basins placed to feed the pigeons of the Kaaba at Mecca (Burckhardt, Arabia, i, 277) ; pigeons are a feature of Turkish cemeteries and sacred birds, since a pigeon is supposed, according to one account, to have inspired Mohammed (Varthema in Burton’s Pilgrimage to Al-Medtnah and Meccah, London 1906, ii, 352). For the sacredness of pigeons in ‘Turkey, see Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de Constantinople, p.7; Evliya, Travels, 1, i, 199; Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, pp. 159, 201. 2 Danon in Onztéme Congrés d Ortentalistes, § vii, p. 264. Cf. the analogous medicinal use of water from a cup which has been buried for three years on a dead body ([Blunt], People of Turkey, ii, 145.) In Bosnia

the rain-water which collects in a hollow of a stone—apparently natural—selected for veneration for reasons unknown to us, is drunk by sick peasants for cure. The broad principle underlying all such uses is that the absorption by swallowing not only of parts of a sacred object, but of things which have been in contact with it, is beneficial,

Inscribed Stones as Rain-Charms 211 by a local dey, go together to the stone and, having restored it to its upright position, pour libations of wine on the top, praying the while for rain.t_ Evans remarks

that the procedure here has no parallels in ordinary Slavonic folk-usage, and suggests that the use of the altar has been continuous since Roman times. But, while the practice of wetting the rain-charm is worldwide, the Roman rain-rituals he cites as parallels do not include libation. In all probability this stone has been found in comparatively recent times, and the ‘ Frankish’ writing on it, from some combination of circumstances unknown to us, interpreted as a rain-charm, the ritual being prescribed by a local dervish or sorcerer. On this particular case some light is thrown by the peasants’ beliefs regarding a ‘ written stone’ buried in a vineyard near Monastir: this was once dug up, but torrents of rain followed. It is now kept buried, because, if any one dug it up again, zt would never stop raining.» ‘The more accommodating jinn who presides over the stone at

Ibrahimovée can be so placated as to bring about a sufficient, but not excessive, rainfall when required. The idea of rain-making ‘ written stones’, it may be remarked, is familiar to the Turks, since Turk, their eponymous ancestor, is said to have received from his father Japhet (who, in turn, inherited it from Noah) a stone engraved with the name of God which had the property of causing and stopping rain. This particular stone has been lost, but stones are said to be sometimes found which possess the same properties and are supposed to have some vague connexion with the original stone of Noah.3 t Archaeologta, xlix, 104. 2 From Mr. A. J. B. Wace; cf. Wace and Thompson, Nomads of the Balkans, p. 133. 3 D’Herbelot, Bibl. Orientale, s.vv. Giourtasch and Turk, and Supplement, p.140. A rough boulder on the summit of the Cyprian Olympus, which seems to have been vaguely connected with the ark of Noah, was P2

212 Natural Cults A Christian stone-cult in connexion with a church of the Apostles near Preveza affords a baffling example of haphazard selection: for this stone, though venerated,

is not in itself at all remarkable. We can only guess

that its veneration is due to dreams and other accidental

circumstances. The legend in regard to it is most unhelpful. The stone in question is preserved outside a church immediately to the left of the high road between Preveza and Yannina, about two hours from the former place. ‘There seems no question of ‘ survival ’, or even of antiquity, since the stone was discovered in 1867. It has been enclosed in a small, pillar-like shrine of plastered rubble of the type commonly seen on Greek

roadsides. ‘he upper part of the pillar includes the usual niche, facing west and containing a cheap ezkon of 5S. Peter and Paul and an oillamp. The stone itself is built into the lower part of the pillar, one surface only being exposed under a niche facing south. It seems to be an ordinary unworked stone of irregular shape with two or three sinkings in its exposed surface. ‘The whole stands in close juxtaposition to the south-east corner of

the humble modern church, and is surrounded by a wooden railing with two gates. Pilgrims pass in by the eastern gate, kiss the stone, and pass out by the western

gate. Incubation (for one night) is practised in the church, and the stone has a great reputation for cures, which are not confined to Christians : a Moslem shepherd, for example, 1s said to have cured his sick flock by

passing them through the enclosure. As to the discovery of the wonder-working stone, the story told me formerly used as a rain-charm by the local Greeks. In times of drought it was lifted on poles, to the accompaniment of singing, by the peasants of the surrounding villages (Hackett, Church of Cyprus, p. 463, quoting Lusignan). Here the position of the stone seems to have had more to

do with its selection than the stone itself. Any mountain-top is an appropriate place for watching the weather, and particularly for rainmaking, since mountain-tops attract rain-clouds.

Healing Stone of Preveza 213 by the priest attached to the church is as follows. A monk from a neighbouring monastery was bidden by

a vision to build at this spot a church to the Holy Apostles. One of the trees cut down during the clearing of the site dled copiously. This was regarded as a sign from Heaven, indicating that the desired site for

the church was found. A stone was placed on the stump of the tree to stop the bleeding, and it is this stone which receives the reverence of pilgrims to-day. It is remarkable that in this legend the stone now regarded as sacred plays an entirely secondary part, and may even be regarded as receiving homage vicariously for the miraculous tree-stump it is supposed to cover. In fact, the whole of the story betrays itself as derived from secular folklore adapted clumsily enough to account for the miraculous stone. The bleeding tree was evidently of the dangerous haunted (orotyevwpevov) class : 1

the real purpose of the stone is clear from the fact that when wood-cutters fell a tree of this sort they place a stone in the middle of the trunk to prevent the spirit

of the tree rushing out and doing them harm.? The official account of the discovery wholly ignores the marvels attending it, and fails to make plain how the virtues of the stone were recognized.3 Its main 1 For bleeding trees in general see above, p. 175, n. 5. 2 Polites, op. ctt., no. 324. 3S. Byzantios, Aoxipsov rhs” Aprns pp. 258 f. : “ Eis @daw Kadoupevnv “Avw Aovtaav éxeito apyatds tis tepos Naos éx’ dvdpare Tav ayiwy “AmoordAwy ‘Aibdpu’ émuxadovpevos, evexa TOD mpds weonp-

Bpiav, €£w tot Naod mpos ro tepov Brya, deEwbev brdpyovros évtos THS ys ywriwdovs Twos AiBov, ov avexadvibapev TH 1867 Ever, Kai mepredpafapev, dia KovBourAtou, de’ dv Aoyorrotobvras 7roAAd, Kat dt dv éevepyotvTat, TH Geod ydpire dia tpecoBerav Tav TravevP@yjwv ’AroaToAwy dSuadopa tayaTwv xapicpara, ov povov mpos TOUS HuETEpOUS, GAAd Kai mpos Tovs éeTrepoPpyoKous, mpociovras Kat emiKaAovpevous Thy €k TOU iepod Aifov owpatixny Oeparetay edAaBds Kat mpoode-

povras Knpous Te Kai dAXa aduepwpata. "Ered7 d€ 6 Gavparoupyos obros Aifos, wv adavys, 5¢ "ApytepatiKys érromreias avexadddhbn xata “LovAvov Tot eipnévou Erovs, Kat mepreppayOn, ws elpynrat,

214 Natural Cults importance for us lies in the claim that the sacred stone was discovered under clerical supervision little more than fifty years ago. The entire impossibility of certainty as to the age and

origin of such cults, and particularly the danger of arguing from analogies, is shown by the history of the ‘ Black Stone ’ preserved at the tomb of Daniel at Susa

(Sis). The tomb of Daniel is known to have been shown at Susa as early as a.p. §30.! ‘The ‘ Black Stone’ was originally a block of dark marble, nearly cubical in form, bearing hieroglyphic figures in relief and cuneiform inscriptions. In thefifties of the last century it was held in great honour and considered bound up with the

luck of the province. At that time (and probably to this day) its fragments were to be found built into one

of the porticoes attached to the tomb of Daniel. It thus offered to all appearances a very fair counterpart

of the broken Black Stone built into the Kaaba at Mecca, which is generally, and probably rightly, considered a relic of idolatrous worship surviving into the later cult. By the lucky accident of frequent travellers’ visits to Susa, the actual history of the Black Stone and its rise to fame is known in some detail. About 1800 the Black Stone was discovered in the mound covering the ruins of Susa, and rolled down to the river-bank by the very dervish who kept the tomb in the fifties. It there served for some years as a washing-block, and

attracted the notice of several European travellers. Monteith and Kinneir in 1809 found it was treated with some superstitious respect,? and made drawings of

the inscriptions. In 1811 Sir R. Gordon, who tried edénoev iva diopOwb7 Kat 6 piKpos Kal TreTaAatwpévos Nads, dzep Kat eyéveto’ aAAa Tovrou, ek TEptaTacews TWos Eira mUpTOAnOEvTos,

avexawio8n évdoEdrepos Kat Aapmporepos ... ev €ret I87I.” t Theodosius, De Situ Terrae Sanctae, ed. Geyer, Itin. Hieros. p. 149. 2 In Egypt and Syria ancient stones, figured and written, seem generally so treated (see Garstang, Land of the Hittites, p. 95, n. 3, and p. 97).

Black Stone of Susa 216 without success to obtain possession of the stone, found

its reputation on the increase: after this, presumably

for security, it was buried, then disinterred by the guardians of the tomb of Daniel. In 1812 Ouseley found it had a reputation as a talisman against plague, hostile invasion, and other evils. In 1832 a ‘ stranger sayyid ’, supposed to be a ‘ Frank’ in disguise, blew it to pieces with gunpowder in the hope of discovering hidden treasure: this was evidently the outcome of the interest shown in the stone by foreigners. Naturally enough, no treasure was found. But, probably from the conviction that, as the stone (1) attracted Franks ' and (2) did not contain treasure, it must have remarkable occult powers, ‘ the fragments were carefully collected and reinterred within the precincts of the tomb ; but immediately afterwards the province was almost depopulated by the plague, the bridge of Shuster suddenly broke, and the famous dam at Hawizah was carried away ; all of which disasters were, of course, ascribed to

the destruction of the talisman.2’ The rise of the stone from obscurity to great superstitious importance can thus be placed between the years 1800 and 1832. In conclusion, having shown how quickly a stone may rise to honour even in modern times, we may cite as a pendant the history of a suddenly arrested pillar-cult

in Cairo, quite primitive in form, which rose to its climax and fell again apparently within a few days or weeks, both rise and fall being due to the arbitrary acts of definite persons. A contemporary observer gives the following account : 1 Of. Arundell, 4s1a Minor, i, 62 ff. For the Moabite Stone see above, p. 207, n. 4. 2 Rawlinson, in ‘7.R.G.S. ix, 69: for the history of the stone as given above, see further Walpole, Travels, p. 423, (with Monteith’s drawing of the stone) ; Ouseley, Zravels, i, 421 f.; de Bode, Travels in Laurtstan, il, 191 ; Loftus, Travels in Chaldaea, p. 416, cf. p. 421, and Trans. Roy. Soc. Ltt. v (1856), p. 446.

216 Natural Cults ‘On the line of street from the citadel to Bab Zueileh is a mosque called Giama-el-Sais, or Mosque of the Groom. At the corner of it is a high Corinthian pillar. ... I asked how the lower part of the pillar came to be covered all over with a thick

coat of plaster, and received for answer, that this was the celebrated Amood-el-Metuely, which was proclaimed by a Mogrebbin sheikh to have miraculous effects, and that if sterile women licked it with their tongue, they would become mothers. All on a sudden the pillar was so besieged by people wishing to lick it, that the streets were blocked up, and the Pasha Mahommed Ali, hearing of the delusion, caused a guard to stand while the masons plastered and built the lower part of it round with bricks.’ 2

These two ‘ life-histories ? make it abundantly clear that a stone-cult, however primitive in type, need not be chronologically of ancient origin, even where the stone is itself ancient. Further, that a venerated stone need not represent the displaced central cultus-object of the holy place in which it is found, but may be, as at Susa, an originally independent object attracted into

the orbit of an already existing sanctuary, or, as at Cairo, a portion of an already existing sacred building arbitrarily selected for special veneration. The selection, however, of the Bab Zueileh column as an object of cult by would-be mothers is probably not arbitrary, but dependent on its having been formerly the column of execution.3 The various superstitions connected with executed criminals are as homogeneous as they are crude. Lane found that in Egypt a mixture of blood and the water with which the bodies of executed criminals have been washed, is drunk by women 1 There seems to be a column credited with similar powers at Medinet-el-Fayum. I know of it only from Sir Gilbert Parker’s story, The Eve of the Needle, in Donovan Pasha. 2 Paton, Hrst. of the Egyptian Revolution (1870), 11,276 f. This story

is particularly interesting in view of the desperate efforts which have been made to find a classical past for the Athenian column of S. John. 3 Tyndale, L’Egypte, p. 42.

Column of Execution 217 for sterility and by men and women both for ophthalmia.t_ Another method of curing barrenness was to step

seven times, without speaking, over the body of a decapitated person.? ‘The idea seems to be that such persons passed out of life without any preliminary decline of vitality or unconsciousness, such as is common in ordinary deaths, and they make, on the one hand, the most dreaded ghosts,3 and, on the other, if innocent victims, the most powerful agents for good to their suppliants.s 1 Mod. Egyptians, 1, 325. 2 [bid.i, 326. For the connexion with sterility see especially Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabte, ii, 164, quoted below, p. 218, n. 2. 3 Niya Salima, Harems @’ Egypte, p. 260, says that efrits (as opposed to

jinns) ‘ prennent naissance au moment et sur le théatre méme d’un accident suivi de mort: leur hantise donne le délire de la persécution et la folie de suicide ’. 4 For the Jews, a person who has died a violent death is called 1p50 facto

a saint (Carmoly, Jtinératres, p. 502). In the West, in connexion with popular (as opposed to Papal) canonization, it is noticeable, especially in the case of kings, that a violent and, if possible, literally bloody death is a desideratum. Kingship toa certain extent in itself implies sanctity (cf. touching for the King’s evil), and to touch the Lord’s anointed is sacrilege.

A king who dies a violent death, whether or not in combat with the heathen, stands a good chance of canonization by the people. Thus, S. Os-

wald and $8, Eadmund (of East Anglia) fell in battle (Hutton, English Saints, pp. 128, 138-44), while S. Oswine, S. Ethelbert (of East Anglia), S. Kenelm, Edward II, and Henry VI were all murdered (Hutton, pp. 136, 153, 153-4, 161, 162). Huis chance is increased by his being of notably pious life (cf. Edward the Confessor, in Hutton, p. 159; cf. also the case of S. Louis of France), or by his being young, when the point is probably

virginity (cf. S. Edward of the West Saxons, murdered at seventeen by his step-mother, see Hutton, op. czt., p. 155). Edward II, however, had no qualification besides kingship and his violent death: the same is perhaps true of Charles | (Hutton, pp. 338 ff.). Becket, on the other hand, is both a consecrated man and sacrilegiously and bloodily murdered: his personal popularity during his lifetime, however, and the papal convenience after his death would in any case have decided his canonization. In general, the laymen of political character, whom attempts have been made to canonize, seem all to have died by violent deaths: of these Simon de Montfort (Hutton, o. cit., pp. 270 ff.) is typical. In the child saints, alleged victims of the Jews, such as S. William of Norwich and 8. Hugh of Lincoln (Hutton, pp. 323 ff.), we have

218 Natural Cults It is best that the blood: should be taken almost before life is extinct?, as it is evidently supposed to retain the the combination of youth (t.¢. virginity, as above) and bloody death. The first saints, too, were martyrs. The idea is seen at its crudest in the cult of the decollati at Palermo (see especially Marc Monnier, Contes Populaires en Italie, p. 27-9: cf. the account of the Glorious Hand in Baring Gould’s Curtous Myths, 2nd series, iv, 140 ff.), and in the superstitious value of relics from executed persons. Thiers, Trazté des Superstitions, i, 390, inveighs against such use of the accessories of sudden death, whether it comes by murder or by execution. 1 The most potent of all relics was the blood of a martyr shed at his

martyrdom, his life-blood in fact. The only miracle attributed to Charles I was wrought by a handkerchief dipped in his blood (Hutton, English Saints, p. 349), and such relics were eagerly sought down to quite recently as often as Turks martyred Christians (cf. Néov MaprupoAdytov, passim). Blood was also a sovereign remedy against leprosy. An angel revealed to Amis that his leprosy would be cured if his friend Amile would consent to kill his two children, and wash him in their blood. As Amis had risked his life for Amile, the latter cut off his children’s heads, took a little blood, replaced the heads, and washed Amis with the blood : he was cured of his leprosy and the children revived

by a miracle (cf. the early thirteenth century French story used by Pater, Renaissance, pp. 1 ff.). The same motif exactly is used to revive a faithful vizir turned to stone in one of Kunos’ tales (Forty-four Turkish Tales, pp. 217 ff.). We may also compare Constantine’s proposal to cure his leprosy by bathing in infants’ blood (Strack, Blutaberglaube, p. 22; of. Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, 1274, for Pharaoh’s bathing in the fresh blood of Hebrew infants to cure his leprosy, on which see also Hasluck, Letters, p. 203), and the historical infusion of three (Jewish) children’s blood made by his Jewish doctor in an attempt to save Pope Innocent VIII’s life in 1492 (Gregorovius, Stadt Rom, vii, 306) ; to the Pope’s credit, be it said, it was done against his will. In all these cases the innocence, especially the virginity, of the children increases the potency of the blood, but the blood is again the vital principle taken with the life still in it. Cf. also the stories told by Mrs. Hume Grifhth. The child of a rich merchant was suffering from sore eyes. A sheep was killed and, while the blood was still hot, the head of the child was inserted into the sheep’s body (Behind the Veil in Persia, p. 280). Atan Armenian wedding in Persia a sheep is killed as the bride passes the

threshold and she puts her foot in the blood (2b7d., p. 281). Fever patients are similarly wrapped in the skin of a newly slaughtered sheep (van Lennep, Travels in Asta Minor, 1, 284).

2 On this point Niebuhr (Voyage en Arabie, ii, 164) is explicit. A

Column of Execution 219 vital principle and so to be particularly efficacious as a charm.

Deriving perhaps from this cult of the column of execution is the practice followed in the mosque of Sultan Hasan in Cairo.:. The mihrab there has four columns, which are good for fever and barrenness. They are wetted with lemon-juice and then rubbed with a brick from Mecca which is kept in the mosque.’ The resultant reddish liquid is drunk by the patient :

the conjecture may be hazarded that this liquid is a substitute for the original blood. Our general conclusions may be tabulated somewhat

as follows : (1) Certain kinds of stones, especially (a) holed stones,

(6) columnar stones, (c) stones carved with figures, and soldier in Persia had shot his officer dead ; ‘ sur quoi d’abord Ja main Jui fut coupée et ensuite il fut pendi. A peine lui avoit on coupé la main, que quantité de femmes s’avancérent .. . pour avoir quelque chose du sang répandii. Elles se battoient pour le sable, qui étoit teint du sang de cet homme, et lorsque ce meurtrier pendit a la potence, plusieurs femmes ne faisoient qu’aller et venir dessous la potence, et tout cela dans Pidée que cela les aideroit pour devenir enceintes ’. 1 Vaujany, Caire, p. 193. 2 The mthrab columns in the mosque of Amr at Damietta cure jaundice, if the patient scrapes a little powder from them and drinks it in some liquid (W. G. Browne, Nouveau Voyage, 11, 164); cf. Vaujany, Alexandrie, p. 205, who says that the patient first wets the column with lemon-juice and then licks it. Mzbrab columns, being often of unusual

material, easily become objects of superstition; in this case, being made of oriental alabaster (Sladen, Queer Things about Egypt, p. 198), they were yellow and therefore naturally good for jaundice. The licking

ritual is found again and again. In the mosque of Kalaun at Cairo there are columns which cure fever and sterility when rubbed with lemon-juice and licked (Vaujany, Caire, p. 176; Duff Gordon, Letters from Egypt, p. 23). A stone in the Attarin mosque of Alexandria has a Greek inscription on it : wetted with lemon-juice and licked, it cures fever (Vaujany, Alexandrie, p. 109). A brass panel at Damascus with an Arabic inscription on it cured fever, when licked (I. Burton, Inner Life of Syria, p. 128). This ritual licking may ultimately derive from the column of execution, the Sultan Hasan practice being the intermediate link.

220 Natural Cults (d) inscribed stones (irrespective of the meaning of their inscriptions), are especially likely to attract superstitious veneration. (2) Selection from among these classes depends on such considerations as size, or other conspicuousness,

backed by the coincidence of dreams, or other acci-

dental happenings, with their discovery or use. A stone’s chance of selection for veneration is greatly en-

hanced if it is introduced (accidentally or purposely) into (a) a sacred building or (4) a cemetery. (3) ‘The ritual connected with the veneration of such stones is exactly that of other venerated objects in popular religion, chiefly forms of ‘ contact ’ or ‘ absorption ’.

(4) Reverence for such stones, whether secular or religious, by Christians or Moslems, need not be of old standing, nor need it persist. Proved or even probable survivals from antiquity are exceedingly rare.

§ 3. Cave Cutts The development through folklore to religion of cave

cults is very similar to that of tree cults. The supernatural inhabitant of the cave is first considered merely

as a ghost or apparition, like the ‘ Negress’ of the Kamares cave.? If such an apparition made itself unpleasant it would undoubtedly be exorcized or placated with gifts : in this way it might be found by experience —here another word for coincidence—to have a posi-

tive ‘white’ value. Up to this stage the cult has no religious colour.

The following notes of cave-cults in Greco- Turkish Athens about 1800 are given by Hobhouse and Dodwell. The first refers to the rock-passage above the stadium.

‘The first day I visited the place, I observed a flat stone in the side of the rock, strewed with several bits of coloured rag, 1 Above, pp. 175-9. 2 W.R. Halliday in Folk-Lore, xxiv, 359.

Cave Cults in Athens 221 broken glass, flour, and honey, and a handful or two of dry pease. As I was going to examine them, a Greek in company exclaimed, ‘* Don’t touch them, Affendi, they are the Devil’s goods—they are magical’’. On enquiry, he assured me that some old women of Athens, well known to be witches, came often to this cavern in the dead of the night, and there performed their incantations, leaving these remnants for offerings

to the evil spirit.’

Dodwell, by a lucky chance, came into still closer

contact with the cult of the so-called ‘ Tomb of Cimon ’ near the church of S. Demetrius * Loumbardieris’ :

‘While I was drawing the outside of this sepulchral chamber, two

Turkish women arriving seemed much disconcerted at my presence ; and after some consideration and conference, desired me to go about my business, as they had something of impor-

tance to do in the cave, and did not choose to be interrupted. When I refused to retire, they called me dog and infidel! One

of the women then placed herself on the outside for fear I should intrude, while the other entered; and after she had remained there about ten minutes, they both went away together ; warning me at my peril not to enter the cave ! ‘The Greek who was with me said he was certain they had been performing magic ceremonies, as the cavern was haunted

by the Motpa, or Destinies: nothing would have tempted him to enter, and when I was going in, he threw himself upon

his knees, entreating me not to risk meeting the redoubted sisters; who he was confident were feasting on what the Turkish women had left for their repast. I found in the inner chamber a small feast, consisting of a cup of honey and white almonds, a cake, on a little napkin, and a vase of aromatic herbs

burning, and exhaling an agreeable perfume. ‘This votive offering was placed upon a rock, which was cut and flat at top.

... When I returned from the sepulchre, I found the Greek pale and trembling, and crossing himself very frequently. When he saw that [ had brought out the contents of the feast, he told me he must quit my service, as he was confident that I should shortly experience some great misfortune for my impiety in 1 Hobhouse, Albanta, 1, 325.

222 Natural Cults destroying the hopes and happiness of the two women, by removing the offerings they had made to the Destinies, in order

to render them propitious to their conjugal speculations.” | gave the cake to the ass, who had brought my drawing apparatus; and by whom it was devoured without any scruples ; but

unfortunately, as we were returning home, this animal... ran away braying and kicking till he broke my camera obscura in pieces. I collected the fragments as well as I could; while my Greek, who was quite sure that the accident was owing to my intrusion into the cave, triumphed in his predictions ! ‘Almost every cavern about Athens has its particular virtues; some are celebrated for providing its (szc) fair votaries with husbands, after a few sacrifices ; others are resorted to by women when advanced in pregnancy, who pray for prosperous

parturition, and male children; while others are supposed to be instrumental in accomplishing the dire purposes of hatred and revenge. But those evil spirits, whose assistance is invoked for vengeance and blood, are not regaled upon cakes and honey ;

but upon a piece of a priest’s cap, or a rag from his garment, which are considered as the most favourable ingredients for the perpetration of malice and revenge.’ *

Of the cave-cults at Athens mentioned by Hobhouse and Dodwell several have survived Turkish dominion. Kambouroglous, writing in the second half of the nineteenth century, cites a cult at the cave of the Stadium (rpimo AOdp.) > and two on the Pnyx Hill, one directed to the Fates (Kadoxtovpddes) which is, or was, used by girls

as a charm for obtaining husbands (probably that mentioned by Dodwell),3 and another called the ‘ Cave of the old man’ (oznAna rot Tépov).4 Here ‘ old man’ is evidently a translation of the Turkish ‘ Baba’, which implies that the spirit of the cave was conciliated as far as the Turks were concerned and fell short of official sainthood only in so far as he had no building in his 1 Dodwell, Tour through Greece, i, 396 ff. 2 “Ioropta, i, 222. 3 Tour through Greece, i, 221.

4 Ibid. i, 207, 222. This is the ‘ Tomb of Cimon’; it has now no signs of being regarded with superstitious reverence, rather the reverse.

Types of Sacred Caves 223 honour or organized attendance. In the same way Delikli Baba, a cave-saint under the Palamidi fortress at Nauplia has for the Greek narrator of his story all the attributes of the ‘ Arab ’ 7zmn of folk-lore.!

When the cave-cult is fully accepted as ‘ white ’, the qinn takes rank as a saint and may or may not be identified with an historical or pseudo-historical person. The cave is then looked upon as (1) the scene of some event in the saint’s life,2 (2) his refuge or habitual abode,3 or (3) his grave. ‘The tendency is towards the last, but the various phases may be fused as at Kruya, where Sari Saltik kills the dragon who inhabits the cave, retires to the cave, and lives in it, leaving traces of his presence in the shape of a miraculously petrified melon! At Kaliakra [Kilgra] the same saint is buried in the cave formerly inhabited by the local dragon. We remark by the way that dervish ascetics not infrequently inhabit caves and ancient rock tombs. For

example, the ‘tomb of Mithridates’ at Amasia was thus used in the fifties by a dervish from Samarkand who had seen the place in a dream.® It is obvious that all three aspects of caves in relation to holy men are equally applicable to Christianity, in which we find the same dragon-caves, refuge-and dwell-

ing-caves,? and tomb-caves as in Islam. Indeed, the t Polites, [Tapaddcecs, no. 446; see further above, p. 89, n. 5. 2 For birth-caves see below, p. 225 and n. I. 3 For this there is a Moslem prototype in the Meccan cave of Jebel Nur, where the Prophet retired for inspiration (Burckhardt, Arabia, i, 320). Cf. the case of Hasan ‘ Chelife ’ above, p. 169. 4 Degrand, Haute Albante, pp. 236 ff.; below, pp. 434 ff. 5 Evliya, Travels, ii, 72; below, pp. 429 ff. 6 Skene, dnadol, p. 105; cf. Anderson (Stud. Pont. i, 64) and van Lennep (Travels in Asta Minor, i, 323) for S. Chrysostom’s retreat in a classical rock-cut tomb near Niksar. 7 The common Christian persecution motif has led also to the conception of the prison-cave (‘ Prison of $. Polycarp ’ at Smyrna, in de Burgo, Viaggto, i, 461, &c.).

224 Natural Cults religion of such sites depends on no more than the name of the hero of the legend, which in turn depends on his clientéle: Sari Saltik’s grave in the Kilgra cave is called 5. Nicolas’s as well for the benefit of a mixed

population. But the mere improbability would not have impeded the Christian identification as is seen by the existence of a corresponding apocryphal cave-tomb

of 8. Stephen outside Chalkis, which seems to be a development without a Moslem interlude from a secular cave cult.t Interesting as an example of the arbitrary methods by which caves may be associated with historical persons is the following account of the so-called ‘ Shop of David’, who is regarded by Moslems as the patron of armourers : ‘Mr. Austen Layard ... observed near Ser Pul Zohab, to the north-west of Kermanshah, an ancient chamber excavated in arock. This excavation is known throughout the mountains of Luristan as the ‘* Dukkian Daoud ” (David’s shop). It is here, according to popular report, that the psalmist carried on his humble trade. . . . His shop is situated in a spot so difficult of access, that both he and his customers must have been daily placed in most critical positions. The “* Dukkian Daoud ”’ is, nevertheless, a well-known place of pilgrimage for the inhabitants of the surrounding country, who are mostly of the sect called Daoudee. . . . Sacrifices of sheep are constantly offered before the Dukkian, and few undertakings are commenced without invoking the benediction of the psalmist.... ‘The excavated chamber is evidently the tomb of a prince or high-priest of the Sassanian epoch. Beneath the excavation is a small sculpture,

representing one of the magi near a fire-altar, in the act of adoration. This is supposed by the tribes to portray Dawid preparing his anvil and furnace.’ ? 1 This is mentioned by Stephani (Retse des Nérdlichen Griechenlandes, p. 22), who says pious offerings were laid there as in the Athenian

caves. Buchon (Voyage dans [’Eubée [1841], p. 71) says paras were

offered. The cave has now developed into a full-fledged church. (F. W. H.) 4 White, Constantinople,i, 190 f. ; cf. Mrs. Bishop, Fourneys in Persta, 1, 85.

Types of Sacred Caves 225 Summing up, we find that caves are naturally merely bogey-ridden, but under suitable influence they blossom out in connexion with (1) hermit saints as retreats,

(2) persecuted saints as refuges, (3) martyr saints as dungeons, and (4) all saints as possible burial-places. Under special influences, which I do not yet understand,

caves are regarded as birthplaces. Mithras is probably very important here and may have influenced Bethle-

hem. It is curious that most of the birthplaces of Mohammedan saints (Mohammed, Fatima, Ali), at Mecca, which are at least relatively historical, are underground.: I Burckhardt, Arabia, 1, 313. Did the women bring forth underground to avoid the evil eye or some other malignant influence ? Or was the after-birth or navel-string, both being important, buried in such places ?

32951 Q

XV

TOMB AND SANCTUARY Tee ordinary Moslem grave in Turkey is marked by stones at the head and foot, and, if circumstances allow, by what is practically a copy in stone of the bier in which the dead are carried to the grave. A small space, corresponding to the size of a man, 1s surrounded

by slabs, the head and foot being indicated by upright stones, imitating the wooden uprights which occupy the same position in the wooden bier. As on the bier the head-piece carries the turban of the deceased, so the head-piece of the grave reproduces it in stone. Dervishes’ graves are marked by the taj or mitre of the

order to which they belonged in life, and in former times the elaborate head-dresses of the various hierarchies, military, civil, and ecclesiastical, were repre-

sented in the same way. Where the grave is in a mausoleum (turbe) and protected from the weather, an actual head-dress occupies the same position on the tomb.

Graves in the open air are generally covered by a slab which supports the head and footstones in two slots. A third aperture is made between the head- and footstones, and frequently, behind the head-stone or elsewhere, shallow sinkings are made with the avowed object of allowing the dead to practise the virtue of charity by affording drinking places for the pigeons and other birds that frequent the cemetery. Trees, in Turkey generally cypresses,! are often planted 1 The ever-green and long-lived cypress is supposed to symbolize im-

mortality (Walsh, Constantinople, i, 350). In Arabia the aloe (sabr) is the favourite tree and is said to symbolize the patient waiting (sabr= ‘patience ’) of the dead for the resurrection (Burckhardt, 4rabta, 1, 317). In Syria the myrtle seems to be used (Walpole, Travels, p.317) ; Chandler (Travels in As. Min., i, 230) cites an instance of its use in Turkey also.

Trees on Graves 227 at the head and foot of the grave and, when thus con-

nected with the burial place of a saint, enjoy considerable veneration. The growth of these trees is sometimes considered an indication of the fate of the deceased. Julius Griffiths was present at a funeral where,

‘as soon as the grave was filled up, each friend planted a sprig of Cypress on the right, and a second on the left hand of the deceased’. On his inquiring the reason he was told by one of the followers that ‘ it was to ascertain by their growth whether the deceased would enjoy the happiness promised by Mohammed’. This would be

known if the sprigs on the right hand took root, the opposite if those on the left only should flourish. If both succeeded, the deceased would be greatly favoured

in the next world ; or, if both failed, he would be tormented by black angels until, through the mediation of the Prophet, he should be rescued from their persecution.t It is easy to see how, with these ideas in the air,

a tree growing on the grave of a saint comes to be regarded with superstitious veneration ; as also, conversely, how the fine growth of a tree, especially a cypress in a cemetery, might be taken as evidence of the place of burial of a great saint. Tombs inside turbes are for the most part gabled in cross-section and are generally covered with shawls. The turbe itself may be of any form from a simple hut of the commonest materials to the sumptuous round or octagonal domed buildings erected over the tombs of the wealthy. A characteristic form is the open dome of masonry or wrought iron which marks some well-to-do graves in cemeteries. Any ordinary grave in a cemetery may prove itself to be that of a saint by posthumous 1 Grifhths, Lravels, p. 54. The same idea seems to be current in Syria respecting the grave myrtles (Walpole, Travels, p. 317). An echo of it is awkwardly worked into the Bosnian story of Kelkele Sali Agha, where oak-twigs are planted on the grave (Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, p. 169). Q2

228 Tomb and Sanctuary miracles. Such a grave often comes in time to be enclosed in a turbe. But the holiness of a saint cannot be judged by the richness or otherwise of the tomb: some saints, ¢. g. the ‘ Joshua’ of the Bosporus, ‘ refuse’ a turbe by causing it to fall down or be burnt as soon as it is erected.! A saint’s turbe, even when on quite a humble scale, is

often divided into two portions, the tomb chamber proper, and the place of prayer. The conjunction of mosque and turbe may arise in this way, as for example at Eyyub, where the mosque is strictly a convenience for pious persons desirous of praying and attending

public worship at the tomb of the saint, and is of secondary importance to the turbe. But quite frequently also we find that the occupant of the turbe is the builder of the mosque, as, for example, at the Ulu Jami at Magnesia. Here the turbe is an accessory to the mosque. A founder often chose to be buried in or near his mosque in order to attract the prayers of the worshippers for the benefit of his soul. This might be done even when the benefaction was a secular building,? such as a bath3 or a bridge.4 Praying places forming part of

roadside fountains 5 are a similar incitement to prayer for the founder’s soul, directly requested by the inscription on Ahmed I’s fountain at Constantinople. 1 Other examples are Deniz Abdal at Constantinople (Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, pp. 134 f.); Burhan-ed-din in Eflaki’s Acts of the Adepts, tr. Redhouse, p. 17 ; Hasan Dede, a Bektashi saint buried near Tirana in Albania, was honoured by a local bey with

a turbe, but showed his displeasure by burning it twice (F. W. H.). Mustafa Ghazi, buried at Canea (Crete) ‘ refused’ a turbe four times by throwing it down. He afterwards appeared to the builder and instructed him to leave an opening in the roof (F. W. H.). A Christian parallel is that of S. Leontius, who, when the bishop of the district in which he was buried wished to honour him with an avaxopd7, signified his displeasure by an earthquake (N. Aeuwyv. p. 460). 2 Thévenot, Voyages, 1, 182. 3 Above, chap. iv, no. § (Yildiz Dede).

4 Thévenot, loc. cit. s Cf. Wood, Ephesus, p. 138.

Relics in ° Turbes’ 229 Of the furniture of the turbe we have as yet described

only the central feature, the tomb itself. The minor objects of interest consist for the most part in various relics said to have belonged to the dead saint, and to a certain extent votive objects. The relics vary according to the personality of the saint ; a ghazt, or warrior, is marked by his weapons, a dervish by his beads, club,

or crutch, and so on. These objects frequently play a prominent part in the cures wrought at the tomb. Their pedigree, even where the saint is known to be historical and the tomb authentic, is far from being above suspicion, though in most cases there is no chance

of testing their authenticity. Arms and other symboli-

cal implements are very often used to decorate the walls of ‘Turkish convents, and these might easily come to be associated with the occupant of the tomb or other

famous persons on no evidence whatsoever. So the symbolic sword seen by Dodwell in the ‘ Tower of the Winds’ at Athens, then a dervish tekke,: became for later Athenians the sword of Mohammed the Conqueror.2, Even the bead chaplets supposed to have belonged to deceased dervishes may have been placed there, as were those in the mausolea of the sultans,3 for

the devout to tell their prayers on. Secondly, objects originally suspended as charms against the evil eye may come into more intimate relations with the cult by con-

fusion or design. So, for instance, at the dervish convent at Old Cairo an immense shoe or boot, connected vaguely with a ‘ giant’ was, in the eighteenth century, hung in the entrance of the convent ¢ in accordance t Dodwell, Tour through Greece, i, 374. 2 Kambouroglous, ‘Joropia, iii, 125.

3 Covel, Diaries, ed. Bent, p. 182. Sultan Orkhan is believed to visit his tomb at Brusa every Friday, beat the drum, and tell his beads (Bussierre, Lettres, 1, 154).

4 Pococke, Descr. of the East, i, 29; Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabie, i, IOI.

230 Tomb and Sanctuary with a well-known superstition that such objects are prophylactic against the evil eye.t A century later the boot was treasured inside the convent as a relic of the founder. Somewhat similarly, the famous sword called by ‘ Franks’ the ‘ Sword of Roland’ originally hung over a gate of the citadel at Brusa3 and later became associated with the dervish warrior-saint Abdal Murad and was deposited at his tomb.4 At the same time the custom of suspending the arms of warriors at their tombs undoubtedly existed. Evliya, in the seventeenth century, notes that the bow and sword of Kilij Ali were preserved in his ¢urbe,s and in the case of a person only some fifty years dead it is unreasonable to doubt their

authenticity. It is, indeed, the existence of genuine relics which has made the substitution of false ones easy. * For the general use of shoes and boots with this object see, for Cairo, Hildburgh, in Man, 1913, p. 2, where they are said to be hung from shops and tied to camels for luck. For Turkey see M. Walker, Eastern Life, i, 335 ; Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de l’ Asie Mineure, p- 351. ‘ Giants’ ’ boots were suspended in the gateways of khans at Brusa (Lucas, Voyage au Levant, ii, 129). A huge boot, supposed to be that of a giant who defended the town against the Venetians, formerly hung in one of the gates of Chalkis (L. Stephani, Retse des Nérdlichen Griechenlandes, p. 16). A gilded shoe called tsaroth (t.¢. charik, Gr.

ToapovKt) is said to have been suspended ‘from the vaulte of the Temple’ at Mecca (Georgewicz, House of Ottomanno). For shoes as relics of Turkish saints see Laborde, Asie Mineure, p. 65; Nikolaos, *?Odna0ds,

p- 249; Kanitz, Bulgarte, p. 536. One suspects that the boots shown at Rhodes as those of Suleiman, the conqueror of the city (Egmont and Heymann, Travels, i, 276), were likewise prophylactic.

2 Wilkinson, Modern Egypt, 1, 287. For the plough on Murad I’s grave at Brusa, its probable and its alleged origin, see above, p. 106. 3 Belon, Observations de plusteurs Singularitez, ii, chap. xlii. 4 Evliya, Travels, 11, 24. Tournefort, Voyage, Letter xxi; Sestini, Lettere Odeporiche, i, 117; cf. Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. O#t. i, 153 (a garbled version of Evliya). Cf. the wooden sword of ‘ Neby Hocha’ (Clermont-Ganneau, Pal. Inconnue, p. 60).

5 Travels, 1, ii, 58. The saint died 988 a.u. The arms of Murad I (d. 1389) were similarly shown at his tomb in Brusa (zbzd. i, 21).

Relics 1n ‘ Turbes’ 231 The custom of suspending arms as prophylactic objects in the gates of cities and fortresses has probably in many

cases originated the frequent cults of saints—generally warriors (ghaz1s)—who are honoured with cenotaphs in such places. Similarly, other talismans have evoked legends of giants and folk-lore heroes. Stuffed crocodiles,t whales’ (‘ dragons’ ’) heads, and whales’ (‘ giants’ ’) bones,? all of which are used prophylactically, have prob-

ably been an element in the formation of legends of dragon-slayers and giant-slayers in many other places besides Rhodes.3 Prayer-mats, especially deer-skins,+ whichare similarly

part of the natural furniture of a turbe, may also come in time to be regarded as personal relics of the saint.

These are easily brought into relation with legends of miraculous journeyss of the ‘ magic carpet’ type. Similarly, the horns of deer are often seen suspended in turbes, originally, doubtless, for prophylactic purposes. But in relation to a buried saint they can be explained as those of the saint’s pet deer, or those of a deer which of its own free will offered itself for the Bairam sacrifice.7_ Other horns also, such as those of t Crocodiles are a well-known variety of amulet : see Elworthy, Evil Eye, p. 321 (stuffed crocodile in doorway of cathedral at Seville), and Hildburgh, in Man, 1913, p. 1 (stuffed crocodiles commonly used as charms in Cairo). For them as ex-votos see Maury, Croy. du Moyen Age, p. 232; Millin, Midi de la France, ii, 546. 2 Cf. Hobhouse, Albantza, 11, 948 (Constantinople) ; Evliya, Travels, li, 230 (whales’ bones and old arms in castle gate at Angora). Cf. also Maury, op. cit. li, 233, and Clermont-Ganneau, loc. cit. 3 For the ‘ dragon’s’” head at Rhodes see below, pp. 654-5, where also other instances of gate charms are collected. 4 On the special relation between deer and dervishes see pp. 460-1. 5 See p. 286. 6 For them as a house charm see White, in Mosl. World, 1919, p. 184.

7 This is said of deer-horns kept in the Khalveti tekke at Uskub (F. W. H.), and of others on the grave of the rustic saint Arab-oglu in Pontus (White, in Records of the Past, vi, 101). The miracle is a very old one (cf. Plutarch, Lucullus, cap. x).

Z32 Tomb and Sanctuary goats and oxen,? are occasionally seen in turbes: these may be those of sacrificed beasts, but are probably kept and exhibited for their prophylactic value. In the Dome of the Rock at Jerusalem were formerly suspended, from

the centre of the dome itself, a pair of ram’s horns, reputed those of the ram sacrificed by Abraham in place of Ishmael.2_ The purpose of the talisman in such cases

is probably to ensure the stability of the dome.

Ostrich eggs are suspended in sacred buildings (churches as well as mosques and turbes) all over the Near East.3 Here again the original purpose seems to have been prophylactic,+ though, as often, more elabor-

ate explanations have been invented. Primarily an egg is said to be sovereign against the evil eye because it has no opening and is, so to speak, impregnable ; 5 ostrich eggs mounted as charms are generally held in a metal frame, not pierced for a string. Ostrich-eggs are in Cairo a common charm for the protection of houses and shops.® ‘Their use as ex-votos is early : a tree idola-

trously worshipped at Mecca in pre-Islamic days had ostrich-eggs suspended from it.7 In Greece and Turkey, ostrich-eggs being comparatively rare, and, in addition, t Niebuhr, Rezsebeschretbung, ii, 138 (deer-horns at grave of Said Omar near Kutahia, horns of oxen and goats at Afiun Kara Hisar). 2 Le Strange, Palestine, p. 147. Ibn Batuta speaks of an iron buckler, reputed that of the Prophet’s uncle, in this position (ibid., p. 136). 3 Moslem examples are cited from Egypt (Pococke, Descr. of the East, 1, 31), Hebron (Grimaldi in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1912, p. 149), Meshed Ali [Nejef] (J. Griffiths, Travels, p. 371), S. Sophia, Constantinople (Dallaway, Constantinople, p. 57), ‘ Tower of the Winds’, Athens (Dodwell, Tour through Greece, i, 374), tekke of Hafiz Khalil near Varna (Kanitz, Bulgarie, p. 475). 4 [Blunt], People of Turkey, ii, 244; Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. del’ Aste Mineure, p. 351; Rogers, V1e Domestique, p. 459. 5 Baldensperger in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1893, p. 216; cf. Jessup, Women of the Arabs, p. 336. 6 Hildburgh, in Man, 1913, pp. 1 ff.; they have been noticed in the Egyptian bazaar at Constantinople (C. White, Constantinople, i, 174). 7 Robertson Smith, Religion of the Semites, p. 169.

Relics 1n * Turbes’ 233 curiosities ™ easily obtained by pilgrims to the Holy Places,? have developed a religious symbolism over and above their prophylactic value. Among Christians they are said to be emblems of faith, since the hen ostrich is said not to sit on her eggs, but to hatch them by looking

at them.3 ‘he Moslem interpretation of the symbolism, as given by a Turk of Sivas,‘ is still more recondite : ‘ the ostrich always looks at the eggs she lays ; if one of

them is bad, she breaks it.’ Ostrich-eggs are therefore suspended in sacred buildings ‘as a warning to men that if they are bad, God will break them in the same

way as an ostrich does her eggs’, 2.¢. reading their hearts regardless of their outward appearance. Lastly, an object often seen hung up in the turbes of Turkish saints,5 as also outside houses like the Greek May-garland, is a plait of corn-stalks with the ears left

entire. This is quoted by Hildburgh as an evil eye charm used in Cairo for shops and houses.6 But, since it is essential that the corn used in the plait should be the first of the year, it seems clear that the primary idea is that of a first-fruit offering dedicated indifferently to the local saint or the house-spirit as a thank-offering, and to ensure abundance during the coming year. An interesting Christian parallel is afforded by an illustration in Kanitz’ Bulgarie,7 showing the corn-plait suspended to a house-ezkon, which may be regarded as a compromise between the pagan house-spirit and the saint of the official religion.® t Cf. Mrs. Green, Town Life in the Fifteenth Century, i, 153. 2 Cf. Lucius, Anfange des Hetligenk., pp. 303-4. 3 Fellows, Fournal in Asia Minor, p. 241; Tozer, Highlands of Turkey (Athos), 1, 79.

4 Burnaby, On Horseback through Asta Minor, i, 316: cf. I. Burton, Inner Life of Syria, p. 447. Cf. a roc’s egg in Lane, Thousand and One

Nights, p. 484. § Hildburgh, in Man, 1913, pl. A, 3.

xxi, 203). 7 P. 409,

6 As, e.g., in the turbe at Tekke Keui in Macedonia (Evans,in 7.H.S. 8 Frazer (Spirits of the Corn and Wild, i, chap. x, x1) has shown that

234 Tomb and Sanctuary A large number of saints’ ‘ tombs’ are cenotaphs,

some admittedly so. A saint of Monastir, named Khirka Baba, who appears to be historical, ‘ disappeared’ from the sight of men, leaving his habit (kirk) on the ground. The spot where his habit was found is railed round like a tomb and the habit itself reverently kept in the ‘ tower’ (kula) formerly inhabited by the holy man, both tower and cenotaph being frequented as a pilgrimage in his honour.? Similarly, Emineh Baba, a Bektashi saint of Macedonia, ‘ disappeared ’, but has,

nevertheless, commemorative cenotaphs in two Bektashi convents.3 An Anatolian saint named Haji Bekir died no one knew where, with the express object, it is said, of avoiding the posthumous honour of a turbe. But his spirit is supposed to haunt a mill he frequented in life, where incubation is practised by pilgrims as at

a formal tomb.4 Other venerated personages boast more than one tomb, each being locally claimed as genuine. In the case of persons historically known, it may be possible to distinguish between tomb and ceno-

taph. Murad I, for instance, lies buried beside his mosque at Brusa, but the spot where he fell on Kossovo 5

is marked by a turbe which is said to contain his heart all over the world first-fruit offerings are made either to the dead, the gods, or the king, all, probably, representing stages in the development of religion. In some cases the offering is anthropomorphic, as may be the case with the Bulgarian corn-plait illustrated by Kanitz. For instances in the Greek area see Georgeakis and Pineau, Folk-Lore de Lesbos, p. 310; cf. Miss Durham, Burden of the Balkans, p. 124. 1 Cf. Hanauer, Folk-Lore of the Holy Land, p.79; Lane, Thousand and One Nights, pp. 339, 359.

2 See below, p. 358. 3 See below, p. 527. 4 See below, p. 268. 5 His assassin, Milosh Obilich, is buried beside him on Kossovo (Miss Durham, Burden of the Balkans, p. 26; Boué, [tinéraires, ii, 175, 178). The ‘ Arab’ who slew Constantine Palaiologos is buried beside him (Polites, [Tapaddcets, no. 34 and note), as is the princess beside Sidi Ghazi, after she had (involuntarily) caused his death (see below, p. 743). Shamaspur tekke at Alaja probably affords another example (below, P- 573).

Duplicate Tombs 235 and bowels.t Suleiman Pasha, son of Orkhan, is said to be buried at Bulair in Thrace,? but his college (medreseb) at Yenishehr contains a turbe firmly held by local people to contain his remains : it is possible either that they were divided, as in the case of Murad I, or that he built himself at Yenishehr, during his lifetime, a turbe in which he was never buried. Local rivalry is also in part responsible for such inconsistencies. Both Bilejik 3 and Eskishehr 4 claim and show the grave of Edeb Ali, the father-in-law of Osman ; and the bones of Osman himself, buried on the acropolis of Brusa, are claimed also by his original capital, Sugut.s The reputed tombs of Arab saints and heroes shown in Asia Minor are probably, as we have said elsewhere, ®

without exception unhistorical. One at least, that of Bilal at Sinope, is a doublet of a better known grave of the same saint at Damascus.7_ Many such doublets are evidently the results of the erection of commemorative buildings marking critical points in the hero’s history, like the birth-places of Suhayb at Daonas 8 and of Sidi 1 Ippen, Novt Bazar, p. 147. It should be noted that according to strict Moslem religious law embalming is illegal and bodies must not be transported, exception being made for emperors (d’Ohsson, Tableau, 1,251; Cantimir, Hist. Emp. Oth.i, 46). Goldziher in Rev. Hist. Relig. 11 (1880), p. 283, says that exhumation of the dead is thought a profanation by Moslems. ‘Their feeling is so strong that the Sultan of Egypt at the time refused to allow S. Barbara’s body, buried at Cairo, to be dispersed as relics in Christendom (Ludolf, De Itinere, p. 54). A miraculous fire prevented the removal of the Imam Shifei’s body from its original tomb (Makrizi, quoted by de Maillet, Descr. de P Egypte, i, 257 f.). Osman Bey (Les Imans et les Derviches, pp. 143-4) says persons

must be buried where they die because that was the earth from which they were formed. 2 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. 1, 202 ; d’Ohsson, i, ror ; Seaman, Orchan, p. go. 3 Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. i, 103; cf. Huart, Konia, p. 24.

4 Haji Khalfa, tr. Armain ii, 70: verified by F. W. H. For Edeb Ali’s connexion with Eskishehr cf. Hammer-Hellert, i, 64.

5 Leake, Asta Minor, p. 15. ® Below, p. 702. 7 See below, p. 712. ’ Le Strange, £. Caliphate, p. 154.

236 Tomb and Sanctuary Ghazi at Malatia.: The tangibility of a tomb alleged to contain the actual body of a saint works powerfully in favour of the substitution of tomb for commemorative memorial in popular thought. In some cases when numerous alleged tombs? of the same saint were shown, legend has evidently been called in to explain them. A saint claimed by the Nakshbandi, Hasan Baba,3 has seven tombs at various points in Rumeli. These, legend says, were erected by his disciples as ‘ blinds ’ when the

saint was pursued by his enemies. The body of Sari Saltik, the Bektashi apostle of Rumeli, miraculously became seven bodies at his death, and each was buried in the capital of a separate kingdom, so that the seven tombs are found in as many towns, both of Islam and Christendom.4 Karaja Ahmed:sS is another of these multiplied saints: his graves are found chiefly in western Asia Minor, and we may suggest that he represents the eponymous ancestor, or a series of chiefs, of a tribe bearing his name: though, as he has been merged into the Bektashi hagiology, it is more than probable that a more miraculous explanation is current. t Haji Khalfa, tr. Armain, p. 660: were these ‘ birth-places’ supposed to be the places where the placentae of the heroes concerned were interred ?

2 Cf. Montet, Culte des Saints Musulmans, pp. 19-20. In P.E.F., Q.S. for 1877, p. 89, Conder says the different tombs were sometimes supposed to represent ‘ stations ’ of the saint.

3 Below, pp. 356-7. 4 Below, pp. 430-1. 5 Below, pp. 404-5.

XVI

INVIOLABILITY OF SANCTUARY INTRODUCTORY

SAINT'S grave and its immediate surroundings A are sacred and inviolable. Even after a casual discovery of a supposed saint through the fall of a wall, according to Professor White, ‘no robbery or other depredation may be committed there, and if a grove is near by its trees cannot be cut ’.t For such inviolability there is a precedent from the source of Islam. Mohammed himself prescribed that a radius of twelve miles round the holy city of Medina should be held inviolate :

no game should be killed in it, no trees cut, and no

murder or act of violence committed.?

Among rough communities the inviolability of a saint’s precinct may be used for the protection of person and property. Sir Mark Sykes noted an instance of this in Kurdistan, at the pass of Hasan Ghazi, which he says is ‘named after a Kurdish saint whose tomb is there. The Djziey Kurds hold him in great reverence and deem it a merit to be buried there; the graveyard is a refuge from feuds and robbers: no one who flees thither will be slain, and any person may leave his goods there without a guard in perfect safety. ‘The sincerity of this extraordinarily accommodating belief is proved by the fact that the whole graveyard is littered with odds and ends, cradles, bales of cotton, bags of rice, stocks of firewood, doors, rafters, fencing, wattle, hurdles, pots and pans, left by various persons who have gone on journeys or removed owing to the temporary abandonment of the villages.’ 3 t In Trans. Vict. Inst. xxxix (1907), p. 155. 2 Burckhardt, Arabia, 11, 220. 3 Dar-ul-Islam, p. 189 ; similar sanctuaries (makams) in Syria, Pales-

238 Inviolabthity of Sanctuary It will be recalled that a somewhat similar use of a sanctuary on Lampedusa, violation of which rendered departure from the island impossible, is mentioned by several authors of the seventeenth and eighteenth cen-

turies. ‘This is of special interest as the inviolability

of the place was respected both by Christians and

Moslems.:

§ 1. Sacrep TREES AND GROVES

We have seen that one of the prohibitions of the sacred territory of Medina refers to the cutting of trees. This prohibition is sometimes applied very strictly to the trees near saints’ graves. In the grave enclosure of Helvaji Dede at Constantinople grow a cypress, a plane,

and a laurel. These are never cut, and even when the branches fall they are not removed.’ There are a great many instances of small groups of trees or ‘ sacred groves ’ which must not be cut. These are sometimes to be considered religious, as connected with Mohammedan (or Christian) saints, sometimes secular, as a form of tree-worship. ( It is often impossible

to say whether the sacredness of these groves is primitive and their connexion with saints evolved from it, or whether it is secondary and due to their proximity to saints’ graves. This is a dilemma which must often meet us in other fields. Instances of these sacred groves are:

i. At Sandal, a Turkish (Kizilbash?) village near Kula in Lydia. Here the antiquity of the tabu is certified by a Greek inscription.3 tine, and elsewhere are mentioned by Baldensperger in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1893, p. 215 ; Conder, zb1d., Q.S. for 1877, pp. 89, 91 ; Warren, 1bid., Q.S. for 1869, p. 300 ; Schumacher, zb1d., Q.S. for 1888, pp. 138, 160, 163; Burckhardt, Syrta, pp. 95, 525; Goldziher in Rev. Hist. Relig. 1880, p. 346; Loftus, Travels in Chaldaea, p. 322 ; Petachia, in Nouv. Four. As. vill, 302; Schumacher, Across the Fordan, pp. 5, 300, 305 ; G. E. White, in Most. World, 1919, pp. 10-11. t See above, pp. 46 ff. and below, pp. 755 ff. 2 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, p. 174. 3 Tsakyroglous in Moucetov, 1880, p. 164, no. TAB’.

Sacred Trees 239 z. At Ebimi, a Kizilbash village in Pontus, a small eminence is crowned with a grove of pines never cut. There is a panegyris, with the usual sacrifice of a sheep

in May.*'The grave of a saint, Buyuk Evliya, is said to exist there.? The site was, in antiquity, sacred to Zeus Stratios, but the connexion is probably fortuitous. 3. At Tulum Bunar (on the Kasaba line) Oberhummer found a similar grove connected with the tekke of

Jafer Ghazi3 The list could probably be added to indefinitely. Taylor remarks that the sacred groves of the Kurds are mostly poplar and connected with the names of Mohammedan saints.5 The cult of sacred groves in Circassia seems to be highly developed.é Similar groves also exist among the Yezidi of the Jebel Siman in Syria.7 These may be important in the present connexion on account of the possible connexion between the Syrian heterodoxies and those of Asia Minor.

Christian parallels for these sacred groves are to be found :

1. In Albania at Tepelen. Here, in a Mussulman country, a Christian saint’s tabu still protects the grove.’

2. In Greece, on the Euripus, a grove of S. George is noted which avenged the cutting of its trees by the death or wounding of the cutter.9 3. InAsia Minor, at Tashna (Pontus), is a grove sacred to Elias.z t Perhaps 23 April (O.8.), the day of Khidr—S. George. 2 Cumont, Stud. Pont. 1,172. A similar sacred hill with trees exists near the Kizilbash village of Bajileh (1b1d., p. 187). 3 Oberhummer and Zimmerer, Durch Syrien, p. 398. 4 At Seideler local women prevented Choisy from cutting a switch from a willow in the village square (Choisy, Aste Mineure, p. 199). 5 In F.R.G.S. xxxv (1865), p. 41. 6 Spencer, Turkey, Russta, and Circassta, p. 383. 7 Mél. Fac. Or. (Beyrut), 11, 367 (Jerphanion). § Durham, Burden of the Balkans, p. 222.

9 Walpole, Travels, p. 70. 1° Cumont, Stud. Pont. ii, 129.

240 Inviolability of Sanctuary 4. In Cyprus a grove of Zizyphus Spina Christi is

dedicated to 8. Catherine: the site may have been anciently sacred to Aphrodite. This grove is cut for the Easter bonfire: ‘The exception to the prohibition in favour of a ritual use in this last example is characteristic and ancient.? Similarly, trees on Mohammedan saints’ graves are used for ritual purposes. For example,

the leaves of the laurel which grows on the tomb of Joshua on the Bosporus are used for the fumigation of sick pilgrims.3 Leaves from the laurels on the grave of

Deniz Abdal are similarly used for the sick. But a carpenter who removed some branches from the tree without such motive, though ordered to do so by the guardian of the tomb himself, fell from the tree during the operation and was in bed for months after.4 § 2. Protrecrep ANIMALS—GAME

For the game tabu at Medina we may compare in Asia Minor the protection of wild birds on the moun-

tain in Cappadocia named after and sacred to Tur Hasan Veli,s and of the wild sheep on the hill of the saint Fudeil Baba near Konia.6 Dire consequences attended the killing of the latter except for the purpose of sacrifice. Deer in general are more or less sacred

animals. Gazelles, roedeer, and stags must not be

1 Magda Ohnefalsch-Richter, Gr. Sitten und Gebrauche auf Cypern, p- 38; Max Ohnefalsch-Richter in 7.H.S. iv, 115. Cf. another case in Jessup, Women of the Arabs, p. 318. 2 Cf. the inscription which I published in F.H.S. xxvii, 66 (13), and

in Cyztcus, vi, 54. Compare the Cedars of Lebanon, for which see d’Arvieux, Mémoires, ii, 415; La Roque, Voyage de Syrie, i, 71. 3 F. W. H. 4 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, p. 134. 5 Id., Trad. de P Aste Mineure, p. 217.

© Haji Khalfa, tr. Armain, p. 670. Similarly, the Christian saint Mamas of Cyprus keeps the number of moufflons up to seven hundred,

and it is dangerous to hunt them on his day (M. Ohnefalsch-Richter, Gr. Sitten und Gebrauche auf Cypern, p. 162).

Hare Tabu 241 hunted on account of their close connexion with dervish saints. Dervishes are supposed to take the form of deer, and ascetics are said to have tamed them and lived on their milk. A dervish named Geyikli Baba is said to have been present at the siege of Brusa riding on a stag. Their skins and horns are frequently found in turbes.3 In Pontus stags built the enclosure of a saint’s grave.4 We may here conveniently discuss the tabu against the hare which exists among the Albanian Bektashi sect and elsewhere. ‘The explanations given are various. Some say that the soul of Yezid, the wicked caliph who was responsible for the murder of Hasan and Husain,

passed into a hare;5 others that the secretary of the Prophet had a cat which was changed into a hare.é Macedonian Bektashi say that, being all blood and with-

out flesh, it is not to be eaten.7 The Bektashi of Cappadocia say that Ali himself kept a tame hare as others keep cats; they call the hare on that account ‘ the cat of Ali’ and treat it with particular respect. Another explanation given by the Kizilbash of the tabu is that by a miracle of Ali the caliph Omar was turned into a woman and bore two children ; when Omar resumed his sex, his children were turned into hares, which are on this account sacred to the Kizilbash.9 ‘The Bektashi t Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de Constantinople, p.10; F. W. H., below, pp. 460 f. For the superstition as to killing deer in practice see L. Garnett, Greek Folk-Songs, p. 86, note; Baker, Turkey in Europe, p- 378. Stories of dervishes and deer in both the above connexions

are given below, pp. 460-2. 2 Evliya, Travels, ii, 24. 3 See p. 231. 4 Prof. White, in Mosl. World, ix, 11. 5 Brailsford, Macedonia, p. 246.

6 Degrand, Haute Albanie, p. 234; there seems to be a confusion here between the word for secretary (Yazijt , s=%j) and the name of

the caliph Yezid. 7M. M. H.

8 Crowfoot, 7. R. Anthr. Inst. xxx, 315. Dr. Hogarth kindly in-

forms me that in Iraq the ‘ cat of Ali’ is the maneless lion. 9 H. Grothe, Vorderastenexpedttion, ii, 152; it will be noted that this profane story is told at the expense of one of the caliphs not recognized by the Shias ; the miracle of the transformation, however, 1s

3295°1 R

242 Invtolability of Sanctuary Albanians explain the hare tabu by a story that the wife of a dervish wiped up some impurity with a cloth and

put the cloth in a hollow tree. A hare sprang out and left the cloth stainless, being thus the incarnation of the impurity. Most of the legends thus make the hare accursed rather than sacred ; but the existence of both ideas side by side is interesting and not incompatible with primitive thought. In practice certainly the hare is abhorred. The Bektashi will not eat it and, if their path is crossed by one, turn back. An Albanian kavass in one of the consulates at Monastir is said to have threatened to leave because a hare was brought into the house.3 A shop-keeper in Constantinople found that the keeping of a tame rabbit at once lost him his Bektashi customers.4 | have not been able to find that Christian Albanians haveany feeling against eating hares,5

but the Shia tribes of Asia Minor share the prejudice,§ held to Ali’s credit. In de Lorey and Sladen, Queer Things about Persta, p. 272, there occurs a similar story in which Omar is transformed into a bitch, has six puppies, and goes through humiliating experiences. The story in the text is evidently one of a series of scurrilous tales circulated to discredit the hated caliph, who ousted Ali. The unbelieving sultan El Hakim was changed into a woman and bore three children (Lane, Mod. Egypttans, 11, 198).

t Degrand, Haute Albanie, p. 235. 2 Ibid., p. 2343; cf. Gédoyn’s Fournal, p. 55, where a story illustrating this is told of a Janissary: the connexion between the Janissaries and Bektashi is well-known. In Algeria it is unlucky to see a hare running away from you (Prignet, A travers l’ Algérie, p. 74). 3 From Mr. W. H. Peckham, formerly H.B.M.’s consul at Uskub. 4 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de Constantinople, pp. 7f. Cf. de Vogiié, Hist. Ortent., p. 198. 5 Cf. the story in Bérard, Turquie, p. 308, where a hare crosses the road: Bérard’s Christian Albanian servant crosses himself, but his Bektashi Albanian curses the hare heartily ; cf. also p. 73. Greeks think it unlucky: cf. Georgeakis and Pineau, Folk-Lore de Lesbos, p. 339. 6 For the Takhtajis of Lycia, who consider that bad souls are metamorphosed into hares (or turkeys) after death, see von Luschan, in Benndorf, Lykten und Karten, ii, 201; for the Nosairi see Dussaud, Nosairis, p. 93. Ibn Batuta (tr. Sanguinetti, 11, 353) notices that the

Hare Tabu 243 as do the Persians. Certain of the wandering tribes of Persia do not scruple to eat hares, but it is considered pagan and barbarous on their part.? So far, then, the tabu on the hare seems to be religious and peculiar to the Shia forms of Islam.3 But it should be noted that the Christian Armenians are no less averse to the hare than the Persians.¢ ‘his may be due to Persian influence, but the same point of view is shared apparently by the Georgians, who are much less exposed to such influence. Sinope people eat it, but that the Shia Rafidhites of the Hejaz and Iraq do not.

t Chardin, Voyages, iv, 183: ‘le liévre leur est défendu. . . . Les Persans ne peuvent pas seulement entendre nommer le Liévre, parce qu’il est sujet a des pertes comme les femmes.’ Cf. Tavernier, Rel. of

the Seraglto, p. 28. 2 Malcolm, Hist. of Persta, ii, 432.

3 For Sunni Moslems the hare is not unclean, though it is forbidden by the Mosaic law ‘ because he cheweth the cud but divideth not the hoof ’ (Levit. xi, 6). The hare 1s among the figures of animals in synagogues (Kitchener in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1877, p. 124). 4 Rycaut, Greek and Armentan Churches, p. 395: ‘ They account it a sin to eat Hares, and their flesh 1s almost as abominable to them, as Swines-flesh to a Jew or Turk. [have asked them the Reason for it ; to which they replyed, that a Hare was a melancholy Creature, and therefore unwholesom ; besides it was accounted unlucky, and portending evil to any man who met one, and moreover that the Female was monthly unclean’ (cf. Tavernier, loc. ctt.). Cf. Villotte, Voyages, p. 536, who says neither Armenians nor Jews eat it. 5 Cf. Sir Dudley North’s anecdote of a Georgian slave brought to England: ‘ A maid servant, provoked by his leering at her, laid a fresh

rabbit-skin cross his face; which was such a pollution that he ran straight to the pump, and they thought that he would never have done washing ’ (Lives of the Norths, 11, 151). « Few Damascus Christians will

eat it (Mrs. Mackintosh, Damascus, p. 54). In the Ukraine and among modern Greeks it is considered a creature of the Devil (Dahnhardt, Natursagen, i, 153). The position of the tabu may therefore be set out thus: the Bektashi in general abhor it; Christian Albanians eat it; while Bektashi Albanians abhor it, so that in Albania the ban on it seems to be a Bektashi importation. Among Christians, the Armenians avoid it, while the Greeks eat it. A transformation of Buddha into a hare is recorded (Baring Gould, Curious Myths, Ist series, pp. 203-4). R2

244 Inviolability of Sanctuary § 3. Sacrep Fisy The fish of sacred springs and rivers are sometimes

protected in a similar way by religious scruple. Instances of sacred fish in Turkish lands appear to be rare. The best-known example is to be found in the fish kept

in the fountain of the Shamaspur tekke near Alaja in Paphlagonia.: Fishes are or were also kept in the fountain of the Ulu Jami at Brusa.? A Christian parallel is to be found in the well-known sacred fish of Balukli near Constantinople.3 Here the fish have no real religious significance and are merely a peg to hang folkstories on. For the full understanding of the veneration of sacred

fish we must look farther east. hh Syria particularly sacred fish have received extraordinary honours from ancient times toour own. ‘There Xenophon ‘saw riverfish which were ‘ regarded as gods’ by the inhabitants, and a pool full of fish sacred to the Dea Syria at Bambyke is noticed by Lucian.s This particular pool seems to have lost its religious significance,® but the wellt Hamilton, 4sta Minor, 1, 403: ‘a beautiful fountain of clear cold water in a deep marble basin, in which were many fish, apparently a species of carp’; H. J. Ross, Letters from the East (1856), p. 2433 Wilson, in Murray’s 4s1a Minor, p. 36. The fish mentioned by Hamilton (i, 98) at Mohimul near Taushanli may also have been sacred. Cf. Calder, in F.R.S. 11, 246. 2 Evliya, Travels, ii, 6; Texier, Aste Mineure, 1, 65.

3 For the popular stories regarding these fish see Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, pp. 54 ff. From the historical notices of the foundation collected by the priest Eugenios (“H Zwoddyos [Inyy

Kal Ta lepa avris mpocapTHpara, pp. 15 ff.), it appears that the fish are not an original but a comparatively late feature of the sacred spring.

I note in passing that a Christian ayasma containing sacred fish is to be found at Gemlek (Bithynia) at the church of Panagia Pazariotissa. For the fish of a cursed place see Polites, Tapaddcets, no. 62.

4 Anabasts, i, §§ 4,9; cf. Rubens Duval, in Fourn. Astat. viii, ser.

Xvlil, 230 ff. 5 De Dea Syria, 483.

6 Hogarth, in B.S.4. xiv, 187 ff.; G. L. Bell, Amurath to Amurath, p. 21.

Sacred Fish 245 known fish-pool of the Mosque of Abraham at Urfa is

probably a direct survival from antiquity. Other instances of sacred fish-pools are to be found at Tripoli,? and elsewhere.3 Similar ¢abus in favour of river fish within a certain distance of saints’ tombs are found at Susa, the burial-place of Daniel,+ and in Kurdistan.s Robertson Smith ® is probably right in considering the Syrian instances of sacred fish as survivals of a much earlier stratum of religious thought. The divinity of the waters was conceived of as a fish,7 the inhabitant of the waters, just as earth gods are thought of as snakes which live in the ground. The fish-divinities are eventually t The first modern writer to mention it seems to be an Italian merchant (c. 1507: see [taltan Travels in Persta, ed. Hakluyt Soc., p. 144). See also Barkley, 4512 Minor, p.254; Buckingham, Trav. in Mesopotamta, i, 111 ; Warkworth, Diary, p. 242 ; Pococke, Descr. of the East, 11,1, 160 ; ‘Tavernier, Voyages, p. 68 ; Olivier, Voyage, iv, 218 ; Sachau, Reise in Syrien, p. 197 ; 8. Silvia, ed. Geyer, p. 62 ; Thévenot, Voyages,

ill, 141; de Bunsen, Soul of a Turk, p. 218; Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabte, 11, 330.

* Lortet, La Syrte d’aujourd’ hut, pp. 58 f.: these sacred fish are protégés of the convent of Sheikh Bedawi. See further d’Arvieux, Mémotres, ti, 390-1 ; Burckhardt, Syria, p. 166; Kelly, Syria, p. 106 ; Renan, Mission de Phénicie, p. 130; Soury, Etudes sur la Gréce, p. 66. 3 Sam, near Aintab (Hogarth in B.S_A. xiv, 188); Acre ? (Baldensperger in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1893, p. 212). The fish called sallur may not be fished in the lake of Antioch (Dussaud, Nosatris, p. 93). Niebuhr (Voyage en Arabte, 11, 330, 137) notices, besides the sacred fish at Urfa, others at Diarbekr (cf. Garden, in 7.R.G.S. xxxvii, 1867, p. 186) and at Salchin, near Antioch, also at Shiraz ; the last are under the protection

of Sheikh Zade. For Palestine see Wilson and Warren, Recovery of Ferusalem, pp. 349, 352 (cf. Kitchener, in P.£.F., Q.S. for 1877, p. 122), 376. See for Bartarza in Mesopotamia Sykes, Dar-ul-Islam, p. 151.

4 Le Strange, E. Caliphate, p. 240; cf. below, p. 301. $ Evliya, Travels, ii, 179 (village Osmudum Sultan at the source of the Euphrates). ‘ Umudum Sultan the Saint, who is buried here, protects these fish, so that 1t is impossible to catch them.’ ‘They were red with green spots and could be caught below. For the similar tabu on the fish of Elisha’s spring near Jericho see d’Arvieux, Mémoires, ii, 204. 6 Religion of the Semites, pp. 174 ff.

7 For an Anatolian river-god represented as a fish see Anderson, in F.H.S., 1899, p. 76.

246 Inviolability of Sanctuary anthropomorphised through an intermediate fish-tailed form. ‘The sacred fish may therefore be conceived of

as (I) a god or saint, or (2) the protégé of a god or saint. In secular folk-lore we find the corresponding conceptions of (1) the magician-fish ' (often the ‘ king of the fishes ’) and (2) the bewitched fish,? the former having power of its own, the latter acting as the famulus

of a magician or higher power. The magician-fish or king of the fishes may presumably be propitiated as the ‘king of the serpents ’ is to-day at his castle in Cilicia.3 The sacred fish of Syria seem to receive more venera-

tion than would be accorded to mere protégés of the saint and to be regarded in some vague way as manifestations of the saint himself. Febvre, speaking probably of Syria, says : * Ils ont une espece de respect & de veneration pour les poissons de certains lacs & fontaines, ot qui que ce soit n’ozeroit pescher, si ce n’est pas de nuit & en cachette, le plus secretement qu’ils peuvent ; ce qui fait qu’ils s’y multiplient en trés-grande quan-

tité, & qu’il yen a de monstrueux. Ils les appellent Checs [7.e. Shetkhs| qui est la qualité qu’ils donnent a leurs principaux Religieux, & leur allument la nuit des lampes par devotion.’ 4

At the Shamaspur tekke in Turkey the fish are fed with eggs by the guardian, and one is pointed out as the t For magic fish in folk-lore see Cosquin, Contes de Lorraine, i, 60 ; Hartland, Perseus, 1,24; Legrand, Contes Populatres Grecs, p. 161. 2 As in the well-known Arabian Nights’ story (the first in Burton’s

edition). The Orthodox fish of Balukli are of the same sort with a touch from the ‘ Well of Life’ legend cycle. 3 Langlois, Cilicte, p. 469; cf. Davis, Astatic Turkey, p. 75. A confused echo from Constantinople is given in Carnoy and Nicolaides’ Folklore de Constantinople, p. 160.

4 Théatre de la Turquie, p. 35; cf. Jessup, Women of the Arabs, pp. 296-7, who says one black fish at Tripoli is the sheikh of the saints, whose souls are in the fish of the pool. Death is supposed to follow the eating of these fish, but the sceptical Jessup experimented without any untoward results. During the Crimean War many of the fish went off under the sea to Sebastopol and fought the infidel Russians, some returning wounded.

Fish in Folk-Lore 247 ‘sultan’ ;* whether the word is used in its political sense (for the ‘ king of the fishes ’) or as a religious title

is uncertain. Popular thought is probably hazy on this as on many other such points ; the main idea present in

the mind of a pilgrim to the shrine is that anything closely connected with a holy place is infected with the sanctity of the place, has potential influence, and may

be propitiated. It is hardly necessary to remind the reader that living things as such are more regarded in Islam than by Christendom considered as a whole. To benefit even a fish connected with a saint is meritorious, and some vague idea that the fish zs the saint may have filtered in through dervish teaching as regards the transmigration of souls and the unity of nature. But the present popular attitude with regard to the sacred fish does

not of course preclude the possibility of their worship antedating that of the human saint Husain Ghazi on this spot. In the folk-lore of the Near East fish have two roles : they are finders or, though dead and even cooked, they fall into water and revive. Solomon had a talismanic ring which he used to entrust to one of his servants on going to the bath. A devil one day stole this ring from her, took Solomon’s shape, and supplanted him, throwing the ring into the sea. A fish swallowed it so that, on the fish being caught and opened, the ring was found, and Solomon recovered his kingdom.? In another story a fish findsakey. The king Armenios unwittingly committed incest so retired from the world, binding his feet with a chain which he padlocked : the key he threw into the sea. After some years a deputation, which was seeking a suitable monk for patriarch, found the key in t Ross, Letters from the East, p. 243. 2 Sale’s Koran, p. 342,n. The story of Polycrates is another instance of the same sort. Goldziher (Rev. Hist. Relig. 11, 309) says the Egyptian

and Syrian Nevruz commemorates the finding of Solomon’s ring. Further, see Goldziher, loc. cit. 11, 273.

248 Inviolability of Sanctuary a fish and so recognized the monk as Armenios, who thus became patriarch.t_ Numerous secular folk-stories repeat the motz/. An allusion to the revival of a dead fish occurs in the Koranic story of Moses’ search for Khidr. Joshua, servant of Moses, was carrying a cooked fish in a basket : at the rock where they were to find Khidr, the fish leapt from the basket into the sea. Joshua, washing soon after at the Fountain of Life, chanced to sprinkle a little of the water on the fish, which at once revived.? In one of the Apocryphal Gospels the Infant Christ revives a salt fish by putting it into a basin of water.3 The motif is copied in the original legend of Balukli. A Thessalian pilgrim in search of health arrived dead at Balukli, then a famous place of healing. A salt fish his companions had brought fell into the pool and came to life. ‘The dead man did the same.4 The story is found at Tripoli of Syria in a slightly different form: a dervish was frying fish, but had fried them only on one side when they sprang from the frying-pan into the fountain of Sheikh El Bedawi and came alive again: their descendants still bear on one side the marks of frying.s Tvhis is t Amélineau, Contes de Egypte Chrétienne, i, 184. 2 Sale’s Koran, p. 222, nn. e and g.

3 Nativité de Marie in Migne’s Dict. des Apocryphes, i, 1078. Egyptian tradition makes the Infant Christ revive a roast cock (Migne, Evang. del’ Enfance, in Dict. des Apocryphes, i, 976 ; Thévenot, Voyages,

11, 805). The cock reappears at Santo Domingo de la Calzada. A man was hung for thirty-six days, at the end of which time he was found

innocent. The authorities said it was useless to take him down, and that they might as well expect the roast fowls on the table to revive. The fowls did revive and their descendants are still shown at Santo Domingo (Baumann, Trots Villes Saintes, pp. 150 ff.). The story is given, with parallels from Brittany, by Sébillot, Folk-Lore de France, ili, 251, citing A. Nicolai, Monsteur Saint Jacques de Compostelle. For a photograph of the fowls at Santo Domingo see frontispiece, vol. ii. 4 This story is already in the Byzantine authors. s D’Arvieux, Mémoires, ii, 390 f.

Survivals of Fish Worship 249 the tale now current of Balukli and told either of Constantine or of a monk.: With regard, therefore, to sacred fish the position may be summed up as follows. Urfa is very likely a true survival, its sanctity being documented almost continuously from antiquity, and it has most probably influenced other places in its radius. An intermediate stage is marked by the fish at the tomb of Daniel. The river in which he is supposed to be buried at Susa is tabu for fishing a certain distance up and down stream in his honour.3 Others, such as the sacred fish of Afiun Kara Hisar 4 or of Shiraz,s derive their sanctity from their association with a holy place. Balukli has in all probability no connexion with a survival of fish worship. t Polites, [Japaddcets, nos. 31-2 ; Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, pp. 54 ff. Possibly the whole thing starts from an orna-

mental fish-pond after the oriental manner; cf. the ‘ piscinae Salamonis’ in Fabri, Evagat. 11, 185; the round fountain mentioned by Kitchener in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1877, p. 122 (also by Wilson and Warren, Recovery of ‘ferusalem, p. 352); Gregorovius, Wanderjabhre, iti (Sictliana), p. 95, mentions a fish-pool made at Palermo for an Arab king’s pleasure ; he cites others at Zitza (loc. cit., p. 93) and at Cuba (loc. cit., p. 92). It will be remembered that the palace of Pegai was at Balukli. Naturally something a little out of the way like goldfish would be put in such a pool. Later, when the pool had become considered an ayasma, it was easy to bring in the imagery of the Virgin as the Fountain of Life (the wny7 &tAodp, an idea which occurs in the olxot ris [Tavayias)

and of Christ as a fish, with all the dependent ideas (a fish was apparently used in Holy Communion by certain sects). S$. John mentions an almost ritual meal of fish and bread after the Resurrection, which is

not given by the synoptics, who all have the Last Supper omitted by S. John. Later still, two strata of legend formed to explain the fish at Balukli, the earlier being the Thessalian given in the text and the other the modern Balukli legend. This miracle is supposed to have taken place at the capture of Constantinople, but it would be surprising to find a monk cooking fish at Balukli, if the Turkish Army were before

the walls. 2 See below, p. 301. 3 Benjamin of Tudela, Itinerary, ed. Asher, i, 117 ff.; Carmoly, [tinératres, p. 459. 4 Calder, in F.R.S. 11, 246 (a nameless dede protects these fish). § Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabie, i1, 137 (Sheikh Zade protects the fish).

XVII

CULT OF THE DEAD "T co;commonly great Turkish holy and places are tombspilgrimages or cenotaphsand of saints heroes, who are popularly conceived of as having the power of intercession’ particularly when invoked at their graves. The procedure with regard to saints’ tombs is greatly illuminated by the practices actually or formerly in vogue with regard to graves of the ordinary dead. The popular belief in a kind of life in the grave for some days after death is sanctioned by orthodox practice. Immediately after burial the khoja stays by the grave and instructs the dead as to the cardinal points of his religion : the soul thus seems considered as not yet dispatched to the other world. It is further held that the dead are catechized in the grave bya good and an evil spirit,? the latter trying by blows dealt with a redhot hammer to induce the dead man to deny his faith. A bad Mussulman, to whom Paradise is denied, succumbs to this treatment, whereas a good Mussulman is enabled to resist it. ‘These ‘ tortures of the tomb’ are so far part of the ofhcial faith that they, are mentioned in the khoja’s prayers for the dead.3 (It is generally believed that the souls of the dead are detained for forty

days in the neighbourhood of the grave, and that the reading of the Koran there is beneficial to them, since it assists the archangel Gabriel to defend them against the devil.4) t Jews also invoke the dead, see Carmoly, Itinératres, p. 182 (quoted below, p. 257, n. I) and p. 243. 2 Cf. Lane, Mod. Egyptians, ii, 265, for their names (Munkar and

Nakir). 3 D’Ohsson, Tableau, i, 239. 4 Cantimir, Hist. Emp. Oth. i, 142.

Food Offerings 251 In conformity with this belief in a life in the grave, the relations of the dead are accustomed to resort to the tomb in order to pray for his soul, reciting especially the

fattha or opening chapter of the Koran.: It was also formerly the custom to leave food on the tomb,? the original idea being, as we shall see from the procedure at some saints’ tombs, that the dead actually partook of it. Less credulous ages explained the custom as being devised to enable the deceased to exercise a vicarious charity to men (graves being commonly on frequented roads) and beasts, and to stimulate the human participants in the posthumous charity to pray for the soul of the deceased.3 The sinkings in the covering slabs of Turkish graves were doubtless intended originally for the deposit of these offerings, though their purpose is now said to be to collect rain and dew for the birds to

drink, the same principle of vicarious charity being t According to Kremer (Geschichte der herrschenden Ideen des Islams,

p. 303), this reading of the Koran is a substitute for sacrifice to the dead. At the upper end of Arab graves there is an opening through which the prayers and blessings of the relatives reach the dead (1bid.). 2 At Elbassan in central Albania Bérard found that Christians had

left food on tombs (Turquie, p. 46). In this connexion Mrs. Romanoff’s description of the Russian funeral feasts is interesting (Rites of the Greco-Russtan Church, p. 249).

3 Cf. Georgewicz, House of Ottomanno, p.E 111 vso: ‘ They often resort thither [1.¢. to the tombs] in wepinge and mournynge and certaine infernall sacrifices layde on the monumente, as bread, fleshe, cheese, Egges, milke, and the banket continewinge by the space of nyne dayes, accordynge to the Ethnicke Custome, it is al deuoured, for the disceased soules sake, eyther by Pismares and the birdes of heauen or

poore people’; Sandys, Travels, p. 56: ‘[Turkish women] many times leave bread and meat on their graves . . . for Dogs and Birds to devour, as well as to relieve the poor, being held an available alms for the deceased’; ‘Thévenot, Voyages, i, 192: ‘ Le Vendredi plusieurs apportent a boire et 4 manger, qu’ils mettent sur le tombeau, et les passans y peuvent manger et boire avec liberté. Ils font cela afin que ceux qui y viendront, souhaitent la bénediction de Dieu 4 celui pour

amour duquel on fait cette charité’; cf. also Gerlach, Tage-Buch, p- 157; d’Arvieux, Mémotres, ii, 342.

252 Cult of the Dead alleged in support of the usage. Similarly, the perforations commonly made in grave-slabs may have been provided originally for pouring drink offerings for the

dead. Both sinkings and perforations are now often used for planting flowers and small shrubs in. Life in the grave, though only dimly imagined in the t A barbarous belief in life in the grave appears widespread in Mohammedan countries. Eyyub at Constantinople proved his presence by sticking his foot out of his tomb (Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de

Constantinople, p. 156). Niebuhr cites several cases from Arabia (Voyage en Arabie, 1, 255, where the sainted Ahmed puts his hand out of his grave ; ibid. 11, 243, where Abdal Kadir hurls his clogs at some brigands). At Damascus Pambuk Baba claimed to be a prophet, which

people denied on the grounds that he was a Kurd and no Kurd ever was a prophet. To prove his sanctity he protruded his foot from his grave, and the ritual now is to wrap this foot (?)in cotton wool (F. W. H.

from Husain Efendi of Chotil in Macedonia). In a Moslem cemetery at Cairo the dead several times in the year left their graves for a day, sinking back into them at night (Fabri, Evagat. 111, 47; cf. Théve-

not, Voyages, ii, 459; de Maillet, Descr. de PEgypte, ii, 205). De Bréves (Voyages, p. 273) relates the same story, saying he had heard it told by both Christians and Moslems ; in his account the miracle took place on Good Friday only, which suggests a comparison with Matt.

xxvii, §2 (‘And the graves were opened; and many bodies of the saints which slept arose’). ‘Two secular parallels occur in Kunos, Forty-Four Turkish Fairy Tales, pp. 13, 189-90. In the former a hand emerges from a grave to terrify a fearless man ; in the latter a mother extends her hand to comfort her daughter, an idea found also in the Moslem tradition that Rachel spoke from her grave to comfort Joseph weeping at being led captive into Egypt (Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, p- 1139; of. Spiro, Hist. de ‘Foseph, p. 40). In western Christendom

there is found what seems at first sight to be a derivative from the East, but has probably evolved quite differently. A shepherd boy, born with only one hand, is miraculously given another, dies in the odour of

sanctity, and after his death protrudes the God-given hand from his tomb (Saintyves, Reliques et Images Légendatres, p. 277). There may be contamination with the oriental story, but more probably the idea arose from a hand-reliquary in.the form of an arm and hand upright in the act of benediction. Such hand-reliquaries are called ‘ mains angéliques ’ or ‘manus de caelo missae’. On coins of Edward the Confessor a ‘ main angélique ’ issues from clouds in the act of blessing.

It is to be noted that in many places it is customary to place such

Ltfe in the Grave 253 case of ordinary people, is to some extent considered characteristic of great saints and great sinners.t Thus, the falling of an old wall is sometimes held to indicate the presence of a buried saint who turns in his sleep.? On the other hand, signs of life in a tomb may be held to show that its occupant is unquiet on account of his sins.3 Sir Dudley North tells us that ‘ the Turks have an opinion, that men that are buried have a sort of life in their graves. If any man makes affidavit before a judge that he heard a noise in a man’s grave he is by order dug up and chopped all to pieces ’.4 Michele Febvre gives a definite example of this belief and practice. Cries were alleged to have been heard from a certain tomb. The local governor, having heard of it, had the corpse exhumed and decapitated, whereupon the cries ceased.s Any accidental circumstance might confirm this belief, as the following anecdote shows : ‘The merchants of Smyrna, once airing on horseback,

had (as usual for protection) a janizary with them. Passing by the burying place of the Jews, it happened that an old Jew sat by a sepulchre. The janizary rode

up to him and rated him for stinking the world a reliquaries on the tomb of the saint concerned at his festival. This would naturally generate the notion of the saint sticking his hand out of his grave. The barbarous Moslem traditions probably originate in a country such as Arabia, where the dead are buried in graves so shallow that exposure of their remains is only too easy and frequent a phenomenon. t A dead saint can on occasion embarrass the living. Saint Ismail Milk once gave a beggar who asked him for alms a written order on the Governor, duly sealed, for a hundred crowns’ worth of stuff ; since that date no one has been allowed to approach the saint’s tomb (Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabte, \, 301-2). 2 White, in Trans. Vict. Inst. xxxix (1907), p. 155. 3 The ambiguity is exactly paralleled by the popular Greek belief as to saints and excommunicated persons. ‘Ihe bodies of both classes do not putrefy but remain intact: see below, p. 456. 4 Lives of the Norths, 11, 147.

5 Théatre dela Turquie, p. 28.

254 Cult of the Dead second time, and commanded him to get into his grave again.’ !

The restlessness of the sinful dead might also be manifested less crudely. Wheler at Constantinople ‘observed one Turbe with the Cuppalo, covered only with a Grate of Wyer; of which we had this Account: that it was of Mahomet Cupriult, Father to the present Vizier . . . concerning

whom, after his Decease, being buried here, and having this

stately Monument of white Marble, covered with Lead, Erected over his Body; the Grand Signior, and Grand Vizier, had this Dream both in the same night ; to wit, that Cupriuls came to them, and earnestly beg’d of them a little Water to refresh him, being in a burning heat. Of this the Grand Signior

and Vizier told each other, in the Morning, and thereupon thought fit to consult the Mufti, what to do concerning it ; who according to their gross Superstition, advised that he should have the Roof of his Sepulcher uncovered, that the Rain might descend on his Body, thereby to quench the Flames tormenting his Soul.’ ?

Some forms of restlessness in the grave are thus con-

sidered characteristic of sinners, others of saints. All the dead alike are thought to have a vague and shadowy life in and about their graves, especially during the forty days after burial. At all times the cemetery is a mysterious borderland of the spirit-world, where miracles are apt to occur since they are half looked for, or at least readily accepted, by those who devoutly visit the graves of their relations. It is thus possible for a dead man to

become a saint posthumously, if certain phenomena considered characteristic of the resting places of saints, in particular luminous appearances, occur at his tomb. Certain popular saints seem, indeed, to have acquired

their reputation merely from the alleged miraculous consumption of food left at their tombs, which, as we have seen, was in more credulous times probably con™ Lives of the Norths, 11, 147.

2 Wheler, Journey into Greece, pp. 182 f.

Turkish Canonization 255 sidered neither miraculous nor extraordinary. Such was Kara Baba at Athens,‘ and such is Jigher Baba at Monastir: the latter 1s propitiated with liver (sigher) which is said to disappear in the presence of the suppliant.2. The practical distinction, therefore, between the ordinary pious dead and the more or less recognized saints becomes purely a matter of miracles. Once vindicated by a miracle, any tomb may claim the honours of a saint’s.

-* One of the main differences between saints of Islam and those of Christendom lies in the fact that the cult of the former is independent of central authority and to a certain extent considered by the orthodox as heretical or at least equivocal.3 Whereas in the Greek Church sacred spots are associated with the name of a saint in the official church calendar, or, as in the case of neomartyrs’ graves, are consecrated by the authority of bishop or patriarch,‘ the cult of Turkish saints is purely popular in origin and development, and its organization so far as this exists, comes rather from the dervish orders

than from the more strictly orthodox clergy. The t Dodwell, Tour through Greece, i, 305.

2 F.W.H. A similar tale is told of the Bektashi saint, Haji Hamza at Kruya (Degrand, Haute Albanie, p. 223). 3 So Goldziher in Rev. Hist. Relig. ii, 268. In 1711 a young fanatic at Cairo tried to put down saint worship (zid., p. 335). 4 Similarly, the canonization of a Roman Catholic saint depends ultimately on the Pope’s sanction: see Hutton, English Saints, p. 163, for Henry VI (cult forbidden by Edward IV on the plea that the Pope had not authorized the canonization), ibid., p. 234 (formal canonization of 8. Alphege delayed), 1bid., p. 272 (Robert Grosseteste failed to be canonized, owing probably to the Pope’s hostility). Joachim de Flor (Acta SS. 7 May) has a local cult but is not canonized (Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, ii, n. 242). Maury (Croy. du Moyen Age, p. 341) says that canonization was by bishops until 1179, when the Pope became the only source; Joan of Arc was canonized for her hallucinations, but Thomas Martin was only ridiculed for his regarding his mission to Louis XVIII in 1816 (Maury, op. ctt., p. 347, citing the Relation concernant ... Thomas Martin par S., anc. magistrat, Paris, 1831).

256 Cult of the Dead saint’s name is immaterial: in many cases it is not known, and he remains to the end either ‘ the Baba ’,

‘the Dede’, and so on, or, where differentiation is necessary, he takes a name derived from some attribute as Kara Baba (‘ Black saint ’), Kanbur Dede (‘ humpbacked saint ’), Geyikli Baba (‘ Stag saint’). Many socalled ‘ dedes ’ and ‘ babas ’, as we shall see, were never real persons but began their religious existence as vague

spiritual beings or even less. ‘The line therefore between ‘religion’ and ‘ folk-lore’, always vague, is in Turkey unusually ill-defined. But the presence of a tomb, whether cenotaph or no, is felt to redeem the cult from paganism, since the veneration of the sainted dead is to some extent sanctioned by Mohammedan

tradition. As to the position of orthodox Islam in theory and actual practice in regard to the cult of the dead, I cannot do better than quote the following passage from Gibb’s Ottoman Poetry :} ‘ Although not countenanced by the Koran, the practice of visiting the tombs of holy men is common in Muhammedan countries. The object of these pious visitations varies with the intellectual status of the pilgrim. The most ignorant members of the community, more especially women of the lower classes, go there in order to implore some temporal or material favour (very often a son), and sometimes these even address their prayers to the saint himself. Persons somewhat higher in the intellectual and social scale look upon such spots as holy ground and believe that prayers offered there have a peculiar

efficacy. The better educated among the strictly orthodox visit such shrines out of respect for the holy man and in order to salute the place where his remains repose. ‘The object with which the mystics make such pilgrimage is that they may enjoy what they call murdgaba or ‘ spiritual communion’ with the soul of the holy man. The pilgrim in this case fixes his heart or

soul wholly on that of the saint, the result being that it experiences an ecstatic communion with this in the Spirit World, whereby it is greatly strengthened and rejoiced on its return to 1 1, 180, note 2.

Prayer at the Grave 257 the earthly plane. It is not, we are expressly told, because the soul of the saint is supposed to linger about his tomb that the mystic goes thither for his muraqaba; but because it is easier for the mystic to banish all outside thoughts and fix his heart wholly and exclusively on that of the saint in a place which is hallowed by associations with the latter.’

A lively and instructive commentary on the above is furnished by Covel’s adventure at Eski Baba, where a famous Moslem saint, reputed the conqueror of the town, is venerated. * He lyes buryed,’ says our author, ‘in St. Nicholas’s church. ... It is made a place of prayer, and he is reckoned a great saint amongst the common people. When we went into it to see his tomb we met another old ‘Turk, who had brought three candles, and presented them to an old woman that looks after it, and shews it to strangers. He said he had made a vow in distress to do it. The old woman told us: Yes, my sons, whenever you are in danger pray to this good holy man and he will infallibly help you. Oh fye! sister, quoth the old Turk, do not so vainly commit sin, for he was a mortall man and a sinner as well as we.

I know it, quoth the old wife, that onely God doth all, and he doth nothing ; but God for his sake will the sooner hear us ; and so ended that point of Turkish divinity.’ !

Though a man renowned in his lifetime for piety or learning becomes after his death naturally and almost t Diaries, ed. Bent, p. 186. With these passages may be compared Carmoly’s account ([tinératres, p. 182) of Jewish belief in the cult of the dead. ‘ D’aprés,’ he says, ‘un usage assez antique, les israélites visitent les sépulcres dans un double but: l’un domestique, lorsque des parents ou des amis vont pleurer leurs morts; l’autre religieux, lorsquw’ils visitent les tombeaux des patriarches, des prophétes ou des docteurs de la synagogue. Chacun par ses priéres, la face tournée vers la ville sainte, recommande le défunt a Dieu et lui souhaite une heureuse résurrection, ou implore I’assistance des héros de la foi. Car selon la doctrine des rabbins, ce ne sont pas seulement nos mérites, mais aussi ceux d’autrul, qui servent de moyens d’apaiser, de propitiatoire, et par intermédiaire duquel nous nous réconcilions avec Dieu notre pére.’ Carmoly adds that the most moving appeal that could be made to the sainted dead was the recitation of passages from their own works.

3295.1 $

258 Cult of the Dead automatically a saint, it 1s, as we have seen, quite possible for a dead man of no particular eminence to enjoy a posthumous vogue, since the practical distinction of a saint’s grave from another lies ultimately in its power to work miracles.? The ritual practices attached to a saint cult naturally

vary greatly from place to place: in some it is very simple, in others apparently very complicated. But in nearly every case examination reveals that the apparent complication is in reality no more than an accumulation of familiar elements, derived partly (e.g. prayer for the soul’s repose and tangible offerings) from the cult of the ordinary dead, partly from secular magic: the ‘ magic’ rites in turn are traceable to quite primitive and widely spread ideas. As prayers, and especially the fatiha or opening sentences of the Koran, are regularly said for the repose of

the departed soul, so in the case of the sainted dead prayer may be made as it were an offering and a means of obtaining their intercession * irrespective of the period

at which they died. Persons about to travel, for instance, are recommended to touch the door of 8. Sophia which is supposed to be made of wood from the Ark,

and say a fattha for the repose of Noah’s soul.3 The dead may also be honoured, their intercession solicited,

or its efficacy acknowledged, by lighting candles on their tombs, by repairing or adding to the tomb building, or by the establishment of foundations for perpetual

prayer and Koran reading at their tombs. A third method of invocation (though it is made use of also in other senses) is sacrifice or kurban. The origins of this Semitic practice have been very t Similarly, English saints have been recognized as such merely in consequence of miracles wrought at their graves: for examples see Hutton, English Saints, pp. 136, 153-4, 155, 159 (Henry VI), 266 ff. 2 White, in Mosl. World, 1919, p. 11. 3 Cf. above, p. 10.

* Kurban’ 259 fully investigated by Robertson Smith, and do not here

concern us. In modern Turkish practice, which is of course based on wider Mohammedan use, it is considered

mainly as a vicarious sacrifice, a life given for a life

threatened or a life spared: it is essential that the victim should bleed. Elaborate rules for the performance of kurban are laid down by the Islamic code in the regulations for the sacrifices of Kurban Bairam ! and of the Pilgrimage. Sacrifice for life spared is made

after escape from danger? or the termination of a

dangerous business: it is usual on the return from the Mecca pilgrimage.3 Sacrifice to arrest a threatened evil is made during sickness,+ after ominous dreams,' in times of danger, and to check fire or pestilence.® It may also be made at any critical period of life, as commonly at a boy’s circumcision? or a bride’s entry into her

new home,’ or at the commencement of any operation regarded as critical or dangerous, such as the erection of a building, the opening of a mine,9 a railway,’ or

tramway,! the beginning of a journey or a war. In

t At Kurban Bairam fanatical Moslems smear their faces with the blood of sacrifice (Le Boulicaut, 4u Pays des Mystéres, p. 112). > De la Magdeleine, Miroir Ottoman, p. 56. 3 M. Walker, Old Tracks, p. 121. 4 De la Magdeleine, loc. ctt.; White, in Trans. Vict. Inst. xl (1908),

p. 232. 5 De la Magdeleine, Joc. cit. 6 White, loc. ctt., xxxix (1907), p. 155. 7 C, White, Constantinople, ii, 243. 8 G. E. White, in Trans. Vict. Inst., xxxix, 153. As an extreme case

of this sort, amounting almost to human sacrifice, may be cited the case of two gypsies, who at the wedding of one of the sons of Ali Pasha

jumped from a high tower at Yannina, taking on themselves to be scapegoats for Ali and his son. They were, as it happened, not much hurt, and were pensioned off by the Pasha for their feat (Ibrahim Manzzour, Mémotres, p. 131).

9 White, zbid. For kurban at the digging of the Lemnian earth see

below, p. 675. For it at Armenian requiem masses see Boucher, Bouquet Sacré, p. 434. 10 Curtiss, Prim. Semitic Reltig., p. 184. 1 As at the recent inauguration of the electric tramway at Pera. 12 White, in Trans. Vict. Inst. xxxix, p. 153. Before Rogers began to $2

260 Cult of the Dead this spirit Murad II, at the conquest of Salonica, sacrificed a ram on first entering S. Demetrius,! and former sultans were wont to immolate whole flocks of sheep at

their coronation.2 In Persia particularly kurban is performed on behalf of great men entering a town. Sir Mark Sykes was complimented in this way at Altin Kupru and notices that the sacrifice was so made that the victim’s blood spurted over his horse’s hoofs.3 In these cases as in many others the sacrifice tends to degenerate into a free meal,‘ since the victim is always

eaten and the great man complimented is expected to

pay for it: consequently he gains both the spiritual

benefit of a kurban made in his honour and the merit of charity. It is this latter view of kurban as a meritorious

act which must have given rise to the curious superstition recorded by Belon that animals sacrificed will pray for their sacrificer in the Day of Judgement.s The excavate a large artificial mound near Damascus the people of the neighbourhood told him that he would make no discoveries if he did not ‘ first propitiate the Sheikh, whose tomb is on the top of the Tell, by sacrificing a sheep in his honour’ (Rogers, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1869, p. 44). Arabs make kurban with a kid to preserve their camels and to ensure the luck of the journey in general: with the blood they make crosses on the camels’ necks (Robinson, Palestine, i, 269). t Ducas, p. 201 B.

2 Gerlach in Crusius, Zurco-Grecia, p. 67. 3 Dar-ul-Islam, p. 192: ‘ Just before entering the town I was subject to a curious and interesting method of paying honour and extorting baksheesh. A man darted forward and cut a sheep’s throat, so that the blood spurted on to my horse’s hoofs, crying *‘ Avaunt evil!’? The explanation of this is that if ever a man of consequence should pass a town an animal should be killed in the fashion described, so as to give fate a life in lieu of one of the honoured person’s animals; and the gentleman in question is bound in honour to pay for the sheep, whose flesh is distributed to the poor’; cf. also Walpole’s Travels, p. 230. Samaritans at their Passover feast the official killers and daub children’s and some women’s faces with the sacrificed lamb’s blood (Mills, Three Months, p. 254). Are these women pregnant ? 4 Cf. Georgeakis and Pineau, Folk-Lore de Lesbos, p. 325. § Observations de Plusteurs Singularttez, iii, chap. vi.

* Kurban’ 261 Shias of Pontus sacrifice to their saints regularly, not only on extraordinary occasions, but ordinary ‘Turkish custom regards kurban as a mode of doing special honour to a saint, generally in acknowledgement of benefits received or expected.!

So far as my limited experience goes kurban in honour of a saint is never performed on his grave or inside his turbe. In some cases, as at the turbe of Ghazi Baba at Uskub, a special sacrificial pit is provided to receive the victim’s blood, with a wooden frame for hanging and carving it. From the Mohammedans this practice of kurban has spread to the Christian races with whom they came in contact ; this was aided by the Easter usages, derived at an earlier period by the Christians from the Semites, and on the other hand by pagan elements surviving, especially on the folk-lore side, among Christians as well

as Mohammedans. Both Armenian and Greek Orthodox Christians are familiar with the idea of apotropaic bloodshed and the half religious consumption of the victim.?

Prayer, care of the tombs, and sometimes kurban may thus be regarded as the approaches to the favour of the saints. ‘The tangible results of their intercession are thought to be obtained by means of certain ‘ supert White,in Trans. Vict. Inst. xxxix, 154. Cf. the invocation of Aaron when sacrificing a goat to him (Burckhardt, Syria, p. 430). 2 For the practice among Anatolian Christians in general see White,

in Lrans. Vict. Inst. xxxix (1907), p. 154; Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de ? Aste Mineure, p. 196 (Armenian sacrifice of cocks) ; Ainsworth, Travels, i, 131 (Greek miners’ sacrifice of cocks to mine-spirits).

For sacrifices by the Orthodox in connexion with the Church see G. Megas, in Aaoypadia, ili, 148-71 (sacrifice of bulls and goats by priest in

Thrace) ; cf. Polites, [Tapaddcers, no. 503 (sacrifice to S. George at Kalamata). Kurban seems formerly (in the sixteenth century) to have been made inside Orthodox churches (Polites, in AeAtiov ‘Iorop. ‘Eras-

peias, i, 106). The modern Greek word for sacrifice is paravw (‘ bleed ’), emphasizing the importance of shedding blood.

262 Cult of the Dead stitious ’ processes, notably ‘ bindings ’, contact with relics (especially earth from the saint’s grave), incubation, and circumambulation—all, be it remarked, common to popular Eastern Christianity as well as to popular Islam. As to ‘ binding ’, the common forms of the ritual acts here included under the name of ‘ binding ’ are the tying of knotsand thedriving of nails (the ancient defixio): both acts typify and are thought actually to bring about the transference of the suppliants’ ills from himself to the object knotted or nailed. Binding with this object is one of the commonest superstitious acts all over the world, and is prominent among the secular magit usages of Christians as well as Moslems throughout the Near East. Knotted rags, threads, and shreds of clothing are the commonest of all outward signs of a popular cult in Turkey. The knot is tied to the most convenient object on or in the immediate vicinity of the grave.t It is popularly believed that ‘in proportion as these rags rot and disappear, so will maladies decrease in

this world, or sins be effaced in the next.’? Ifa rag be untied, the evils bound bythe knot fall upon the untier.3 After tying the knot, the suppliant must go away without looking back. There is probably some connexion in the popular mind between rags and infectious diseases, since, when a migrant stork returns to a Turkish village with a rag in his bill, an epidemic is prognosti-

cated.

The commonest medium in the curative rites classed generally as contact with relics is earth from a saint’s grave. Earth from graves is regularly, and apparently throughout Islam, usedforsuperstitious purposes. Earth from the Prophet’s tomb at Medinais commonly brought t For the origin of rag-tying see ¢.g. Robertson Smith, Religion of the Semites, pp. 317 f. For it in practice see e.g. Walsh, Residence, ii, 463. 2 White, Constantinople, iii, 348. 3 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de P Asie Mineure, p. 196.

4 Ibid., p. 298.

S. Demetrius, Salonica 263 home by pilgrims,: and cures are wrought with earth from saints’ graves either by drinking it in water ? or by applying it to the part affected.3 Among the Shia Turks of Pontus earth from graves is sprinkled on the fields to prevent a plague of mice.’ The water which collects in the circular depressions regularly cut in tombstones

appears also to acquire miraculous virtues.s A most

interesting account of the ritual at the tomb of S. Demetrius, Salonica, is given by de Launay. His words are as follows : ‘Le Turc allume un cierge a la lampe... l’un des Grecs, qui sait le turc, dit quelques mots au sacristain, et celui-ci prend une longue ficelle ; il se baisse, il étend, le plus qu’il peut, ses vieux

bras raidis; il mesure, dans un sens, la pierre du tombeau ; il fait un nceud ; puis mesure dans l’autre sens et coupe. ‘** To onoma, ton nom?” dit le Turc, qui vient de mesurer, avec la ficelle, un des ornements du tombeau et a commencé, en

ce point, un noeud encore lache. Il tient, en se courbant, l’anneau, que forme la corde, sur le haut du cierge allumé et attend qu’on lui réponde. ‘‘ Georgios,” répond le Grec; et le Turc, répétant “ Georgios,” serre le noeud dans la flamme ; il fait remarquer au Grec, d’un air satisfait, que le chanvre n’a pas bralé. ‘Une seconde fois il a mesuré, a la suite, le méme ornement et, renouvelant la méme cérémonie, demande: ‘* Le nom de ton pére, de ta mére ? ”—“‘ Nikolas, mon pére; Calliopé, ma mére.” En répétant les deux noms, le Turc serre encore le nceeud dans

la flamme. Puis il continue: “Tes enfants?” Et, quand ila fait ainsi trois nceuds soigneusement, il met la ficelle sacrée en t Lane, Mod. Egyptians, 11, 160; Burckhardt, Arabia, i, 256 (dust of the Kaaba sold for this purpose) ; see also below, pp. 684—-5. 2 Evans, in 7.1.8., xxi, 203.

3 Turbe of Sahib Ata, Konia (F. W. H.), and doubtless elsewhere. For the use of earth from saints’ graves for medicinal purposes see also Seaman’s Orchan, p. 116 (Karaja Ahmed). The earth of the ‘ place of

the dragon’ at Elwan Chelebi was used for fever (Busbecq, Life and Letters, 1, 170).

4 White, in Trans. Vict. Inst. xl (1908), p. 235, and in Mosl. World,

I9IQ, p. IO. 5 See above, p. 210 and n. 2.

264 Cult of the Dead un petit paquet, qu’il trempe dans l’huile de la lampe ; il ajoute quelques parcelles de la terre du tombeau ; il enveloppe le tout

et le remet au Grec, qui parait tout heureux. I] lui explique dailleurs: ‘‘Si tu es malade, toi, ton pére, ta mére, tes enfants, le noeud sur la partie souffrante et vous serez guéris.” Le Grec se fait donner des détails, tache de bien se rendre compte ; puis la méme cérémonie se répéte pour son compagnon.’!

In this account note (1) the complete fusion of cults : a ‘Turkish dervish serves out magic to Christians in a Christian church, which has been diverted to Moslem use. Note (2) that the ritual is secular magic grafted on a common fund of religious belief in tombs, earth from graves, oil of sacred lamps, offerings of candles. ‘The secular part is composed of several well-known beliefs : (a) pérpov AapBavew, and (d) ‘ binding’ of disease and evils? t De Launay, Chez les Grecs de Turquie, pp. 183-4.

2 The interesting practice of ‘binding’ churches may here be noticed. E. Deschamps describes the ritual fully as he saw it in Cyprus (see Tour du Monde, 1897, pp. 183 ff.). His words are: ‘ En sortant ...je suis tout étonné de voir la base de la coupole entourée d’un cordon

blanc dont les extrémités pendent jusque sur le toit. J’avais vu un gros paquet de cette méche dans une anfractuosité de l’autre église 8. Marina et je questionnai les indigénes sur la raison de cette singuliére

ceinture. .. . Un jour, un habitant du village vit en songe sainte Catherine, qui lui annonga qu’il allait arriver un grand malheur, une maladie terrible qui atteindrait tous les habitants. Pour en étre préservés, il fallait incontinent entourer chaque église d’un épais cordon et

les relier Pune a autre. II fallait aussi que tous les habitants achetassent ce méme coton, qui n’est autre chose qu’une méche, chacun pour autant que ses moyens lui permettraient. Ce qui fut dit fut fait, et le village passa 4 cOté du malheur. Un jour le cordon cassa: les parties qui entouraient les monuments restérent a leur place, pourrissaient lentement; celle qui servait a les relier fut religieusement ramassée et mise dans un trou du mur de Péglise de Sainte-Catherine, ou la pluie en a fait un gateau ’. Here what seems to have been the original purpose of the rite, viz. defence against sickness, has been preserved, as also in the cases cited by E. Deschamps, du Pays d’ Aphrodite, pp. 8990; A. J. B. Wace, in Liverpool Ann. Arch., iii, 23 (at Koron, Greece) : possibly also by Koechlin Schwartz, TYourtste au Caucase (chain at Tiflis). The ‘ cordon ’ which was run round the town of Valenciennes

S. Demetrius, Salonica 265 in general. As regards the first, the dimensions of a thing have similar virtue to the thing itself. At Athens the picture of S. John at S$. John of the Column is ‘measured ’ in the same way,! while the measurement (601 = stature) of a man may be used instead of a victim

for the foundation of a building. Note further (3) the degradation of these two usages evinced by the second measuring and especially in the knot. Strictly speaking, a knot is not a holy thing, it is the action of tying which,

‘binding’ the evil, has the effect desired. Here, the during a plague in 1008 was still preserved in 1820 and carried in procession round the town on 8 September, the anniversary of the miracle (Collin de Plancy, Dict. des Reliques, ii, 323). The same method of defence against a human enemy might also be employed ; during the captivity of King John after the battle of Poitiers in 1356 the échevins of Paris presented Notre Dame de Paris with a candle as long as the enceinte of Paris; this became a yearly offering until 1605 (Collin de Plancy, op. cit. i, 302). In the West the idea of defence against trouble seems largely lost: cf. de Quetteville, Pardon of Guingamp, p. 387 (‘on the day of the Pardon [at Huelgoat in Notre Dame des Cieux] it is not unusual to see a votive offering in the shape of a girdle of wax, running three times round the exterior of the church. I saw one subsequently at the Pardon of the Mére de Dieu, near Quimper, but the string was single... . A poor woman there told me... that she would gladly give

one on the following year if her prayers were granted’ [to get her daughter out of prison]. Sébillot (Folk-Lore de France, iv, 137) gives instances from Paris, Chartres (cf. P. R., in Notre Dame, iv, 123), and

Quimper, saying it is, as might be expected, common in Brittany. See also Saintyves, Reliques et Images Légendaires, pp. 256 ff. (Valenciennes), 259 (Montpellier), 260 (Tournay), and on the whole subject van Gennep, Religions, Meurs, et Légendes (chapter on La Ceinture de

P E-glise). 1 See above, p. 195.

2 See below, p. 732, n. 5. A bath at Ephesus was haunted by the spirit of a young girl who had been buried alive ‘for luck’ in the foundations (Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, ii, 767, cf. p. 862). After Pittard had measured a number of gypsies in the Dobruja a monk from a neighbouring convent terrified them by saying Pittard and his friends wished to build a monastery across the Danube, beginning par y 1nstaller des Gmes dans ses murs. ‘The measurement of their heads had had

this end in view. ‘ Leurs 4mes allaient les quitter et passer le fleuve. Ils les perdraient ainsi a jamais.’ See Pittard, Dans le Dobrodga, p. 131.

266 Cult of the Dead evil to be bound does not yet exist, it is anticipated only, the knot has become merely a sacred object in the second degree, like any other object which has partaken of the

virtue of a holy place. ‘The patient also is only anticipated. Lastly, (4) note that such mummery could be varied ad lib. with an ignorant clientele by the same or succeeding dervishes. ‘The only real essential is some kind of hocus-pocus, the more apparently elaborate the better, bringing in the tomb of 8. Demetrius. At other healing shrines various articles sometimes said to have belonged to the dead saint are used for

cures in a similar manner. Typical is the shrine of Sultan Divani at Afiun Kara Hisar, where the iron shoes

of the saint are worn for apoplexy.! Similarly, at the tekke of Husain Ghazi, at Alaja in Paphlagonia, headache is cured by leading the patient seven times round the tomb and placing a string of beads on his head, each of which is struck by a mace.? Both beads and mace, we may be sure, are reputed those of the hero Husain. At the tekke of Imam Baghevi at Konia contact with two ancient worked stones is supposed to effect cures.3 Such relics as these may be held to work miracles indepen-

dently of the presence of the tomb. Of this a good example is the cup of Maslama at Arab Jami in Constantinople, a drink from which is said to benefit mothers

in childbirth and nursing.‘ Further, a handkerchief or garment left in contact

with the tomb is thought to absorb the virtue of the saint and becomes itself a secondary relic. ‘This is the procedure used at the tomb of Abu Sufian in the ‘ undert Laborde, Aste Mineure, p. 65. 2 White, in Trans. Vict. Inst. xxxix (1907), p. 159. 3 F. W. H.: cf. above, p. 82.

4 D’Ohsson, Tableau, i, 285; Byzantios, Kwvaravtwovrorts, ii, 46-7, On the Christian side also similar beliefs exist, cf. Antoninus martyr, De Locis Sanctis, ed. Tobler, p. 2§ (xxii), who drank pro benedictione from the skull of the martyr Theodota.

Circumambulation 267 ground mosque ’ at Galata! and other places.2 A killor-cure remedy for chronic illnesses in general exists at Monastir, in the habit (k/irka) of Kulali Mufti Sheikh Mahmud Efendi, called Khirka Baba.3 The virtue of the kAirka is transferred, like that of the Prophet at Constantinople, to water in which it has been dipped. This water is given to patients who at once take a turn for the better or for the worse.5 Earth from the graves of Fatima and Zeinab at Constantinople is used for the same purpose.®

Circumambulation has been mentioned as a sub-rite

at the tomb of Husain Ghazi at Alaja7 and is fairly common elsewhere. ‘The practice is consecrated for Islam by its use at Mecca, where encircling (tawaf) the Holy House is a regular part of the pilgrims’ ceremonies. It seems also to be practised by Christian pilgrims to the Holy Sepulchre. Leaving aside mystical interpretations of the act, we may probably assume that it is designed to secure the maximum amount of blessing from the sacred object in question by allowing all sides of it to act on the worshipper. It is thus a diluted form of contact with relics.

Incubation is practised as commonly in Mohammedan as in Christian sanctuaries. We may instance the shrine visited by Evans at Tekke Keui in Macedonia,® the zekke of Hafiz Khalil near Varna,9 the cave t F. W. H.: see further below, p. 727. Cf. the Jewish practice of scribbling one’s name on a holy place, for which see d’Arvieux, Meémotres, i, 225, 294.

2 'Tekke Keui, Macedonia (Evans, in 7.H.S. xxi, 204); cf. Lucius, Anfange des Hetligenk., p. 195.

3 For this sheikh see below, p. 358. 4 See below, p. 358, n. 2. 5 Similarly, a sulphurous well between Angora and the Halys was formerly supposéd a ‘ kill-or-cure ’ remedy for madmen ; similar cures are practised at Sipan Dere in the Taurus; see above, p. §2, n. 2. 6 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, p. 117. 7 Above, p. 266 and n. 2.

8 In F.H.S. xxi, 204. 9 Nikolaos, "Odynaads, pp. 248-50.

268 Cult of the Dead of the Seven Sleepers near Tarsus.: Outside the sphere of religion proper we find a bath reputed haunted by beneficent per1s, which is used for incubation in the same way.? A similar secular incubation of three night: is practised by men 3 and especially animals 4 in Cappadocia. Owing to the influence of classical parallels, especially

Aesculapius worship, too much stress has been laid on

the use of incubation as a cure for bodily or mental ailments. ‘The root idea is more general. Sleep in a sacred place is regarded as a means of closer communion with the beneficent spiritual influence of the holy place

through the dream state, which is not differentiated from the ecstatic trance. ‘Though this closer communion is most often made use of for healing, it may be

sought for other purposes. For example, the cave ot the Seven Sleepers near ‘Tarsus is used for incubation by

women desirous of children,’ and Catholic pilgrims formerly incubated in the church of the Sepulchre fo1 the general beneficial results supposed to be obtained thereby : © this is still an important part of the pilgrimage for Russians.?7 Similarly, in ancient times incubation was practised at Oropus as a preliminary tc receiving an oracle from Amphiaraus.®

It is interesting and characteristic that animals share with men the benefits of communion with the saints. t Schaffer, Cilicia, p. 29. 2 [Blunt], People of Turkey, u, 226-9; cf. above, p. 109. 3 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad, de ? Asie Mineure, pp. 335 ff. ; this cult seems vaguely connected with the Syrian saint Haji Bekir (2d7d..

p.5 Schaffer, 210). 4 [bid., pp. 203-4. doc. cit. Barren women also patronize the ojak of Haji

Bekir (Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. del’ Aste Mineure, p. 335). Cf. the incubation for children at Eski Baba in Thrace and at Musa Tekke near Kachanik in Macedonia (F. W. H.). 6 Lithgow, Rare Adventures, p. 237; Casola’s Pilgrimage, p. 261. 7 Stephen Graham, With the Russian Pilgrims to Ferusalem, pp. 131 f. 8 On incubation see further below, pp. 689-95.

Incubation and Divination 269 Sick animals are brought by their masters, Christian and Moslem, to the monastery of S. John the Baptist :

and to the church of S. Makrina? in the district of Caesarea. In Rumeli the zekkes of Choban Baba at Kumanovo and Ishtip are famous for their cures of animals by laying upon them the staff of the saint.3 Conversely, the tomb of the Horse at Skutari works miracles for men,‘ who also frequent with reverence the graves of Suleiman Pasha and his horse at Bulair.s Of oracles and divination in connexion with the cult

of the dead few examples have been published. At

Haidar-es-Sultan Crowfoot found a wise woman in the

service of the village tekke, who acted the part of a Pythian priestess, inhaling the fumes of a sulphurous spring, and, thus inspired, predicted the future.6 The spring of Bakmaja near Ainegueul (Brusa district) also t Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de ? Aste Minecure, p. 203. + [bid., p. 204. 3 F. W. H. (from information obtained from local residents).

4 Especially young children, see M. Walker, Eastern Life, i, 277

(below, pp. 272 f.). The horse is variously said to be that of Sultans Osman (Burgess, Greece and the Levant, ii, 194) or Mahmud (Meyer’s Konstantinopel, 7th ed., p. 315; Hope, Anastasius, ii, 12). G. Temple (Travels, 11, 189) says there are two tombs of Osman II’s and Mahmud I’s horses. Similar memorials to dogs are found in Palestine, see Kitchener in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1877, p. 171, and Schumacher, tbid., Q.S. for 1888, p. 216. 5 Fife-Cookson, With the Armies of the Balkans, p.163. Cf. Abu Zenneh’s in the Sinai peninsula (Robinson, Palestine, i, 102): of this grave Stanley writes (Sina1, p. 68) that it is believed the tomb of the horse of Abu Zenneh, who was killed in battle. Battle and master are alike unknown to history, but he is said to have commanded that every Arab, who passed the cairn, should throw sand on it as if it were barley, and say, ‘ Eat, eat, O horse of Abu Zenneh’. Stanley saw for himself that this is still done. Palmer states that, while the pagan Arabs had brought offerings to the grave, under the influence of Islam the grave had become regarded as devil-haunted and passers-by kick up sand with the words, ‘ Kat that and get thee gone’ (Desert of the Exodus, p- 42). For the memorial to Shoehman’s mare see Kelly, Syria, p. 445. 6 In Ff. R. Anthr. Inst. xxx, 307.

270 Cult of the Dead exhales vapours which are credited with healing properties not used for divination. A well at Eyyub used for divination is described by Evliya? in the following terms : ‘There is an old well that goes by the name of Jan Koyussi, the well of souls.3 If a person who has lost any thing performs here a prayer of two rika‘at 4 devoting the merit of it to Yussuf,s and asking that great Prophet to describe to him what he or his relations have done amiss, a voice is heard from the bottom of the well describing the place where the lost thing or person 1s to be found. ‘This well answers to everything except about the five hidden things (which as the Prophet declared nobody knows but God), as for example, if any one should ask, “‘ Whether the

child in the mother’s womb is a boy, or a girl?” 1n that case

no answer is returned but “stay a little”. I, the humble Evliya, having myself inquired one day at this well, where my uncle Osman then was, and what he was doing, received the answer, that he was buying flour at Aidinjik, and would soon

join me; he having arrived thirteen days after, I asked him where he had been, and what he had been doing on such a day, he replied, “‘ that he had been buying flour at A1dinjik ”.’

Divination without a medium is reduced to its simplest elements, a ‘ yes ’ or ‘ no’ answer to certain stereo1 Cuinet, Turquie d Asie, iv, 38. 2 Travels, 1, 11, 34. 3 Derived from the well of souls (Bir-al-Arwab) in the Haram at Jerusalem (Le Strange, Palestine, p. 132); it was said to descend to Hades (Conder, Ferusalem, p. 254). It occupies the site of the altar of Sacrifice and according to some Moslem divines the souls of the just rest in the well till the Day of Judgement. ‘This is all part of the idea that caves, cisterns, and wells, which are all dark and echoing places, are haunted, probably by jzmms in ordinary cases, but holy wells could

naturally be haunted only by holy beings. This is seen most plainly perhaps in the case of caves (or crypts, for a cave is often only a natural crypt, as a crypt is sometimes an artificial cave) ; see above, p. 223.

4’ Rtka'at=prostration during prayer. 5 The connexion is of course with the (pit or) well, into which Joseph

was let down by his brethren (see Sale’s Koran, p. 170, and commentary).

Divination 271 typed questions being all that is required. At Eski Baba there is said to be a round stone on which sick people sit to obtain oracles of health: if they are to recover the

stone turns to the right, if not, to the left. At Tekke Keui near Uskub the sacred stone seen by Evans gives oracles of the same kind, if the suppliant can so embrace it that the fingers of his two hands meet, his wish is granted, if not, the reverse. Divination with pebbles for the return or otherwise of absent friends is practised at the turbe of Ghazi Baba at Uskub. Pebbles are kept on the tomb: the inquirer

takes a handful at random and counts them. If the number is even, the answer is in the affirmative, if odd, negative.3 In the turbe of a Bektashi convent at Juma, near Kozani in Macedonia, there is a simple wishingoracle derived from the swinging of a porcelain ball or polyhedron suspended from the ceiling of the turbe. If this ball, swung away from the suppliant, strikes him on

the rebound, his wish will be granted, otherwise the

reverse may be expected.4 Similarly, a ball in the 1 F, W. H. from a local Christian in 1909. 2 Cf. Evans, in ‘F.H.S. xxi, 203: ‘ The suppliant utters a prayer for what he most wishes, and afterwards embraces the stone in such a way that the finger tips meet at the further side.” On this oracle see further below, p. 277. 3 F. W. H. (1914). I saw a small pile of pebbles also on the tomb of Jafer Ghazi in his turbe (now closed) in the citadel. Pebble divination is also practised at Zile in Pontus (White, Trans. Vict. Inst. xxxix, 162, stones thrown on a flat stone with a prayer) and at Tekke Keui near Uskub (Evans, loc. ctt., p. 204). Secular divination for news of absent friends by means of beads, with a rather more elaborate code, is mentioned in Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de ? Aste Mineure, pp. 343 f. 4 F. W. H.: see below, p. §29. Cf. Murray’s Asta Minor, p. 255, where is mentioned a blue porcelain ball suspended from a mosque dome at Divriji (near Sivas) with miraculous powers. It is probable that both balls were originally charms against the evil eye. In Syria widows commonly use their husbands’ tombs as oracles. The question is placed at the tomb and ‘son feu mari ne manque pas de lui venir donner [la réponse] la nuit suivante ’ (Thévenot, Voyages, 111, 80).

272 Cult of the Dead Bektashi tzekke of Bujak near Juma gives information about the health of absent friends.: Another example of the ritual at a popular Turkish shrine is given by Mrs. Walker in her description of the

‘Tomb of the Horse’ at Skutari. Her words are as

follows : * ‘Towards the south-western limit of the great Scutari burial-

ground, and almost hidden among moss-grown graves, rank weeds, and cypress stems, you come upon a venerable monument—a stone vaulted roof, supported on columns, that covers nothing but a plain surface of trodden earth, with a small upright stone marking the headplace of the occupant. The people of the neighbourhood call it the tomb of a horse, and point to another burial-place enclosed in a railing, heavily trimmed with votive rags, as the grave of a saintly man, the owner? of the much-honoured steed.3 This monument . . . is very similar to the tomb erected to commemorate the horse of Mohammed the Conqueror, this latter in the cemetery of Eyoub, on the summit of the hill called Sandjakdjilar, the “ standard-bearer” . . . this spot is endowed, they affirm, with the miraculous power of

giving firmness and strength to the legs of weakly crippled children. The application of the charm takes place on Fridays, in the afternoon. ‘A very dilapidated imam officiated on the day of our visit there, two or three women of the humbler class had assembled, holding their sickly babies very tenderly and anxiously. Each party brought a new whisk broom, with which the officiating priest swept carefully round the area three times ; then, taking

the child under the arms, proceeded to drag it round backwards, so that its legs should come as much as possible in contact

with the strength-giving earth. This was done three times, with a pause at the head of the grave, when the little limbs were flapped down—also three times. “A penny was the charge for this inexpensive if ineffectual remedy, and the mother bore away her child, taking great care

1 M. M. H. 2 See above, p. 269, n. 4.

3 ‘The combination of the graves of a ‘ holy man’ and his horse with a Christian ayasma seem to point to a cult of S. George-Khidr. 4 For other horses’ tombs see above, p. 269, nn. 4-5.

HHorse’s Tomb 273 not to turn her head as she departed, lest the charm should be broken. On leaving the horse’s grave the patient is carried to a small building near at hand, that contains, under one roof, the tomb of a Turkish Saint and a Christian ayasma, or holy well. An old woman, singularly alive to the merits of backshish, presides over the fountain, at which both Mussulman and Christian drink, after which the ancient lady produces a monstrous chaplet—a tesb1b—of large dark beads, which she passes

three times over the head of the visitor and down to the feet

——like a skipping-rope. As the operation is paid for, any one that pleases may enjoy the privilege ; in the case of the children who had been dragged round the horse’s grave, it is a necessary and completing part of the cure.’ ?

As a suggestion of origin for the tomb the following may be considered. ‘The so-called Horse’s Tomb has no appearance of beingatombatall. It is merely a kubbeh of no very ancient date, such as are commonly built as a work of charity by women in graveyards, to serve as a retreat and shelter for mourning women. A mosque was built at Skutari by a dowager sultana and named

after her Valideh Atik (elder) Jamisi. Did the same lady build this kubbeA, it being called after her Valideh Sultan Atik Kubbesi, degenerating into Sultan Ati Kubbesi 3 (kubbeh of the sultan’s horse) ?

As to the ritual at the Horse’s Tomb, it will be seen at once that it is merely an accumulation of various acts supposed to be beneficial. Contact with, and proximity to, sacred objects form the base, the sacred objects

being in this case (1) the earth of the tomb, (2) the water of the well, and (3) the beads of the saint. The effects of these are enhanced by (1) encircling the horse’s tomb and (2) passing through the beads; the root

idea of both acts (‘ circumambulation ’ 4 and ‘ transition ’ 5) is common to the folk-lore of many countries. t Eastern Life, i, 277 ff. 2 See below, p. 325, n. 4.

3 See also below, p. 327. 4 See above, p. 267.

3295°1 T

5 See above, pp. 182-5. To be inside of, or encircled by, the holy

274 Cult of the Dead The encircling is done an auspicious number of times, and the whole ceremony takes place on an auspicious day, Friday, on which the greatest number of Moslem souls commune with God. This latter is the sole real contact of the cult with orthodox Islam.

The only record known to me of an elaborate sequence of Turkish ritual practices which is at all comparable to Mrs. Walker’s for minuteness of observation is Evans’s description! of the tekke and cult at Tekke Keui near the village now called Alexandrovo and not

far from Uskub. The tekke is described as a humble building divided into an anteroom and sanctuary. The central object of the latter is a square stone pillar with bevelled edges. Behind it (from the antechamber door) is a sunken hearth occupied by candles, in front of it

a square base on which the pilgrim stands when he makes his preliminary prayer. The procedure is as

follows :

‘Taking his stand on the flat stone by the pillar, the suppliant

utters a prayer for what he most wishes, and afterwards embraces the stone in such a way that the finger-tips meet at its further side. A sick Albanian was walking round the pillar when I first saw it, kissing and embracing it at every turn. ‘The worshipper who would conform to the full ritual, now

fills a keg of water from a spring that rises near the shrine— another primitive touch,—and makes his way through a thorny grove up a neighbouring knoll, on which is a wooden enclosure surrounding a Mahommedan Saint’s Grave or Tekke. Over the

headstone of this grows a thorn tree hung with rags of divers colours, attached to it—according to a widespread primitive object is obviously a more favourable position for receiving blessing from

it than toencircleit. This is reflected in a higher plane of thought by a passage of Saadi quoted by Burton (Pilgrimage to Meccah, 1906, ii, 165): ‘he who travels to the Ka’abah on foot makes the circuit of the Ka’abah, but he who performs the pilgrimage of the Ka’abah in his heart 1s encircled by the Ka’abah’. Whereas every pilgrim makes the tawaf, very few are admitted to the interior of the Holy House. t In Mycenean Tree and Pillar Cult, F. H. 8. xxi, 202 ff.

Tekke Keut 275 rite—by sick persons who had made pilgrimage to the tomb. ... In the centre of the grave was a hole, into which the water from the holy spring was poured, and mixed with the holy earth. Of this the votary drinks three times, and he must thrice anoint his

forehead with it....

‘It was now necessary to walk three times round the grave, each time kissing and touching with the forehead the stone at the head and foot of it. A handful of the grave dust was next

given me, to be made up into a triangular amulet and worn round the neck. An augury of pebbles, which were shuffled about under the Dervish’s palms over a hollowed stone, having turned out propitious, we now proceeded to the sacrifice. This took place outside the sepulchral enclosure, where the Priest

of the Stone was presently ready with a young ram. My Albanian guide cut its throat, and I was now instructed to dip my right hand little finger in the blood and to touch my forehead with it. ‘'The sacrifice completed, we made our way down again to the shrine, . . . it was now necessary to divest one’s self of an

article of clothing for the Dervish to wrap round the sacred pillar, where it remained all night. Due offerings of candles were made, which, as evening drew on, were lit on the sunken hearth beside the stone. We were given three barley corns to eat, and a share in the slaughtered ram, of which the rest was taken by the priest, was set apart for our supper in the adjoining antechamber. Here, beneath the same roof with the stone, and within sight of it through the open doorway, we were bidden

to pass the night, so that the occult influences due to its spiritual possession might shape our dreams as in the days of the patriarchs.’

Here, as at Skutari, the religious importance of the sanctuary is divided between three sacred objects, of which two are a saint’s tomb and a sacred water. The third—at Tekke Keui a pillar—usurps the lion’s share

of the interest. To it we shall return. Most of the

ritual turns directly or indirectly on contact with these holy objects. The pillar is embraced and circumambulated, the water of the spring and the earth of the grave are both swallowed on the spot and taken away to be T2

276 Cubt of the Dead worn as an amulet; similarly, a garment which has been in contact with the pillar is worn to perpetuate its beneficent influence. The corn and the sacrificial flesh are conceived of as hallowed by the connexion with the sacred place. The sacred number, here three, occurs twice. Finally, the patient, permeated by the influence of the holy place, sleeps through the mysterious night in close proximity to the sacred stone.

Some few new points which I have gleaned after Evans give an added interest to this sanctuary. First, the name of the buried saint is Karaja Ahmed and the tekke is in the hands of the Bektashi. Karaja Ahmed! is a famous saint of this order and his ‘tombs’ are numerous in the Sangarius valley and elsewhere in Asia

Minor: the likeness of the name ‘ Karaja’ to the Slavonic form of ‘ George ’ may have aided the saint’s identification by Christians with S$. George, at which Evans hints and which, since the Serbian conquest of

this part of Macedonia, is so far accepted by local Christians that a cross has been erected at the place. Secondly, the sanctuary in which the pillar stands is a simple form of the Bektashi ‘ house of prayer ’ (tbadet

hane, meidan) or ‘ lodge’ and all its furniture, including pillar, square base, candle-stand, and sheepskins, is

in harmony. The pillar and ‘ base’ (called by the Bektashi meidan tash) seem to be essential to Bektashi ritual. The pillar is sometimes a real part of the struc-

ture of the ‘lodge’, sometimes a movable piece of furniture: I have seen it square and twelve-sided. The metdan tash likewise varies in form, being sometimes square, sometimes eight-sided, and sometimes a twelve-pointed star formed by segmental excisions from a circular stone. The metdan tash is supposed to symbolize the altar of Ishmael and at the initiation of a Bektashi the candidate stands on it. The variation in the shape of the stone may be dependent on the grade of ™ See below, pp. 404 f. 2 J. P. Brown, Dervishes, p. 167.

Tekke Keut 277 the ‘lodge’. In large ‘ lodges ’ there are twelve sheepskins (at Tekke Keui Evans saw only five), which are the seats of the twelve major officials of the tekke ; * similarly the Bektashi ta7 or mitre has four divisions on its

rim and twelve above. It thus seems evident that the ‘sacred stone’ of Tekke Keui has an esoteric meaning

for the Bektashiand the fables of its ‘ fying from Khora-

san’ or being ‘ brought by a holy man from Bosnia ’ ? heard by Evans are probably for rustic consumption. Lastly, a small point in the ritual which seems to have escaped Evans, but which bulked large in the accounts of my local informants, is that the preliminary ‘ embracing ’ of the sacred stone is in itself an oracle of the success or otherwise of the suppliant ; if his petition is not to be granted, he is unable to clasp the stone so that his finger-tips touch, a distinct embargo on the corpulent. The point is of some interest as apparently coming not from the Sunni but from the Shia side of Islam, to which the Bektashi belong. A column of the mosque of Ali at Kufa has the same oracular properties, used in this instance to confirm doubtful legitimacy or the reverse.3 A connexion between the two seems certain.

1 [bid., p. 153. 2 Above, p. 197, n. 2.

3 Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabie, i, 216. See further below, p. 635.

XVIII

SAINTS AND THEIR MIRACLES § 1. CaTEGoRIES OF SAINTS

T HEdefined saints of the Turksand fallmay intobeseveral categories, dividedfairly into well(1) Prophets of the Jewish tradition (e.2. Noah and Joshua) ; ! (2) Koranic saints(¢.g. Khidr and the Seven Sleepers) ; (3) Men of holy life, including preachers and learned men, dervishes and anchorites ; (4) Ghazis or warriors who have fallen in fight against the infidel, generally either ‘ Arabs ’ of the early centuries of Islam or heroes of the Turkish conquest 5

(5) Tribal saints ; (6) Lay founders of religious establishments, who have acquired merit, and therefore influence in heaven, by this pious act. The tomb and memorials of all these, irrespective of their function in life, are felt to have power and all may « Other interesting Jewish figures adopted by the Moslems are Nim-

rod (see below, p. 317, n. 4) and Samson. Samson bargained with his compatriots that, if he destroyed the church, and the Christians in it, at Ain Shemes [Samson’s country], he should have a quarter of the

revenues of the country. When the Christians had assembled in the church, he went to it and, crying, ‘ Ya Rabb,’ knocked down the column

which supported it, burying himself and them in the ruins. They buried him at Sara, and the sheikh attached to the tomb takes a quarter of the olives grown between Deir Eban and Ain Shemes: one fellah who refused to pay the toll found his olives, when pressed, exude blood

(Clermont-Ganneau, Pal. Inconnue, p. 58). Story (Roba di Roma, ii, 248) was told that the blind man Samson had pulled down the church at Siena. One of the Greek temples at Metapontum is called Chiesa di Sansone (Baedeker, S. [taly, p. 242). I heard somewhat the same tale at Kastoria, Macedonia.

Types of Saints 279 ease by their intercessions the troubles of their suppliants. In addition, in death as in life, an obscure person may prove himself a saint by manifesting his power to work miracles. Further, as elsewhere, ignorance and chicanery have added to the number of genuine graves a number of cenotaphs and bogus sanctuaries of supposititious saints. The vogue of a saint depends on many conditions.

Certain saints are definitely associated with certain trades, professions, or sects. Every guild in Constantinople, like every dervish organization, has its special patron saint (p77), who is claimed as founder. The illustrious admiral Khair-ed-din (‘ Barbarossa’) was regularly invoked yearly, for no other reason than the success of his arms, by his successors before they put to

sea with their fleets.3 Sidi Ghazi in former days and Haji Bektash still 4 are associated with the profession of

arms. Khidr, the half-divine guide of Moses in the Koran, becomes naturally enough the protector of travellers.5 Such saints have a certain prescriptive right to veneration from their particular followers, and so to a limited extent the Turkish pantheon is departmenta1 Cf. above, pp. 234-6. 2 "This is well seen in the West, with its more abundant material for study, cf. Hasluck, Letters, pp. 31-2. 3 This custom began at least soon after Khair-ed-din’s death in 1569 (Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. vi, 332, quoting a Venetian Relazione ; cf. Hammer-Hellert, xviii, 81 (703)). See also Canaye (1573), Voyage, p. 139; Thomas Smith in Ray’s Voyages, ui, 48 (‘[At Beshik-

tash] lies buried the famous Pyrate Ariadin, whom the Christian Writers call Barbarossa... .. The Captain Bassa usually, before he puts

to Sea with his Armata of Gallies, visits the tomb of this fortunate Robber . . . and makes his prayers at the neighbouring church [!] for the good success of his Expedition ’). The grave is now little regarded, cf. Slade, Travels, p. 63; Temple, Zravels, 11, 210. 4 Decourdemanche, in Rev. Hist. Relig. 1x (1909), p. 66. 5 George of Hungary, De Moribus Turcorum, cap. xv, quoted below, p. 498. Breuning, Orient. Reyss (1579), p. 106, probably copies from

the former. See below, p. 323, n. I.

280 Saints and their Miracles lized. In general, however, the popular fame of a Turkish saint depends on his power to work miracles, especially of healing, and his reputation for the cures of particular afflictions depends on chance successes, accidents of name,! or astute organization. § 2. Mrractes AND LEGENDS OF THE SAINTS

The miracles of the saints are primarily tokens of the favour of God obtained by the saint’s intercession with God on his own behalf or on that of others. The saints most renowned for miracles are dervishes, who possess or affect to possess occult knowledge as well as holiness, and a supposed miracle is generally attributed to a dervish. ‘The dervish is conceived of as a person not far removed from a magician, who works through inns or demons and may without prejudice claim power over

ginns. Solomon himself, who is conceived of as perfectly orthodox and specially favoured of God, is not considered inconsistent for exercising his power over qinns,» and indeed the favour of God, combined with learning of a special sort, 1s supposed to give such power. t A conspicuous example is Ashik Pasha, whose tomb at Kirshehr was

a pilgrimage for persons afflicted by love-troubles (ashk =‘ love’) : for this see George of Hungary, De Moribus Turcorum, cap. xv (below,

, ae built Baalbek for Solomon (cf. Benjamin of Tudela, ed. Wright, p. 91; de Volney, Voyage, ii, 119; Warburton, Crescent and Cross, p. 309, &c.) ; see above, p. 200. They also built the vaults under the Haram at Jerusalem for him (de Vogiié, Syrie, p. 204) ;_ the work being finished, Solomon ‘ les a écroués pour l’éternité aux pierres de leurs piliers’. The Bordeaux pilgrim already mentions the crypt ubi Salomon daemones torquebat (in Chateaubriand’s [tznér. iii, 242). Migne (Dict. des Apocryphes, 11, 854) gives the incident of the demon Sakhr

at the building of the Temple. The Koran (Sale’s edition, p. 284) mentions his armies of demons, birds, and men. He retained his power over the jzmns after he died by concealing his death for some time.

(Conder, Ferus., p. 254; cf. Sale’s Koran, p. 323). Migne further (op. cit., 11, 839 ff.) says that both Jews and Greek Christians attributed magic powers over demons to Solomon.

Types of Dervishes 281 The learning in question comes partly from innate quali-

ties, partly from meditation and instruction. The dervishes of hagiological folk-lore have many ‘fairy ’ characteristics. ‘Ihey can take various shapes,' are endowed with supernatural strength, and, to judge by their tombs, supernatural size also. They thus approximate very closely to the dev of secular folk-tales, and many supposed saints may have originated as whitewashed devs. The dervish of legend generally falls into

one of two fairly well-marked categories, z.¢e. (1) the warrior and (2) the hermit or contemplative: characteristics of both may of course be combined in one per-

son. In general, however, it may be said that the warrior type took root with the Osmanli, while with the Seljuks the mystic learned branch was in favour. The warrior dervish can be dismissed in a few words. The conception is of course based on the actual practice of using dervishes to inspire the troops in battle. The association of the Janissaries with the Bektashi dervishes is the outcome of this practice, which doubtless goes back to the time when every Turkish tribal chief was

both the leader in war and the medicine-man of his tribe. Dervishes still marched with the troops till quite recent times, even after the fall of the Janissaries.3 The miracles proper to the warrior dervish naturally consist in supernatural feats of arms generally accomplished with dummy weapons and the power of the spirit.4 1 Cf. the saint in Goldziher, Rev. Hist. Relig. 11 (1880), p. 278.

Accused of not saying his prayers, he took various forms and posed his accusers with the question, ‘ In which form have you seen me neglect

prayer ?’ 2 Cf. the sheikh in Goldziher, loc. cit., p. 271.

3 Cf. Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. vii, 267; Peysonnel, Mémotres de M. le Baron de Tott, pp. 34 ff.; Wittman, Travels, p. 10; Burnaby, On Horseback through Asta Minor (1877), 1, 318. Bektashi babas were specially brought to encourage the Albanian troops at the battle of Kumanovo in 1913 (F. W. H.). 4 A dervish’s wooden sword is hung up at the tomb of Sersem Ali at Kalkandelen (F. W. H.) ; other wooden weapons are in a Cappadocian

282 Saints and their Miracles As characteristic of the ‘ hermit’ type of dervish we may specially remark miracles based on their complete union with the world of nature, including the taming of wild animals, especially deer, and, as a further extension of the same powers, supernatural power over inanimate objects.!

Outside dervish circles a very favourite hero for miraculous legends is the unknown saint,? whose miracles 3 are the vindication of his unexpected claim to veneration. They may be worked during his lifetime or after his death. ‘The ‘ unknown saint of God ’ is generally a conspicuously unlikely person, of very obscure station,4 apparently negligent in his religious duties,5 even a Christian,® or a drunkard.7 Of hagiographical legends a very large class is composed of aetiological legends devised to account for prominent natural features or natural curiosities of certain localities. ‘The existence of mountains, springs, and lakes is frequently attributed to the direct action of saintly personages. ‘I‘hus, the summits of the Trojan Ida are due to the sifting of Sari Kiz, a female saint to tekke (Crowfoot in F. R. Anthr. Inst. xxx, 307). For a story turning on the same motif see Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, . 74 ff.

. Cf especially the kutb in Lane, Mod. Egyptians, i, 291. 2 See below, p. 293. 3 In Algeria, if a miracle takes place at the traditional burial-place or cell of a saint, whose name is unknown, a chapel of Sidi 7] Mokhfi (‘My Lord the Hidden One ’) is dedicated (Montet, Culte des Saints Musul-

mans, p. 21; cf. also p. 22). Cf. Conder, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1874, pp. 23 f., for Haj Alian, a poor, obscure saint vindicated by a miracle. 4 Ephraim Teuvetlu in (x); Emrem Yunuz in (vii); cf. Miss Durham, Burden of the Balkans, p. 309 (butcher saint of Alessio); P. Guérin, Vie des Saints, s.d. Fan. 17 (S. Anthony the Great and the leather curer of Alexandria). For other eastern motifs in the West see below, p. 632. 5 Imam Baghevi in (viii) ; Laleli in Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore

de Constantinople, pp. 144 f. 6 Mesnevt, tr. Redhouse, p. 34. 7 Carnoy and Nicolaides, op. cit., p. 39.

Aetiological Legends 283 whom considerable reverence is paid by the surrounding Yuruk populations:: those of theAliDagh, near Caesarea, to similar action on the part of the nephew and successor of the Prophet : 2 and three tumuli at Sestos, according to “a silly fable related by the Turks ’, were ‘ formed by the straw, the chaff, and the corn of a Dervish, winnow-

ing his grain’.3 The spring at Ivriz was called forth by

a companion of the Prophet,+ and numerous other springs are attributed to the action of dervish-saints.5 The lakes of Egerdir and Beyshehr were formed by Plato (* Eflatun ’, a figure standing half-way between saint and magician in Oriental legend), who blocked their

outlet.6 Sheikh Arab Gueul, near Dineir, represents the site of a wicked town overwhelmed by an ‘ infidel dervish’.7 Some similar story probably connects Hasan Dede with the salt lagoon in Cilicia bearing his name.¢ This type of legend is apt to take a moral colour. The

saint, insulted or angered, curses the country by an inundation. Plato, with a curious incompetence, obtains the same effect by accident or miscalculation, his aim being purely beneficent.» Such manipulation of water, whether for utilitarian or destructive purposes, is specially characteristic of the oriental magician. ' See Leaf, in Geog. Fourn. xl (1912), p. 37; above, p. 100.

> See above, p. 102, n. 3. 3 EK. D. Clarke, Travels, iii, 86. 4 For references see above, p. 106, n. I. 5 Cf. e.g. Hammer, Brussa, p.14.; Degrand, Haute Albanie, p. 244; Kanitz, Bulgarie, p. §35; Evliya, Travels, ii, 226.

6 Below, p. 366. 7 Laborde, Aste Mineure, p. 105.

8 For the lagoon see Cuinet, Turquie d’Asie, ii, 41. Hasan Dede may be historical: see the inscription in his honour published by Langlois, Ciltcte, pp. 330-1. 9 ‘The same phenomena may be variously interpreted. The saltings of Larnaka represent, like most of the lakes cited above, the vengeance of a saint (Lazaros) ; but the saltings of Haji Bektash are the outcome of his beneficent forethought for a saltless people (Cuinet, of. cit., i, 342). A salt marsh in Persia was caused by the mere presence of the guilty Shimr (E. C. Sykes, Persia and 1ts People, p. 168). 10 For ‘ Belinas ’ (Apollonius of Tyana) in this connexion see below

284 Saints and their Miracles Supposed evidences of ancient inundations on a larger scale are generally connected with the cutting of the Bosporus and the Strait of Gibraltar by Alexander the Great, a purely secular figure. According to the western account Alexander, incensed at the conduct of a king of

Carthage, who refused to accept him as suitor to his (already betrothed) daughter, revenged himself by cutting the Strait of Gibraltar, and thereby flooding the low-lying districts of the stiff-necked king’s territory.! The eastern version is for aetiological purposes more satisfactory. Alexander was opposed in Asia by Kadife, queen of Smyrna, who either refused him passage for his troops on their way to India, or declined to do him

homage. He retaliated by cutting the channels of the Bosporus and the Dardanelles, and flooding Kadife’s country with the water of the Black Sea. Afterwards relenting, on account of the damage done to innocent nations, he drained off some of the water by cutting the Strait of Gibraltar.?

This version has the merit of accounting both for ruins still submerged on the coast and for all local traces

or supposed traces of the sea found inland. Thus, at various points near the Black Sea, now left high and dry, rings or pillars are pointed out as originally intended for the mooring of ships : 3 the theory is confirmed by any p. 366,n.6. Cf. the fish-pools of Solomon at Jerusalem (Fabri, Evagat. ii, 185). A professor at Padua moved a well bodily from one place to another (see Fabri, of. cit. iii, 391, who thinks he must have had a nymph

in his power). This is in the oriental manner of thinking, all these things being worked ultimately by jinns. To my mind Solomon is the prototype of all, Christian and Moslem : see above, p. 280, n. 2. tN. Davis, Carthage, pp. 40-1. 2 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, pp. 16 ff. ; ef. Rycaut, Greek and Armenian Churches, p. 39, and Tsakyroglous in Z. f. Volksk, ii (1890), p. 103.

3 Near Amasia (Haji Khalfa, tr. Armain, p. 685); near Inebolli (Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, p. 18); on the summit of Mt. Argaeus (Carnoy and Nicolaides, Lrad. de PAste

Non-Aettological Legends 285 chance discoveries of petrified shells... Of the former extent of Alexander’s inundation of the Aegean, the name of Denizli * and the discovery of mooring-rings at Aidin3 are adduced as evidence. ‘The existence of petrified shells on Mount Pagus 4 at Smyrna, and of a colossal

marble head formerly built into the castle, have probably been sufficient to bring its queen into the cycle. Beyond the aetiological, some other favourite hagiographical motifs are illustrated by the selected stories which follow. These motifs include : 1. Competition between saints ; 5 2. The symbolic act or acted parable,® often combined with (1) ; 3. Multiplication of food ; 7 4. Miraculous journeys and transportations.® The ‘ miraculous journey ’ is specially characteristic of ‘Turkish saints9 and doubtless of Moslem saints in general,’ perhaps owing to the existence of a prototype Mineure, p. 223); at Paravadi in Roumania (Evliya, Travels, 1, i, 6; Niebuhr, Retsebeschretbung, iti, 173; Haji Khalfa, Rumeli und Bosna, p. 32); at Menkub in the Crimea (Evliya, doc. ctt.). t Evliya, 1, 1, 7.

2 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, p. 18; the name is probably derived from a Turkish tribe Tinghizlu, which has become confused with deniz (=‘ sea’). 3 P. Lucas, Voyage fait en 1714, 1, 162. 4H. E. Strickland, Memoirs, 11, 14, 18. 5 Exemplified in no. ii below (Ahmed Rifai and Haji Bektash). 6 See no. vi below (Kaigusuz and the Stag-Dervish). 7 See no. vit (Emrem Yunuz). The motif is commonplace enough. Such miracles are related of Tur Hasan Veli (Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de? Aste Mineure, pp. 212 ff.) and of the nameless ‘ Baba ’ of Ida (F. W. H.). 8 A detailed classification of Moslem saints’ powers according to Al Munawi, an author of the tenth century (A. H.), will be found in Goldziher, Rev. H1st. Relig. 11 (1880), pp. 275 ff. 9 Christian examples, however, are known. Benjamin of Tudela (ed. Wright, p. 108) records the passage of a river on his shawl by a false Messiah.

10 For Haji Ephraim Teuvetlu, Muzur, and S. John ‘ the Russian ’

286 Saints and their Miracles in Mohammed’s miraculous journey to Jerusalem. In our own day the great-grandson of a Khalveti dervish sheikh has told us how the deerskin, which formed the prayer-rug of his ancestor and is still treasured in the family, was confidently believed to have belonged to

a stag which carried the sheikh regularly to attend Friday prayers at Mecca.t Though the prayer-rug is not the only vehicle of these journeys, it is easy to understand how it has been singled out. Pious persons, engaged in intense prayer, must often have imagined themselves transported to the Holy Places,3 and if the and their miraculous journeys see below, p. 293, n. 2. Solomon and his suite went on pilgrimage to Mecca on a large carpet (Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, 1,857). The kuth or chief of the ‘ welees ’ ‘ is believed to transport himself from Mekkeh to Cairo in an instant, and so, too, from any one place to another’ (Lane, Mod. Egyptians,i,292)._ Durmish Dede miraculously crossed the Bosporus on foot and established himself at Rumeli Hisar (F. W. H.). Sari Saltik miraculously crossed the

lake of Okhrida on a straw-mat: see below, p. §83 and n. 4 (with reference to Saintyves, Saints Successeurs des Dieux, p. 254). On the transportation of Moslem saints in general see Goldziher, Rev. Hist. Relig. ii, 275, and for levitation in general see below, pp. 665-8. Inanimate objects also were miraculously transported. ‘The picture by S. Luke of the Virgin at Pursos came miraculously from Brusa in the iconoclastic period (Buchon, Gréce Continentale, p. 349). CGenazzano possesses a miraculous picture of the Virgin which flew there from Skutari of Albania (Gregorovius, Rome et ses Environs, p. 93). The Virgin was seen by an old man in the act of transporting from Constantinople a church now in Russia (Collin de Plancy, Dict. des Reliques,

i, 267). In Catholicism the Holy House of Loretto is the most famous case ; see Collin de Plancy, op. ctt. 11, 286 f.; U. Chevalier, Lorette. t Halil Halid, Diary of a Turk, p. 5. 2 Essentially carpets are not prayer-mats but the things Easterners sit on. For similar stories Westerners would have thought of flying chairs. As Mohammed used a flying horse for his miraculous journey, it may be inferred that the idea that a rug was the vehicle of transportation was later and ultimately depended on the Moslem use of mats in praying. 3 Catholic examples also occur. In an ecstatic trance 8. Lidwine visited the Holy Land (Maury, Magte, p. 363), while Marie d’Agreda, a Spanish mystic, went to Mexico (1b7d., p. 364). Their visions seemed

Miraculous Origin of Agate 287 prayer-rug chanced to be a deerskin, it is but a small step for their descendants to imagine an actual deer, tamed by the saint, as the agent. G) Lhe Spitile of Hajt Bektash * Haji Bektash, travelling through the villageof Ermeni,

entered a peasant’s cottage and was hospitably entertained by its occupants with a meal of yoghurt and honey. In recognition of their courtesy he blessed them and spat out a mouthful of the food, which at once

hardened into stone. This, he gave them to understand, would furnish them with a perpetual livelihood.

Such is the origin of the veined agate found near Nevshehr, the carving of which into buttons, cups, and other small objects is a local industry to this day.3 to them absolute fact, and were accepted as such by their public, who may even have seen them rigid and apparently lifeless, their souls being

rapt away elsewhere. It is to be noted that religious abstraction 1s much more practised in the East. « On the special connexion between deer and holy men see below, pp. 460 f. There is an ascending scale both for stags and carpets: (a) a saint of the forest rides on a stag, a wild beast but capable of domestication, see Evliya, Travels, 11, 24; (6) a saint of the desert such as Ahmed Rifai (Degrand, Haute Albante, p. 229) rides on a wild and carnivorous animal, a lion, for instance ; (c) Haji Bektash outdoes him by riding on an inanimate object, a wall (Cholet, Arménie, p. 47). Carpetriding corresponds to (c), being in the same relation to flying horse as (c) is to (a) or (b). The flying horse appears already in early Aryan mythology, and is common in the Persian cycle of stories. 2 Degrand, Haute Albante, p. 230. 3 The stone referred to is that known as bagram (‘spittle’) and is mentioned by Texier (4ste Mineure, ii, 88) and the archbishop Cyril (ITeptypady, p. 8); of. also Strabo, xi, ii, 10. ‘This stone is worked especially at the convent of Haji Bektash, and is worn in various forms by the Bektashi dervishes. A twelve-pointed star of it is the teslim tash worn on the breast (Cuinet, Turquie d’ Aste, i, 340); a seven-pointed star hangs round the neck (Leake, N. Greece, iv, 284) or is used as a girdle-stone ([Blunt], People of Turkey, ii, 275; Brown, Dervtshes, p- 145); a crescent-shaped earring of the same material (sometimes also of metal) is the mark of the celibate Bektashi dervishes (Cuinet,

288 Saints and their Muracles A somewhat more elaborate story based on the same

theme relates that Haji Bektash asked and received hospitality in a Turkish house but afterwards discovered

that his host had poisoned him. He therefore obtained at the house of a Christian an emetic which caused him to spit blood : his spittle mixed with his blood hardened into the red-veined variety of the local agate. This version gains additional point from the fact that the persons who carve the stone in question at Haji Bektash are without exception Christians, and that the relations of the Bektashi are more friendly with Christians than with orthodox Mussulmans. It seems certain, moreover, that in Degrand’s version of the story ‘ the village of Ermeni ’ indicates a village of Armenians (Tk. Erment).

(ii) The tides of Negropont

‘ Not a great many years ago this water was like any

other part of the sea, and did not flow at all;? but a Hadji, being a prisoner in that tower,3 when the Infidels had the place, and confined in a dark cell, where

he could see nothing but the water below, through a hole in his dungeon, begged of God to send him some sign by which he might know when to pray. His request was granted, by the change which immediately took place in the flowing and reflowing of the stream ; Turquie d’ Aste, 1, 3433; of. Nicolay, Navigations, cap. xv). A reference to a Bektashi necklace of the same material is probably to be found in MacFarlane, Turkey and its Destiny, i, 496; cf. d’Ohsson’s cut of a Bektashi dervish (Tableau, i1, pl. 114). A similar story seems to be told of meerschaum (cf. Clarke, Travels, ii, 283). Covel (Diaries, p. 153) found a six- or eight-sided agate girdle-stone worn by dervishes to

divine the health of their absent friends. 1 F,W. H.

2 ‘The irregular and violent tides of the Euripus have always excited curiosity, especially among the peoples of the almost tideless Mediterranean. 3 1.¢. the old water-castle on the bridge, since destroyed.

Miraculous Riding 289 and since that time, the current has altered its course at each of the five seasons of prayer.’ !

Gi) Haji Bektash and Ahmed Rtfat During the sojourn of Haji Bektash at Mecca it was announced to him that Ahmed Rifai, already a saint of established reputation, was coming to visit him riding on a lion and using live snakes for reins and whip. At the approach of the saint thus mounted, Haji Bektash ascended to the top of a wall, and conjured it to move under him towards Ahmed Rifai. The latter, realizing the greatness of the feat, from this moment acknowledged the saintship of Haji Bektash.? t Hobhouse, Albania, i, 454. The story may owe something to that of Joseph, who is credited with the invention of watches, from the same pious motive, while imprisoned in a dark cell in Egypt (Evliya, Travels, I, 1, 190). With this compare the story of Christ keeping Ramazan on Mt. Quarantania, fasting all day and eating only after sundown. As the sunset could not be observed from Mt. Quarantania He made a bird of clay and gave it life (this incident probably comes from the Evang. de PEnfance, see Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, 1, 976, and Thévenot, V oyages, 1, 805). ‘This bird is the original of bats: bats, coming out at dusk, gave the true hour of sunset (Pierotti, Légendes Racontées, p. 13 ; Eng. ed., pp. 70 ff.). The Moslem tale adds that every night, when the fast ended, God sent down a table from Heaven with food for Christ

and His disciples. ‘This is a crude interpretation of Matt. iv, I1 (‘ Angels came and ministered unto him ’), aided perhaps by paintings of the Last Supper and the Mvorixov Aetavov. It is curious to find the

incident repeated about the house of Simon the Tanner at Joppa, where it is a perversion of the Christians’ story of the great sheet seen by Peter, containing the clean and unclean animals. 2 The story is told in Degrand (Haute Albanie, p. 229), and is one

of the most popular legends of their Master among the Bektashi, though its chronology does not bear scrutiny. It is also told of Haji Bektash and Haji Bairam (Cholet, Voyage, p. 47), and it was retailed to Prof. R. M. Dawkins by Cappadocian Greeks of $. Charalambos and Mohammed (for the equation of Haji Bektash and 8. Charalambos see

above, pp. 83-4). Further afield, among the Kizilbash Kurds of the Dersim, the same competition is said to have occurred between the ‘ Seyyids’? or holy men of two rival tribes (Molyneux Seel in Geog. Fourn. xliv, 1914, p. 58). Very interesting is the Jewish pilgrimage a

3295°1 U

290 Saints and their Miracles (iv) Abdal Musa and Geytkh Baba ‘It is related that on a certain time Abdal Musa put a live cole into cotton,! and sent it to Ghenglu Baba? who in return hereof put milk into a cup, and sent it to him. Now the messenger admiring at the action of the

Reverend Abdal Musa, he demanded of him, what strange mystery is there in sending of milk, and to what purpose is it as to your action? he answered, the milke which he sent is Deeres milk; the taming of a wilde beast is very difficult.’ ; (v) ‘felal-ed-Din and the Monk A Christian monk once asked Jelal-ed-din, the founder

of the Mevlevi dervishes, what was the advantage of

Islam over Christianity, since it was written in the Koran that all men alike should come to hell-fire. Jelal replied by putting the monk’s habit, wrapped in his own, into an oven ; when the packet was taken out, the monk’s habit was found to be charred and blackened, Jelal’s only purified by the fire.+

(vi) Katgusuz and the Stag-Dervish Kaigusuz, the dervish founder of the Bektashi tekke

on the Mokattam at Cairo, while he still lived in the month after Passover to the tomb of Rabbi Ephraim Angaua at Tlemcen in Algeria. He was a refugee from Spain of the fourteenth century, and the only thing known of him is that he entered Tlemcen riding a

lion, with a snake for bridle (Van Gennep, En Algérie, pp. 41 ff.). Roman Catholics also frequent the shrine (zbid., p. 45). This obvious borrowing of one saint’s legends by another occurs because the name and personality of a saint form the least stable element in tradition. t This miracle (the cotton being unburnt by the coal) is reported of

the Christian saint Amphilochius of Iconium by Symeon Metaphrastes (Migne, Patr. Gr. cxvi, 960). 2 Ghenglu Baba is a mistake for Geytkit Baba, a saint of Brusa renowned for his success in taming deer: see below, p. 460, n. 5. 3 Seaman’s Orchan, pp. 118 f. 4 Eflaki, Acts of the Adepts, in Redhouse’s Mesnevi, p. 87 (81). See

further below, p. 372. 5 See below, pp. 514-16.

Stag-Dervtsh 291 world before his conversion, was devoted to the chase.

One day he shot at and wounded a stag. He was

shocked and astonished to see the stricken animal assume the form of a venerable dervish ; and, overcome with remorse, he retired to a convent and took the habit ofadervish.: During his noviciate he was put to menial

tasks, which included the hewing of wood for the fraternity. Inthe course of his work, he arrived at sucha point of perfection in his union with the life of Nature that one

day he returned from his daily task saying that he had heard the tree he was cutting cry out ‘Why strikest thou me?’ On this he was at once recognized as a great saint.?

(vil) Emrem Yunuz 7 It is related of Emrem Yunuz that he served the same

convent as woodcutter without promotion for forty years. Then ina fit of despondency at his apparent lack of progress in the Way, he left the convent and began

to travel, joining himself to two strangers, also dervishes. he first evening they were in company they had no food. One of the strangers prayed, and, in answer

to his prayer, food was miraculously provided. On the second evening the second of the strangers did the same. The wondering Yunuz was convinced by this that the strangers were great saints, till they confessed that this favour of God was shown them for the sake of a holy man named Yunuz, who had served his convent as wood-

cutter for forty years. Whereupon, having learnt his lesson, Yunuz retired once more to monastic seclusion.3 t The incident is repeated in the lives of the Christian saints, Eustathius and Hubert of Liége, doubtless from oriental (see below, p. 464), perhaps Buddhist (see the fatakas, tr. Cowell,) sources. 2 The point lies in the contrast between the saint’s previous callousness and the extreme sensibility attained by the religious life. I heard

the story from Mr. W. H. Peckham, formerly H.B.M.’s consul at Uskub: the name of the hero was given me by a Bektashi dervish in Crete. On stags and saints see below, pp. 460 ff. 3 Told me in Candia by Afentaki Zade Hilali, sheikh of the Khalveti. For Emrem Yunuz see below, p. 504. U2

292 Saints and their Miracles (vi) Ala-ed-Din and the Imam Baghevi

In the reign of Ala-ed-din, sultan of Rum, there lived outside the walls of Konia a pious Kadri dervish called the Imam Baghevi. The neighbours, scandalized

to find that the Imam did not attend prayers in the mosque of the quarter, complained of him on this count to the sultan, alleging also that he was given to drinking.

The sultan sent a messenger to summon him to the court to answer these charges. It being a Friday, the Imam proposed to the messenger that they should first say their prayers. The messenger consented, and they mounted their horses. By a miracle of the Imam, however, they were carried in the twinkling of an eye not to any mosque in Konia but to Mecca itself. ‘The sultan’s messenger, who had not visited the Holy Place before, lingered, and was left behind at Mecca till the Imam

came for him on the following Friday. Ala-ed-din, hearing of these marvels, did not wait for the coming of

the saint, but rode out in person to do him homage ; but when he arrived, he found the object of his reverence already dead. ‘T’he horses which had made the miraculous journey were turned to stone and stand by the tomb of their saintly master, working miracles of healing for the faithful and believing to this day. (ix) Hskijt Koza

‘When Timur marched against Brussa the inhabitants, being alarmed, inquired of Emir Sultan what was 1 This is characteristic of the saint who has attained perfection ; cf. e.g. Ainsworth, Travels, 1, 187-8.

2 F. W. H.: see above, p. 82. A variant of the same tale is told of the cobbler Laleli at Constantinople (Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de

Constantinople, p. 144). Jonas, archbishop of Novgorod in the seventeenth century, was tempted by a devil, but made the devil as a horse carry him to Jerusalem and back in one night (D’Oppenheim in Tour du Monde, 1899, p. 618). On levitation see above, p. 285, n. 10.

Unknown Saint 293 now to become of the town. ‘The Saint said, ‘‘ The commander of the town having recommended it to Eskiji Koja and Khizr, they must be informed of it.” IIderim [Bayezid I] being defeated, Emir Sultan wrote a note which he sent by one of his Dervishes into the

camp of Timur, with an order to deliver it to Eskij1 Koja, that is to the chief of the tailors who mend old clothes. Having read the Saint’s note, he said, “‘ Emir Sultan shall be instantly obeyed ;” he stuck his needle in his turban, and before he could put up his things in his bag, all the tents of the camp were broke up by the power of his command, because this old tailor happened also to be a pole of poles, or great Saint.’ !

(x) Hat Ephraim Teuvetlu Haji Ephraim Teuvetlu is buried in a turbe at Hava-

tan, a village in the Taurus. In his lifetime he was a shepherd in the service of a local bey. One day, while his master was absent on pilgrimage, Ephraim’s wife,

having prepared a tasty meal, happened to exclaim,

‘How I wish the Master were here to enjoy this!’

Her husband persuaded her to give him a portion of the food in a covered dish, which he conveyed, still smoking hot, to his master at Mecca. ‘The same evening he came back to his home. When the master returned from the

pilgrimage, he brought with him, as evidence of the miracle which had taken place, the covered dish, and Ephraim’s reputation as a saint was thenceforward established. (x1) Ali Efendi and the Wolf A certain Ali Efendi was appointed kadz of Tokat : he was very modest and very poor, having nothing in t Evliya, Travels, 11, 25 f.

2 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de?’ Asie Mineure, pp. 218 ff. The same story forms part of the cycle of a Kurdish shepherd saint, Muzur (Molyneux Seel in Geog. ‘Fourn. xliv, 1914, pp. 60 f.), and, curiously of

294 Saints and their Miracles the world but a basket (zumbul) of books, from which he

was nicknamed ‘ Zumbullu’. The people of Tokat were disgusted at the appointment to their city of a man so apparently undistinguished. It happened, how-

ever, one day that a shepherd had to report to his master that a wolf had stolen a ewe from his flock: the master, believing the shepherd had himself stolen the ewe, threatened to stop the price of it from his wages, and referred the case to the kadi of 'Tokat for a decision. Ali Efendi, taking pity on the shepherd, wrote officially

to the wolf, citing him to appear before the court to answer for his misdemeanour in accordance with the sacred law of Islam. The letter was duly delivered by the shepherd, the wolf duly appeared before the kad1, acknowledged his guilt, and was sentenced to replace

the stolen ewe. ‘The result is not stated, but ‘ the

people of Tokat wondered at the miracle and understood that their kad was a holy man and favoured by God and His Prophet ’. (xii) Shetkh El-Bedaut Sheikh El-Bedawi ‘ being denied a Privilege by the Basha, which he had before enjoy’d, he by moving his Cap on one side caused his [the Basha’s] Castle to lean on one side ready to fall, which affrighting the Basha, the (modern) Christian saint, S. John ‘ the Russian’ of Urgub (Ober-

hummer and Zimmerer, Durch Syrien, p. 212, note). The motif is found in the Apocrypha (Bel and the Dragon, pp. 33 ff.). t Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, pp. 183 ff. A similar story was told to Cholet (Voyage, pp. 40 f.) in which Haji Bektash figures as the hero, ‘The saint, it is said, was wrongfully accused in his youth of stealing a lamb, and summoned as witnesses in his favour first the wolves who were the actual culprits and then the stones of the

valley where the theft took place. Another Zumbul Efendi is buried near Constantinople: a dervish tekke looks after his tomb and the adjoining grotto is famous as a pilgrimage for barren women, who crawl to the extreme end of the grotto (Osman Bey, Les Imans et les Derviches, p. 125).

Types of Legends 295 he granted him his Privilege, and he by putting his Cap to rights by little and little set the Castle upright again.’

It will be seen from these examples that the legends of Moslem saints range from quite simple rustic tales, embodying well-known folk-lore motifs or explaining local peculiarities, to stories of a learned and instructive

nature, devised to point a moral or to increase the prestige of a saint or his order. Similarly, the traditions

of a religious centre may be a literary collection of stories regarding local saints, like Eflaki’s Acts of the Adepts,? which centres round the personality of Jelal-

ed-din of Konia, founder of the Mevlevi order; or,

like the Story of Sart Saltztk,3 they may be a sophisticated

réchauffé of genuine folk-legends or, again, pure folk-

legend, handed down by word of mouth and never committed to writing. A good example of the latter is the legend of the Bektashi tekke of Demir Baba, near Razgrad in Bulgaria. ‘This is a clumsy patchwork, apparently untouched by literary tradition, in which the saint of the tekke, a (probably mythical) warrior dervish, originally conceived of as a contemporary of the Turkish conquest, 1s inextricably confused with the founder, an

early nineteenth-century pasha of Rustchuk,+ and is supposed to have lived under Sultan Mahmud II (1808 to 1839). ‘This story, rescued from oblivion by Kanitz, runs as follows :

(xii) Hasan Demir Baba Pehlivans Hasan Demir Baba Pehlivan lived four hundred years t 'Thévenot, Travels, in Harris’s Navig. Bibl. ii, 429 (vol. ii, 803, in

the Amsterdam 1727 edition), On Sheikh El Bedawi see further below, pp. 663-70.

2 Translated by Redhouse and published with his version of the Mesnevt.

3 Discussed below, pp. 429 ff. 4 Hasan Pehlivan Baba, on whom see further below, p. 592. 5 Kanitz, Bulgarte, p. 535.

296 Saints and their Miracles ago. He wasa holy dervish, who was able to make water gush from the most arid rocks, as he did at Kral Bunar,

his original dwelling-place, and in the gorge where he built his tekke and his tomb. He was the father of the seventy-two nations of the earth. One day a terrible giant having drunk all the water of the army of the Czar of Russia, the ally of Sultan Mahmud [1808 to 1839], Demir Baba, killed the fearful monster, and the Czar recognized this service by giving him 18,000 okes of salt yearly. As the Russian armies were also suffering from

hunger, the dervish brought, in a sheet knotted at the four corners, bread, hay, and barley, and lo! when men and horses had eaten, there remained over and above.

But when the dervishes sided against the sultan in favour of the Janissaries, the true believers, Demir Baba stopped sending victuals to the Russian Army. Ibrahim

Pasha, governor of the province, in his anger, would have chastised the rebel. ‘The latter escaped by scaling

a sheer rock. Converted by this miracle, the Pasha ordered that the repose of the hermit should not be disturbed. The tekke, however, suffered under the impious reign of Sultan Mahmud, and it was abandoned and neglected under Abdul Mejid. The springs dried up, and this drought lasted thirty years. But the pious Abdul Aziz confirmed the ancient rights of the sacred place, and for the last four years the springs have again flowed into the Danube. The rough classification of religious legend here attempted has some importance, if of a negative character, for the student of tradition in its relation to history. The story of Demir Baba, nearly unadulterated folktradition, is obviously worthless historically on account of the low intellectual calibre of its composers. The half-sophisticated legend of Sari Saltik has been shown ! to be quite as unreliable, as being ‘ edited ’ for the purposes of propaganda. The Acts of the Adepts, a purely t In B.S.A. xix, 203 ff.; cf. below, pp. 429 ff.

History from Legends 297 literary collection, was composed much less for historical purposes than for moral instruction: any historical value it may have is derived from its early date, nearly contemporary with that of the mystic philosophers it

celebrates. ‘The result of the examination is thus a

serious warning against the use of religious legend as an independent historical source.

XIX

OLD TESTAMENT SAINTS § 1. DANIEL

Tha dans prophet Daniel by Mohammegenerally asisthereverenced patron of occult sciences.' His grave was shown at Susa at least as early as the sixth century,? and is still a Moslem pilgrimage. Notices

of a second reputed tomb at Tarsus begin in the eighteenth century. Lucas, who visited the town in 1705, Says :

‘Les Habitans assurent que c’est chez eux ot est mort le Prophéte Daniel: j’entrai dans une Mosquée, sous laquelle on pretend qu’il a été enterré. Les Turcs y ont mis sur une grande tombe un cercueil de bois, qu’ils reverent ; et ils le font voir euxmémes, 4 ceux qui viennent, 4 Tarse, comme une rareté.

Ce cercueil est tofijours couvert d’un grand drap noir en broderie.’ 3

W. B. Barker, an old resident in Tarsus, gives the following notice of the supposed tomb of Daniel : ‘The Turks hold in great veneration a tomb which they believe contains the bones of this prophet, situated in an ancient Christian church, converted into a mosque, in the centre of the modern town of Tarsus. The sarcophagus is said to be about forty feet below the surface of the present soil, in consequence

of the accumulation of earth and stones; and over which a stream flows from the Cydnus river, of comparatively modern t For Daniel’s book of prophecies see Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, ii,

188, and Polites, [Japaddcets, ii, 665 ff. ; see also p. 471, n. 4 below. 2 Theodosius, De Situ Terrae Sanctae, ed. Geyer in Itin. Hteros., p. 149; ed. Tobler, p. 359. 3 Voyage dans la Gréce,i, 272 f. Haji Khalfais silent. The legend of Daniel in Cilicia at Shah Meran Kalesi (see below, p.750,n. 1) is omitted in Bianchi’s translation of Menasik-el-Haj (in Rec. de Voyages, i, 103).

Dantel’s Tomb at Tarsus 299 date. Over this stream, at the particular spot where the sarcophagus was (before the canal was cut and the waters went over

it) stands the ancient church above mentioned ; and to mark the exact spot of the tomb below, a wooden monument has been

erected in the Turkish style. [This monument is covered with an embroidered cloth, and stands in a special apartment built for it, from the iron-grated windows of which it may occasionally be seen when the Armenians take occasion to make their secret devotions ; but generally a curtain is dropped to hide it from vulgar view, and add by exclusion to the sanctity of the place]. The waters of this rivulet are turned off every year in

the summer in order to clear the bed of the canal... . It is

a curious coincidence that the supposed tomb of Daniel the Prophet at Susa is said to be, like the one above described, under a running stream.’ !

The mosque in question is, according to Langlois, called Makam Jami, or, in full, Makam Hazreti Daniel: 2

the same author distinguishes it from the Ulu Jami, which is said to occupy the site of the church of SS. Peter and Sophia3 and stands, like the mosque of Daniel,

in the middle of the town. Cuinet seems to identify the Ulu Jami and the mosque of Daniel.s It is evident that the association, late so far as we know, of the name of Daniel with the tomb of ‘Tarsus must be connected in some way with the Susan sanctuary.5 The latter, which is still an important Mohammedan pilgrimage, is situated on the eastern bank of the Shaur river.6 We are comparatively well informed as

t Lares and Penates, pp. 17 f. 2 Cilicte, p. 329. 3 Lbid., p. 317. The present building dates from a.p. 1385 (zb7d., . 329).

r : Porque d’ Aste, u, 47-8: ‘Dans [la mosquée] nommée “ OulouMekami Chérif-Djamissi”’ la tradition place le tombeau du propheéte Daniel ’. 5 ‘This connexion is simple, see below, p. 303. 6 A plan is given by Loftus in Trans. Roy. Soc. Lit. v (1856), to face p. 422, a view by Flandin and Coste, Voyage en Perse, pl. 100. For the tomb of Daniel at Susa see Fewish Encycl. iv, 430, 5.v. Dantel, Tomb of ;

for details of its legendary history Asher’s edition of Benjamin of

300 Old Testament Saints to its history. It is first mentioned by Theodosius about 530. According to the translation by Mustawfi (c. 1300) of Ibn Asim (Tf 735) the coffin of Daniel was found in the palace of the Persian governor when Susa was taken by the Arabs (640) : it was said to be that of a holy man from Iraq, who had been summoned thence by the Susans in a season of drought. The Arab general, acting on orders given by Ali, turned the river of Susa

temporarily from its bed and buried the body there ; ‘ ‘The waters of Sus now flow over the body of Daniel.’

Benjamin of Tudela (late twelfth century) gives an entirely different version. In his time the sepulchre of Daniel was in front of one of the synagogues, but the coffin was afterwards removed and suspended by chains

from the middle of the bridge over the river. ‘The reason for this is given as follows: the possession of the cofhn of Daniel was supposed to bring prosperity to the Jewish quarter of the town which originally possessed

it. ‘he poor quarter on the other side of the river, therefore, requested that it should be given to them temporarily, and eventually it was arranged that the coffin should be yearly transferred from one side of the

river to the other. Sanjar Shah of Persia (d. 1158), considering the arrangement derogatory to the Prophet’s

remains, had the bridge measured and suspended the coffin by chains from the exact middle, ‘ and the coffin of Daniel is suspended from the bridge unto this very day. The King commanded that in honour of Daniel nobody should be allowed to fish in the river, one mile Tudela, 1, 117 ff., and for its present state Ouseley, Travels, i, 420; Loftus, Travels in Chaldaea, pp. 416 ff. ; de Bode, Travels in Lauristan,

ll, 190; Rawlinson, in F.R.G.S. ix (1839), pp. 69, 83; Layard, in F.R.G.S. xvi (1846), p. 61. Cf. Carmoly’s [tinéraires, pp. 489 ff. t From Ouseley’s translation in Walpole’s Travels, p. 429. 2 Similarly, the body of Joseph brought prosperity to the bank of

the Nile on which it was. To prevent the desolation of the other bank, it was finally buried in the river (Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, il, 424).

Dantel’s Tomb at Susa 301 on each side of the coffin.’: Mustawfi, in the thirteenth century, describes the tomb of Daniel as standing west of the river: in his honour none of the fish in the river were ever molested by man. Medieval tradition generally asserted that Daniel’s grave was in the bed of the river and that the Mosque of Daniel marked the nearest point to his supposed grave. The discussion in detail of these stories related by Ibn

Asim in the eighth, and Benjamin of Tudela in the twelfth, century need not detain us. For our purpose two facts are important, viz. the supposed burial of Daniel in the bed of the river and the preservation of the fish.3 Both these suggest an original river cult, though both are explained as due to historical persons by nearly contemporary authors. The sole link with Tarsus is the fact that both ‘ tombs of Daniel’ are supposed to be in river-beds, and this is probably more than a coincidence. Down to the thirteenth century, when Tarsus was under the Christian kings of Armenia, the chief, if not the only, Moslem

pilgrimage in the city was the grave of the caliph Mamun who, dying in 833 at Podandus (Bozanti), was

carried to Tarsus and there buried ‘ on the left hand side of the Friday Mosque ’, which seems under Armenian rule to have been the church of SS. Peter and Sophia in the middle of the city.s This grave was still t Benjamin of Tudela, /tinerary, ed. Asher, 1, 117 ff. The account of the coffin suspended from the bridge is confirmed by the contemporary Rabbi Petachia (Tour du Monde, tr. Carmoly, in Nouv. Four. As. viii, 1831, p. 366). Asher’s note on Benjamin of Tudela’s Jtinerary, ii, 152, cites the tenth-century Ibn Haukal as mentioning the coffin of

Daniel. 2 Le Strange, £. Caliphate, p. 240.

3 Carmoly, Itinéraires, p. 459, says the fish are preserved a bowshot up and down from the bridge for Daniel’s sake and a particular fish is fed for the royal table. Carmoly is quoting Jichus Ha-Abot (a. p. 1564), ed. Uri de Biel ; Uri, however, places the tomb at Bagdad. 4 See Willebrand of Oldenburg, in Allatius, Luppixra, i, 137; cf. below, pp. 698, 702.

302 Old Testament Satnts known in 1225 3! in 1705 2 the tomb of Mamun is not mentioned and that of Daniel replaces it as the Moslem cult of the town. The circumstances of Mamun’s death,3 as related by a tenth-century Arab historian, were curious. At Podandus was a stream of very cold water, so clear that the legend of a coin thrown into it could be clearly read. Mamun saw in the stream a fish which he desired should be caught and cooked for him. The fish was caught, but managed to slip back into the water, splashing the caliph as it did so: the caliph shivered, and, when the

fish was again caught, was unable to eat it: he died

shortly after. Whether the story is true or not, it seems clear that the stream at Podandus was sacred.

The coin thrown in was probably an offering: 5 to catch the fish was a sin and Mamun suffered accordingly.

It is surely more than a coincidence that we find

much later the incident of the fish transferred to Tarsus itself, where the caliph was buried,‘and the place recognized as under the protection of the jimns.7 Whether from confusion of the Tarsus river with that of Bozanti

(to some extent explicable by the fact that the road from Tarsus through the Taurus passed Bozanti) we t ‘The date of Yakut’s Lexicon, quoted by Le Strange, E. Caliphate, . 13%.

, 2 "The date of Lucas’s visit to Tarsus. 3 See below, p. 696 f. 4 Not, however, as Ramsay, because the water (Geog. Fourn. xxii, 1903, p. 392) or the fish was poisonous, since it is not recorded that he drank the one or ate the other. On sacred fish see above, pp. 244-9. 5 For this world-wide practice see Frazer’s note on Paus. i, 34 (4);

for Asia Minor see V. de Bunsen, Soul of a Turk, p. 173. Niebuhr (Voyage en Arabie, 11, 281) records that the Yezidis are reported to throw gold and silver into a cistern at Sheikh Adi in honour of their saint and compares the Jebel Sinjar practice. 6 For Mamun at Tarsus see Haji Khalfa, tr. Norberg, ii, 360. 7 Otter, Voyage, i, 67, note: ‘l’on montre a Tarsous un endroit que lon dit étre a la garde des Génies, & 4 cette occasion 1’on fait ce conte ; qu’un jour le Khalif Meémoun se promenant vers ce lieu, etc.’ [follows the incident of the fish].

Dantel and the Caliph Mamun 303 cannot tell, but evidently the fish of the river of ‘Tarsus, like that of Susa, were considered sacred. ‘The location of Daniel’s tomb at Tarsus probably rested on its two

similarities to that at Susa: (1) that it was in a river and (2) that the fish in this river were preserved. To these must be added a third factor, viz. the likeness of the last syllable of ‘ Tarsus’ (Terstis) to the name of Susa (Sis), where lies the traditional grave of Daniel. Is it too much to assume that the great Moslem pilgrimage of the thirteenth century and the great Moslem pilgrimage of the seventeenth were identical, 1.¢. that the ‘ tomb of Daniel ’ is in reality the tomb of Mamun?

§ 2. JosHua The veneration of Joshua by Mohammedans is due particularly to an obscure reference to him in the fifth

book of the Koran (‘ The Table’). Commentators, drawing on Jewish sources,’ tell in this context the story

of the Twelve Spies, of whom only two (Joshua and

Caleb) were faithful in keeping secret the gigantic stature of the inhabitants of Jericho, to the end that the Israelites might not be unduly depressed. The incident of the staying of the sun till Joshua had made an end of slaying 3 is also recorded, with the addition that the day of the victory was a Friday, on which account Joshua was unwilling to prolong the slaughter, since by so doing he would break the Sabbath. His position in the Mohammedan world being thus assured, many tombs of Joshua are pointed out in the 1 This suggestion comes to me from a learned Mohammedan of Tarsus through Mrs. Christie.

2 Cf. Num. xiv, 6. 3 Cf. Fosh. x, 12.

4 Sale’s Koran, p. 76, note; d’Herbelot, Bibl. Orientale, s.vv. Fo-

schova, Falasthin. Clermont-Ganneau heard the legend told near Jericho of some ruins called the ‘ City of Brass’ because it had seven brass walls. The hero is the imam Abu Taleb, whose grave is near the ruins. The tale includes the staying of the sun (Clermont-Ganneau, Pal. Inconnue, p. 61).

304 Old Testament Saints lands of Islam. But the only ‘tomb of Joshua’ recorded in the Turkish area is the well-known sanctuary on the summit of the Giant’s Mountain (Febar Dagh,? now more commonly Yusha Dagh), on the Asiatic shore of the Bosporus.3 ‘This has generally been identified, but on insufficient evidence, with the Greek ‘ Bed of Herakles ’ and more vaguely with the tomb of the giant Amykos, slain hereabouts by Pollux in the course of the Argonautic expedition. On general grounds it is probable that we have here to do with a site associated from

very ancient times with some sort of cult, since the mountain in question is conspicuous and commands a wide view, especially of the entrance to the much-feared Black Sea. It is therefore marked out as a place of rainmaking and weather-survey,¢ and the constant inhabitat Five reputed tombs are shown in Palestine, according to LeStrange (Palestine, pp. 337, 404, 425, 496, §31). ‘There areothersin North Africa (R. Basset, Nédromah, pp. 74 ff.) and at Constantinople ; to the last we

shall return later. 2 Walsh, Constantinople, 1, 293. “febar is the Arabic for the Persian dev, the giant or monster of the Turkish folk-tales. 3 ‘The tomb of Joshua is mentioned by the following authors besides those cited below: Comidas, Descr. dt Costant., p. 79; E. D. Clarke, Travels, 11, 441; Andréossi, Constantinople, pp. 326 ff.; Hammer, Constantinopolts, 1, 288; Fontanier, Voyages en Ortent, p. 25 ; Grenville Temple, Travels, ii, 77; Brayer, Neuf Années a Constantinople, pp. 133.3 Constantintade, p. 183; Byzantios, Kwvotravtwovronts, ii, 203; Skene, Anadol, p. 16; Sestini, Lettres, 111, 464; Goldziher in

Z.D.PV. 1, 13-17. None of these, however, adds materially to our knowledge. 4 Walsh(Fourney, p. 23) states clearly that the mountain was so used

in his day, a dervish on the summit signalling the approach of rain clouds in time of drought and doubtless invoking them by his prayers. ‘A dervish’, he says, ‘ stands on the top .. . and when he sees a cloud, he announces its approach. I one day climbed to the same place, and saw the dervish on the watch, and, “‘ I looked towards the sea, and beheld a little cloud rising out of the sea, like a man’s hand, and gat me

down that the rain stopped me not”. In effect, it immediately fol-

lowed.’ Such another weather-saint is Yaghmur Baba (‘ RainFather ’), for whom see Ainsworth, Travels, i, 143, and Barth, Rezse, p. 82.

Foshua’s Tomb on the Bosporus 305 tion of the district and frequentation of the strait by shipping would naturally give it a double vogue. The mosque and tomb of Joshua stand on the summit

of the mountain in a grove of trees. The mosque 1s modern and in no way remarkable. Adjoining it on the south side is a walled enclosure containing the alleged grave, which is about sixteen metres long, enclosed in

a stone coping, and planted with trees and shrubs. Several trees and a railing at the north end are hung with threads and rags against fever, and the leaves of a bay tree near the other end are used for the fumigation of fever patients.t Around it are the houses of the (Nakshbandi) dervishes inchargeof the sanctuary. They say that a turbe was once built over the grave, but the saint ‘ did not accept it’ and it fell down. Beneath the mountain in the valley of Beikoz are the tomb and grave of Joshua’s (anonymous) standard-bearer, who himself revealed the site to a dervish. The first mention of a religious establishment on the mountain is in the middle of the seventeenth century.3 Galland, who made the ascent in 1672, found then ‘un Turc seul avec sa femme, lequel nous dit qu'il estoit la

pour garder ce lieu qui est un Tekié ou monastére nommé ‘“* Joucha peyamber”: c’est a dire Josué.’ 4 Wonderful accounts of the prodigious size of the buried

prophet were current then as in our own day.5 The t For this fumigation (with olive leaves) cf. Halliday, in Folk-Lore, xxiv, 357. Itis probably no more than a coincidence that a laurel with magic properties grew from the grave of Amykos (Schol. in Apoll.,

Argonautica, i, 59). 2 See above, p. 228.

3 Evliya, Travels, 1, ii, 73. ‘ People ascend the mountain of Josue to visit his tomb . . . there is a convent and some fakirs attached to it.’

Cf. Haji Khalfa, Djthan numa, tr. Norberg, ii, 490: ‘ Sepulcrum Juschae gigantis . . . cui plurimum religionis tribuitur ’. 4 Fournal, ed. Schefer, 11, 128.

s Ibid., p. 133: ‘ Joucha doit avoir esté un furieux géant; car, les barreaux que l’on a faits pour l’environner ne viennent que jusques a

3295°1 X

son ombilic, le reste de son corps venant se terminer vis-a-vis un arbre

306 Old Testament Saints idea of gigantic dead and gigantic graves comes from the

folk-lore side, and is based primarily perhaps on the conception of a mountain as a grave-mound,? reinforced in some cases by the discovery of megalithic remains or fossil bones. The giant of Turkish, as of other, folk-lore is generally conceived of as ‘ black’ or hostile.

A mosque was built in connexion with the ‘ tomb of Joshua’ in 1755 by the grand vizir Mohammed Said,3

who was also responsible for the restoration of the ‘Mosque of the Leaded Store’ (Kurshunlu Famt) at Galata, in which alleged tombs of Arab warrior saints were discovered by the contemporary Nakshbandisheikh qu’une vieille femme nous monstra.’ Cf. Temple, Travels, ii, 77. Walsh (Constantinople, 1, 294) was told that the grave contained only the foot, Prokesch only the heart, of the prophet. t Cf. the legend of Digenes Akritas’ tomb in Polites, TapaSdcets,

no. 131; Nebi Osha in Burckhardt, Syria, p. 353, and Kelly, Syria, p- 446; Noah in Browne, Nouveau Voyage, ii, 244, and in Kelly, Syria,

p. 95; Arba at Hebron, in Carmoly, [tinératres, p. 242; Seth in Stanley, Stnat, p. 414. According to the Christian way of thinking, gigantic

stature is characteristic, not of saints, but of ‘men of old time’, especially warriors, who are rarely canonized: Roland, for instance,

remains secular. ‘The whales’ bones at Rhodes are attributed by Greeks to Digenes (see Chaviaras in Aaoypadia, i, 278), who is again the

paladin type; a gigantic sword at Brusa was attributed by Franks to Roland (Belon, Observations de Plusteurs Singularitez, Wll, xlii; Thévenot, Voyages, 1, 282) and was afterwards associated with a Turkish

dervish warrior-saint (cf. Evliya, Travels, ii, 24, and p. 230, above). Probably the grave of ‘Antenor’, still to be seen in a street of Padua, was so named from a discovery of gigantic (t.¢. fossil) bones (see Hasluck,

Letters, p. 42). Turks, in contrast to Christians, readily believe in gigantic saints: Sidi Battal, warrior and saint (below, pp. 705~10 ff.), was gigantic ; many of the dervishes in religious folk-lore were, or by their arts could become, gigantic. This is part of the general vagueness of their division between hagiology and folk-lore, a division vaguer even

than it isin the West. If the Turks find fossil bones, they attribute them either to a saint or to a dragon. In the former case they bury them, it being considered indecent and impious to keep the dead above ground (see above, p. 45, n. 5). + See above, p. 99; of. Grosvenor, Constantinople, i, 214. 3 Fardin des Mosquées, tr. Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. xviii, 108.

Foshua’s Tomb on the Bosporus 307 Muradzade Mohammed. As the present foundation at the ‘ tomb of Joshua’ belongs to this same order, it is not improbable that the same combination of dervish and minister was responsible for the work undertaken here.

The author of the Jardin des Mosquées differentiates the Joshua of the Bosporus clearly from the Joshua of scripture (‘ the Joshua buried in this place is not the prophet, but another holy man’). On the other hand,

a writing which existed till recently at least in the mosque insists on the identity of the two saints, and appears to transfer the scene of Joshua’s victory from Canaan to the Bosporus. A translation of this writing, given by Walsh,? runs as follows : ‘Here is the place of his Excellency Joshua, the son of Nun

(Usha-ben-Noon), on whom be peace, who was not of the priests but of the prophets. Moses, on whom be peace, sent him against the Greeks (Roum). Now while his Excellency Joshua, on a certain day, fought with this nation, in the first battle the sun went down on account of the Greeks, but while he was fighting the sun rose again after it had gone down, and the Greeks could not be saved. They saw this miracle of his Excellency Joshua the son of Nun, on whom be peace, and at the time, had he taught them the Faith, they would have received it.3 Should any one, either male or female, deny it, there is in this holy temple a history: let them look to that, and believe that he became a prophet. The end.’

In Cuinet’s version of the text are appended the author’s signature and date— Djeziré Moustafa Chakir Hafez de Chypre des successeurs de l’émir Vasif, en l’an 1231 [1815-16]’. The name Djeziré suggests that the author was of Algerian origin, which perhaps accounts for his insistence on the identity of the Bosporus Joshua t See below, p. 728.

2 Constantinople, 1, 294. A French version is given by Cuinet, Turquie d’ Aste, iv, 618, apparently from Timoni, Promenades, p. 73. 3 Cuinet has ‘ lorsqu’il leur proposa la vraie foi, ils ’acceptérent ’. X2

308 Old Testament Saints and the son of Nun. Of the Algerian tomb of Joshua it is related that a native who once expressed doubt as to its authenticity was punished: by the saint himself, who appeared to him in a dream, ordered him to put out his blasphemous tongue, and burnt it, the culprit dying three days after.? The original relation between Joshua and the giant

was evidently that of victor and vanquished. ‘The grave itself was probably at first considered the grave of

a wicked giant3 slain by Joshua, afterwards that of

Joshua himself. A hint of the transition is preserved in the legend that after Joshua ‘ had conquered the Promised Land [or the Land of Rum ?], God granted him as his earthly reward the privilege of living, dying, and being buried here.’ Somewhat similarly, in the legend of Sari Saltik, the cave of the dragon slain by the hero becomes the dwelling-place or the burial-place of the hero himself.s We may suspect, but cannot prove, that the grave of Amykos became the ‘ bed of Herakles ’ in some such way. * For the punishment by God of offence given to saints see Goldziher in Rev. Hist. Relig. ii (1880), p. 278.

* For the Algerian tomb of Joshua and its legends see R. Basset, Nédromah, pp. 74 ff.; like that on the Bosporus, it is represented as too small for the saint’s body. 3 In Turkish folk-lore several tombs of wicked giants are recorded. In his Travels, ii, 115, Evliya thus describes the tomb of the wicked

giant Balaam on the Egerli Dagh near Erzerum: ‘I saw on the top a large tomb, on which I first said a fatihah, and, having measured it by my steps, I found it eighty paces in length, with two columns, which marked the situation of the head and the feet... . Ja’afer Effendi of Erzerum . . . warned me not to visit this place any more, because it was the grave of Balaam, the son of Baur, who had died an Infidel by the curse of Moses.’ For the grave of a wicked giant on the Bithynian Olympus cf. Hammer, Brussa, p. 86; cf. Pardoe, City of the Sultans, ii,

83; Evliya, i, 17, says the giant ‘Sa’dan’ took refuge there from

Hamza.

4 Grosvenor, Constantinople, i, 213. 5 Below, p. 435.

XX

KORANIC SAINTS

§1. THe Seven SLEerers HAVE discussed elsewhere! the development of ‘the

I Forty ’ in Near East folk-lore and religion. ‘ Forty ’ is in the first place a mystical number which plays an

important part in magic and ritual. This number is connected with certain groups of persons, including both saints and secular figures, by Christian and Moham-

medan alike. The Christians have a predominating ‘Forty’ group in the Forty Martyrs of Sebaste. The ‘ Seven’ group is on a similar footing. Here again we have a mystical number applied to certain groups of persons, with the important difference that the prototype is a group recognized officially in the religion of both Christian and Mohammedan, the Seven Sleepers of Ephesus, or ‘ Companions of the Cave ’. In the case of the Forty we have seen that caves and crypts, if sufficiently large or elaborate, or containing a quantity of human remains, tend to be associated with Forty Saints. In the case of the Seven, who are in the original legend closely associated with a cave, the suggestions of the same combination point inevitably to t In B.S.A. xix, 221-8; cf. below, pp. 391-402. 2 According to the Synaxaria the less important Christian groups of seven saints are: (1) the Seven (female) Martyrs of Angora (18 May), (2) the Seven (female) Martyrs of Amisus (Samsun), who are probably derived from the above (18 March), (3) the Seven Martyrs of Chaldaea, of whom the Synaxaria give no details, (4) the Seven Martyrs of Corcyra, who were thieves converted in the prison by SS. Jason and Sosipater (28 April), (5) the Nine Maccabees (father, mother, and seven children), who are sometimes regarded as a Seven-group (1 August). A church of the Seven Martyrs is cited at Bor in Cappadocia (Rott, Kleinas. Denkm., p. 371; Grégoire, in B.C.H. 1909, p. 142).

310 Koranic Saints the identification of suitable caves and crypts with that of the Seven. We shall consequently find that, especially on the Mohammedan side, identifications of the cave of the Seven Sleepers are numerous.

According to the Greek Menologia,? the ‘ Seven Sleepers ’, endangered by the persecution of Decius, escaped to a cave on a mountain and prayed to be delivered from the chain of the body and to be saved from the Emperor. They then gave up the ghost and remained dead, the cave being sealed up by Decius, for three hundred and sixty-two years. At the end of this time, in the reign of Theodosius, the cave was discovered and its occupants awoke from their long sleep at the moment when the Resurrection was being discussed. The cave was eventually their final grave.3 In Greek times a similar legend was related of the

half historical Epimenides.s In Christian legend the sleep of S. Johns in his tomb at Ephesus was firmly

believed in during the Middle Ages.6 ‘The Seven Sleepers legend is of course early and widely spread. It occurs first in a Syrian version before a.p. §22 7 and t Cf. the Jordan cave with cells for seven virgins (Antoninus martyr, De Locis Sanctis, ed. Tobler, p. 15, xii) and the makam of the seven daughters of Jacob at Safed (Kitchener, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1877, p. 124). 2 22 October.

3 For the cave at Ephesus see Lambakis, ‘Ewra ’Aorépes, p. 102 ; Tavernier, Voyages, p. 35; Spon, Voyage, 1, 248; Le Bruyn, Voyage, i, 99; Wood, Ephesus, p. 12; v. Prokesch-Osten, Denkwiirdigketten, i, 102; Willibald, ed. Wright, pp. 721-7. 4 See O. Kernyin Pauly-Wissowa, Real-encyclopddie, s.v.; Diogenes Laertius, 1, 10.

5 Based of course on Christ’s words (Fobn, xxi, 22; cf. Matth. xvi,

28; Mark, ix, 1; Luke, ix, 27). 6 Daniel hegoumenos (1106), in Khitrovo, Jtin. Russes, p. 73; Jordanus, Descr. des Merveilles, p. 64 (‘ sicut audivi a quodam devoto religioso, qui ibidem fuit et auribus suis audivit. De hora in horam auditur ibidem sonus fortissimus, tanquam hominis stertentis ’). 7 J. Koch, Die Stebenschlaferlegende, p. 81; Lucius, Anfange des Heiligenk., p. 82.

Seven Sleepers among Christians 311 was current in Europe? as early as the sixth century.? Its localization at Ephesus is probably due to the currency there of the similar legend of S. John.3 Among eastern Christians the Ephesian cave seems the only claimant of any considerable repute. A lessknown cave or crypt near Paphos in Cyprus + has never made its claim good. It is mentioned by many pilgrims from the latter part of the fifteenth century onwards. Bysome of these it is associated with the Seven Sleepers,

by others with the Seven Maccabees ; § others, again, prefer to leave the question open, and call the saints « For the Seven Sleepers at Marmoutier near Tours see Dussaulx, Voy. a Barrége,i; in Germany ‘near the Ocean’, see Paul Diaconus, De Gestis Longob. 1, iv. Pictures of the Ephesian Seven Sleepers were miraculously found at Plouaret in Brittany (Joanne’s Guide, s.v. Plouaret; cf. Sébillot, Folk-Lore de France, iv, 25). Other cases are at Yffiniac in Brittany (Sébillot, iv, 120: cf. 1, 399), at Marseilles (Baring Gould, Curious Myths, 1st Ser., p. 103). ‘They appeared to Edward the Confessor (Hutton, English Saints, p. 159; Baring Gould, op. cit., p. 101). For the Seven Maccabees in Europe see Lucius, Anfange des Hetligenk., p. 14.2, and Tuker and Malleson, Christian and Ecclesiastical

Rome, i, 316. For the Seven Sleepers see also Chardry, Set Dormanz (thirteenth century). 2 Le Strange, Palestine, p. 285; of. Tobler, Palaest. Descr., p. 147. Baring Gould (0. czt., p. 100) attributes its introduction into Europe to Gregory of Tours, who says (De Glor. Martyr. 1, xcv) that he got it from a Syrian. 3 Already in Theodosius (c. 530), ed. Geyer, [tin. Hieros., p. 148. Cf. Baring Gould, of. cit., p. 109. 4 Described recently by Enlart, Art Gothique en Chypre, ii, 479-80. 5 Le Huen (1480) in Cobham’s Excerpta Cypria, p. §1; Van Ghistele (1483), I’ Voyage, p. 248; Fra Noe (c. 1500), in Cobham, p. 53; Affagart (1534), tb1d., p.67; Trevisan (1512), in Schefer and Cordier, Rec. de Voyages, v, 2173; J. Le Saige (p. 149), quoted by Enlart, loc. cit. ;

de Villamont, Voyages (1598), ii, 258; Fynes Moryson, Itinerary, i, 459; de Bréves, Voyages (1628), p. 27; Pococke, Descr. of the East, II, i, 226.

6 B. de Salignac, (tim. iv, §: ‘in qua [civitate] septem fratres Macchabaei, una cum matre, inclyto martyrio coronati sunt’ (quoted by

Schefer, p. 144.

Hackett, Church of Cyprus, p. 464, n. 3): cf. Possot, Voyage (1532), ed.

312 Korantc Saints vaguely the ‘Seven Martyrs ’.t Similarly, a deserted monastery of the Latmos group called Yediler (‘ The Seven ’) ? must probably be regarded as a commemora-

tive dedication in honour of the Ephesian Seven. Still more vague is the cult, founded doubtless on the local

identification of bones found in a cave, or rock-cut chapel, which Levides cites from the Cappadocian village of Selimeh near Soghanlar Dere: this cult is frequented by both religions.3 In the Greek church the Seven Sleepers are not very important. I have never met with a church dedicated to them or with an etkon representing them in a church. From the fact that small (house) ezkons of the Seven Sleepers are fairly common it seems probable that they have a wider vogue in popular religion. I was told in this connexion at Corfu that the Orthodox regarded an etkon of the Seven Sleepers hung up in the house as an effectual cure for sleeplessness.+ The popularity of the Seven Sleepers among Moslems is primarily due to the long narrative of their adventures

in the eighteenth chapter (‘ The Cave ’) of the Koran. The ‘ Companions of the Cave’ play a great part in popular religious folk-lore, the root idea, on which their importance in this folk-lore depends, seeming to be their immutability, due to the special favour of God. * Kyprianos (1788), ‘Ioropia ris Kuapov, p. 536; cf. Lusignan, quoted by Hackett, Church of Cyprus, p. 456, n. 1. 2 Wiegand, Mzlet, III, i, 25 ff., 95 ff. But the tradition, like the name,

connecting the cave with the Seven may be late and Turkish. The paintings in the cave do not bear out the connexion.

3 Levides, Movat ris Kammasoxias, p. 118: Aeipava ovcowpa, Kadovpeva, *EpevAdp, Wrot Gowot, arwa Kal of Totpxot céBovrat: Aéyerat Sé€ Gre etot Aceiibava Eexra ayiwv: Keivrar 5€ évdov AedaTopnpevov omndAaiov. Another vague Seven is at Eskishehr. 4 This is warranted by the HdyoAdytov, which contains a prayer

called the ‘Prayer of the Seven Sleepers’, as follows: Edyy ézi aobevn Kat yi) dmvotvTa 7) ws A€yerar TOY ayiwy éenTa TaALddv.

This prayer 1s not very old as it mentions S. Athanasius of Athos (c. 950).

Seven Sleepers among Mohammedans 313 Their names are therefore written on buildings as a protection against fire, and on swords to prevent their breaking.t The Seven seem to be looked on as special patrons of shipping, especially in the Black Sea,? the most dangerous known to the Turks. The names of the Seven and of their dog Katmir, often written ornamentally in the form of a ship,3 are powerful charms to avert evil.4 The dog is one of the animals admitted to Paradise,5 and is regarded as a type of guardian: °® a special kind of dog, named after him Katmir, 1s exempted from the ban against the keeping of dogs, as unclean animals, in houses.7 Katmir is regarded as presiding specially over letters, which go far or which pass the sea, as a protection to preserve them from miscarriage.®

The identification of the cave, the whereabouts of t Falkener, Ephesus, p. 158. In Egypt their names are commonly written on drinking-cups and food trays (Lane, Mod. Egyptians, i, 314). 2 Von Hammer, Constantinopolts, ii, 60; v. Prokesch-Osten, Denkwiirdigkeiten, i, 395; C. White, Constantinople, i, 187. Cf. von Hammer,

in Mines de POrient, iv, 163.:~‘ Ihre Namen finden sich haufig auf tiirkischen Schiffen, auf Trinkgefassen, und auf einigen sehr wohl gestochenen Talismanen ’ (1.¢. engraved stones).

3 The Persians, who are allowed by their religion to represent the human form, represent them according to the Byzantine art type (¢. Migeon, Art Musulman, u, 36). 4 Falkener, op. cit., p. 159. A pear-shaped sequin called armudt, inscribed with the names of the Seven, is worn as an amulet (Comidas, Costantinopolt, p. 49; Falkener, p. 158). s The other animals are Jonah’s whale, Solomon’s ant, Ishmael’s ram, Abraham’s calf, Queen of Sheba’s ass, Salech’s camel, Moses’ ox, Belkis’ cuckoo, and Mohammed’s ass (Baring Gould, Curious Myths, Ist series, p. 103). 6 © Their dog stretched forth his fore-legs in the mouth of the cave’ (Koran, Sale’s ed., p. 218). 7 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de Constantinople, p. 7. 8 La Roque, Voyage de? Arabie Heureuse, p. 74, cited by Sale in his

notes to the Koran. Cf. Chardin, Voyages, 11, 301. Khatm etmek (Arabic khatem)=1o seal. His tail is said to be preserved at Adrianople (Collin de Plancy, Dict. des Reliques, s.v. Animaux, 1, 32).

314 Koranic Saints which was not specified in the Koran, became early a subject of speculation among Mohammedans and many caves became more or less associated with the Seven in widely distant parts of the Moslem world. Outside the Turkish area we find such caves (1) near Toledo in Spain,: (2) at M’Gaouse in Algeria,? and (3)

near Amman in Palestine beyond Jordan. The requisites for such identifications, as is seen from the Arab stories given at length by Le Strange, were a sufficiently impressive or curious cave and a quantity of human remains, preferably mummified corpses : 4 the

number is left vague in the Koranic account. In Asia Minor many reputed caves of the Seven Sleepers are mentioned, most of them too vaguely for identification. Two of them besides Ephesus 5 can be fixed. These, to which we shall return, are (4) a cave near ‘Tarsus, and (5)acave near Albistan. The caves at present unidentifiable, but in some cases described in great detail, are (6) at Al Albruk, variously identified with Divriji, east of Sivas, and Arabkir farther south ; © (7) between Amorium and Nicaea, ten or eleven days from Tarsus,7 and possibly the same as (8) in a red mountain as one approaches Constantinople. Here there was a monastery

which feasted on the day of the saints: this cave was visited by an emissary of the caliph Abu Bekr in 632, who t Yakut (thirteenth cent.) in Le Strange, Palestine, p. 277. 2 Shaw, Travels to Barbary, p. 56; Maury, in Rev. Arch. vi (1849), p. 6. Cf. also Prignet, 4 travers P Algérie, p. 72. 3 Mukaddasi (tenth cent.), cited by Le Strange, op. cit., pp. 277 ff. Cf. @Arvieux, Mémoires, 11, 458, for the Salahie cave.

4 For Greek and Moslem interpretations of a corpse’s failure to decompose see above, p. 253. S Le Strange, E. Caliphate, p. 155. 6 Ali of Herat (thirteenth cent.) in Le Strange, of. cit., p. 119, where Le Strange identifies Al Abruk with Tephrike (Divriji). He is said (by V. Yorke, in Geog. Fourn. viii (1896), p. 453) to have changed his opinion

since in favour of Arabkir (see Le Strange, in F. R. Astat. Soc., 1895, >, OQ).

ena Abbas, ap. Yakut, quoted by Le Strange, Palestine, p. 276.

Caves of the Seven Sleepers 315 saw thirteen dead men lying' in it. Another such cave is (Q) at a place in the mountains called Al Hawiyah, between Ladik and Arab territory (Tarsus ?), visited by an Arab ambassador in 720. The description is similar to that of (7), but more detailed : in particular, a pool of water is mentioned. The number of the bodies is given as thirteen.?_ Finally, (10), ‘in the country of the Greeks ’, was visited by an Arab astrologer sent expressly for the purpose about 845.3 The description generally corresponds to that of (8). The number of bodies is ‘ more than eight.’ The cave of the Seven Sleepers at Tarsus, first mentioned by Mukaddasi(985),¢ is still an important Moslem t Yakut (thirteenth cent.), drawing on an eyewitness’s account, in Le Strange, Palestine, p. 280.

* Mukaddasi in Le Strange, Palestine, pp. 282 ff. The cave may possibly be identified with one mentioned by Haji Khalfa (tr. Armain, p. 664) near Ermenek, ‘ ot I’on voit une place trés large au milieu de laquelle il y a un bassin d’ou sort une source ’, evidently the ‘ michtige Hohle, aus der eine starke Wasserader hervorbricht ’ of Heberdey and Wilhelm’s Retsen in Kilikien (Denk. Wien. Akad., P.-H. Cl., xliv, Abb. vi, p. 129). Well-preserved bodies are said to have been found here in recent times (Cuinet, Turquie d’ Aste, 11, 78): ‘On nous a raconté qu’un fonctionnaire du gouvernement, a force d’argent et en fournissant tous

les moyens en son pouvoir, parvint, il y a deux ans, a décider deux Bohémiens a atteindre une de ces grottes et 4 y pénétrer. Ils y découvrirent une trés grande chambre taillée dans le roc, dont l’entrée était gardée par des soldats debout et revétus de leurs armures. Au fond de la caverne, il y avait un groupe de femmes, de vieillards et d’enfants. Tous ces cadavres, qui avaient conservé les apparences de la vie, tombérent en poussiére dés que l’air eut pénétré dans la grotte. On y recueillit néanmoins plusieurs objets trés précieux, tels que des armures, des casques, des armes, des robes de soie, des joyaux, bagues, piéces de monnaie, etc.’

3 ‘wo accounts of this mission have come down to us from Al Biruni (A.D. 1000) and Yakut (thirteenth cent.), both professing to draw on the same eyewitness’s account and quoted by Le Strange, Palestine, pp. 283 ff.

4 Le Strange, Palestine, p. 281: ‘as regards the Cave, the city to which it belongs ts Tarsus ; and further, here is the tomb of Dakiyanus ’.

Is this the Dunuk ‘Tash of the legend in Langlois, Ctlicie, p. 276?

316 Koranic Saints pilgrimage, frequented also by local Christians, and

situated on a mountain about an hour and a half northwest of the town. It obviously owes its popularity to its position near a populous town and the great pilgrimroad towards the Holy Cities. It is mentioned by Haji Khalfat and Lucas? in the seventeenth century and by several later travellers.3 ‘Though it is said that this cave of the Seven Sleepers is accounted one of the principal Moslem pilgrimages after Mecca and Jerusalem, it seems

to have remained till lately very rustic in externals. Langlois says of it : ‘C’est une caverne carrée et vottée, creusée dans le roc audessous du niveau du sol, et dans laquelle on descend par un escalier d’environ dix marches. Le jour n’y pénétre que par une

ouverture ménagée dans la vote. A cdté de cette méme grotte est une petite mosquée et quelques maisons abandonnées servant de caravansérail aux voyageurs musulmans et chrétiens qui dans

un but différent vont en pélerinage sur ce point.’

In the seventies a new mosque was built and some sort

of establishment founded by the mother of Sultan Abdul Aziz. ‘The sanctuary has a special reputation as a cure for barren women who incubate in the cave.5 The identity of the cave at ‘T'arsus with that of the Seven Sleepers was asserted, as we have seen, in the Arab period by Mukaddasi and reiterated in the Turkish by Haji Khalfa (1648). But the identification does not seem to have been locally known at the beginning of the eighteenth century. ‘The tale told to Lucas in 1706 is as follows :

The city of Nimrod above Tarsus was formerly inhabited by giants. Four of these one day set out to raid Tarsus, and, taking their midday sleep in the cave, fell 1 ‘Tr. Armain, p. 663. 2 Voyage dans la Gréce, i, 276 ff. 3 Barker, Lares and Penates, pp. 36 f.; Langlois, Cilicie, pp. 337 f. ;

Michaud and Poujoulat, Corresp. d’Orient, vii, 172; Davis, Asiatic Turkey, p. 42; Schaffer, Cilicia, p. 29.

4 Davis, loc. cit. 5 Schaffer, loc. cit.

Giants in the Cave at Tarsus 317 asleep for 150 years ‘ because, as is the local belief, the

eternal decrees had so ordained to punish the race of giants’. ‘ When the four at length awoke, one of them was sent into Tarsus to get food, and found everything changed ; the race of giants, which had formerly taken toll of Tarsus, had been exterminated or driven out, and the king in whose reign the giants had fallen asleep

was represented by his grandson. This king, on the appearance of a surviving giant, feared trouble, and, not believing the giant’s story, sent a messenger back with him to the cave to verify it. He eventually made terms with the four giants that they were to be supplied with food on condition of not leaving the cave.’ Here they eventually died.: The heroes of Lucas’s story are thus not seven holy men but four impious giants,? though some episodes of the canonical legend are still remembered. One influence working on the myth has certainly been the name of the neighbouring city of the giants, ‘ Nimrod’,3

which is also that of the Mohammedan type of tyrant, Nemrud, the impious fire-worshipper who built the Tower of Babel and tortured Abraham the friend of God.+ The story of the giants has a special interest as t Voyage dans a Gréce, 1, 276 ff.

2 Giants are normally malignant in folk stories; cf. above, p. 308, n. 3. These were evidently in the end converted to Islam, though Lucas only hints at it (‘ils supplierent le Rot de leur faire connoitre le Dieu qw’il adoroit, parce qu’ils vouloient aussi ’honorer dans la suite. .. Il faut croire que le Roi de Tarse avoit donné de bons principes a ces Geants ; car on assure qu’ils menerent la une vie fort retirée & fort austére ’).

3 The ruined ville de Nimrod seen by Lucas is now marked on our maps Nemrun, a corruption of the Greek Lampron. 4 Carmoly ([tinératres, p. 353) considers that the legend in which Nimrod throws Abraham into a furnace is of Jewish origin and has been adopted by the Koran. It seems to start from the [fictitious] etymology of Nimrod, which in Hebrew means ‘to rebel’: see Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, ii, 1102 ff. There is a Nemrud Kalesi as far west as Per-

gamon, but the original, according to Carmoly, is Birs Nimrud in

318 Korantc Satnts showing a local religious legend decaying temporarily into a secular story, to be afterwards rehabilitated, possibly under literary influence. The cave near Albistan mentioned by Le Strange ' is here identified for the first time. Six hours west of the town lies the mixed (Turkish and Armenian) village of

Yarpuz. Kiepert’s map gives in brackets below the name Yarpuz what is apparently a variant local (Armenian ?) form Lfsus: both names are in all probability

perversions of the ancient Arabissus, the name of an important station at this point on the Roman road.? An hour north-west of Yarpuz is a holy place called in Turkish Zzaret Serat (‘ Palace of the Pilgrimage ’) and

in Armenian Yot Manug (‘ Seven Children’). This cave is still venerated by Moslems (and doubtless by local Christians also) as the cave of the Seven Sleepers.3

The perversion of Arabissus to Efsus and subsequent confusion with Ephesus lie at the back of the identification.

A cave of the Seven Sleepers, independent of those we have mentioned above, was found by ‘Taylor in Kurdistan near the village of Hyny, north of Diarbekr. Mesopotamia, where the mound of the furnace 1s still shown, ashes and

all: cf. Ouseley’s translation of [bn Haukal, p. 70. Afterwards, on Urfa becoming identified with Ur of the Chaldees, the whole cycle was

transferred there and two classical columns there are said to be part of the machine Nimrud used to hurl Abraham into the furnace. The Jewish version of this incident seems certainly based on the story of the Three Children. Niebuhr (Voyage en Arabie, i, 236) heard the Nimrod

legend told on the spot, Captain Warren (see P.E.F., Q.S. for 1869, p. 225) in the Lebanon: see also Goldziher in Rev. Arch. 11, 317; Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, u, 31 ff. It 1s interesting to find in Hanauer, Folk-Lore of the Holy Land, p. 28, that Abraham, when fleeing

from Nimrod, was given protection by sheep and refused it by goats, a story which is told by Polites ([Zapaddcets, no. 191) of Christ fleeing

from the persecuting Jews. t No. 5, above.

a See Sterrett, Epig. Four., p. 288 ; Hogarth, Roads in E. Asta Minor (R.G.S. Suppl. Pap. III, pt. 5, p. 667) ; neither author has noticed the

cave. 3 Jerphanion and Jelabert, in Mél. Fac. Or. iii, 458.

Khidr 319

The site is called Fees or Afistos Daknaoos. The latter name, a mixture of ‘ Ephesus’ and ‘ Dakyanus ’, the eastern perversion of Decius, is due to the identification of Fees and its cave with Ephesus and the localizing in it of the Seven Sleepers legend.* Fees actually represents the fortress of Phison.? Other caves associated by Moslems with the Seven Sleepers are to be found outside Damascus 3 and in Mesopotamia, the latter being the site favoured by the heretic Yezidi.‘ §2. Ex Kurpr in THE Poputar RELIGION OF TURKEY

The Moslem saint E] Khidr, El Khizr(‘ the Verdant’), though not mentioned by name in the Koran, is generally identified by commentators with the companion of Moses’ travels,5 who secured to himself immortality by

the discovery of the Fountain of Life.® In this latter quest tradition associates him with Alexander theGreat.? 1 *’The inhabitants have a tradition that the ruins, and a small cave

near it, was the spot tenanted by the Seven Sleepers’ (Taylor, in F.R.G.S. xxxv, 39). 2 Diod@v (Procopius, De Bell. Pers. ii, 24). 3 Pococke, Descr. of the East, HI, i, 126: ‘the grot of the seven sleepers, where they pretend they slept and were buried; and the sheik or imam told us that they suffered martyrdom for Christ’. Cf.

Thévenot (in Harris’s Navig. Bibl. 11, 445): ‘half a league from Damascus is a rough and barren Hill, but natural Rock, where some Dervices live in little Hermitages. ‘They shew you the Cave where the 7 Sleepers hid themselves when they were persecuted by Darius, who would have made them renounce the Christian Faith, and are said to have slept till the Time of Theodosius the Younger’. Cf. d’Arvieux, Mémoires, u, 458. ‘This cave, as | am informed by a native of Damascus, is still shown, and it is asserted that the dog Katmir can be seen

lying at the entrance. 4 Layard, Discoveries in Nineveh, p. 206. 5 Sale’s Koran, p. 222 (ch. xvi): for the literary side of the Khidr legends see Vollers, in Archiv f. Religtonsw. 1909, pp. 234-84; Friedlander, Die Chadhirlegende und der Alexanderroman. 6 Le Strange, E. Caliphate, p.175; Hanauer, Folk-Lore of the Holy Land, pp. 51 ff.; Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, 11, 627.

7 See Friedlander, op. c1t.; Paul Meyer, Alexandre le Grand, ii 175 ff.; Spiegel, Die Alexandersage, p. 29.

320 Korantc Satnts Among orthodox Sunni Mohammedans Khidr has a certain vague popularity: his day, called the ‘feast of Lydda ’ (23 Nishan = 23 April, Old Style), is observed all over Turkey as the beginning of spring. Among the heretical Nosairi sect, whose religion is a perversion of the Shia Mohammedan, he is a particularly important figure,? as he is apparently among the Yezidi,3 and the

Druses.s The same seems to be the case among the Shia (Kizilbash) tribes of Asia Minor,5 whose points of contact with the Nosairi and Yezidi are at present inexactly known.

In Turkey, generally, Khidr seems to be a vague personality conceived of mainly as a helper in sudden need, especially of travellers. He has been identified with various figures of the Old Testament, notably with Elias § of whom he is considered a re-incarnation, and with the Orthodox S. George, whose day, together with the associations of Lydda,7 he has taken over ;8 the t Le Strange, Palestine, p. 21. 2 R. Dussaud, Nosairis, pp. 128-35. 3 A. Grant (Nestorians, p. 319) gives the 24th Nishan (probably by mistake for the 23rd) as the date of the Yezidi spring festival. 4 Petermann, Reisen im Ortent, i, 147. 5 See above, pp. 145, 148. 6 e.g. there is an Armenian church of ‘Choddre Elias’ at Urfa (Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabie, ii, 330). For the Sinai Arabs’ veneration of Khidr-Elias see Palmer, Desert of the Exodus, p. §7; for the combination at Samaria see Conder in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1877, p. 96. For the traditions of Mount Carmel see d’Arvieux, Mémoires, ii, 294, 306, 314, 417; de Bréves, Voyages, p. 68 ; Carmoly, [tinératres, pp. 144, 448-9 ;

Bordeaux Pilgrim, in Chateaubriand, [tinér. ili, 240; Goujon, Terre Sainte, pp. 63-5. 7 For the church of $. George at Lydda, which was partly left to the Greeks and partly transformed into a mosque, see Robinson, Palestine,

il, 52; Fabri, Evagat., i, 219; Goujon, Terre Sainte, p. 107; Ludolf, De Itinere, p. 50; d’Arvieux, Mémotres, ii, 32-3; de Bréves, Voyages,

p. 100; V. Guérin, Descr. de la Pales. 1,1, 324; Stern, Die moderne Tiirket, p. 170. Two sixth-century travellers mention the tomb and martyrdom of S. George at Lydda; see Antoninus of Piacenza, De Locts Sanctts, ed. Tobler, p. 28, xxv (cf. Lucius, Anfange des Hetligenk.,

p. 240), and Theodore in Tobler, Palaest. Descr., p. 40. 8 ¢.g. at Beyrut (Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabie, ii, 382; V. Guérin,

Khidr and S. George 321 characteristics he has borrowed from 8. George include the reputation of a dragon-slayer,’\which S$. George himself may have borrowed from a pagan predecessor. Descr. de la Pales. 1, 1, 311-13) ; at Banias (Kitchener in P.E.F., Q.S.

for 1877, p. 172; Burckhardt, Syria, p. 385; of. Stanley, Sinat, pp. 398-9) ; near Jerusalem (see below, p. 326, n. 6) ; in Albania (Durham, Burden of the Balkans, p. 208). See especially Rycaut, Ottoman Empire, . 68.

ae? is curious that, while in the West legend relates the rescue by S. George of a princess from a dragon, this is by no means the case generally in the East. Thus, in the Byzantine Painters’ Guide, translated by Didron, Iconographie Chrétienne, pp. 369-71, no dragon-killing

type is given for the saint. Early western travellers to the East mention his martyrdom and his burial at Lydda (Diospolis), but say nothing of his dragon fight (see, e.g. Antoninus of Piacenza, ed. Tobler, p. 28,

xxv, and the similarly sixth-century Theodore, in Tobler’s Palaest. Descr., p. 40). Their silence is especially notable as Lydda is so near Joppa with its traditions of Perseus and the dragon he slew. The bones

of the dragon were shown there in the Christian era: cf. Jerome, Eptst., p. 108, and Josephus, Bell. Fud. i, 7. According to Amélineau (Contes de ? Egypte Chrétienne, Introd., p. liii) the saint is represented in Coptic eikonography as a horseman with a lance but no dragon, the

slaying of the dragon being foreign to the Coptic legend. On the other hand, S$. Michael slaying the dragon 1s pictured on horseback (Amélineau attributes the ultimate confusion to Syrian painters working in Egypt, and holds that Michael, not George, replaces the Egyptian

Horus). The Martyre de Satnt Georges current among the Copts (Amélineau, op. cit. ii, 167 ff.) resembles the early Acta of the saint as given by Baring Gould in his Curtous Myths, 2nd Series, pp. 9 ff. The Acta place S. George’s birth and martyrdom under Dacian, emperor of the Persians, and at Melitene: among other tortures, a pillar is laid

on him. The Copts hold that 8. George, whom they associate with Lydda (Amélineau, 11, 208-9), was martyred by King ‘ Tatien ’ (Amélineau, 11, 167), who is several times called a ‘ dragon ’ (Amélineau, ii,

171, 198, &c.: cf. Hasluck, Letters, p. 193); one torture is to roll a column over his body (Amélineau, ti, 174). A reminiscence of this tor-

ture is found in his church at Beyrut, where a column is rolled on patients whose backs ache (Pococke, Voyages, il, 275). The Copts celebrate S. George of ‘ Melite ? on 18 April (Amélineau, 11, 153). As in the Coptic legends, there is no mention in the Acta of the dragon

fight. In fact, according to Baring Gould (0p. ctt., p. 31), the first mention of the princess and the dragon is in de Voragine’s Golden Legend, that is, not earlier than the end of the thirteenth century.

3295° Y

322 Korantc Saints

The identification of Khidr with Elias is found as

early as Cantacuzenus, who died a.p. 1380. S. George, he says, is worshipped by the Christians and zap’ adrav tiv MovoovApavey tippGrat, ovopaleras de map avtradv xeTnp

nas. George of Hungary, our best early authority on Turkish popular saints, spent a long captivity in Asia Minor during the early fifteenth century? and makes clear the extraordinary vogue enjoyed by Khidr in his day. ‘ Chidrelles’, he writes, ‘is before all a helper of travellers in need. Such is his repute in all Turkey that there is scarce any man to be found that hath not himself experienced his help or heard of others that have so done. He manifesteth himself in the shape of a traveller riding on a gray horse,3 and anon reThereafter it is normally mentioned by travellers to Beyrut (e.g. Ludolf (c. 1350), De Itinere, p. 38; d’Anglure, Saint Voyage (1395), p- 10; Poloner (1422), in Tobler, Palaest. Descr., p. 259), and to Rama (c.g. della Valle, Voyages, 11, 19; Pococke, Voyages, i11, 15). It then appears to have gained general currency in the East as in the West (cf. Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de ? Aste Mineure, p. 80, where a prince replaces S. George; cf. also modern Greek eikonography). As, therefore, its appearance in the East seems not anterior to the Crusades, while it is most prominent at Beyrut, where the Crusaders were strong, and is not found at Lydda in spite of Lydda’s proximity to Joppa, the conjecture may be hazarded that the Crusaders imported this part of the legend, on which point see further below, p. 660, n. 3. Of this an echo may be preserved in the belief held by Moslems that 8. George was the patron saint of the Crusaders (Conder, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1877, p. 98; cf. Hutton, English Saints, p. 88, for his traditional appearance to the

Crusaders before Antioch). In virtue of his prowess against dragons S. George is, like S. Michael, a famous healer of diseased minds ; see below, p. 326, n. 2.

™ P. 48. 2 On him see below, p. 494, n. 1.

3 This is evidently a trait borrowed from the Christian S. George, whose horse is invariably depicted as white or grey, while that of S. Demetrius is red. For an apparition of a knight on a grey horse (evidently Khidr) in a modern Anatolian folk-story see Carnoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de? Aste Mineure, p.5. Jenghiz Khan was visited in a dream by

a knight armed all in white and sitting on a white horse; the knight foretold his future greatness (Mandeville, ed. Wright, p. 238). S.

Khidr and Travellers 323 lieveth the distressed wayfarer, whether he hath called on him,

or whether, knowing not his name, he hath but commended

himself to God, as I have heard on several hands.? ! ,

The conception of Khidr as the protector of travellers is derived for Moslems primarily from Khidr’s own travels as related in the Koran, the Koranic ‘ type’ of traveller naturally becoming the patron of travellers in general. Travel being considered abnormal and dangerous, travellers have special need of a protector in sud-

den necessity : this is a phase also of the Orthodox S. George.? In this respect it seems abundantly proved, from oriental literary sources, that the personalities of Khidr and Elias are distinguished by the learned, the former being the patron of seafarers and the latter of

travellers by land.3 But it may be doubted whether the position of the two personalities is clearly defined in

popular religion. In inland Kurdistan the roles of Claude, a military saint and martyr of Antioch, who is apparently con-

nected in Egypt with Assiut, appears on a white horse to chastise a sacrilegious emir (Amélineau, Contes de Egypte Chrétienne, ii, 50). * George of Hungary, De Mortbus Turcorum (first printed c. 1480), chap. xv (see further below, p. 498). Breuning probably copies from George of Hungary (Orient. Reyss (1579), p. 106: ‘ Chiridilles ruffen

auch miide unnd matte Wandersleute unnd Pilger an’). It is perhaps worth while to cite in this connexion Pétis de la Croix’s roor Fours, p. 267, where a young man suddenly appears to a princess in a jinn’s castle and 1s greeted by her with the words, ‘ Je ne saurais croire que vous soyez un homme. Vous étes sans doute le prophéte Elie ?’ 2 Cf.,in the Travels of the Patriarch Macarius of Antioch, the author’s invocation of S. George as ‘ the rider upon sea and land’ (tr. Belfour, i, 12) and the incident, often depicted in his ezkons, of his rescue of a Christian slave from a Moslem master in a distant land (cf. Polites, ITapadécets, p. 798, quoting Spratt, Crete, i, 345-6). Hottinger (Hist. Orient., p. 480), quoting Busbecq, says Turks made fun of this slave as figured in etkons. Didron, Iconographie Chrétienne, p. 372, notes the presence of the slave, but could hear of no explanation of his presence. 3 Vollers, foc. ctt., p. 262 ; Friedlinder, Chadhirlegende, p. 119. See also Hammer’s extracts from Mejir-ed-Din in Mines de l’Orient, ii,

96; Goldziher, in Rev. Htst. Relig. ii (1880), p. 324; Lane, Mod. Egyptians, 1, 293, n. Y2

324 Koranic Saints Khidr and Elias as given above are said to be reversed, which looks as if Khidr, the predominant figure, was apt to usurp the element locally of most importance. His connexion with sea-travel 2 is emphasized by the fact that his day is regarded by seamen as the opening of their season.3

Khidr has also a physical aspect. Whereas in relation to man he 1s regarded as a patron of travel and a bringer of sudden help, in relation to the world of nature he is regarded as a patron of spring, being called the ‘ Verdant’, partly in allusion to the greenness of that season, while his feast is the beginning of spring and, in Syria, the beginning of sowing.+ His discovery of the Water of Life 5 may also have a reference to his connexion with spring, while the physical conception of his functions has probably aided his confusion with Elias, the rainbringer of the Christians.¢ It is probable that this rainmaking aspect of Khidr is responsible for the number of

hills bearing his name, which are to be found in the neighbourhood of towns and villages. Every Turkish town has its recognized place for the rain prayer. ‘These are always outside the town and in the open air, gener-

ally high lying,? and frequently marked by a turbe or t Jaba, Recueil de Réctts Kourdes, p. 93. 2 For the marine side of Khidr see Clermont-Ganneau in Rev. Arch. Xxxll (1876), pp. 196-204, 372-99: his special marine associations at Suadyeh (Dussaud, Nosatris, p. 133) are doubtless due to the position

of the sanctuary (at the mouth of the Orontes). 3 Sestini, Lettres, 111, 2343; cf. Le Bruyn, Voyage (Delft, 1700), p. 177. Cf. also d’Arvieux, Mémotres, 11, 315.

4 Mukaddasi, ap. Clermont-Ganneau, Joc. cit., p. 388. 5 See ¢.g. Spiegel, Die Alexandersage, p. 29. 6 1 Kings, xviii, 41-5; M. Hamilton, in B.S.A. xiii, 354, and Greek Saints, p. 20.

7 An exception is to be found in Turkish Athens, where the rain prayer was made at ‘ the columns’ [of the Olympieum] (Hobhouse,

Albania, 1, 323; J. Galt, Letters, p. 167; Michaud and Poujoulat, Corresp. d’Ortent, 1, 161). The open-air pulpit at ‘ the columns’ is shown in L. Dupré’s plate and mentioned by Randolph (Morea, p. 23).

Khidr as a Rain Saint 325 dome, sometimes by a pulpit. At Constantinople, for

example, a pulpit for the rain prayer was built by Murad IV on the Archery Ground (Ok Mezdan) high above the Golden Horn.t At Cairo Pococke remarked the pulpit on a spur of the Mokattam hills above the citadel.z When, as frequently occurs, the site is marked by a turbe or dome, this building tends to be associated with the name of a saint, who is regarded as the intercessor for rain, though in fact it is probably more often a cenotaph or commemorative monument. ‘Thus, at Angora the hill opposite the citadel called Khidrith 1s crowned by a cupola on open arches. This dome may have originally commemorated an appearance of Khidr or may merely have been erected in his honour. It is now regarded as the tomb of a saint,3 named, as I was informed, Bula Khatun.s ‘This development is characteristic of a simple theology which prefers its own saint unshared to a divinity of wider powers who is shared by many. As to local cults of Khidr, we can point to two areas,

the Syrian and the Turkish. In Turkey the connexion between 8. George and Khidr seems to be less close than t [vliya, Travels, I, 11, 89. 2 Pococke, Descr. of the East, i, 36.

3 M. Walker, Old Tracks, p. 69; cf. Evliya, Travels, 1, 234, who seems to regard the place as the grave of a human saint named Khidr. ¢ Bula Khatun, whose name betrays her sex, may well have been the lady who built the cupola, perhaps as a prayer place for women. For this practice cf. Burton, Arabian Nights, 1, 74 (and note): ‘ She builded for herself a cenotaph wherein to mourn, and set on its centre a dome under which showed a tornb like a Santon’s sepulchre ’. These cenotaphs might be ‘ dedicated ’ as memorials. At Bagdad in recent times a pasha’s wife built a cupola in honour of the daughter of Noah (Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabte, i, 215). Among ignorant populations such cenotaphs easily come to be accepted as actual tombs (cf. Niebuhr, op. cit., 11, 237, where a cenotaph at Helle, built in honour of the Prophet

Elias, 1s thought his tomb). [At Kastoria in West Macedonia two ruined open turbes in the Moslem cemetery are said to be either the tombs of Janissaries or shelters for mourners.—M. M. H. |

326 Koranic Saints in Syria, where the two seem almost synonymous. Moslems who have made vows to Khidr frequently pay them

to his Christian counterpart. One of the most frequented centres of the cult is a Christian monastery near Bethlehem, which is famous for its cures of madness.2_ According to Conder, sanctuaries (makams) of Khidr in Palestine are often found on Crusaders’ sites, thus suggesting an inheritance from S. George.3 On the strength of his identification with Elias, Khidr has occupied a chapel of the latter at Zarephath.4 Various sites, at Nablus5s (a spring), Jerusalem, Damascus,7 Bagdad,8 t For the general position of Khidr in the religious folk-lore of Syria see Kinsler, in Z.D.P.V, xvii (1894), pp. 42 ff.; Hanauer, Folk-Lore of the Holy Land, pp. 51 ff. 2 Robinson, Palestine, i, 321, 325 ; Einsler, loc. cit., p. 69; Baldensperger in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1893, p. 208, cf. p. 36; Hanauer, op. cit., p- 52; d’Arvieux, Mémoires, 1, 231 ; Tobler, Zopogr. von Ferusalem, ii, 501 ff., who quotes the Anon. Allat. as already (c. 1400) mentioning the chain, beating with which formed part of the cure; Thévenot, Voyages,

11, 639; Le Bruyn, Voyage (Delft, 1700), p. 277; Fabri, Evagat. ii, 187; Guérin, Descr. de la Pales, I, iii, 312. The Copts’ convent of S. George in Jerusalem also possesses a chain of the saint which cures lunacy ; see Tobler, op. cit. 1, 370-1, and Tischendorf, Terre-Sainte, p- 204.

3 Survey of West Palestine, v, 257, and P.E.F., Q.S. for 1877, p. 98. 4 Robinson, Palestine, iii, 412 f.; cf. Goujon, Terre Sainte, p. 56, and La Roque, Voyage de Syrie,i, 16. ‘The fourth-century S$. Paula mentions the tower of 8. Elias at ‘ Sarepta’ (Tobler, Palaest. Descr., p. 13), as does the sixth-century Theodore (Tobler, Palaest. Descr., p. 42) ; cf. Antoninus of Piacenza, ed. Tobler, p. 4, ii. 5 Le Strange, Palestine, p. §12.

6 Ibid., p. 16453 cf. Tobler, Topogr. von Ferusalem, i, 505, 529; Meyjir-ed-Din, tr. v. Hammer in Mines de POrient, 11, 90; Hanauer, Folk-Lore of the Holy Land, p. 61. 7 Le Strange, Palestine, pp. 253, 264. Monconys (Voyages, 1, 340) and Pococke (Descr. of the East, ii, 119) mention a ‘ tomb of S. George ’ at Damascus, but this is rather S. George the porter, for whom see also Porter, Damascus, p. 16, and Thévenot, Voyages, ii, 49. Khidr is said to attend prayers in the Great Mosque (Kitab of Menasik-el-Haj, tr. Bianchi, p. 36, in Rec. de Voyages, ii, 116). ® Tavernier, Voyages (London, 1678), p. 86, mentions a chapel of

Khidr in Local Cults 327 and Mosul, are associated with his name. The last three seem to be regarded as tombs, the rest, and probably all originally, as places where he has appeared to mortals ? or merely as memorials. As regards Turkish lands, Khidr, who is recognizable by the fact that one of his thumbs is boneless, is said to have appeared at Constantinople several times, at S. Sophia 3 and at the Valideh Atik mosque in Skutari.+ There is a ‘ station’ of Khidr in the mosque of Aatik Ali Pasha in Stambul.s Bars of iron engraved by the Khidr frequented by Christians. A ‘ tomb’ is cited by Massignon in Rev. Hist. Relig. |viti (1908), p. 336.

t Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. iv, 442; cf. Sherif-ed-Din, Hist. de Timour, tr. Pétis de la Croix, 11, 262. For the tomb of ‘ Nebbe Gurgis” at Mosul see Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabie, ii, 291, and for his martyrdom there Masudi (quoted by J. Friedrich in Sitzb. Bayr. Akad., Ph.-Pbh. C1, I, ii, 181) and Baring Gould, Curious Myths, 2nd Series,

pir

2 Stanley (Szmaz, 268) makes some interesting remarks on the alleged

tomb of Khidr at Surafend. ‘Close to the sea-shore’, he says, ‘stands one of these sepulchral chapels dedicated to “‘ El-Khudr ”, the Mo-

hamedan representative of Elijah. There is no tomb inside, only hangings before a recess. ‘This variation from the usual type of Mussulman sepulchres is ‘* because E]-Khudr is not yet dead ; he flies round and round the world, and those chapels are built wherever he has appeared ”’.? A miraculous light was seen, added the peasants who gave

Stanley the above information, every Thursday evening and Friday morning at the chapel. ‘This miraculous light at tombs frequently figures in legend : see above, p. 254. For his association with Surafend see also d’Arvieux, Mémoires, i, 4. 3 For Khidr’s connexion with the building of S. Sophia see above,

pp. 10-11. For his appearance there in the reign of Selim II see Evliya, ii, 61. 4 Cuinet, Turquie d’ Asie, iv, 640; Fardin des Mosquées in Hammer-

Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. xviii, 90 (749). For this mosque see above,

273.

’ 5 Fardin des Mosquées, p. 30 (312). Aatik Ali Pasha was a vizir and diedin 1511. Itis.acurious coincidence, if no more, that in the Valideh Atik mosque and in Aatik Ali’s mosque there should be a station of Khidr, the only Moslem saint who goes on horseback. It would be interesting to know whether an alleged footprint of his horse were shown in these mosques.

328 Korantc Saints boneless thumb of the saint are shown in the mosque of Mohammed II,! while he is said to be present daily at one of the five prayers in the mosque of Sultan Ahmed.?

Near Adrianople, Covel in 1677 notices a ‘ place of Khidr ’ with an imperial kiosk said to occupy the site of a church of S. George.3 At Gallipoli a mosque called Khizr u Ilyas Maqamt, ‘the station of Khidr and Elias,’ is supposed to commemorate an appearance of the saint

to the poet Mehemed Yazijioglu.s In Albania, near Elbassan, a hot spring bears the saint’s name.5 In Asia Minor, Khidr has replaced at Elwan Chelebi

the dragon-slaying 5. Theodore.6 This is the only proved instance of his intrusion in Turkey on a Chris-

tian cult. But in many places the name Khzdrltk

(‘ place of Khidr ’) is given to hills or ‘ high places’ of which the Christian traditions, if any ever existed, have disappeared. Such hills exist near Angora,?7 near Sinope®

above Geredeh(Krateia Bithyniae),9 near Changri(Gangra),!¢near Ladik(Pontus),™ near Tarakli(Dablae),!2 and

at Afiun Kara Hisar.3 There is a mountain Khidirli

Dagh near Kebsud," while places named K heder Elles are recorded near Kula in Lydia*5 and above Tripoli on the

Black Sea. Pére de Jerphanion, in his new map of Pontus'7 marks a village Khedernale (‘Horseshoe of t Cuinet, loc. cit. 2 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, pp. 98 ff. 3 Diaries, p. 248; cf. Jacob, Bettrdge, p. 15, and Rycaut, Ottoman

Emptre, p. 69. 4 Gibb, Ottoman Poetry, i, 393.

5 Von Hahn, Alban. Studien, iii, 59, 5.v. Audce. © Above, p. 48.

7 Evliya, Travels, u, 230; Ainsworth, Travels, i, 1333 see also

below, p. 449. 8 Ibn Batuta, tr. Sanguinetti, ii, 349. 9 Von Diest, Lilstt nach Angora, pl. ii.

to R, Kiepert’s Kletnasten. m Evliya, Travels, il, 211. 1 R, Kiepert’s Kleinasien. 13 Von Hammer, Osman. Dichtkunst, 1, 63. 4 R. Philippson’s Karte des W. Kletnastens.

15 R. Kiepert’s Kletnasten. 16 [bid. 17 Carte du Bassin du Yéchil Irmak. R. Kiepert gives the name as Hidirnal,

Khidr and 8S. Ehas 320 Khidr ’) near Sivas, which probably claims, like Elwan

Chelebi, to possess a hoof-print of the saint’s horse. Professor White of Marsovan seems to find KAztdrltk almost a generic name for a holy place in his district,! which has a large Shia population.:

On the grounds of Orthodox Greek practice we should, perhaps, expect that 5. Elias was the saint displaced on hill-top sites.3 But the functions and t Cf. the use of yslipns (=holy man) by the Greeks of Silleh near Konia (Dawkins, Mod. Greek, p. 288). 2 Trans. Vict. Inst. xxxix (1907), p. 1563; cf. de Jerphanion in Byz. Zett. XxX, 493, where the cult of Elias at the site (Ebimi) of a temple of Zeus Stratios (Cumont, Stud. Pont. ii, 172) is identified as a KhAidritk.

3 Elias, on the perfectly good ground of his biblical history, is the saint of rain (cf. Shishmanova, Légendes Relig. Bulg., pp. 134 ff.), and is the most popular hill-saint in Greek lands, not because he replaces Helios, the ancient sun-god, but because of his original connexion with Carmel, where his memory is still alive (cf. Pierotti, Légendes Racontées, p- 43; Goujon, Terre Sainte, pp. 63-5; d’Arvieux, Mémorres, 11, 294,

306, 417; de Bréves, Voyages, p. 68). In the same way the other common (but far less common) hill dedications in Greece are connected with Tabor (Merapcpdwors XS wrifpos) as Athos and the Great Monastery of the Meteora, or with Olivet (’AvaAnyis) as Olympus. The idea that Elias chapels were survivals of Helios worship (for which see, ¢.g., Petit de Julleville, Recherches en Gréce, in Arch. des Miss., 2nd ser., v (1869), p. 519; Deschamps, La Gréce d’ Aujourd’ hut, p. 322 ; Lawson, Modern Greek Folklore, p. 44; M. Hamilton (Greek Saints, p. 19) was opposed already by Lenormant (Vote Eleusin., pp. 451-2) in 1867, and seems not to be known to Buchon in 1843, though in general he is very ready to find ancient survivals in modern Greece. The theory is based partly on nomenclature and partly on the art-types of Helios and Elias. It is true that Helios (“HAtos) looks rather like Elias ’EAtas) and that *HXovsounds very like’EAtov. But the usual genitive of *EAiasis’EAta. It is also true that there is a certain similarity in their art-types, Helios being the charioteer of the sun, and Elias being received up into heaven in a chariot of fire. But art types are not of great importance in rustic sanctuaries, and both Helios and Elias are more frequently represented in other ways, while, if the chariot be thought away, there remain the opposite types of an ephebe and a bearded ascete. Solar survivals more

probably belong to 5. John, whose feast is the summer solstice, his birthday being six months before that of Christ (Luke, i, 26), which is the winter solstice. Thus, when Monte Cassino was founded, in 529,

330 Koranic Saints conceptions of Khidr are at once so varied and so vague as to adapt him to replace almost any saint, or indeed to S. Benedict is said to have found there a much-frequented temple of Apollo, which he replaced by a church of $. Martin, the destroyer of idols, replacing Apollo’s altar by a church of S. John, the solstice saint (Beugnot, Destr. du Paganisme, ii, 285, quoting the nearly contemporary Leo of Ostia). That is, S. Benedict ‘ disinfected ’ the locality by building the church of S. Martin and ‘ transferred’ the solstice festival to S. John. S. Elias comes rather late for a solstice saint, being celebrated on 19 July; it is, however, true that midsummer fires are lit on S. Elias’ day in the chapel of S. Elias on the summit of 'Taygetos

(M. Hamilton, Greek Saints, p. 20), but this is an isolated case not justifying a general rule. It is also to be noted that Helios was never a popular god in Greece at all under that name, except at Rhodes, where he is thought identical with Zeus Atabyrios ; in modern Rhodes Mt. Ataira retains the name and Mt. S. Elias is a separate peak. Nor was Apollo in classical (as distinct from Homeric) Greece addicted to mountain-tops. Survivalists attempt to turn this difficulty by referring to the late Roman solar cult introduced by Aurelian, the conqueror of Palmyra, from Syria. But this was a Syrian city cult, favoured by a Roman emperor in Rome, and not associated with hills or country. Survivalists also quote the equally late solar cult of Mithras, which was derived from Persia, had a great vogue in Rome, and is associated with

the frequent Roman coin-legend SOLI INVICTO COMITT. But the Mithras cult does not seem to have had much vogue in Greece, and it was essentially a popular cult particularly affected by soldiers and

developed, not in rustic places, but in towns and camps. The typical Mithraeum, moreover, was a cave or underground chapel made to resemble a cave. ‘The hill-cult of Elias is unknown in the West, where these solar cults were prominent, and it seems to be found only once in South Italy (near Cotrone, Baedeker, S. Italy, p. 256), which remained long Greek (Mt. S. Elias in Alaska is due to Russian influence deriving from Greek practice). Elias is still a hill-saint in Syria (e. g. on Carmel,

as above; on Sinai, see Tischendorf, Terre-Sainte, p. 76; Stanley, Sinai, p.75; Palmer, Desert of the Exodus, p. 57; elsewhere, see Tobler,

Palaest. Deser., p. 8, and Topogr. von Ferusalem, ii, 712; Stanley, Sinat, p. 251; Pococke, Voyages, iii, 263, 394), where the influence of Greek language and custom can scarcely have been important. That is, in Syria, a country where Greek was never the language and “Hatos meant nothing, Elias is associated with three mountains which were

well within the range of Christian pilgrims. Further, the chief and characteristic hill-god of antiquity was Zeus the cloud-gatherer (found on Athos, Olympus, Dicte, Anchesmos; cf. Lykaios, Atabyrios), the

Origins of Khidr’s Functions 331 occupy any site independently. His sudden appearances make it specially easy to associate him with any spot already hallowed by previous tradition or notable for recent supernatural occurrences,* while his functions as a patron of spring vegetation and as a rain-maker recommend his cult to primitive pastoral or agricultural populations. Without claiming to solve the various fusions of cult and legend which have produced the mysterious and many-sided figure of Khidr,? we may perhaps make the following tentative suggestions 3 as to the origin of his functions and vogue in popular religion.

(1) In the Koran the unnamed Servant of God,

generally interpreted as Khidr, travels with Moses and

commits three seemingly unjust deeds. A probable original 5 of this story is the Talmudic tale of Rabbi corresponding hill-goddess being Cybele-Rhea (found on Ida, Dindy-

mon, &c.). Zeus the cloud-gatherer would be a not unnatural predecessor of Elias, in which connexion it is curious to find in Trede, Heidentum (1889-91), i, 316, that ‘ der Heilige Elias hatte kiirzlich sein Fest [at Naples] und sah man seine Statue mit einem Rad, in der Hand

den Blitz des Zeus’. And finally, as Ehas chapels are generally connected with villages, though on their outskirts, and many villages are recent or not on ancient sites, most Elias chapels are probably recent and no survival of any sort. t Cf. the Kurdish tale of the ‘ Wishing Rock’ (in Jaba’s Recueil de Récits Kourdes, xxxv1), where a naked man praying is taken for Khidr. The ‘ places of Khidr ’ seem generally regarded as praying places of the saint (cf. Gibb, Ottoman Poetry, i, 393). 2 On this subject see d’Herbelot, B1b/. Ortentale, s.vv. Khedher, Elia ; von Hammer in Theol. Studien und Kritiken, 1831, pp. 829-32; Clermont-Ganneau, Horus et S. Georges, in Rev. Arch. xxxii (1876), pp.

196-204, 372-99; Friedlander, Chadhirlegende, passim. [See also Hastings’ Encycl. of Relig. s.v. Khidr, for an article by Friedlander, and s.v, Saints and Martyrs, p. 81, no. 6, for an article by Masterman; my husband did not live to see either.—M. M. H.] 3 [It is to be noted here that my husband did not regard this chapter as sufficiently advanced for publication, and that it is published on my

responsibility for the sake of its material—M. M. H.]

4 Sale’s edition, pp. 222 ff. 5 See below, p. 699.

332 Korantc Saints Jochanan’s travels with Elijah,’ so that its being told of Khidr would indicate another case of identifying

Ehas with Khidr. Such an identification, however,

raises the difhculty that the association of Moses with Elias involves a serious anachronism. But it may be doubted whether that matters much in popular theology, while there is some reason to suspect that the confusion dates from a period considerably anterior to the composition of the Koran, from the sixth century in fact. Antoninus of Piacenza, who travelled in the Holy Land about a. D. 570, visited Suez and came ‘ad ripam, ubi transierunt filui Israel et exierunt de mare [sic]. Ibi

est oratorium Moysis.’? Variant readings are: ‘ Et in loco, ubi [or quo] exierunt de mari, est oratorium Heliae. Et transcendentes [transeuntes] venimus in locum ubi intraverunt mare. Ibique [or ubi] est oratorium Moysis.’ Tobler has little doubt that the second

better represents the original reading, the copyist having inadvertently omitted part : this would also ex-

plain the mare for mari in the text.3 Granted, then, that two ‘ oratories ’, of Moses and Elias respectively, existed, as Tobler supposes, on the Red Sea, the popular

mind would readily associate them with each other, however distinct they may have been in the beginning, and would thus pave the way for the anachronism in the Koran to pass undetected. ‘There Moses is said to have found Khidr where the sea of the Greeks joins that

of the Persians, that is, at Suez.+ In this sphere of activity Khidr may therefore with some probability be said to derive from the Hebrew Elijah. (2) In his discovery of the Water of Life Khidr is t Polano, Selections from the Talmud, pp. 313 ff. 2 De Locis Sanctis, ed. Tobler, p. 44, xli. 3 ‘This opinion I share: it seems preferable to that of Friedrich Tuch (Antoninus Martyr, p. 39), who thinks only one ‘ oratorium ” existed, the attribution being changed, for no good reason, from Moses to Elias. 4 Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, ii, 627, drawing on Weil, Bibl. Leg.

Origins of Khidr’s Functions 333 brought into connexion with Alexander, whose vizir he is said to have been. This story seems mostly to depend ultimately on the Pseudo-Callisthenes* but gathers up a number of legends which connect Elias with Enoch and Khidr.? From the Jewish composite figure of Elias + Enoch + Phinehas 3 come several of Khidr’s aspects, e.g. (3) His association with learning.4 Various traditions associate Elias with books. He is said to delight in the studies of Jewish rabbis,s to have written certain apo-

crypha,® and to have personally instructed Maimonides.?7. “The Turks, besides confusing Elias with Enoch,

hold that Enoch was a great sage. (4) From the same composite figure comes Khidr’s association with the high priesthood.9 Elias is believed to perform daily sacrifice in the Temple underground.” His contact with Phinehas is early and has been used by Moslem theologians as a proof that Khidr and Elias are separate persons."* t See Paul Meyer, Alexandre le Grand, ti, 176; Spiegel, Die Alexandersage, p. 29. 2, Enoch was held by some Jewish thought to have been an early in-

carnation of Elias, neither having died. The Talmud records Enoch’s ascent to Heaven in a chariot of fire (Polano’s Selections from the Talmud,

p. 21). Elias and Enoch are both in the terrestrial Paradise (Villotte, V oyages, p. 56). In medieval French tradition ‘ un nommé Enoc’ finds

the Fountain of Life, bathes in it against Alexander’s orders, and is punished (Meyer, op. ctt. 11, 175). Masudi identified Elias with Enoch (Goldziher in Rev. Hist. Relig. ul, 324). 3 On him see Hottinger, Hist, Ortent., pp. 87-9, with reff. ; Edersheim, Life of Fesus, il, 703; Goldziher, loc. cit. 4 * El Khudr ’ converts the heathen blacks (Lane, Thousand and One

Nights, p. 312). 5 Edersheim, ii, 705.

6 Migne, Dict. des Apocryphes, ii, 219 ff. 7 Wiener, Sippurim ; Sammlung Fiidtscher V olkssagen, pp. 6 fi. 8 e.g. Masudi, quoted by Goldziher, loc. cit.

9 On Khidr as the Kutb see Goldziher, loc. cit., and Lane, Mod. Egyptians, 1, 293; the latter adds that many Moslems say Elijah was the kutb of his time. 10 Cf. Pierotti, Légendes Racontées, p. 22. 1 Goldziher, doc. ctt.

334 Koranic Saints (5) Khidr’s association with travel comes explicably enough in view of the above from Elias’ wandering life,

he being the type of the eternal wanderer. In commemoration of this, Jews lay a place for him at their Passover,’ the idea arising especially from the text, ‘ And

it shall come to pass, as soon as I am gone from thee, that the spirit of the Lord shall carry thee whither I know not.’ 2

Immortality is the connecting link between the components of the Enoch+Phinehas+Elias figureand leads to (6) Khidr’s identification with S$. George, whom the tyrant king tried in vain to kill.3 This entails the fusion, it will be noted, of the aged ascete Elias with the young soldier George. Khidr (verdant, debadyjs) 5 would, on

this showing, be merely an epithet derived from the immortality of the Elias prototype.é The results of our analysis thus tend to show that in Khidr there is no independent Moslem or pre-Moslem element. The Elias part can all be paralleled in Jewish tradition, while the George part is all Christian: only his adventure with Moses is of somewhat uncertain origin, but even that, in view of the early date of the Talmudic story,?7 1s probably descended from a Jewish ancestor. t Hastings’ Encycl. of Relig. s.v. Elijah. 2 1 Kings, xvii, 12. On this see Lane, Mod. Egyptians, i, 293. 3 For Masudi’s account of this see J. Friedrich in S1tzb. Bayr. Akad., Ph.-Ph. Cl, II, 11, 181. Masudi places the martyrdom at Mosul, where Niebuhr notes (Voyage en Arabte, ii, 291) the existence of his tomb. The Copts also have a tradition of S. George’s resuscitations (Amélineau, Contes de l’ Egypte Chrétienne, ii, 213). 4 It is not likely that such a fusion could have been made except in a religion which forbade the making of images: Greeks, for example, could scarcely have done so, cf. above, p. 49, n. 2. 5 So Beidawi, quoted by Hottinger, Hist. Ortent., p. 87.

6 Cf. dArvieux, Mémotres, ii, 314: ‘ils ne nomment jamais ce S. Prophete Elie, qu’ils n’y ajoitent l’épithete de KAdr, qui veut dire verd, verdoyant, qui est le symbole de la vie, parce qu’ils sont persuadez

que ce Prophete est encore vivant’. Cf. also the Mémotres, ii, 315. 7 See below, pp. 699-7009,

Khidr in Shta Propaganda 335 In conclusion, it may be remarked that the protean figure of Khidr has a peculiar interest for the study of popular religion in Asia Minor and the Near East gener-

ally. Accepted as a saint by orthodox Sunni Mohammedans, he seems to have been deliberately exploited by

the heterodox Shia sects of Syria, Mesopotamia, Asia Minor, and Albania—that is, by the Nosairi, the Yezidi, the Kizilbash, and the Bektashi—for the purposes of their propaganda amongst non- Mohammedan popula-

tions. For Syrian, Greek, and Albanian Christians Khidr is identical with Elias and S$. George. For the benefit of the Armenians he has been equated in Kurdis-

tan with their favourite S. Sergius, and, just as Syrian Moslems make pilgrimages to churches of S$. George, so do the Kizilbash Kurds of the Dersim to Armenian churches of 5. Sergius.’ As regards Christianity, Khidr is only one of many points of contact in the Shia heterodoxies. The Kizilbash Kurds, for example, hold that Christ was rein-

carnated in Ali, that the Twelve Apostles and the

Twelve Imams are identical, and that SS. Peter and Paul are the same persons as Hasan and Husain. The

t Molyneux-Seel, in Geog. Fourn. xliv (1914), p. 66; for the equation of Khidr to S. Sergius among the Anatolian Kizilbash see Grenard in Journ, Astat. iii (1904), p. 518, and for Armenian confusion between SS. Sergius and George see, among others, P. della Valle, Viaggio, 11, 258. It seems to me possible that there was a young military frontier saint George known before the Acta of the (Arian) George of Alexandria became current. Melitene, where one version of the L1fe places his birth (Baring Gould, Curious Myths, 2nd series, p.g; cf. S. George of Melite in Amélineau, Contes de PEgypte Chrétienne, ii, 153) is a typical frontier place. Again, at Mosul, another frontier town, Niebuhr remarks his tomb (Voyage en Arabie, 11, 291), a Moslem tradition ascribing his death to the king of Mosul (Masudi, quoted by J. Friedrich in $2tzb. Bayr. Akad., Ph.-Ph. Cl., 1899, I, ii, 181). S. Sergius, for whom see Lucius, Anfange des Hetligenk., pp. 234 ff., is clearly a border

saint, so that this may be the point of contact between him and the soldier George.

* Molyneux-Seel, loc. cit., pp. 65 f.; above, p. 145.

336 Korantc Saints Albanian Bektashi equate their own saint Sari Saltik to S. Nicolas and other Christian saints.* Such points of contact may be regarded either as inheritances from Christianity or introduced with the deliberate purpose

of conciliating Christians to a form of Islam. It is obvious that at all times conversion from Christianity to Islam has been aided by the considerable material

advantages to be gained from it. The Shia sects to which we have referred are not forbidden outwardly to

observe Sunni forms, and frequently do so; at the same time their real religion, with its many natural or artificial points of contact with Christianity, offers a compromise which spares the susceptibilities of the convert and may well have been the refuge of many harassed

Christian tribes.

r On this question see below, pp. 435 ff.

XXI

TRIBAL SAINTS HE evidence for the existence of a class of Turkish

"Taine venerated as the eponymous ancestors of tribes rests, in default of fuller and more accurate knowledge, on the following considerations. The worship of tribal ancestors is established among the Turks of Central Asia and among the nomad Turkish tribes of Persia (Azerbeijan). Of the latter Bent writes *

‘The office of ‘‘ pir” or elder of the tribe or “‘ eel ” is hereditary, and the “‘ pir’ generally traces his descent from some holy man, whose worship is general through-

out the tribe... his tomb is generally in some wellknown spot amongst their summer haunts, and a great object of veneration.’ * In Asia Minor itself Crowfoot found a Shia village in Cappadocia containing the venerated tomb of a saint Haidar, from whom the villagers claimed descent.» Among Tsakyroglous’ notes on the nomad Turkish tribes of Asia Minor is given the name of the chief of the Sheikhli tribe, Sheikh Baba Zade Selim, z.¢. Selim, descendant of father(or ‘saint’) Sheikh :3

this implies that the tribal name is derived from that of the founder or common ancestor. Taken together, this rather slender evidence seems to warrant us in supposing that the cult of tribal ancestors was carried by the nomad Turks into Asia Minor, and 1 “The Nomad Tribes of Asia Minor,’ in Report Brit. Ass., 1889 (Newcastle), Sect. H, p. 178. 2 J. R. Anthr. Inst., xxx, 309; cf. above, p. §2 and below, p. 404. 3 ITepi vovpovKwyv, p. 17. In this tribe’s district CUluborlu) a fountain famous for its healing properties owes its curative qualities to the tomb of ‘ un Solitaire Mahometan nommé Chek baba’ (Lucas, Voyage fait en 1714, 1, 180); see below, p. 339.

3295-1 Z

338 Tribal Saints that the tribal ancestor was the ‘ eponymous hero’ of the tribe. When, therefore, we find a saint bearing the name of a tribe, we may regard it as probable that, originally at least, this saint was regarded as the eponymous ancestor of thetribe inquestion.’ But this method of identification is hampered by the fact that we possess

no approximation to a complete list of tribes, and the existence of many can only be inferred from the occurrence of village-names resembling in type those of known tribes: these names are, moreover, in many cases obscured by the perversions of popular etymology,

having ceased to have any meaning for the modern population.

The Azerbeijan Turks, as we have seen, give their eponymous ancestor the Persian title of pir. Among the Anatolian nomads the chief is usually called shetkh or beg, the eponymous ancestor being called baba (‘father’)

or dede (‘ grandfather’). None of these words seems

originally to have had a religious connotation; the temporal chief was also the spiritual head of the tribe, and only later, in a more complicated society, have the offices been distinguished. Pir, dede, baba, and to some extent sheikh, have now in Turkey a predominantly religious colour. Consequently, when folk-stories tell us of the thousands of ‘ dervishes’ led by sheikhs who

came into Asia Minor under the Seljuks and were settled by ‘ Ala-ed-din ’,2 we shall probably not be far wrong if we interpret the legend as referring to nomad tribes under their priest-chiefs, who established themselves at this period in the sultanate of Rum. 1 In the Sinai peninsula there is the tomb of Sheikh Szaleh, whom some call the ancestor of the tribe Szowaleha, others Szaleh of the Koran, and others a local saint. His festival in late June is much frequented by the Beduin (Burckhardt, Syria, p. 489; cf. p. 527 for the Beduin offerings brought to the tomb of a sheikh at Sherm on the Red Sea).

> Camoy and Nicolaides, Trad. de ? Asie Mineure, pp. 212 ff.

Tur Hasan Velt 339 The most famous of these legendary priest-chiefs is Tur Hasan Veli, who was given lands on the slopes of the Hasan Dagh near Caesarea. He is probably historical and may be identified with the chief named Hasan mentioned by Anna Comnena’ and a contemporary

crusading writer? as ruling this part of Cappadocia about a.p. 1100. The grave of Tur Hasan is still venerated on the summit of the Hasan Dagh,3 and the name of his tribe survives in Tur Hasanlu, a village in the neighbourhood of Kirshehr. ‘The tribal name is formed, as usual, by adding the adjectival termination to the name of the tribal chief. Tur Hasan Veli is therefore the best documented of the tribal saints, since we have evidence of his historical existence, a village bearing his tribal name, and a cult surviving to our own day. In ‘Chek Baba ’, a Mohammedan hermit, whose tomb and the adjacent miraculous spring in the neighbourhood of Isbarta+ were formerly at least a frequented pilgrimage, we may probably recognize the eponym of the already mentioned Sheikhli tribe, whose present habitat is still in this district between Afiun Kara Hisar and Uluborlu.s Other tribal saint cults of the same type seem to have been taken over by the Bektashi sect, and the saints’ personality often obscured by their adoption into the cycle of hagiographical legend propagated by the order in its own interests.6 Thus, the saint Haidar of Haidares-Sultan, though the village still regards him as its common ancestor, is identified under Bektashi auspices with a Bektashi saint and given an alternative name.? Similarly, Yatagan Baba, whois worshipped in a Bektashi 1 XIv, 1.

2 Quoted by Tomaschek, Sitzb. Wien. Akad., Phil.-Hist. Cl., cxxiv (1891), vil, 85. 3 Carnoy and Nicolaides, op. cit., p. 213.

4 P. Lucas, Voyage fatt en 17I4, i, 180. This is presumably the Sheikh Baba who saved Egerdir from Timur (Hammer-Hellert, Ast.

Emp. Ott. ii, 118). 5 T'sakyroglous, [Tept IoupovKwy, p. 13. 6 Below, pp. 565 ff. 7 Crowfoot, loc. cit.: see also below, pp. 403 ff. Z2

340 Tribal Satnts

convent near Buldur‘' as the ‘ master’ of the Bektashi saint Abdal Musa, is probably in origin the eponym

of the Yataganli tribe, which 1s still to be found in a northern part of the same vilayet.x Another Bektashi saint, Kara or Karaja Ahmed, whose numerous tombs are shown in various parts of Asia Minor and even in Rumeli, though now recognized as a Bektashi apostle sent by Ahmed Yasevi to Asia Minor, is probably in reality a disguised tribal saint.3 No tribe Karaja (‘ blackish’) Ahmedli is known to our lists, but the Kara(‘ black’) Ahmedli is a sub-tribe of the Rihanli + who live northwest of Aleppo, and Kizil (‘ red’) Ahmedli 5 was a tribe

of some importance in Paphlagonia. There is, further, a village Karaja Ahmedli near Nefes Keui (Tavium). Sari Saltik, the Bektashi apostle par excellence of Rumeli, seems to have had a similar history. He appears to have been originally the saint of a Tatar tribe in the Crimea,®§ which emigrated to Baba Dagh in Rumania, carrying its cult with it. Developed by the Bektashi, Sari Saltik loses every trace of his real origin and figures as one of the missionary saints sent by Ahmed Yasevi for the conversion of Europe.7 ‘Saltik’ has now no meaning

in ordinary Turkish, though many interpretations are put forward ;8 but (significantly) there are villages called Saltiklu in both European9 and Asiatic? Turkey. t For the tekke see Lucas, Voyage fatt en 174, 1, 171. 2 ITept Pvovpovnwv, p. 15. 3 On Karaja Ahmed see below, pp. 403 ff. 4 Burckhardt, Syria, p. 6343; cf. above, p. 138. 5 ‘Tribal names frequently run thus in pairs differentiated by colour epithets, see above, p. 128.

6 Here he figures in the fourteenth century as Baba Saltuk, a ‘ diviner ’ (t.¢. a chief and medicine-~man ?). See Ibn Batuta, tr. Sanguinetti, il, 416, 445. 7 For the mythical history of Sari Saltik see below, pp. 429 ff.

8 See p. 576, n. 3. 9 Near Eski Baba in Thrace.

10 Near Sandikli (which may itself be a popular corruption of Salttk/1) in Phrygia.

Haji Bektash 341 Haji Bektash, the reputed founder of the Bektashi, was probably, before the usurpation of his name and grave by the Hurufi, about 1400, such another tribal saint. The whole legend-cycle connecting him with the court of Orkhan is admittedly late,’ and the earliest notice of him we possess denies its authenticity and calls Haji Bektash the ‘ brother of Mentish’.2, ‘ Mentish ’ is obviously the eponym of the widely-scattered tribe of Mentish (Mentesh), which has left its name in villages all over Asia Minor from Sivas to Caria. Bektashli is a rarer, but widely scattered, village-name, occurring so far west as Cape Lectum and often, curiously

enough, quite near villages called Mentish.t We infer that ‘ Bektashli’ and ‘ Mentesh’ were tribes which acknowledged themselves akin and that the original Haji Bektash was the eponymous ancestor of the former. t See below, pp. 483-93. 2 Ashik Pasha Zade (c. 1500), quoted by J. P. Brown, Dervishes, p- 141. The testimony carries especial weight, since this author was from the district of Kirshehr, where the tomb of Haji Bektash is still shown.

3 ‘This village is at least as early as the seventeenth century, being mentioned in the British Museum MS. Harl. 7021, f. 422 vso.

4 Outside the district of the saint’s tomb, where it is common, it occurs south-west of Divriji, near Sandikli in Phrygia, near Sivrijiin the Troad, and near Kumanovo in Serbian Macedonia (von Hahn, Belgrad nach Salonik, p. 57). Beteshli is a village near Benderegli in Pontus (von Diest, Perg. zum Pontus, i, 81), but the connexion cannot be pressed.

XXIT

SAINTS AND DEMONS OF THE SEA I: is, indeed, naturalmishaps that simple persons life should assume thatvery the sudden of a seafaring are occasioned by local sea-demons.* ‘The apparent vindic-

tiveness of wind and wave, with their at times almost animal voices, makes these demons intensely concrete conceptions. ‘They are conceived of as human, bestial, or monstrous in form, and of course hostile to man ; their cult, if any, is deprecation. To this substratum of * black’ superstition may be added the ‘ white ’ conception of a divine force acting beneficently on man’s

behalf against the perils of the sea; this beneficent action is invoked through an intermediary who is apt ultimately to usurp the placatory cult formerly offered to the demon, as also, like all such intermediaries, to be considered largely independent of the supreme power. Such is the process of transition from the placation of a local sea danger personified to the invocation of a

local sea-saint.

We have thus the following typical forms : (1) the local sea-demon, (2) the local sea-hero or sea-saint. The latter becomes in favourable circumstances : (3) a widely potent or even universal sea-saint. In modern times we have at least two instances of Greek sailors’ belief in sea-demons of this sort, conceived of as inhabiting dangerous parts of the coast, and of a cult of deprecation directed tothem. Sibthorp? in t For demons causing the winds see Maury, Croy. du Moyen Age, - 109.

, 2 Tr Walpole, Memoirs, p.286: ‘ We weighed anchor in the port of Cephalonia. As our sailors rowed by Cape Capro, they made libations of bread, using the following words.’ See also Polites, [Tapaddcets,

Kapro and Linguetta 343 the latter years of the eighteenth century transcribed the prayer directed by his sailors with an offering of biscuit to the eponymous demon of Cape Kapro near Cephalonia. The emended text is as follows : Teva cov, Kazro Kazpo Greeting, Cape Kapro, to you, pe tHv Katroxampatvda oov And to Mrs. Cape Kapro Kai peta KaroxanporovAa cov. And the little Cape Kapro’s.

Na Kazpo, va Kanpawa, Here’s for you, Kapro and Mrs. Kapro,

va Ta Katroxamporovia. Here’s for you little Cape Kapro’s.

Padre To Trakiydor Eat up the biscutt,

eceis Wapia pedAavovpia. You melanouria fish.

A similar cult was observed by von Hahn at Cape Linguetta in Albania. Here, according to his sailors, dwelt a marine she-demon named Linguetta, to whom ships passing her abode offered a handful of salt with the invocation ‘ Here’s your bread, Linguetta, and send us (fair) voyage.’ 2 Similarly, in classical times we may regard Scylla as the typical example of a sea-demon. 1209 ; 1b. (biscuit to Cape Volpo, cf. Z. f. Anthropol., p. 215) ; see note on no. §58 for all such practices. t The melanourta, as actual inhabitants of the water, accept the offering, apparently as proxies for the Cape Kapro family. 2 Alban. Studien, i, 131 f.; cf. Polites, [Tapaddces, no. 558 and note. Bread is thrown into the sea at Gaza (Baldensperger, in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1893, p. 216) ; food is sent by Arab sailors ashore for Hasan el Merabet on an island in the Red Sea (Burckhardt, Arabia, 11, 347); bread is thrown into the Nile at Bibbeh at a saint’s tomb (Bussierre, Lettres, ii, 57). The relatives of Sheikh Selim (for whom see Lady Duff Gordon, Letters from Egypt, pp. 45, 304) on the Nile have to be tipped before

dahabiehs can get under way (King, Dr. Liddon’s Tour, p. 75). In rough weather Moorish pilgrims invoked a saint, hung a basket of bread for him to the masthead, threw a bottle of oil and a basket of couscous

into the sea, and tied a written charm to the masthead (Pococke, V oyages, iv, 213). On. Andrew’s day at Sinope cakes of wheat, sugar, and flour are baked, consecrated in S. Andrew’s church, and part eaten by the fishermen who subscribed the money for the cakes. Part, how-

ever, is kept and carried to sea in the boats; when the sea is rough, crumbs are sprinkled on the waves with an appeal to S. Andrew for protection (White, in Most. World, 1919, p. 15).

344 Saints and Demons of the Sea Scylla, as her name implies, was originally conceived of

as a dog (or a ‘ sea-dog’ or shark=xvwv?) and bears traces of her origin in her later art-types.* The ‘ dogmounds ’ (xuvdconpa)of the Hellespont, later connected with Hecuba,? and that on the modern Cape Volpo 3 in Caria, probably celebrated similar demons.

For the development of a demon-cult to a corresponding saint-cult an important link is furnished by travellers’ accounts of the Turkish cult of Baba at Lectum. Turkish saint-cults are much less trammelled by ecclesiastical tradition than Christian,+ and consequently show more clearly the rude natural conception of such a cult. The first notice, then, of the Lectum cult dates from about 1550. It comes to us from the monk Pachomios Rousanos, who was shocked to find that Christian sailors took part in the placation of the ‘demon’. His words are as follows : ‘As we sailed by Lectum, a promontory of Troy, I saw and heard the sailors preparing food for a demon who once dwelt or

still dwells there, called in the Turkish or the Arabick Papa. And they prepared for him of their own victuals, breaking bread

* Roscher, s.v.; Pauly-Wissowa, s.v. For a dog-headed seamonster on a clay seal see Evans in 7.H.S. xxxii, 291. 2 ‘The connexion is evidently made through the dog-goddess Hekate

(‘Exdrn), of whom Hecuba (‘ExdBy) is a by-form (cf. Pauly-Wissowa, 5.v. Hekabe, p. 2660). Cf. Strabo, XIII, 1, 28. 3 Polites, op. cit. li, 1209. Cf. Strabo, XIV, 11, 15. The locality is still

dreaded: cf. the Symi folk-song in Michaelides, Kapa. “Atopara, no. 10:

ITaveppidtryn Lvpuaxe S. Michael of Panormos on Symi, Kai ‘Ayia Logia ts MroXs, And S. Sophia of Stambol, Ki ’At Anprrpe Bovpyape, And Bulgar S. Demetrius

arov TO LaAovike. From Salonica.

Ex-votos from ships in danger find their way automatically to S. Michael’s church there, as Professor R. M. Dawkins, to whom I owe the translation of the difficult [Tavepyuwrn, informs me ; cf. a similar story told of a church of S. George in Egypt (Amélineau, Contes de l’ Egypte

Chrétienne, i, 240). 4 See above, p- 255.

Baba of Lectum 345 in a plate and setting thereon cheese and onion . . . which also they cast into the sea calling on him after the Gentile manner. Howbeit I gave them no countenance, but upbraided them for their superstition.’?

From the notes of later travellers it is clear that the ‘demon’ invoked in passing the dangerous cape was for devout Moslems a perfectly legitimate recipient of worship, ‘ Papa’ being merely the title ‘ Baba’ given familiarly to old men and often, with no lack of respect, to popular Turkish saints. The passages relating to the ‘ Baba ’ of Lectum are of sufficient interest to be given in full. Des Hayes? says of him : * Les ‘Turcs appellent [le Cap de Saincte Marie] Bababournou,

quien leur langue signifie Le nez du pere, A cause que... l’vn des six-vingts quatre mille Prophetes, dont i’ay parlé au discours

de la Religié,3 y est enterré: c’est pourquoy tous les Turcs qui y passent, iettent a son intention plusieurs morceaux de biscuit a des oyseaux, qui demeurent continuellement aux enuirons.’

Le Bruyn,‘ some fifty years later, gives substantially the same account : * [ly aa ce Bababarnoué un de leurs Saints qui y est enterré ; on

le nomme Baba, qui signifie Pere. Les Barques y jettent totjours quelque morceau de pain: mais les Plongeons, qui y sont en grande quantité, en emportent la meilleure partie.’

Egmont,5 in the next century, adds some details as to the traditional personality of the saint, called by him * a dervise or Baba, who always gave the Turks intelligence when

any rovers were in the neighbouring seas. ‘This cape is very dangerous, on account of sudden squalls from the mountains. In passing by it with a fair wind, the Turks, out of respect to the memory of the above saint, throw pieces of bread into the sea, t Published by Polites in MeArfov ‘Iorop. ‘Eraipetas, i, 108 ; cf. the same author’s [Tapaddcets ii, 1208.

2 V o1age, p. 340. 3 P. 257. 4 Voyage, 1, §10.

5 Egmont and Heymann, Travels (1759), i, 162 f.; of. also Galland’s Fournal, ed, Schefer, ii, 158, where the tomb of the Baba is mentioned.

346 Saints and Demons of the Sea tho’ they see them immediately carried away by a species of sea-fowl common in these parts: and the more devout among them add to this offering a prayer, for the happiness of his soul.’

We have here exactly the ritual of the demon-cults down to the peculiarity, already observed at Cape Kapro, that the offering is actually accepted, not by the saint himself, but by his famulz or protégés, in this case birds. But the saint is conceived of as a person who, in his lifetime, acted in the interest of mariners and continued his beneficence after death. Whether the Baba of Lectum ever existed or not is

immaterial. Hermits with special powers over the weather (and this, not the signalling of pirates, was undoubtedly the function of the Baba) have certainly been reputed and placated elsewhere. In Morocco, for instance (and from North Africa much sea-lore and superstition must have come to the Turks, who are themselves no seamen), l’eonge, in the seventeenth century,

records that ‘ on the top of Apes’ hill lives a Marabott wizord or Inchanter; and what vessell soever of the Turks goes by, gives him a gun as shee goes, to beg a fortunate voyage.’* Evliya mentions a somewhat similar sailors’ saint, Durmish Dede of Akkerman, buried at Rumeli Hisar on the Bosporus, who foretold the fortunes of mariners on their way to the Black Sea in the reign of Ahmed I.2 A prophet of this sort is supposed t Diary (1675), p. 333; of. p. 141: ‘It hath been very tempestuous all night, and so continues. Wee may suppose their Marabotts are at woork to drive us from their coasts; but God is above the Devill.’ Pierre Gongalez, a Dominican friar of the thirteenth century at Tuy in Galicia, is the patron of Spanish sailors, being invoked as S. Elmo (Collin de Plancy, Dict. des Reliques, ii, 436-7).

2 Travels, 1, 1, 70; of. 27; cf. Hammer-Hellert, Hist. Emp. Ott. xviii, 85. Durmish Dede is still placated with offerings by seamen, though his personality is entirely changed. He is now represented as a dervish of the period of the Turkish conquest, who miraculously crossed the Bosporus on foot and established himself (durmak =‘ stop,’ ‘remain ’) at the spot now occupied by the (Khalveti) convent bearing

At Dangerous Points 347 to influence the luck as well as to foretell it. The late Professor van Millingen once told me that in his father’s time a dervish on the Bosporus was regularly consulted by Black Sea sailors and was credited with power over the wind.’ The sea-demon and the local sea-saint are propitiated for the same reason, viz. for security in passing danger-

ous points in a voyage, but in a different sense, the demon, being © black’ or hostile, producing the danger,

the saint, as a rule ‘ white’ or beneficent, averting it. The cult both of demons and of saints owes its exis-

tence, or its interpretation in a marine sense, to the notorious dangers of their locality. Consequently, we find their sanctuaries located at such critical points on sea~routes as promontories,? where violent winds might be expected, localities affected by currents 3 and danger-

ous shoal waters ;+ it is the permanent and (locally) fixed nature of these phenomena which tends to perpetuate a cult of some kind at such points. The exact site of the local sanctuary may therefore vary, but within

a radius limited by the area affected by the natural phenomena which necessitate supernatural help. So long as these exist, there is apt to be a cult, but the personality of the mumen is liable to a complete change.

The cult at Lectum was in all probability directed in ancient times to Palamedes, the sailors’ god to whom the invention of lighthouses was attributed, and whose sanctuaries are always found on littoral sites.s In the case of Lectum the Palamedeion was some miles north of the grave of the Baba. In the Middle Ages we may hisname. C7. the cult of Barbarossa (K hair-ed-din) (see above, p. 279).

and of the ancient Protesilaos (Philostratos, Her. 291, Herodotus, Vil, 33).

i a King, Dr. Liddon’s Tour, p. 75, and Duff Gordon, Letters from Egypt, pp- 45, 304. 2 e.g. at Lectum, Thracian Chersonnese, Malea, Taenarum.

3 e.g. Hellespont, Bosporus. ¢ e.g. Black Sea. 5 See Roscher’s Lextkon, s.v. Palamedes, especially pp. 1271-2.

348 Saints and Demons of the Sea infer from the name ‘ Cape S. Mary’ that a chapel of the Virgin * existed on Lectum and that she was in-

voked by sailors as the Baba was later. ‘The three persons are wholly different in conception, but succeed one another as sailors’ intercessors largely on account of the position of their sanctuaries.” Further, the placation of a local sea-demon and the invocation of a local sea-saint and universal sea-god are logical. The local demon, like the local saint, 1s locally potent, the universal sea-godis potent over the wholearea. The evolution of a universal sea-saint needs explanation.

In the case of the Turks, who look on Noah as the patron of shipping,3 and propitiate him before undertaking a voyage,‘ the choice is perfectly logical.s But S. Nicolas, who has actually attained in the Eastern t D’Arvieux, Mémotres, ii, 315, comments on the invocation of the Virgin of Mount Carmel by Turks, Moors, and Arabs. Lucius (Anfange des Heiligenk., p. §22) says the stella Martae idea dates from Isidore of Sculli and that till then her connexion with the sea was incidental only. 2 Some sort of parallel is given by the succession of seamen’s saints

on the Bosporus (Zeus Ourios, $. Michael, Durmish Dede), on the Hellespont (Protesilaus (?) and Hecuba, S. Euthymius of Madytos, Ghazi Fazil), and on Malea, where Moslem influence never penetrated (Apollo, S. George (Orthodox), and 8. Michael (Catholic)) ; cf. B.S.A. xiv, 173. [A marginal note of my husband’s on the MSS. says ‘ this

gives a wrong impression’, The warning was presumably directed against using such a sequence of saints to support theories about the permanence of the sanctity of a once sacred spot. In general, his investigations had led him to question most cases of alleged permanent sanctity. In the present case he would probably have wished to emphasize once more the changes in the personality, even in the sex, of the successive saints, the variation in actual site of the sanctuaries, and the point that the permanent factor was not sanctity, but danger, at the places in question.—M. M. H.] 3 He was the patron of sailors’ guilds at Constantinople, as of the shipwrights’ (Evliya, Travels, I, 11, 128, 129, 135). 4 Cf. Seaman’s Orchan, pp. 71-2, where the Turks before their first

crossing to Europe invoke Noah; Evliya, Travels, I,1, 63. His name is a protection against snake-bite, because poisonous beasts laid aside

their venom as a condition of entering the ark (J. H. Petermann,

Evolution of Sea-Saints 349 church the position of Poseidon, wasa bishop; S. Phocas,§

who preceded him, was a gardener; 8. Spyridon, who enjoys great local vogue in the Adriatic, again a bishop; while S. Paul, who travelled by sea more than any saint, has, on the contrary, no honour among Greek sailors on

that account. It seems thus probable that two main causes determine the maritime importance of particular

saints. First, the chief saint of a seafaring population tends to become a specialist ;7 second, a saint, whatever his character, who possesses a church on a notori-

ously dangerous piece of coast, becomes the natural person to invoke against the local perils of that coast,

exactly as the local demon. If, in the one case, the

local seafaring cltentéle is numerous and important, or if, in the other, the coast is sufficiently frequented, its

local sea-saint may, by the widespread fame of his miracles, obtain a wider reputation. The first cause seems to account for S. Phocas’ vogue,® the second for Reisen 1m Orient, ii, 303). For the pretty legend of Noah and the swallow in the ark see Comtesse de Gasparin, 4 Constantinople, pp. 189 ff.

5 So, too, with Jonah. Moslems hold that he was thrown up by the sea at the village of Gie on the Syrian coast and they never fail ‘ de demander permission au Prophete de passer devant chez lui’ (D’Arvieux, Af émotres, 11, 329). A Cherbourg sailor prayed to him at Fécamp for much the same reason (Collin de Plancy, Dict. des Reliques, ili, 237),

though he thought of him as a great sailor changed into a fish. A mound at Nineveh marks where he preached ; Moslems think also that his tomb is there and jealously exclude Christians, whom, however, they allow to join in the three days’ fast they observe in honour of the prophet (Hume Griffith, Behind the Veil in Persta, p. 174). Another reputed grave of Jonah is in Galilee and is equally difficult of access for Christians (Le Bruyn, Voyage, p. 318). 6 For food thrown to him see Lucius, of. ctt., p. 294, n. 3. 7 A curious case is given in Polites, [Tapaddcets, no. 205 ; at Spetsa, an island whose inhabitants are largely seamen by profession, S. Aimilianos, who has a chapel at the entrance to the harbour, is regularly placated by seamen leaving the port, though not usually a sea-saint. Similarly, S. Edmund became a fisherman’s saint because east coast fishermen liked him (Hutton, English Saints, pp. 138 ff.). 8 As in classical times for that of Isis at Alexandria.

350 Saints and Demons of the Sea S. Nicolas’, whose original church lay on the Karamanian coast and was passed regularly by the two streams of Christian pilgrim traffic (from Constantinople and Venice) towards the Holy Land. Among the Turks the sea-saint of this class remains local. The

characteristic sea-saints at Lectum and the Hieron (Durmish Dede) were in their lifetime given to the service of seafarers. On the other hand, Ghazi Ahmed

Fazil of the Hellespont, whose grave was formerly saluted by Turkish ships, like the ‘ Marabott ’ of Teonge and doubtless with the same purpose, had,? as his name

implies, no connexion with the sea till the position of his grave decided for him. We have still to consider a secondary class of gods and saints who acquired the general reverence of seafarers in virtue of their patronage of travellers and a special attribute, that of sudden help. This phase is represented in the ancient world by Hermes the luckbringer, in the Orthodox area by S. George, and in the Moslem by Khidr. Hermes and S. George 3 alike give their names to many capes in the Greek area.‘ t Interesting 1s the cult of S. Nicolas im undis (Molanus, Hist. Imaginum, p. 390). In France S. Nicolas is now patron of fresh water only (Paul Guérin, Vie des Saints, Dec. 6; Peyre, Nimes, Arles, Orange, Pp. 209).

2 Walpole in Clarke’s Travels, iii, 82. 3 For S. George see Covel, Diaries, p. 277 (at Selymbria) ; Pouqueville, Travels in the Morea, p. 322 (at Prinkipo) ; Macarius, Travels, tr.

Belfour, 1, 12 (Virgin, S. Nicolas, S. Simeon the wonder-worker, S. George the rider on sea and land, S$. Demetrius at sea, are the saints invoked by travellers ; cf. the list in Griinemberg, Pilgerfahrt, ed. Goldfriedrich, p. 134, which includes $. Catherine of Sinai, S. Nicolas of Beyrut, S. Mary Magdalene of Marseilles, and S. James of Galicia) ; cf. Amélineau, Contes de ’ Egypte Chrétienne, ii, 210, 240 (in Egypt) ; Boucher, Bouquet Sacré, p. 428 (a Georgian refuses to commit the sacrilege of embarking the evening before or the day after S. George’s feast); Le Bruyn, Voyage, p. 177 (vows in general at sea); Miller Latins in the Levant, p. 621 (Skyros). 4 [The chapter could not be completed. M.M.H.].

AXITI

BOGUS SAINTS

HUS far we have treated of what we may term

T: authentic’ saints, real persons, that is, who by their piety, learning, valour, or other distinctions during life, have gained a more or less extended vogue in popular religion, or who have posthumously proved their saintship by the miracles performed at their graves. There is also a very large and important class of saints

who may be labelled ‘ bogus’.t These owe their origin, generally speaking, cither to (1) development or

to (2) discovery. We have elsewhere? given reasons for believing that many apparently orthodox saint cults are in reality developments from the propitiation, generally apotropaic, of folk-lore figures, 77s, ‘arabs’ (which are in reality a form of 72mm), and giants, originally regarded as hostile. Of these, plain simns may be found almost anywhere, giants are perhaps specially addicted to mountains,3 and ‘ arab’ 71mms to caves, springs, and buildings, especially baths and ruins ; even statues may

be haunted by them. The ‘dragon’ of folk-lore, naturally enough, remains a hostile or ‘ black’ form and in religion figures regularly as the vanquished opponent of the hero-saint, who is generally a dervish.

The discovery of bogus saints depends primarily on accidents such as the fall of an old wall,’ or the observat Cf. the false tombs mentioned at Cairo by Al Makrizi (in Goldziher, Rev. Hist. Reltg. 11, 1880, p. 329). 2 Above, p. 223.

3 Cf. Joshua, supra, p. 305. Moslems like to be buried on as lofty a site as possible (von Schweiger-Lerchenfeld, Armenten, p. 3). 4 For ‘arabs’ see below, pp. 730 ff. For jimns haunting wells see Lane, Thousand and One Nights, p. 44, and Mod. Egyptians, i, 282.

5 See above, pp. 237, 253. This disclosed the grave of a Jewish

352 Bogus Satnts tion of phosphorescent lights,’ which seem to be regarded as a divine substitute for the lights placed by men on the graves of the sainted dead. More tangible revelations, such as the discovery of an uncorrupted body, a sarcophagus, or remains of buildings resembling

a grave or a mausoleum, are similarly accepted, under favourable conditions, as adequate grounds for the institution of acult. Ross in the forties relates the following instance from Cyprus of the canonization of an uncorrupted corpse. ‘The ‘Turks six weeks ago found in their cemetery a corpse shewing hardly any signs of decay, a phenomenon here easily explained, since the soil is in such close proximity to the saltlake and the sea that it is strongly impregnated with salt and saltpetre. Further, according to those who live in the immediate neighbourhood of the cemetery, the corpse cannot have been buried more than a matter of twenty or twenty-five years. ... The Turks have made a saint of the corpse though they cannot put a name to it; sceptics say they do not even know its sex.... [he old Pasha at Nicosia was delighted that this occurrence should have taken place under his administration, and hopes it will lead to his being specially commended at Constantinople. He at once had a small house of prayer built in the cemetery over the corpse, and summoned a Dervish to take charge of it. I went one day with the English Consul to investigate it. We found a small white-washed house in which the unknown saint reposed in a kind of catafalque under a green carpet ; the Dervish sat cross-legged in one corner smoking his pipe with the indispensable coffee-set by him. ‘This was the extent of the whole cultus.’ 2

A more extraordinary story is related by Lady Mary saint at Maon in Syria (Carmoly, Jtinératres, p. 244). Lucius (Anfange des Heiligenk., p. 144, n. 5), on the authority of an Egyptian monk of the fifth century, hints at the same superstition. Possibly the superstition 1s very ancient and dates from some notorious case, where a wall fell revealing a tomb. t See Evliya, 1, 11, 68, for an instance. 2 Ross, Rezsen nach Kos, pp. 198 f.

Mummy of Vedi Kule 353 Montagu in 1717 of an Egyptian mummy sent by way of Constantinople as a present to Charles XII of Sweden,

then at Bender.’ ‘The Turks’, she says, ‘ fancied it the body of God knows who; and that the state of their empire mystically depended on the conservation of it. Some old prophecies were remembered upon this occasion, and the mummy was committed prisoner to the Seven Towers.’ 2 ‘This might be disregarded as the empty gossip of contemporary Constantinople, were it not corroborated nearly a hundred years later. Pouqueville says that the story of the mummy was told in a Turkish history, of which part was translated for him by M. Rufhn ;3 the mummy, which was sent ninetyfour years before as a present from the King of France to the King of Sweden, ‘ was about to be forwarded to its destination when it was stopped by the Janissaries upon guard at the gate of Adrianople. Being sealed with the signet of the kaimakam, it was supposed to be the relic of some saint, and was deposited at the Seven Towers.’ + The reason of Pouqueville’s interest in the mummy was that he had himself happened to re-discover it, during his captivity in that fortress, in a cham-

ber of the northern tower of the Golden Gate. He

‘never heard it said, as Lady Mary Wortley Montague

affirms, that the Turks attached to it the idea of a palladium on which hung the preservation of the empire ’, a statement which he regarded as ‘ one of the pleasing fictions of her work’. But in the light of the prophecies which have circulated for so long among Greeks and Turks alike of the saviour-king who should arise from the dead to deliver the city from the Moslem yoke, it is probable that Lady Mary Montagu’s story is

substantially correct, and that in the occurrences she relates is to be found one source of the modern tradi* Charles XII took refuge in Turkey after the battle of Poltava

(1709). 2 Works (London, 1805), ii, 198.

3295 Aa

3 Chargé d’affaires, 1805-6. 4 Travels in the Morea, p. 257.

354 Bogus Satnts tion locating the tomb of Constantine Palaiologos * at

the Golden Gate. For our present question it is interesting to remark that the Turkish guardians are said to light to him a lamp every night and to cover him with a shawl which they renew once a year.? Of a cult initiated by the discovery of a sarcophagus 3 Miss Pardoe gives a striking case from the Constantinople of her own day : ‘ About ten days before I left the country [z.¢. in 1836], some workmen, employed in digging the foundation of an outbuilding at the Arsenal, brought to light a handsome sarcophagus of red marble, containing the bodies of Heraclius, a Greek emperor, who flourished during the reign of Mahomet, and his consort. The two figures representing the Imperial pair are nearly perfect. That of the Emperor holds in one hand a globe, and with t Polites, in his commentary on his JJapaddcets, no. 33, gives full references for this whole legend-cycle. When the years are fulfilled, the victorious army of the Greeks is to enter Constantinople by the Golden Gate, and the saviour-king, who dwells év 77 mpwry dpa tis Bulavri-

Sos, will rise from the sleep of death to lead them in. The site suits the Golden Gate well enough, standing, as it does, at the south-west corner of the triangular city, but in the traditions there is a discrepancy on one essential point, namely, the identity of the sleeper at the Golden

Gate. He is either the emperor Constantine Palaiologos, or his predecessor, John Palaiologos, or S. John the Evangelist (Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, p. 103). All these traditions are

historically almost equally incredible. But the intrusion of S. John, who, according to medieval traditions, sleeps without tasting of death in his tomb at Ephesus, is at least intelligible in this setting. ‘The figure

of John Palaiologos, on the other hand, seems to be no more than a bridge effecting the transition between the deathless saint, John, and the deathless emperor, Palaiologos, of popular tradition. ‘This hypothetical development seems to suit the existence at the Golden Gate of a body marvellously preserved and therefore reputed that of a saint, who was first identified by the ignorant for obvious reasons with S. John

and was later swept into the cycle of local legends concerning the sleeping saviour-king. 2 Carnoy and Nicolaides, Folklore de Constantinople, p. 103; cf. Polites, [Tapaddcets, no. 33.

3 For a cult at the sarcophagus of Nebi Shaib in Palestine see Capt. Warren in P.E.F., Q.S. for 1869, p. 228.

Herachius 355 the other grasps a sceptre; while the Empress is represented with her crown resting upon her open palm. At their feet are the busts of two worthies, supposed to be the portraits of celebrated warriors, but the inscriptions beneath them are nearly obliterated. ‘Immediately that the identity of the occupants of this lordly tomb was ascertained, orders were given that an iron railing, breast-high, should be erected to protect the relic from injury, the Turks having a tradition that Heraclius died a Mahomedan.

The fact is, however, more than doubtful... The Turks claimed the sarcophagus as the tomb of a True Believer; and a marble mausoleum is to be built over it, similar to those which contain the ashes of the Sultans.’ 2

It would be interesting to know how and by whom

this sarcophagus was identified. It is obvious that Heraclius, at once the supposed crypto-Mohammedan,}3

the Christian conqueror of Jerusalem, and the restorer of the Cross, is an ideal centre for an ambiguous cult. The reigning sultan (Mahmud II) was a known leveller and closely in touch with the Mevlevi order, who in former times seem to have forwarded these ambiguous cults with a view to the fusion of religions, and may have been in part responsible for the identification. t Cf. Gibbon, Decline and Fall (ed. J. B. Bury), v, 395 ; Bury, Later Roman Empire, uu, 261 f. ‘{[Mohammed] wrote letters to the Emperor

Heraclius . . . exhorting him to embrace Islam. . . . Heraclius said neither no nor yes, but sent presents to Mohammed in acknowledgment of his communication. Arab writers boast that he was really converted

to Islamism, Greek writers affirm that Mohammed came and did homage to him.’ For the letter sent to Heraclius see Le Strange,

Palestine, p. 139. 2 City of the Sultans, i, 420 f. 3 On secret conversion see below, pp. 445-9.

XXIV

A PROVINCIAL PANTHEON HE following description of the pilgrimages and "Thos places of the large provincial town of Monastir, all of a simple type, little, if at all, affected by the learned classes, may be deemed not without interest for Turkish mythology. There are four zekkes, all small, belonging respectively

to the Rifai (2), Nakshbandi, and Bektashi orders. Of these that of the Nakshbandi alone seems to be of importance for popular religion. The first Rifai zekke stands off the main street of the town. Its precincts have been much curtailed by the widening of the street. It contains the tomb of Mahmud Dede the founder, who is supposed to have lived at the time of the conquest. The second, which stands on the outskirts of the town, was founded by Sheikh Nazmi Efendi in 1276 (1859-60), who is there buried with other saints, including Sheikh Mehmed of Aleppo. The Bektashi zekke, also on the outskirts of the town,

has outwardly the appearance of a well-to-do Turkish house and is discreetly walled. It contains the tomb of the martyr Husain Baba in an octagonal turbe built in 1289 (1872-3).

The Nakshbandi zekke, in the same quarter, is more

important from our point of view as containing the tomb of Hasan Baba, which is famous for its miracles. The saint is said to have fallen under the displeasure of

a sultan,* who sent men to hang him. Fleeing from them, the saint had turbes built at many places through 1 The name of the sultan was given as ‘ Avranoz’; there is possibly a confusion with the famous family of Evrenos descended from the early Ottoman ghazi of that name buried at Yenije Vardar.

Hasan Baba 357 which he passed, in order to deceive the sultan into believing him dead. Consequently, cenotaphs of Hasan

Baba exist in various parts, as at Kossovo, Uskub, Adrianople, Constantinople (in Divan Yolu), Anatolia, and Egypt.’ Beside each turbe is a mosque. Monastir

naturally claims the authentic tomb. ‘The humble

turbe containing the grave of the saint is specially frequented by women who cannot bring forth and children who cannot walk. ‘The former find relief by contact

with the beads of the saint, and the latter by being supported three times round the grave and leaving behind them the wooden pattens with which the circumambulation is performed.? Kurban is performed in a shed erected for the purpose outside the turbe ; by a miraculous coincidence the saint receives every year exactly three hundred and sixty-six such offerings, one

for each day. Many rags are affixed to the turbe

windows.

The following pilgrimages are unconnected with

dervish convents :

Bunar Baba. ‘This is a sacred spring, apparently Turkish in tradition but patronized also by Christians, in a private garden on the outskirts of the town. It is said to have been discovered by Bunar Baba, a pupil of Hasan Baba, who was digging to find the body of his master with a view to being buried beside him. The spring is almost at ground level, but, however much water is taken from it, does not decrease. The water has miraculous virtue against all illnesses, if washed in 1 ‘These names were given to me, possibly at random. One of the cenotaphs seems to be in the once famous tekke at the village called Baba at the entrance to Tempe ; see above, p. 118. 2 Emile Deschamps saw quantities of children’s boots left in an

Armenian church of 5. George at Nicosia, probably for the same reason as they are left at Monastir (4u Pays a’ Aphrodite, p. 64). In Pontus persons with mouths awry pay a small fee and are slapped on the

mouth by an attendant with the slipper of a certain saint (name not given) ; see Prof. White in Mosl. World, 1919, p. 9.

358 A Provincial Pantheon or drunk during the hour after midday on Fridays: at other times it has no power. The tomb of Bunar Baba, who was buried here by his wife, is shown close by.

Khirka Baba. ‘This pilgrimage is again in a private garden on the outskirts of the town. ‘The chief object of the cult is the habit (k/zrka) of Kulali Mufti Sheikh Mahmud Efendi, a learned Nakshbandi divine from whom the present owners of the garden are descended.’ The relic is kept in a chest in the upper story of the kula or tower, which was formerly the residence of the family ; water in which the k/irka has been dipped 2 has the virtue of killing or curing sufferers from chronic diseases ; it is said sometimes to be administered without the knowledge of the patient by his sympathetic (or impatient) relatives. TThesheikh disappeared mysteriously and none knows where he died or was buried; the clothes he was wearing, including the k/irka, were found

in the garden, the spot being marked by an enclosure resembling a tomb, on which candles are lit. Another relic is a hair of the Prophet’s beard, which was sent to the sheikh ; this is preserved in a bottle by the sheikh’s descendants, and taken, three days before Ramazan Bairam, in procession to the large mosque, where the Faithful kiss it.3 “The sheikh’s wife also ‘ disappeared ’ :

the belt she left behind is still shown and is worn by

childless women in the hope of its removing their

sorrow. In the cemetery on the hill north of the town are the graves of the following saints :

Kirhor Dede, said to be a very ancient saint. ‘The grave is very simple. Beside it to the south is a mul1 The oldest, who is ninety, says he represents the sixth generation from the sheikh. 2 ‘This is evidently based on the similar procedure with regard to the Prophet’s cloak at Constantinople (C. White, Constantinople, i, 215).

3 M. M. H. (1923). 4 Lbid.

Chetim Tess Baba 359 berry tree, in the trunk of which fires have frequently been lighted, but the tree has never been consumed.’ South of this again is a pit for kurban. Chetim Tess Baba. This is again quite an ordinary grave, except that there are holes bored in the head- and foot-stones: these are said to have been made by the saint, who was an abdal (fool saint) in his lifetime. Barren women pass two eggs through these holes and eat them ; people suffering from wounds which refuse to heal, bind them with cloths that have been passed through in the same way.? Kwurban is not practised at this grave, but the saint is propitiated with candles, for which a sheltered niche is provided at the end of the t ‘This 1s evidently a debased version of Moses and the Burning Bush. Carmoly ([tinéraires, p. 263) records that both Jews and Moslems light

lamps on the three tombs of Rabbi Eleazer at Alma. One Friday evening one of the trees that overshadow the tombs caught fire from the lamps. As it was their Sabbath, the Jews could not put out the fire and the Moslems refused to do so, yet next morning the tree was found unharmed. The same author (p. 318), quoting another source, attributes to pious scruples the refusal of the Moslems : God had given the saint power to manifest His glory in this fashion. ‘The details of the Bible story are more closely followed in a French tale in Collin de Plancy, Dtct. des Reltques, i, 282 : when the bush had burned twentyfour hours, it was found intact, with the image of N. D. de l’Epine in it. Pictures of the Virgin are commonly discovered in this way in the West: see, for instance, Collin de Plancy, op. cit. 1, 235, 247, 257; Maury, Croy. du Moyen Age, p. 299; de Smet, Manuel du Culte de la T. S. Vierge, passim ; Sébillot, Folk-Lore de France, iv, 120, 121, 134. Cases also occur in the East. The ITavayia Mupridiariaca of Cythera was found in a myrtle-bush some three hundred years ago, for example (see her "AxoXovBia, Athens, 1909), and the ITavayia rot Kazov Aay at Cyzicus, I was informed, is periodically lost and found in a bush. No doubt many of these ‘ discoveries ’ are as suspect as ‘ discoveries ’ in general, but sometimes the miracle may have a foundation in fact. N. D. de Carentoir was placed in an oak for veneration (Sébillot, oo. cit., 1v, 369), as was perhaps the stone image mentioned by Collin de Plancy (ii, 356) and twenty years later seen almost surrounded by the trunk of the tree. For the possible meaning of Byzantine representations of the Virgin in a burning bush see Hasluck, Letters, p. 93.

2 Cf. above, p. 185. |

360 A Provincial Pantheon grave ; however high the wind may be, the candles are never blown out.

In the cemetery near the horse-market is an open turbe much used for the rain-prayer in times of drought;

contrary to Moslem custom in ordinary prayers, the hands of the suppliants taking part in the appeal for rain must be extended palms downwards or the prayer has no effect. The zurbe, according to tradition, marks the spot where a khoja was buried. Some one dreamt that the grave contained a girl, and on examination it was found that the body of a Christian king’s daughter had been miraculously substituted for that of the khoja."

Tomruk Baba, called also Jigher Baba, is buried on

the hill south of the town, near the armoury. He is propitiated with pieces of liver (jigher), which are hung ona nail and mysteriously disappear while the suppliant is still on the spot.

In the town, near Yeni Hammam, is a little yard containing two very simple turf graves, said to be those of Bektashi saints, one of whom is named Merhum Baba. They are frequented for all kinds of sickness and propitiated with candles, lamps, and kurban : no rags are tied.

In a small enclosure off the courtyard of the Nall Jami is the grave of Khalil Baba, dated 1183 (1769-70) by its inscription; the headstone is crowned with the tay of the Bektashi. ‘The saint is propitiated with lights. t The legend seems based on the Mohammedan tradition that unworthy Moslems are removed by divine agency from the cemeteries of the Believers and their place taken by Christians, who are secretly or

naturally Mussulman. See above, p. 73, and especially below, pp. 446 ff.

PRINTED IN GREAT BRITAIN AT THE UNIVERSITY PRESS, OXFORD

BY JOHN JOHNSON, PRINTER TO THE UNIVERSITY ;